Skip to main content

Full text of "Youth, a narrative, and two other stories"

See other formats


Conrad 


YOUTH:    A  NAERATIVE 


BY    THE    SAME   AUTHOR. 


Uniform  with  this  Volume. 
LORD   JIM. 

Other  Works. 
almayer's  folly, 
outcast  of  the  islands, 
the  nigger  of  the  narcissus, 
tales  of  unrest. 

(with  f.  m.  hueffer.) 
the  inheritors  :  an  extravagant  story. 


YOUTH:    A  NARRATIVE 


AND 


TWO    OTHER   STORIES 


JOSEPH    CONRAD 


" .   .   .  But  the  Dioarf  answered :  No  ; 
human  is  dearer  to  me  than  the  loealth  of  all  the 
world"— Grimm's  Tales. 


WILLIAM    BLACKWOOD    AND     SONS 

EDINBURGH    AND    LONDON 

MCMII 


TO 

MY    WIFE 


CONTENTS. 


PAGE 

YOUTH:   A   NARRATIVE  1 

HEART   OF   DARKNESS         ....        49 
THE  END   OF  THE   TETHER  .  .  .183 


YOUTH 


A    NARRATIVE 


YOUTH. 


This  could  have  occurred  nowhere  but  in  England, 
where  men  and  sea  interpenetrate,  so  to  speak — the 
sea  entering  into  the  life  of  most  men,  and  the  men 
knowing  something  or  everything  about  the  sea,  in 
the  way  of  amusement,  of  travel,  or  of  bread-winning. 
We  were  sitting  round  a  mahogany  table  that 
reflected  the  bottle,  the  claret-glasses,  and  our  faces 
as  we  leaned  on  our  elbows.  There  was  a  director 
of  companies,  an  accountant,  a  lawyer,  Marlow,  and 
myself.  The  director  had  been  a  Conway  boy,  the 
accountant  had  served  four  years  at  sea,  the  lawyer 
— a  fine  crusted  Tory,  High  Churchman,  the  best  of 
old  fellows,  the  soul  of  honour — had  been  chief  officer 
in  the  P.  &  O.  service  in  the  good  old  days  when 
mail-boats  were  square-rigged  at  least  on  two  masts, 
and  used  to  come  down  the  China  Sea  before  a  fair 
monsoon  with  stun'-sails  set  alow  and  aloft.  We  all 
began  life  in  the  merchant  service.  Between  the 
five  of  us  there  was  the  strong  bond  of  the  sea,  and 
also  the  fellowship  of  the  craft,  which  no  amount  of 
enthusiasm  for  yachting,  cruising,  and  so  on  can  give, 


4  YOUTH. 

since  one  is  only  the  amusement  of  life  and  the  other 
is  life  itself. 

Marlow  (at  least  I  think  that  is  how  he  spelt  his 
name)  told  the  story,  or  rather  the  chronicle,  of  a 
voyage : — 

"Yes,  I  have  seen  a  little  of  the  Eastern  seas; 
but  what  I  remember  best  is  my  first  voyage  there. 
You  fellows  know  there  are  those  voyages  that  seem 
ordered  for  the  illustration  of  life,  that  might  stand 
for  a  symbol  of  existence.  You  fight,  work,  sweat, 
nearly  kill  yourself,  sometimes  do  kill  yourself,  trying 
to  accomplish  something — and  you  can't.  Not  from 
any  fault  of  yours.  You  simply  can  do  nothing, 
neither  great  nor  little — not  a  thing  in  the  world 
— not  even  marry  an  old  maid,  or  get  a  wretched 
600-ton  cargo  of  coal  to  its  port  of  destination. 

"It  was  altogether  a  memorable  affair.  It  was 
my  first  voyage  to  the  East,  and  my  first  voyage  as 
second  mate;  it  was  also  my  skipper's  first  com- 
mand. You'll  admit  it  was  time.  He  was  sixty  if 
a  day ;  a  little  man,  with  a  broad,  not  very  straight 
back,  with  bowed  shoulders  and  one  leg  more  bandy 
than  the  other,  he  had  that  queer  twisted -about 
appearance  you  see  so  often  in  men  who  work  in  the 
fields.  He  had  a  nut-cracker  face — chin  and  nose 
trying  to  come  together  over  a  sunken  mouth — and 
it  was  framed  in  iron-grey  fluffy  hair,  that  looked 
like  a  chin-strap  of  cotton-wool  sprinkled  with  coal- 
dust.  And  he  had  blue  eyes  in  that  old  face  of  his, 
which  were  amazingly  like  a  boy's,  with  that  candid 
expression  some  quite  common  men  preserve  to  the 
end  of  their  days  by  a  rare  internal  gift  of  simplicity 
of  heart  and  rectitude  of  soul.     What  induced  him 


YOUTH.  5 

to  accept  me  was  a  wonder.  I  had  come  out  of  a 
crack  Australian  clipper,  where  I  had  been  third 
officer,  and  he  seemed  to  have  a  prejudice  against 
crack  clippers  as  aristocratic  and  high-toned.  He 
said  to  me,  '  You  know,  in  this  ship  you  will  have  to 
work.'  I  said  I  had  to  work  in  every  ship  I  had 
ever  been  in.  'Ah,  but  this  is  different,  and  you 
gentlemen  out  of  them  big  ships ;  .  .  .  but  there !  I 
daresay  you  will  do.     Join  to-morrow.' 

"I  joined  to-morrow.  It  was  twenty-two  years 
ago ;  and  I  was  just  twenty.  How  time  passes ! 
It  was  one  of  the  happiest  days  of  my  life.  Fancy  ! 
Second  mate  for  the  first  time  — a  really  responsible 
officer  !  I  wouldn't  have  thrown  up  my  new  billet 
for  a  fortune.  The  mate  looked  me  over  carefully. 
He  was  also  an  old  chap,  but  of  another  stamp.  He 
had  a  Roman  nose,  a  snow-white,  long  beard,  and 
his  name  was  Mahon,  but  he  insisted  that  it  should 
be  pronounced  Mann.  He  was  well  connected ;  yet 
there  was  something  wrong  with  his  luck,  and  he 
had  never  got  on. 

"As  to  the  captain,  he  had  been  for  years  in 
coasters,  then  in  the  Mediterranean,  and  last  in  the 
"West  Indian  trade.  He  had  never  been  round  the 
Capes.  He  could  just  write  a  kind  of  sketchy  hand, 
and  didn't  care  for  writing  at  all.  Both  were 
thorough  good  seamen  of  course,  and  between  those 
two  old  chaps  I  felt  like  a  small  boy  between  two 
grandfathers. 

"  The  ship  also  was  old.  Her  name  was  the  Judea. 
Queer  name,  isn't  it?  She  belonged  to  a  man 
Wilmer,  Wilcox — some  name  like  that ;  but  he  has 
been  bankrupt  and  dead  these  twenty  years  or  more, 


6  YOUTH. 

and  his  name  don't  matter.  She  had  been  laid  up 
in  Shadwell  basin  for  ever  so  long.  You  may  imagine 
her  state.  She  was  all  rust,  dust,  grime — soot  aloft, 
dirt  on  deck.  To  me  it  was  like  coming  out  of  a 
palace  into  a  ruined  cottage.  She  was  about  400 
tons,  had  a  primitive  windlass,  wooden  latches  to  the 
doors,  not  a  bit  of  brass  about  her,  and  a  big  square 
stern.  There  was  on  it,  below  her  name  in  big 
letters,  a  lot  of  scrollwork,  with  the  gilt  off,  and  some 
sort  of  a  coat  of  arms,  with  the  motto  '  Do  or  Die ' 
underneath.  I  remember  it  took  my  fancy  immensely. 
There  was  a  touch  of  romance  in  it,  something  that 
made  me  love  the  old  thing — something  that  appealed 
to  my  youth ! 

"  We  left  London  in  ballast — sand  ballast — to  load 
a  cargo  of  coal  in  a  northern  port  for  Bankok. 
Bankok !  I  thrilled.  I  had  been  six  years  at  sea, 
but  had  only  seen  Melbourne  and  Sydney,  very  good 
places,  charming  places  in  their  way — but  Bankok ! 

"  We  worked  out  of  the  Thames  under  canvas,  with 
a  North  Sea  pilot  on  board.  His  name  was  Jermyn, 
and  he  dodged  all  day  long  about  the  galley  drying 
his  handkerchief  before  the  stove.  Apparently  he 
never  slept.  He  was  a  dismal  man,  with  a  perpetual 
tear  sparkling  at  the  end  of  his  nose,  who  either  had 
been  in  trouble,  or  was  in  trouble,  or  expected  to  be 
in  trouble — couldn't  be  happy  unless  something  went 
wrong.  He  mistrusted  my  youth,  my  common-sense, 
and  my  seamanship,  and  made  a  point  of  showing  it 
in  a  hundred  little  ways.  I  daresay  he  was  right. 
It  seems  to  me  I  knew  very  little  then,  and  I  know 
not  much  more  now ;  but  I  cherish  a  hate  for  that 
Jermyn  to  this  day. 


YOUTH.  7 

"  We  were  a  week  working  up  as  far  as  Yarmouth 
Roads,  and  then  we  got  into  a  gale — the  famous 
October  gale  of  twenty-two  years  ago.  It  was  wind, 
lightning,  sleet,  snow,  and  a  terrific  sea.  We  were 
flying  light,  and  you  may  imagine  how  bad  it  was 
when  I  tell  you  we  had  smashed  bulwarks  and  a 
flooded  deck.  On  the  second  night  she  shifted  her 
ballast  into  the  lee  bow,  and  by  that  time  we  had 
been  blown  off  somewhere  on  the  Dogger  Bank. 
There  was  nothing  for  it  but  go  below  with  shovels 
and  try  to  right  her,  and  there  we  were  in  that  vast 
hold,  gloomy  like  a  cavern,  the  tallow  dips  stuck  and 
flickering  on  the  beams,  the  gale  howling  above,  the 
ship  tossing  about  like  mad  on  her  side;  there  we 
all  were,  Jermyn,  the  captain,  every  one,  hardly  able 
to  keep  our  feet,  engaged  on  that  gravedigger's 
work,  and  trying  to  toss  shovelfuls  of  wet  sand  up 
to  windward.  At  every  tumble  of  the  ship  you 
could  see  vaguely  in  the  dim  light  men  falling  down 
with  a  great  flourish  of  shovels.  One  of  the  ship's 
boys  (we  had  two),  impressed  by  the  weirdness  of  the 
scene,  wept  as  if  his  heart  would  break.  We  could 
hear  him  blubbering   somewhere  in  the  shadows. 

"  On  the  third  day  the  gale  died  out,  and  by-and- 
by  a  north-country  tug  picked  us  up.  We  took 
sixteen  days  in  all  to  get  from  London  to  the  Tyne ! 
When  we  got  into  dock  we  had  lost  our  turn  for 
loading,  and  they  hauled  us  off  to  a  tier  where  we 
remained  for  a  month.  Mrs  Beard  (the  captain's 
name  was  Beard)  came  from  Colchester  to  see  the 
old  man.  She  lived  on  board.  The  crew  of  runners 
had  left,  and  there  remained  only  the  officers,  one 
boy,  and  the  steward,  a  mulatto  who  answered  to  the 


8  YOUTH. 

name  of  Abraham.  Mrs  Beard  was  an  old  woman, 
with  a  face  all  wrinkled  and  ruddy  like  a  winter 
apple,  and  the  figure  of  a  young  girL  She  caught 
sight  of  me  once,  sewing  on  a  button,  and  insisted 
on  having  my  shirts  to  repair.  This  was  something 
different  from  the  captains'  wives  I  had  known  on 
board  crack  clippers.  When  I  brought  her  the 
shirts,  she  said  :  '  And  the  socks  ?  They  want  mend- 
ing, I  am  sure,  and  John's — Captain  Beard's — things 
are  all  in  order  now.  I  would  be  glad  of  something 
to  do.'  Bless  the  old  woman.  She  overhauled  my 
outfit  for  me,  and  meantime  I  read  for  the  first  time 
*  Sartor  Eesartus'  and  Burnaby's  'Ride  to  Khiva.' 
I  didn't  understand  much  of  the  first  then;  but  I 
remember  I  preferred  the  soldier  to  the  philosopher 
at  the  time ;  a  preference  which  life  has  only  con- 
firmed. One  was  a  man,  and  the  other  was  either 
more — or  less.  However,  they  are  both  dead,  and 
Mrs  Beard  is  dead,  and  youth,  strength,  genius, 
thoughts,  achievements,  simple  hearts — all  dies.  .  .  . 
No  matter. 

"They  loaded  us  at  last.  We  shipped  a  crew. 
Eight  able  seamen  and  two  boys.  We  hauled  off 
one  evening  to  the  buoys  at  the  dock-gates,  ready  to 
go  out,  and  with  a  fair  prospect  of  beginning  the 
voyage  next  day.  Mrs  Beard  was  to  start  for  home 
by  a  late  train.  When  the  ship  was  fast  we  went  to 
tea.  We  sat  rather  silent  through  the  meal — Mahon, 
the  old  couple,  and  I.  I  finished  first,  and  slipped 
away  for  a  smoke,  my  cabin  being  in  a  deck-house 
just  against  the  poop.  It  was  high  water,  blowing 
fresh  with  a  drizzle;  the  double  dock-gates  were 
opened,  and  the  steam-colliers  were  going  in  and  out 


YOUTH.  9 

in  the  darkness  with  their  lights  burning  bright,  a 
great  plashing  of  propellers,  rattling  of  winches,  and 
a  lot  of  hailing  on  the  pier-heads.  I  watched  the 
procession  of  head-lights  gliding  high  and  of  green 
lights  gliding  low  in  the  night,  when  suddenly 
a  red  gleam  flashed  at  me,  vanished,  came  into 
view  again,  and  remained.  The  fore-end  of  a 
steamer  loomed  up  close.  I  shouted  down  the 
cabin,  '  Come  up,  quick  ! '  and  then  heard  a  startled 
voice  saying  afar  in  the  dark,  'Stop  her,  sir.'  A 
bell  jingled.  Another  voice  cried  warningly, '  We  are 
going  right  into  that  barque,  sir.'  The  answer  to 
this  was  a  gruff  'All  right,'  and  the  next  thing  was 
a  heavy  crash  as  the  steamer  struck  a  glancing  blow 
with  the  bluff  of  her  bow  about  our  fore-rigging. 
There  was  a  moment  of  confusion,  yelling,  and 
running  about.  Steam  roared.  Then  somebody 
was  heard  saying,  'All  clear,  sir.'  .  .  .  'Are  you  all 
right?'  asked  the  gruff  voice.  I  had  jumped  for- 
ward to  see  the  damage,  and  hailed  back,  'I  think 
so.'  'Easy  astern,'  said  the  gruff  voice.  A  bell 
jingled.  '  What  steamer  is  that  ?  '  screamed  Mahon. 
By  that  time  she  was  no  more  to  us  than  a  bulky 
shadow  manoeuvring  a  little  way  off.  They  shouted 
at  us  some  name — a  woman's  name,  Miranda  or 
Melissa — or  some  such  thing.  '  This  means  another 
month  in  this  beastly  hole,'  said  Mahon  to  me,  as  we 
peered  with  lamps  about  the  splintered  bulwarks  and 
broken  braces.     '  But  where's  the  captain  ?  ' 

"  We  had  not  heard  or  seen  anything  of  him  all 
that  time.  We  went  aft  to  look.  A  doleful  voice 
arose  hailing  somewhere  in  the  middle  of  the  dock, 
'  Judea   ahoy ! '  .    .    .    How   the    devil    did   he    get 


10  YOUTH. 

there  ?  .  .  .  *  Hallo ! '  we  shouted.  '  I  am  adrift  in 
our  boat  without  oars,'  he  cried.  A  belated  water- 
man offered  his  services,  and  Mahon  struck  a  bargain 
with  him  for  half-a-crown  to  tow  our  skipper  along- 
side ;  but  it  was  Mrs  Beard  that  came  up  the  ladder 
first.  They  had  been  floating  about  the  dock  in  that 
mizzly  cold  rain  for  nearly  an  hour.  I  was  never  so 
surprised  in  my  life. 

"  It  appears  that  when  he  heard  my  shout  '  Come 
up*  he  understood  at  once  what  was  the  matter, 
caught  up  his  wife,  ran  on  deck,  and  across,  and 
down  into  our  boat,  which  was  fast  to  the  ladder. 
Not  bad  for  a  sixty-year-old.  Just  imagine  that  old 
fellow  saving  heroically  in  his  arms  that  old  woman — 
the  woman  of  his  life.  He  set  her  down  on  a  thwart, 
and  was  ready  to  climb  back  on  board  when  the 
painter  came  adrift  somehow,  and  away  they  went 
together.  Of  course  in  the  confusion  we  did  not  hear 
him  shouting.  He  looked  abashed.  She  said  cheer- 
fully, 'I  suppose  it  does  not  matter  my  losing  the 
train  now?'  'No,  Jenny — you  go  below  and  get 
warm,'  he  growled.  Then  to  us :  'A  sailor  has  no 
business  with  a  wife — I  say.  There  I  was,  out  of 
the  ship.  Well,  no  harm  done  this  time.  Let's  go 
and  look  at  what  that  fool  of  a  steamer  smashed.' 

"  It  wasn't  much,  but  it  delayed  us  three  weeks. 
At  the  end  of  that  time,  the  captain  being  engaged 
with  his  agents,  I  carried  Mrs  Beard's  bag  to  the 
railway-station  and  put  her  all  comfy  into  a  third- 
class  carriage.  She  lowered  the  window  to  say, 
'You  are  a  good  young  man.  If  you  see  John — 
Captain  Beard — without  his  muffler  at  night,  just 
remind  him  from  me  to  keep  his  throat  well  wrapped 


YOUTH.  1 1 

up.'  '  Certainly,  Mrs  Beard,'  I  said.  '  You  are  a 
good  young  man ;   I  noticed  how  attentive  you  are 

to  John — to   Captain '      The  train   pulled    out 

suddenly ;  I  took  my  cap  off  to  the  old  woman :  I 
never  saw  her  again.  .  .  .  Pass  the  bottle. 

"  We  went  to  sea  next  day.  When  we  made  that 
start  for  Bankok  we  had  been  already  three  months 
out  of  London.  We  had  expected  to  be  a  fortnight 
or  so — at  the  outside. 

"  It  was  January,  and  the  weather  was  beautiful — 
the  beautiful  sunny  winter  weather  that  has  more 
charm  than  in  the  summer-time,  because  it  is  unex- 
pected, and  crisp,  and  you  know  it  won't,  it  can't, 
last  long.  It's  like  a  windfall,  like  a  godsend,  like 
an  unexpected  piece  of  luck. 

"It  lasted  all  down  the  North  Sea,  all  down 
Channel;  and  it  lasted  till  we  were  three 
hundred  miles  or  so  to  the  westward  of  the  Lizards  : 
then  the  wind  went  round  to  the  sou'west  and  began 
to  pipe  up.  In  two  days  it  blew  a  gale.  The  Judea, 
hove  to,  wallowed  on  the  Atlantic  like  an  old  candle- 
box.  It  blew  day  after  day :  it  blew  with  spite, 
without  interval,  without  mercy,  without  rest.  The 
world  was  nothing  but  an  immensity  of  great  foam- 
ing waves  rushing  at  us,  under  a  sky  low  enough  to 
touch  with  the  hand  and  dirty  like  a  smoked  ceiling. 
In  the  stormy  space  surrounding  us  there  was  as 
much  flying  spray  as  air.  Day  after  day  and  night 
after  night  there  was  nothing  round  the  ship  but 
the  howl  of  the  wind,  the  tumult  of  the  sea,  the  noise 
of  water  pouring  over  her  deck.  There  was  no  rest  for 
her  and  no  rest  for  us.  She  tossed,  she  pitched,  she 
stood  on  her  head,  she  sat  on  her  tail,  she  rolled,  she 


12  -        YOUTH. 

groaned,  and  we  had  to  hold  on  while  on  deck  and 
cling  to  our  bunks  when  below,  in  a  constant  effort 
of  body  and  worry  of  mind. 

"  One  night  Mahon  spoke  through  the  small 
window  of  my  berth.  It  opened  right  into  my  very 
bed,  and  I  was  lying  there  sleepless,  in  my  boots, 
feeling  as  though  I  had  not  slept  for  years,  and  could 
not  if  I  tried.     He  said  excitedly — 

"  '  You  got  the  sounding-rod  in  here,  Mario w  ?  I 
can't  get  the  pumps  to  suck.  By  God !  it's  no 
child's  play.' 

"  I  gave  him  the  sounding-rod  and  lay  down  again, 
trying  to  think  of  various  things — but  I  thought 
only  of  the  pumps.  When  I  came  on  deck  they  were 
still  at  it,  and  my  watch  relieved  at  the  pumps.  By 
the  light  of  the  lantern  brought  on  deck  to  examine 
the  sounding-rod  I  caught  a  glimpse  of  their  weary, 
serious  faces.  We  pumped  all  the  four  hours.  We 
pumped  all  night,  all  day,  all  the  week — watch  and 
watch.  She  was  working  herself  loose,  and  leaked 
badly — not  enough  to  drown  us  at  once,  but  enough 
to  kill  us  with  the  work  at  the  pumps.  And  while 
we  pumped  the  ship  was  going  from  us  piecemeal : 
the  bulwarks  went,  the  stanchions  were  torn  out,  the 
ventilators  smashed,  the  cabin-door  burst  in.  There 
was  not  a  dry  spot  in  the  ship.  She  was  being 
gutted  bit  by  bit.  The  long-boat  changed,  as  if  by 
magic,  into  matchwood  where  she  stood  in  her  gripes. 
I  had  lashed  her  myself,  and  was  rather  proud  of  my 
handiwork,  which  had  withstood  so  long  the  malice 
of  the  sea.  And  we  pumped.  And  there  was  no 
break  in  the  weather.  The  sea  was  white  like  a 
sheet  of  foam,  like  a  caldron  of  boiling  milk ;  there 


YOUTH.  13 

was  not  a  break  in  the  clouds,  no — not  the  size  of  a 
man's  hand — no,  not  for  so  much  as  ten  seconds. 
There  was  for  us  no  sky,  there  were  for  us  no  stars, 
no  sun,  no  universe — nothing  but  angry  clouds  and 
an  infuriated  sea.  We  pumped  watch  and  watch, 
for  dear  life  ;  and  it  seemed  to  last  for  months,  for 
years,  for  all  eternity,  as  though  we  had  been  dead 
and  gone  to  a  hell  for  sailors.  We  forgot  the  day  of 
the  week,  the  name  of  the  month,  what  year  it  was, 
and  whether  we  had  ever  been  ashore.  The  sails 
blew  away,  she  lay  broadside  on  under  a  weather- 
cloth,  the  ocean  poured  over  her,  and  we  did  not 
care.  We  turned  those  handles,  and  had  the  eyes  of 
idiots.  As  soon  as  we  had  crawled  on  deck  I  used 
to  take  a  round  turn  with  a  rope  about  the  men,  the 
pumps,  and  the  mainmast,  and  we  turned,  we  turned 
incessantly,  with  the  water  to  our  waists,  to  our 
necks,  over  our  heads.  It  was  all  one.  We  had 
forgotten  how  it  felt  to  be  dry. 

"  And  there  was  somewhere  in  me  the  thought : 
By  Jove !  this  is  the  deuce  of  an  adventure — some- 
thing you  read  about ;  and  it  is  my  first  voyage  as 
second  mate — and  I  am  only  twenty — and  here  I  am 
lasting  it  out  as  well  as  any  of  these  men,  and  keep- 
ing my  chaps  up  to  the  mark.  I  was  pleased.  I 
would  not  have  given  up  the  experience  for  worlds. 
I  had  moments  of  exultation.  Whenever  the  old 
dismantled  craft  pitched  heavily  with  her  counter 
high  in  the  air,  she  seemed  to  me  to  throw  up,  like 
an  appeal,  like  a  defiance,  like  a  cry  to  the  clouds 
without  mercy,  the  words  written  on  her  stern : 
'  Judea,  London.     Do  or  Die.' 

"  O  youth  !     The  strength  of  it,  the  faith  of  it,  the 


14  YOUTH. 

imagination  of  it !  To  me  she  was  not  an  old  rattle- 
trap carting  about  the  world  a  lot  of  coal  for  a 
freight — to  me  she  was  the  endeavour,  the  test,  the 
trial  of  life.  I  think  of  her  with  pleasure,  with 
affection,  with  regret — as  you  would  think  of  some 
one  dead  you  have  loved.  I  shall  never  forget  her. 
.  .  .  Pass  the  bottle. 

"  One  night  when  tied  to  the  mast,  as  I  explained, 
we  were  pumping  on,  deafened  with  the  wind,  and 
without  spirit  enough  in  us  to  wish  ourselves  dead, 
a  heavy  sea  crashed  aboard  and  swept  clean  over  us. 
As  soon  as  I  got  my  breath  I  shouted,  as  in  duty 
bound,  '  Keep  on,  boys ! '  when  suddenly  I  felt  some- 
thing hard  floating  on  deck  strike  the  calf  of  my  leg. 
I  made  a  grab  at  it  and  missed.  It  was  so  dark  we 
could  not  see  each  other's  faces  within  a  foot — you 
understand. 

"  After  that  thump  the  ship  kept  quiet  for  a  while, 
and  the  thing,  whatever  it  was,  struck  my  leg  again. 
This  time  I  caught  it — and  it  was  a  sauce-pan.  At 
first,  being  stupid  with  fatigue  and  thinking  of 
nothing  but  the  pumps,  I  did  not  understand  what 
I  had  in  my  hand.  Suddenly  it  dawned  upon  me, 
and  I  shouted,  '  Boys,  the  house  on  deck  is  gone. 
Leave  this,  and  let's  look  for  the  cook.' 

"  There  was  a  deck-house  forward,  which  contained 
the  galley,  the  cook's  berth,  and  the  quarters  of  the 
crew.  As  we  had  expected  for  days  to  see  it  swept 
away,  the  hands  had  been  ordered  to  sleep  in  the 
cabin — the  only  safe  place  in  the  ship.  The  steward, 
Abraham,  however,  persisted  in  clinging  to  his  berth, 
stupidly,  like  a  mule — from  sheer  fright  I  believe, 
like  an  animal  that  won't  leave  a  stable  falling  in  an 


YOUTH  15 

earthquake.  So  we  went  to  look  for  him.  It  was 
chancing  death,  since  once  out  of  our  lashings  we 
were  as  exposed  as  if  on  a  raft.  But  we  went.  The 
house  was  shattered  as  if  a  shell  had  exploded  inside. 
Most  of  it  had  gone  overboard — stove,  men's  quarters, 
and  their  property,  all  was  gone ;  but  two  posts,  hold- 
ing a  portion  of  the  bulkhead  to  which  Abraham's 
bunk  was  attached,  remained  as  if  by  a  miracle. 
We  groped  in  the  ruins  and  came  upon  this,  and 
there  he  was,  sitting  in  his  bunk,  surrounded  by 
foam  and  wreckage,  jabbering  cheerfully  to  himself. 
He  was  out  of  his  mind;  completely  and  for  ever 
mad,  with  this  sudden  shock  coming  upon  the  fag- 
end  of  his  endurance.  We  snatched  him  up,  lugged 
him  aft,  and  pitched  him  head-first  down  the  cabin 
companion.  You  understand  there  was  no  time  to 
carry  him  down  with  infinite  precautions  and  wait 
to  see  how  he  got  on.  Those  below  would  pick  him 
up  at  the  bottom  of  the  stairs  all  right.  We  were 
in  a  hurry  to  go  back  to  the  pumps.  That  business 
could  not  wait.     A  bad  leak  is  an  inhuman  thing. 

"One  would  think  that  the  sole  purpose  of  that 
fiendish  gale  had  been  to  make  a  lunatic  of  that 
poor  devil  of  a  mulatto.  It  eased  before  morning, 
and  next  day  the  sky  cleared,  and  as  the  sea  went 
down  the  leak  took  up.  When  it  came  to  bending 
a  fresh  set  of  sails  the  crew  demanded  to  put  back — 
and  really  there  was  nothing  else  to  do.  Boats 
gone,  decks  swept  clean,  cabin  gutted,  men  without 
a  stitch  but  what  they  stood  in,  stores  spoiled,  ship 
strained.  We  put  her  head  for  home,  and — would 
you  believe  it?  The  wind  came  east  right  in  our 
teeth.     It  blew  fresh,  it  blew  continuously.     We  had 


16  YOUTH. 

to  beat  up  every  inch  of  the  way,  but  she  did  not 
leak  so  badly,  the  water  keeping  comparatively 
smooth.  Two  hours'  pumping  in  every  four  is  no 
joke — but  it  kept  her  afloat  as  far  as  Falmouth. 

"The  good  people  there  live  on  casualties  of  the 
sea,  and  no  doubt  were  glad  to  see  us.  A  hungry 
crowd  of  shipwrights  sharpened  their  chisels  at  the 
sight  of  that  carcass  of  a  ship.  And,  by  Jove !  they 
had  pretty  pickings  off  us  before  they  were  done. 
I  fancy  the  owner  was  already  in  a  tight  place. 
There  were  delays.  Then  it  was  decided  to  take 
part  of  the  cargo  out  and  caulk  her  topsides.  This 
was  done,  the  repairs  finished,  cargo  reshipped;  a 
new  crew  came  on  board,  and  we  went  out — for 
Bankok.  At  the  end  of  a  week  we  were  back  again. 
The  crew  said  they  weren't  going  to  Bankok — a 
hundred  and  fifty  days'  passage — in  a  something 
hooker  that  wanted  pumping  eight  hours  out  of 
the  twenty-four;  and  the  nautical  papers  inserted 
again  the  little  paragraph  :  *  Judea.  Barque.  Tyne 
to  Bankok ;  coals ;  put  back  to  Falmouth  leaky  and 
with  crew  refusing  duty.' 

"There  were  more  delays — more  tinkering.  The 
owner  came  down  for  a  day,  and  said  she  was  as 
right  as  a  little  fiddle.  Poor  old  Captain  Beard 
looked  like  the  ghost  of  a  Geordie  skipper — through 
the  worry  and  humiliation  of  it.  Remember  he  was 
sixty,  and  it  was  his  first  command.  Mahon  said 
it  was  a  foolish  business,  and  would  end  badly.  I 
loved  the  ship  more  than  ever,  and  wanted  awfully 
to  get  to  Bankok.  To  Bankok !  Magic  name, 
blessed  name.  Mesopotamia  wasn't  a  patch  on  it. 
Remember  I  was  twenty,  and  it  was  my  first  second 


YOUTH.  17 

mate's  billet,  and  the  East  was  waiting  for 
me. 

"We  went  out  and  anchored  in  the  outer  roads 
with  a  fresh  crew — the  third.  She  leaked  worse 
than  ever.  It  was  as  if  those  confounded  ship- 
wrights had  actually  made  a  hole  in  her.  This 
time  we  did  not  even  go  outside.  The  crew  simply- 
refused  to  man  the  windlass. 

"They  towed  us  back  to  the  inner  harbour,  and 
we  became  a  fixture,  a  feature,  an  institution  of  the 
place.  People  pointed  us  out  to  visitors  as  'That 
'ere  barque  that's  going  to  Bankok — has  been  here 
six  months — put  back  three  times.'  On  holidays 
the  small  boys  pulling  about  in  boats  would  hail, 
1  Judea,  ahoy ! '  and  if  a  head  showed  above  the  rail 
shouted,  '  Where  you  bound  to  ?  —  Bankok  ?  '  and 
jeered.  We  were  only  three  on  board.  The  poor 
old  skipper  mooned  in  the  cabin.  Mahon  undertook 
the  cooking,  and  unexpectedly  developed  all  a 
Frenchman's  genius  for  preparing  nice  little  messes. 
I  looked  languidly  after  the  rigging.  We  became 
citizens  of  Falmouth.  Every  shopkeeper  knew  us. 
At  the  barber's  or  tobacconist's  they  asked  familiarly, 
1  Do  you  think  you  will  ever  get  to  Bankok  ? '  Mean- 
time the  owner,  the  underwriters,  and  the  charterers 
squabbled  amongst  themselves  in  London,  and  our 
pay  went  on.  .  .  .  Pass  the  bottle. 

"  It  was  horrid.  Morally  it  was  worse  than  pump- 
ing for  life.  It  seemed  as  though  we  had  been  for- 
gotten by  the  world,  belonged  to  nobody,  would  get 
nowhere ;  it  seemed  that,  as  if  bewitched,  we  would 
have  to  live  for  ever  and  ever  in  that  inner  harbour, 
a  derision  and  a  byword  to  generations  of  long-shore 

B 


18  YOUTH. 

loafers  and  dishonest  boatmen.  I  obtained  three 
months'  pay  and  a  five  days'  leave,  and  made  a 
rush  for  London.  It  took  me  a  day  to  get  there 
and  pretty  well  another  to  come  back — but  three 
months'  pay  went  all  the  same.  I  don't  know  what 
I  did  with  it.  I  went  to  a  music-hall,  I  believe, 
lunched,  dined,  and  supped  in  a  swell  place  in  Regent 
Street,  and  was  back  to  time,  with  nothing  but  a 
complete  set  of  Byron's  works  and  a  new  railway 
rug  to  show  for  three  months'  work.  The  boat- 
man who  pulled  me  off  to  the  ship  said  :  '  Hallo  !  I 
thought  you  had  left  the  old  thing.  She  will  never 
get  to  Bankok.'  *  That's  all  you  know  about  it,'  I 
said,  scornfully  —  but  I  didn't  like  that  prophecy 
at  all. 

"Suddenly  a  man,  some  kind  of  agent  to  some- 
body, appeared  with  full  powers.  He  had  grog- 
blossoms  all  over  his  face,  an  indomitable  energy, 
and  was  a  jolly  soul.  We  leaped  into  life  again. 
A  hulk  came  alongside,  took  our  cargo,  and  then  we 
went  into  dry  dock  to  get  our  copper  stripped.  No 
wonder  she  leaked.  The  poor  thing,  strained  be- 
yond endurance  by  the  gale,  had,  as  if  in  disgust, 
spat  out  all  the  oakum  of  her  lower  seams.  She 
was  recaulked,  new  coppered,  and  made  as  tight  as 
a  bottle.  We  went  back  to  the  hulk  and  reshipped 
our  cargo. 

"  Then,  on  a  fine  moonlight  night,  all  the  rats  left 
the  ship. 

"We  had  been  infested  with  them.  They  had 
destroyed  our  sails,  consumed  more  stores  than  the 
crew,  affably  shared  our  beds  and  our  dangers,  and 
now,  when  the  ship  was  made  seaworthy,  concluded 


YOUTH.  19 

to  clear  out.  I  called  Mahon  to  enjoy  the  spectacle. 
Rat  after  rat  appeared  on  our  rail,  took  a  last  look 
over  his  shoulder,  and  leaped  with  a  hollow  thud 
into  the  empty  hulk.  We  tried  to  count  them,  but 
soon  lost  the  tale.  Mahon  said  :  '  Well,  well !  don't 
talk  to  me  about  the  intelligence  of  rats.  They 
ought  to  have  left  before,  when  we  had  that  narrow 
squeak  from  foundering.  There  you  have  the  proof 
how  silly  is  the  superstition  about  them.  They  leave 
a  good  ship  for  an  old  rotten  hulk,  where  there  is 
nothing  to  eat,  too,  the  fools !  .  .  .  I  don't  believe 
they  know  what  is  safe  or  what  is  good  for  them, 
any  more  than  you  or  I.' 

"And  after  some  more  talk  we  agreed  that  the 
wisdom  of  rats  had  been  grossly  overrated,  being  in 
fact  no  greater  than  that  of  men. 

"  The  story  of  the  ship  was  known,  by  this,  all  up 
the  Channel  from  Land's  End  to  the  Forelands,  and 
we  could  get  no  crew  on  the  south  coast.  They  sent 
us  one  all  complete  from  Liverpool,  and  we  left  once 
more — for  Bankok. 

"We  had  fair  breezes,  smooth  water  right  into  the 
tropics,  and  the  old  Judea  lumbered  along  in  the 
sunshine.  When  she  went  eight  knots  everything 
cracked  aloft,  and  we  tied  our  caps  to  our  heads; 
but  mostly  she  strolled  on  at  the  rate  of  three  miles 
an  hour.  What  could  you  expect?  She  was  tired 
— that  old  ship.  Her  youth  was  where  mine  is — 
where  yours  is — you  fellows  who  listen  to  this  yarn ; 
and  what  friend  would  throw  your  years  and  your 
weariness  in  your  face  ?  We  didn't  grumble  at  her. 
To  us  aft,  at  least,  it  seemed  as  though  we  had  been 
born  in  her,  reared  in  her,  had  lived  in  her  for  ages, 


20  YOUTH. 

had  never  known  any  other  ship.  I  would  just  as 
soon  have  abused  the  old  village  church  at  home  for 
not  being  a  cathedral. 

"  And  for  me  there  was  also  my  youth  to  make  me 
patient.  There  was  all  the  East  before  me,  and  all 
life,  and  the  thought  that  I  had  been  tried  in  that 
ship  and  had  come  out  pretty  well.  And  I  thought 
of  men  of  old  who,  centuries  ago,  went  that  road  in 
ships  that  sailed  no  better,  to  the  land  of  palms,  and 
spices,  and  yellow  sands,  and  of  brown  nations  ruled 
by  kings  more  cruel  than  Nero  the  Roman  and  more 
splendid  than  Solomon  the  Jew.  The  old  bark 
lumbered  on,  heavy  with  her  age  and  the  burden  of 
her  cargo,  while  I  lived  the  life  of  youth  in  ignorance 
and  hope.  She  lumbered  on  through  an  interminable 
procession  of  days ;  and  the  fresh  gilding  flashed 
back  at  the  setting  sun,  seemed  to  cry  out  over  the 
darkening  sea  the  words  painted  on  her  stern,  '  Judea, 
London.     Do  or  Die.' 

"  Then  we  entered  the  Indian  Ocean  and  steered 
northerly  for  Java  Head.  The  winds  were  light. 
Weeks  slipped  by.  She  crawled  on,  do  or  die,  and 
people  at  home  began  to  think  of  posting  us  as 
overdue. 

"  One  Saturday  evening,  I  being  off  duty,  the  men 
asked  me  to  give  them  an  extra  bucket  of  water  or 
so — for  washing  clothes.  As  I  did  not  wish  to  screw 
on  the  fresh -water  pump  so  late,  I  went  forward 
whistling,  and  with  a  key  in  my  hand  to  unlock  the 
forepeak  scuttle,  intending  to  serve  the  water  out  of  a 
spare  tank  we  kept  there. 

"  The  smell  down  below  was  as  unexpected  as  it 
was  frightful.     One  would  have  thought  hundreds  of 


YOUTH.  21 

paraffin-lamps  had  been  flaring  and  smoking  in  that 
hole  for  days.  I  was  glad  to  get  out.  The  man 
with  me  coughed  and  said,  'Funny  smell,  sir.'  I 
answered  negligently,  '  It's  good  for  the  health  they 
say,'  and  walked  aft. 

"  The  first  thing  I  did  was  to  put  my  head  down 
the  square  of  the  midship  ventilator.  As  I  lifted  the 
lid  a  visible  breath,  something  like  a  thin  fog,  a  puff 
of  faint  haze,  rose  from  the  opening.  The  ascending 
air  was  hot,  and  had  a  heavy,  sooty,  paraffiny  smell. 
I  gave  one  sniff,  and  put  down  the  lid  gently.  It 
was  no  use  choking  myself.     The  cargo  was  on  fire. 

"  Next  day  she  began  to  smoke  in  earnest.  You 
see  it  was  to  be  expected,  for  though  the  coal  was  of 
a  safe  kind,  that  cargo  had  been  so  handled,  so 
broken  up  with  handling,  that  it  looked  more  like 
smithy  coal  than  anything  else.  Then  it  had  been 
wetted — more  than  once.  It  rained  all  the  time  we 
were  taking  it  back  from  the  hulk,  and  now  with  this 
long  passage  it  got  heated,  and  there  was  another 
case  of  spontaneous  combustion. 

"  The  captain  called  us  into  the  cabin.  He  had  a 
chart  spread  on  the  table,  and  looked  unhappy.  He 
said,  '  The  coast  of  West  Australia  is  near,  but  I 
mean  to  proceed  to  our  destination.  It  is  the  hurri- 
cane month  too;  but  we  will  just  keep  her  head  for 
Bankok,  and  fight  the  fire.  No  more  putting  back 
anywhere,  if  we  all  get  roasted.  We  will  try  first  to 
stifle  this  'ere  damned  combustion  by  want  of  air.' 

"  We  tried.  We  battened  down  everything,  and 
still  she  smoked.  The  smoke  kept  coming  out 
through  imperceptible  crevices ;  it  forced  itself 
through  bulkheads  and  covers;    it  oozed  here   and 


22  YOUTH. 

there  and  everywhere  in  slender  threads,  in  an 
invisible  film,  in  an  incomprehensible  manner.  It 
made  its  way  into  the  cabin,  into  the  forecastle ;  it 
poisoned  the  sheltered  places  on  the  deck,  it  could  be 
sniffed  as  high  as  the  mainyard.  It  was  clear  that  if 
the  smoke  came  out  the  air  came  in.  This  was  dis- 
heartening.    This  combustion  refused  to  be  stifled. 

"  We  resolved  to  try  water,  and  took  the  hatches 
off.  Enormous  volumes  of  smoke,  whitish,  yellowish, 
thick,  greasy,  misty,  choking,  ascended  as  high  as 
the  trucks.  All  hands  cleared  out  aft.  Then  the 
poisonous  cloud  blew  away,  and  we  went  back  to 
work  in  a  smoke  that  was  no  thicker  now  than  that 
of  an  ordinary  factory  chimney. 

"  We  rigged  the  force-pump,  got  the  hose  along, 
and  by-and-by  it  burst.  Well,  it  was  as  old  as  the 
ship — a  prehistoric  hose,  and  past  repair.  Then  we 
pumped  with  the  feeble  head-pump,  drew  water  with 
buckets,  and  in  this  way  managed  in  time  to  pour 
lots  of  Indian  Ocean  into  the  main  hatch.  The 
bright  stream  flashed  in  sunshine,  fell  into  a  layer  of 
white  crawling  smoke,  and  vanished  on  the  black 
surface  of  coal.  Steam  ascended  mingling  with  the 
smoke.  We  poured  salt  water  as  into  a  barrel  with- 
out a  bottom.  It  was  our  fate  to  pump  in  that  ship, 
to  pump  out  of  her,  to  pump  into  her;  and  after 
keeping  water  out  of  her  to  save  ourselves  from  being 
drowned,  we  frantically  poured  water  into  her  to  save 
ourselves  from  being  burnt. 

"And  she  crawled  on,  do  or  die,  in  the  serene 
weather.  The  sky  was  a  miracle  of  purity,  a  miracle 
of  azure.  The  sea  was  polished,  was  blue,  was 
pellucid,  was  sparkling  like  a  precious  stone,  extend- 


YOUTH.  23 

ing  on  all  sides,  all  round  to  the  horizon — as  if  the 
whole  terrestrial  globe  had  been  one  jewel,  one 
colossal  sapphire,  a  single  gem  fashioned  into  a 
planet.  And  on  the  lustre  of  the  great  calm  waters 
the  Judea  glided  imperceptibly,  enveloped  in  languid 
and  unclean  vapours,  in  a  lazy  cloud  that  drifted  to 
leeward,  light  and  slow  :  a  pestiferous  cloud  defiling 
the  splendour  of  sea  and  sky. 

"  All  this  time  of  course  we  saw  no  fire.  The 
cargo  smouldered  at  the  bottom  somewhere.  Once 
Mahon,  as  we  were  working  side  by  side,  said  to  me 
with  a  queer  smile :  *  Now,  if  she  only  would  spring 
a  tidy  leak — like  that  time  when  we  first  left  the 
Channel  —  it  would  put  a  stopper  on  this  fire. 
Wouldn't  it?'  I  remarked  irrelevantly,  'Do  you 
remember  the  rats?' 

"We  fought  the  fire  and  sailed  the  ship  too  as 
carefully  as  though  nothing  had  been  the  matter. 
The  steward  cooked  and  attended  on  us.  Of  the 
other  twelve  men,  eight  worked  while  four  rested. 
Every  one  took  his  turn,  captain  included.  There 
was  equality,  and  if  not  exactly  fraternity,  then  a 
deal  of  good  feeling.  Sometimes  a  man,  as  he  dashed 
a  bucketful  of  water  down  the  hatchway,  would  yell 
out,  'Hurrah  for  Bankok!'  and  the  rest  laughed. 
But  generally  we  were  taciturn  and  serious — and 
thirsty.  Oh !  how  thirsty !  And  we  had  to  be 
careful  with  the  water.  Strict  allowance.  The 
ship  smoked,  the  sun  blazed.   .   .  .  Pass  the  bottle. 

"  We  tried  everything.  We  even  made  an  attempt 
to  dig  down  to  the  fire.  No  good,  of  course.  No 
man  could  remain  more  than  a  minute  below. 
Mahon,  who  went  first,  fainted  there,  and  the  man 


24  YOUTH. 

who  went  to  fetch  him  out  did  likewise.  "We  lugged 
them  out  on  deck.  Then  I  leaped  down  to  show  how 
easily  it  could  be  done.  They  had  learned  wisdom 
by  that  time,  and  contented  themselves  by  fishing 
for  me  with  a  chain-hook  tied  to  a  broom-handle,  I 
believe.  I  did  not  offer  to  go  and  fetch  up  my 
shovel,  which  was  left  down  below. 

"  Things  began  to  look  bad.  We  put  the  long- 
boat into  the  water.  The  second  boat  was  ready  to 
swing  out.  "We  had  also  another,  a  14-foot  thing, 
on  davits  aft,  where  it  was  quite  safe. 

"Then,  behold,  the  smoke  suddenly  decreased. 
We  redoubled  our  efforts  to  flood  the  bottom  of  the 
ship.  In  two  days  there  was  no  smoke  at  all 
Everybody  was  on  the  broad  grin.  This  was  on  a 
Friday.  On  Saturday  no  work,  but  sailing  the  ship 
of  course,  was  done.  The  men  washed  their  clothes 
and  their  faces  for  the  first  time  in  a  fortnight,  and 
had  a  special  dinner  given  them.  They  spoke  of 
spontaneous  combustion  with  contempt,  and  implied 
they  were  the  boys  to  put  out  combustions.  Some- 
how we  all  felt  as  though  we  each  had  inherited  a 
large  fortune.  But  a  beastly  smell  of  burning  hung 
about  the  ship.  Captain  Beard  had  hollow  eyes  and 
sunken  cheeks.  I  had  never  noticed  so  much  before 
how  twisted  and  bowed  he  was.  He  and  Mahon 
prowled  soberly  about  hatches  and  ventilators, 
sniffing.  It  struck  me  suddenly  poor  Mahon  was  a 
very,  very  old  chap.  As  to  me,  I  was  as  pleased  and 
proud  as  though  I  had  helped  to  win  a  great  naval 
battle.     O!  Youth! 

"The  night  was  fine.  In  the  morning  a  home- 
ward-bound ship  passed  us  hull  down, — the  first  we 


YOUTH.  25 

had  seen  for  months ;  but  we  were  nearing  the  land 
at  last,  Java  Head  being  about  190  miles  off,  and 
nearly  due  north. 

"  Next  day  it  was  my  watch  on  deck  from  eight 
to  twelve.  At  breakfast  the  captain  observed,  *  It's 
wonderful  how  that  smell  hangs  about  the  cabin.' 
About  ten,  the  mate  being  on  the  poop,  I  stepped 
down  on  the  main-deck  for  a  moment.  The  car- 
penter's bench  stood  abaft  the  mainmast :  I  leaned 
against  it  sucking  at  my  pipe,  and  the  carpenter,  a 
young  chap,  came  to  talk  to  me.  He  remarked,  '  I 
think  we  have  done  very  well,  haven't  we  ?  '  and  then 
I  perceived  with  annoyance  the  fool  was  trying  to 
tilt  the  bench.  I  said  curtly,  'Don't,  Chips,'  and 
immediately  became  aware  of  a  queer  sensation,  of 
an  absurd  delusion, — I  seemed  somehow  to  be  in  the 
air.  I  heard  all  round  me  like  a  pent-up  breath 
released — as  if  a  thousand  giants  simultaneously 
had  said  Phoo ! — and  felt  a  dull  concussion  which 
made  my  ribs  ache  suddenly.  No  doubt  about  it — 
I  was  in  the  air,  and  my  body  was  describing  a 
short  parabola.  But  short  as  it  was,  I  had  the  time 
to  think  several  thoughts  in,  as  far  as  I  can  re- 
member, the  following  order :  '  This  can't  be  the 
carpenter — What  is  it  ? — Some  accident — Submarine 
volcano  ? — Coals,  gas  ! — By  Jove  !  we  are  being  blown 
up — Everybody's  dead — I  am  falling  into  the  after- 
hatch — I  see  fire  in  it.' 

"The  coal-dust  suspended  in  the  air  of  the  hold 
had  glowed  dull-red  at  the  moment  of  the  explosion. 
In  the  twinkling  of  an  eye,  in  an  infinitesimal  fraction 
of  a  second  since  the  first  tilt  of  the  bench,  I  was 
sprawling  full  length  on  the  cargo.     I  picked  myself 


26  YOUTH. 

up  and  scrambled  out.  It  was  quick  like  a  rebound. 
The  deck  was  a  wilderness  of  smashed  timber,  lying 
crosswise  like  trees  in  a  wood  after  a  hurricane ;  an 
immense  curtain  of  soiled  rags  waved  gently  before 
me — it  was  the  mainsail  blown  to  strips.  I  thought, 
The  masts  will  be  toppling  over  directly ;  and  to  get 
out  of  the  way  bolted  on  all-fours  towards  the  poop- 
ladder.  The  first  person  I  saw  was  Mahon,  with 
eyes  like  saucers,  his  mouth  open,  and  the  long  white 
hair  standing  straight  on  end  round  his  head  like  a 
silver  halo.  He  was  just  about  to  go  down  when 
the  sight  of  the  main-deck  stirring,  heaving  up,  and 
changing  into  splinters  before  his  eyes,  petrified  him 
on  the  top  step.  I  stared  at  him  in  unbelief,  and  he 
stared  at  me  with  a  queer  kind  of  shocked  curiosity. 
I  did  not  know  that  I  had  no  hair,  no  eyebrows,  no 
eyelashes,  that  my  young  moustache  was  burnt  off, 
that  my  face  was  black,  one  cheek  laid  open,  my  nose 
cut,  and  my  chin  bleeding.  I  had  lost  my  cap,  one 
of  my  slippers,  and  my  shirt  was  torn  to  rags.  Of 
all  this  I  was  not  aware.  I  was  amazed  to  see  the 
ship  still  afloat,  the  poop-deck  whole — and,  most  of 
all,  to  see  anybody  alive.  Also  the  peace  of  the  sky 
and  the  serenity  of  the  sea  were  distinctly  surprising. 
I  suppose  I  expected  to  see  them  convulsed  with 
horror.  .  .  .  Pass  the  bottle. 

"There  was  a  voice  hailing  the  ship  from  some- 
where— in  the  air,  in  the  sky — I  couldn't  tell.  Pre- 
sently I  saw  the  captain — and  he  was  mad.  He 
asked  me  eagerly,  '  Where's  the  cabin-table  ? '  and  to 
hear  such  a  question  was  a  frightful  shock.  I  had 
just  been  blown  up,  you  understand,  and  vibrated 
with  that  experience, — I  wasn't  quite  sure  whether 


YOUTH.  27 

I  was  alive.  Mahon  began  to  stamp  with  both  feet 
and  yelled  at  him,  '  Good  God !  don't  you  see  the 
deck's  blown  out  of  her  ? '  I  found  my  voice,  and 
stammered  out  as  if  conscious  of  some  gross  neglect 
of  duty,  '  I  don't  know  where  the  cabin-table  is.'  It 
was  like  an  absurd  dream. 

"  Do  you  know  what  he  wanted  next  ?  "Well,  he 
wanted  to  trim  the  yards.  Very  placidly,  and  as  if 
lost  in  thought,  he  insisted  on  having  the  foreyard 
squared.  'I  don't  know  if  there's  anybody  alive,' 
said  Mahon,  almost  tearfully.  '  Surely,'  he  said, 
gently,  'there  will  be  enough  left  to  square  the 
foreyard.' 

"The  old  chap,  it  seems,  was  in  his  own  berth, 
winding  up  the  chronometers,  when  the  shock  sent 
him  spinning.  Immediately  it  occurred  to  him — as 
he  said  afterwards — that  the  ship  had  struck  some- 
thing, and  he  ran  out  into  the  cabin.  There,  he  saw, 
the  cabin-table  had  vanished  somewhere.  The  deck 
being  blown  up,  it  had  fallen  down  into  the  lazarette 
of  course.  Where  we  had  our  breakfast  that  morn- 
ing he  saw  only  a  great  hole  in  the  floor.  This 
appeared  to  him  so  awfully  mysterious,  and  impressed 
him  so  immensely,  that  what  he  saw  and  heard  after 
he  got  on  deck  were  mere  trifles  in  comparison.  And, 
mark,  he  noticed  directly  the  wheel  deserted  and  his 
barque  off  her  course — and  his  only  thought  was  to 
get  that  miserable,  stripped,  undecked,  smouldering 
shell  of  a  ship  back  again  with  her  head  pointing  at 
her  port  of  destination.  Bankok !  That's  what  he 
was  after.  I  tell  you  this  quiet,  bowed,  bandy-legged, 
almost  deformed  little  man  was  immense  in  the 
singleness  of  his  idea  and  in  his  placid  ignorance  of 


28  YOUTH. 

our  agitation.  He  motioned  us  forward  with  a 
commanding  gesture,  and  went  to  take  the  wheel 
himself. 

"  Yes ;  that  was  the  first  thing  we  did — trim  the 
yards  of  that  wreck !  No  one  was  killed,  or  even 
disabled,  but  every  one  was  more  or  less  hurt.  You 
should  have  seen  them !  Some  were  in  rags,  with 
black  faces,  like  coalheavers,  like  sweeps,  and  had 
bullet  heads  that  seemed  closely  cropped,  but  were 
in  fact  singed  to  the  skin.  Others,  of  the  watch 
below,  awakened  by  being  shot  out  from  their 
collapsing  bunks,  shivered  incessantly,  and  kept  on 
groaning  even  as  we  went  about  our  work.  But 
they  all  worked.  That  crew  of  Liverpool  hard  cases 
had  in  them  the  right  stuff.  It's  my  experience  they 
always  have.  It  is  the  sea  that  gives  it — the  vast- 
ness,  the  loneliness  surrounding  their  dark  stolid 
souls.  Ah !  Well !  we  stumbled,  we  crept,  we  fell, 
we  barked  our  shins  on  the  wreckage,  we  hauled. 
The  masts  stood,  but  we  did  not  know  how  much 
they  might  be  charred  down  below.  It  was  nearly 
calm,  but  a  long  swell  ran  from  the  west  and  made 
her  roll.  They  might  go  at  any  moment.  "We 
looked  at  them  with  apprehension.  One  could  not 
foresee  which  way  they  would  fall. 

"Then  we  retreated  aft  and  looked  about  us. 
The  deck  was  a  tangle  of  planks  on  edge,  of  planks 
on  end,  of  splinters,  of  ruined  woodwork.  The 
masts  rose  from  that  chaos  like  big  trees  above  a 
matted  undergrowth.  The  interstices  of  that  mass 
of  wreckage  were  full  of  something  whitish,  sluggish, 
stirring — of  something  that  was  like  a  greasy  fog. 
The  smoke  of  the  invisible  fire  was  coming  up  again, 


YOUTH.  29 

was  trailing,  like  a  poisonous  thick  mist  in  some 
valley  choked  with  dead  wood.  Already  lazy  wisps 
were  beginning  to  curl  upwards  amongst  the  mass 
of  splinters.  Here  and  there  a  piece  of  timber,  stuck 
upright,  resembled  a  post.  Half  of  a  fife-rail  had 
been  shot  through  the  foresail,  and  the  sky  made  a 
patch  of  glorious  blue  in  the  ignobly  soiled  canvas. 
A  portion  of  several  boards  holding  together  had 
fallen  across  the  rail,  and  one  end  protruded  over- 
board, like  a  gangway  leading  upon  nothing,  like  a 
gangway  leading  over  the  deep  sea,  leading  to  death 
— as  if  inviting  us  to  walk  the  plank  at  once  and  be 
done  with  our  ridiculous  troubles.  And  still  the  air, 
the  sky — a  ghost,  something  invisible  was  hailing 
the  ship. 

"Some  one  had  the  sense  to  look  over,  and  there 
was  the  helmsman,  who  had  impulsively  jumped 
overboard,  anxious  to  come  back.  He  yelled  and 
swam  lustily  like  a  merman,  keeping  up  with  the 
ship.  We  threw  him  a  rope,  and  presently  he  stood 
amongst  us  streaming  with  water  and  very  crest- 
fallen. The  captain  had  surrendered  the  wheel,  and 
apart,  elbow  on  rail  and  chin  in  hand,  gazed  at  the 
sea  wistfully.  We  asked  ourselves,  What  next?  I 
thought,  Now,  this  is  something  like.  This  is  great. 
I  wonder  what  will  happen.     O  youth  ! 

"  Suddenly  Mahon  sighted  a  steamer  far  astern. 
Captain  Beard  said,  'We  may  do  something  with 
her  yet.'  We  hoisted  two  flags,  which  said  in  the 
international  language  of  the  sea,  'On  fire.  Want 
immediate  assistance.'  The  steamer  grew  bigger 
rapidly,  and  by-and-by  spoke  with  two  flags  on  her 
foremast,  'I  am  coming  to  your  assistance.' 


30  YOUTH. 

"In  half  an  hour  she  was  abreast,  to  windward, 
within  hail,  and  rolling  slightly,  with  her  engines 
stopped.  We  lost  our  composure,  and  yelled  all 
together  with  excitement,  'We've  been  blown  up.' 
A  man  in  a  white  helmet,  on  the  bridge,  cried,  '  Yes ! 
All  right !  all  right ! '  and  he  nodded  his  head,  and 
smiled,  and  made  soothing  motions  with  his  hand  as 
though  at  a  lot  of  frightened  children.  One  of  the 
boats  dropped  iu  the  water,  and  walked  towards  us 
upon  the  sea  with  her  long  oars.  Four  Calashes 
pulled  a  swinging  stroke.  This  was  my  first  sight 
of  Malay  seamen.  I've  known  them  since,  but  what 
struck  me  then  was  their  unconcern :  they  came 
alongside,  and  even  the  bowman  standing  up  and 
holding  to  our  main-chains  with  the  boat-hook  did 
not  deign  to  lift  his  head  for  a  glance.  I  thought 
people  who  had  been  blown  up  deserved  more 
attention. 

"A  little  man,  dry  like  a  chip  and  agile  like  a 
monkey,  clambered  up.  It  was  the  mate  of  the 
steamer.  He  gave  one  look,  and  cried,  'O  boys — 
you  had  better  quit.' 

"We  were  silent.  He  talked  apart  with  the 
captain  for  a  time, — seemed  to  argue  with  him. 
Then  they  went  away  together  to  the  steamer. 

"When  our  skipper  came  back  we  learned  that 
the  steamer  was  the  Sommerville,  Captain  Nash, 
from  West  Australia  to  Singapore  vid  Batavia  with 
mails,  and  that  the  agreement  was  she  should  tow 
us  to  Anjer  or  Batavia,  if  possible,  where  we  could 
extinguish  the  fire  by  scuttling,  and  then  proceed  on 
our  voyage — to  Bankok !  The  old  man  seemed  ex- 
cited.      'We   will   do   it    yet,'   he   said    to   Mahon, 


YOUTH.  31 

fiercely.  He  shook  his  fist  at  the  sky.  Nobody 
else  said  a  word. 

"At  noon  the  steamer  began  to  tow.  She  went 
ahead  slim  and  high,  and  what  was  left  of  the  Judea 
followed  at  the  end  of  seventy  fathom  of  tow-rope, — 
followed  her  swiftly  like  a  cloud  of  smoke  with  mast- 
heads protruding  above.  We  went  aloft  to  furl  the 
sails.  We  coughed  on  the  yards,  and  were  careful 
about  the  bunts.  Do  you  see  the  lot  of  us  there, 
putting  a  neat  furl  on  the  sails  of  that  ship  doomed 
to  arrive  nowhere?  There  was  not  a  man  who 
didn't  think  that  at  any  moment  the  masts  would 
topple  over.  From  aloft  we  could  not  see  the  ship 
for  smoke,  and  they  worked  carefully,  passing  the 
gaskets  with  even  turns.  *  Harbour  furl  —  aloft 
there ! '  cried  Mahon  from  below. 

"  You  understand  this  ?  I  don't  think  one  of  those 
chaps  expected  to  get  down  in  the  usual  way.  When 
we  did  I  heard  them  saying  to  each  other,  'Well,  I 
thought  we  would  come  down  overboard,  in  a  lump 
— sticks  and  all — blame  me  if  I  didn't.'  'That's 
what  I  was  thinking  to  myself,'  would  answer 
wearily  another  battered  and  bandaged  scarecrow. 
And,  mind,  these  were  men  without  the  drilled-in 
habit  of  obedience.  To  an  onlooker  they  would  be  a 
lot  of  profane  scallywags  without  a  redeeming  point. 
What  made  them  do  it — what  made  them  obey  me 
when  I,  thinking  consciously  how  fine  it  was,  made 
them  drop  the  bunt  of  the  foresail  twice  to  try  and 
do  it  better?  What?  They  had  no  professional 
reputation — no  examples,  no  praise.  It  wasn't  a 
sense  of  duty;  they  all  knew  well  enough  how  to 
shirk,  and  laze,  and  dodge — when  they  had  a  mind 


32  YOUTH. 

to  it — and  mostly  they  had.  Was  it  the  two  pounds 
ten  a-month  that  sent  them  there  ?  They  didn't 
think  their  pay  half  good  enough.  ISTo;  it  was 
something  in  them,  something  inborn  and  subtle 
and  everlasting.  I  don't  say  positively  that  the 
crew  of  a  French  or  German  merchantman  wouldn't 
have  done  it,  but  I  doubt  whether  it  would  have 
been  done  in  the  same  way.  There  was  a  complete- 
ness in  it,  something  solid  like  a  principle,  and 
masterful  like  an  instinct — a  disclosure  of  something 
secret — of  that  hidden  something,  that  gift  of  good 
or  evil  that  makes  racial  difference,  that  shapes  the 
fate  of  nations. 

"  It  was  that  night  at  ten  that,  for  the  first  time 
since  we  had  been  fighting  it,  we  saw  the  fire.  The 
speed  of  the  towing  had  fanned  the  smouldering 
destruction.  A  blue  gleam  appeared  forward,  shin- 
ing below  the  wreck  of  the  deck.  It  wavered  in 
patches,  it  seemed  to  stir  and  creep  like  the  light 
of  a  glowworm.  I  saw  it  first,  and  told  Mahon. 
'Then  the  game's  up,'  he  said.  'We  had  better 
stop  this  towing,  or  she  will  burst  out  suddenly  fore 
and  aft  before  we  can  clear  out.'  We  set  up  a  yell ; 
rang  bells  to  attract  their  attention ;  they  towed  on. 
At  last  Mahon  and  I  had  to  crawl  forward  and  cut 
the  rope  with  an  axe.  There  was  no  time  to  cast  off 
the  lashings.  Red  tongues  could  be  seen  licking  the 
wilderness  of  splinters  under  our  feet  as  we  made  our 
way  back  to  the  poop. 

"Of  course  they  very  soon  found  out  in  the 
steamer  that  the  rope  was  gone.  She  gave  a  loud 
blast  of  her  whistle,  her  lights  were  seen  sweeping 
in  a  wide  circle,  she  came  up  ranging  close  along- 
side, and  stopped.     We  were  all  in  a  tight  group  on 


YOUTH.  33 

the  poop  looking  at  her.  Every  man  had  saved  a 
little  bundle  or  a  bag.  Suddenly  a  conical  flame 
with  a  twisted  top  shot  up  forward  and  threw  upon 
the  black  sea  a  circle  of  light,  with  the  two  vessels 
side  by  side  and  heaving  gently  in  its  centre. 
Captain  Beard  had  been  sitting  on  the  gratings  still 
and  mute  for  hours,  but  now  he  rose  slowly  and 
advanced  in  front  of  us,  to  the  mizzen- shrouds. 
Captain  Nash  hailed :  '  Come  along !  Look  sharp. 
I  have  mail-bags  on  board.  I  will  take  you  and 
your  boats  to  Singapore.' 

"  '  Thank  you !  No ! '  said  our  skipper.  '  We 
must  see  the  last  of  the  ship.' 

" '  I  can't  stand  by  any  longer,'  shouted  the  other. 
1  Mails — you  know.' 

"  '  Ay  !  ay !     We  are  all  right.' 

" '  Very  well !  I'll  report  you  in  Singapore.  .  .  . 
Good-bye ! ' 

"He  waved  his  hand.  Our  men  dropped  their 
bundles  quietly.  The  steamer  moved  ahead,  and 
passing  out  of  the  circle  of  light,  vanished  at  once 
from  our  sight,  dazzled  by  the  fire  which  burned 
fiercely.  And  then  I  knew  that  I  would  see  the 
East  first  as  commander  of  a  small  boat.  I  thought 
it  fine ;  and  the  fidelity  to  the  old  ship  was  fine.  We 
should  see  the  last  of  her.  Oh  the  glamour  of  youth  ! 
Oh  the  fire  of  it,  more  dazzling  than  the  flames  of 
the  burning  ship,  throwing  a  magic  light  on  the  wide 
earth,  leaping  audaciously  to  the  sky,  presently  to 
be  quenched  by  time,  more  cruel,  more  pitiless,  more 
bitter  than  the  sea — and  like  the  flames  of  the  burn- 
ing ship  surrounded  by  an  impenetrable  night. 


34  YOUTH. 

"The  old  man  warned  us  in  his  gentle  and 
inflexible  way  that  it  was  part  of  our  duty  to  save 
for  the  underwriters  as  much  as  we  could  of  the 
ship's  gear.  Accordingly  we  went  to  work  aft, 
while  she  blazed  forward  to  give  us  plenty  of  light. 
We  lugged  out  a  lot  of  rubbish.  What  didn't  we 
save?  An  old  barometer  fixed  with  an  absurd 
quantity  of  screws  nearly  cost  me  my  life :  a 
sudden  rush  of  smoke  came  upon  me,  and  I  just  got 
away  in  time.  There  were  various  stores,  bolts  of 
canvas,  coils  of  rope ;  the  poop  looked  like  a  marine 
bazaar,  and  the  boats  were  lumbered  to  the  gun- 
wales. One  would  have  thought  the  old  man 
wanted  to  take  as  much  as  he  could  of  his  first 
command  with  him.  He  was  very,  very  quiet,  but 
off  his  balance  evidently.  Would  you  believe  it? 
He  wanted  to  take  a  length  of  old  stream-cable  and 
a  kedge- anchor  with  him  in  the  long-boat.  We 
said,  'Ay,  ay,  sir,'  deferentially,  and  on  the  quiet  let 
the  things  slip  overboard.  The  heavy  medicine- 
chest  went  that  way,  two  bags  of  green  coffee,  tins 
of  paint — fancy,  paint ! — a  whole  lot  of  things. 
Then  I  was  ordered  with  two  hands  into  the  boats 
to  make  a  stowage  and  get  them  ready  against 
the  time  it  would  be  proper  for  us  to  leave  the 
ship. 

"We  put  everything  straight,  stepped  the  long- 
boat's mast  for  our  skipper,  who  was  to  take  charge 
of  her,  and  I  was  not  sorry  to  sit  down  for  a 
moment.  My  face  felt  raw,  every  limb  ached  as  if 
broken,  I  was  aware  of  all  my  ribs,  and  would  have 
sworn  to  a  twist  in  the  backbone.  The  boats,  fast 
astern,  lay  in  a  deep  shadow,  and  all  around  I  could 


YOUTH.  35 

see  the  circle  of  the  sea  lighted  by  the  fire.  A 
gigantic  flame  rose  forward  straight  and  clear.  It 
flared  fierce,  with  noises  like  the  whirr  of  wings, 
with  rumbles  as  of  thunder.  There  were  cracks, 
detonations,  and  from  the  cone  of  flame  the  sparks 
flew  upwards,  as  man  is  born  to  trouble,  to  leaky 
ships,  and  to  ships  that  burn. 

"What  bothered  me  was  that  the  ship,  lying 
broadside  to  the  swell  and  to  such  wind  as  there 
was — a  mere  breath — the  boats  would  not  keep 
astern  where  they  were  safe,  but  persisted,  in  a  pig- 
headed way  boats  have,  in  getting  under  the  counter 
and  then  swinging  alongside.  They  were  knocking 
about  dangerously  and  coming  near  the  flame,  while 
the  ship  rolled  on  them,  and,  of  course,  there  was 
always  the  danger  of  the  masts  going  over  the  side 
at  any  moment.  I  and  my  two  boat-keepers  kept 
them  off  as  best  we  could,  with  oars  and  boat-hooks  ; 
but  to  be  constantly  at  it  became  exasperating,  since 
there  was  no  reason  why  we  should  not  leave  at 
once.  We  could  not  see  those  on  board,  nor  could 
we  imagine  what  caused  the  delay.  The  boat- 
keepers  were  swearing  feebly,  and  I  had  not  only 
my  share  of  the  work  but  also  had  to  keep  at  it  two 
men  who  showed  a  constant  inclination  to  lay  them- 
selves down  and  let  things  slide. 

"At  last  I  hailed,  'On  deck  there,'  and  some  one 
looked  over.  'We're  ready  here,'  I  said.  The  head 
disappeared,  and  very  soon  popped  up  again.  '  The 
captain  says,  All  right,  sir,  and  to  keep  the  boats 
well  clear  of  the  ship.' 

"  Half  an  hour  passed.  Suddenly  there  was  a 
frightful  racket,  rattle,  clanking  of   chain,    hiss   of 


36  YOUTH. 

water,  and  millions  of  sparks  flew  up  into  the  shiver- 
ing column  of  smoke  that  stood  leaning  slightly  above 
the  ship.  The  cat-heads  had  burned  away,  and  the 
two  red-hot  anchors  had  gone  to  the  bottom,  tearing 
out  after  them  two  hundred  fathom  of  red-hot  chain. 
The  ship  trembled,  the  mass  of  flame  swayed  as  if 
ready  to  collapse,  and  the  fore  top-gallant-mast  felL 
It  darted  down  like  an  arrow  of  fire,  shot  under,  and 
instantly  leaping  up  within  an  oar's-length  of  the 
boats,  floated  quietly,  very  black  on  the  luminous 
sea.  I  hailed  the  deck  again.  After  some  time  a 
man  in  an  unexpectedly  cheerful  but  also  muffled 
tone,  as  though  he  had  been  trying  to  speak  with  his 
mouth  shut,  informed  me,  '  Coming  directly,  sir,'  and 
vanished.  For  a  long  time  I  heard  nothing  but  the 
whirr  and  roar  of  the  fire.  There  were  also  whistling 
sounds.  The  boats  jumped,  tugged  at  the  painters, 
ran  at  each  other  playfully,  knocked  their  sides  toge- 
ther, or,  do  what  we  would,  swung  in  a  bunch 
against  the  ship's  side.  I  couldn't  stand  it  any 
longer,  and  swarming  up  a  rope,  clambered  aboard 
over  the  stern. 

"  It  was  as  bright  as  day.  Coming  up  like  this, 
the  sheet  of  fire  facing  me,  was  a  terrifying  sight, 
and  the  heat  seemed  hardly  bearable  at  first.  On  a 
settee  cushion  dragged  out  of  the  cabin,  Captain 
Beard,  his  legs  drawn  up  and  one  arm  under  his 
head,  slept  with  the  light  playing  on  him.  Do  you 
know  what  the  rest  were  busy  about  ?  They  were 
sitting  on  deck  right  aft,  round  an  open  case,  eating 
bread  and  cheese  and  drinking  bottled  stout. 

"On  the  background  of  flames  twisting  in  fierce 
tongues  above  their  heads  they  seemed  at  home  like 


YOUTH.  37 

salamanders,  and  looked  like  a  band  of  desperate 
pirates.  The  fire  sparkled  in  the  whites  of  their 
eyes,  gleamed  on  patches  of  white  skin  seen  through 
the  torn  shirts.  Each  had  the  marks  as  of  a  battle 
about  him — bandaged  heads,  tied-up  arms,  a  strip  of 
dirty  rag  round  a  knee — and  each  man  had  a  bottle 
between  his  legs  and  a  chunk  of  cheese  in  his  hand. 
Mahon  got  up.  With  his  handsome  and  disreputable 
head,  his  hooked  profile,  his  long  white  beard,  and 
with  an  uncorked  bottle  in  his  hand,  he  resembled 
one  of  those  reckless  sea-robbers  of  old  making  merry 
amidst  violence  and  disaster.  '  The  last  meal  on 
board,'  he  explained  solemnly.  '  We  had  nothing  to 
eat  all  day,  and  it  was  no  use  leaving  all  this.' 
He  flourished  the  bottle  and  indicated  the  sleeping 
skipper.     '  He  said  he  couldn't  swallow  anything,  so 

I  got  him  to  lie  down,'  he  went  on ;  and  as  I  stared, 

I I  don't  know  whether  you  are  aware,  young  fellow, 
the  man  had  no  sleep  to  speak  of  for  days — and  there 
will  be  dam'  little  sleep  in  the  boats.'  '  There  will 
be  no  boats  by-and-by  if  you  fool  about  much  longer,' 
I  said,  indignantly.  I  walked  up  to  the  skipper  and 
shook  him  by  the  shoulder.  At  last  he  opened  his 
eyes,  but  did  not  move.  '  Time  to  leave  her,  sir,'  I 
said,  quietly. 

"  He  got  up  painfully,  looked  at  the  flames,  at  the 
sea  sparkling  round  the  ship,  and  black,  black  as  ink 
farther  away ;  he  looked  at  the  stars  shining  dim 
through  a  thin  veil  of  smoke  in  a  sky  black,  black 
as  Erebus. 

"  *  Youngest  first,'  he  said. 

"  And  the  ordinary  seaman,  wiping  his  mouth  with 
the  back  of  his  hand,  got  up,  clambered  over  the 


38  YOUTH. 

taffrail,  and  vanished.  Others  followed.  One,  on 
the  point  of  going  over,  stopped  short  to  drain  his 
bottle,  and  with  a  great  swing  of  his  arm  flung  it  at 
the  fire.     '  Take  this  ! '  he  cried. 

"The  skipper  lingered  disconsolately,  and  we  left 
him  to  commune  alone  for  a  while  with  his  first 
command.  Then  I  went  up  again  and  brought  him 
away  at  last.  It  was  time.  The  ironwork  on  the 
poop  was  hot  to  the  touch. 

"  Then  the  painter  of  the  long-boat  was  cut,  and 
the  three  boats,  tied  together,  drifted  clear  of  the 
ship.  It  was  just  sixteen  hours  after  the  explosion 
when  we  abandoned  her.  Mahon  had  charge  of  the 
second  boat,  and  I  had  the  smallest — the  14-foot 
thing.  The  long-boat  would  have  taken  the  lot  of 
us ;  but  the  skipper  said  we  must  save  as  much  pro- 
perty as  we  could — for  the  underwriters — and  so  I  got 
my  first  command.  I  had  two  men  with  me,  a  bag 
of  biscuits,  a  few  tins  of  meat,  and  a  breaker  of  water. 
I  was  ordered  to  keep  close  to  the  long-boat,  that  in 
case  of  bad  weather  we  might  be  taken  into  her. 

"  And  do  you  know  what  I  thought  ?  I  thought 
I  would  part  company  as  soon  as  I  could.  I  wanted 
to  have  my  first  command  all  to  myself.  I  wasn't 
going  to  sail  in  a  squadron  if  there  were  a  chance  for 
independent  cruising.  I  would  make  land  by  myself. 
I  would  beat  the  other  boats.  Youth !  All  youth  ! 
The  silly,  charming,  beautiful  youth. 

"  But  we  did  not  make  a  start  at  once.  We  must 
see  the  last  of  the  ship.  And  so  the  boats  drifted 
about  that  night,  heaving  and  setting  on  the  swell. 
The  men  dozed,  waked,  sighed,  groaned.  I  looked 
at  the  burning  ship. 


YOUTH.  39 

"Between  the  darkness  of  earth  and  heaven  she 
was  burning  fiercely  upon  a  disc  of  purple  sea  shot 
by  the  blood-red  play  of  gleams;  upon  a  disc  of 
water  glittering  and  sinister.  A  high,  clear  flame, 
an  immense  and  lonely  flame,  ascended  from  the 
ocean,  and  from  its  summit  the  black  smoke  poured 
continuously  at  the  sky.  She  burned  furiously, 
mournful  and  imposing  like  a  funeral  pile  kindled 
in  the  night,  surrounded  by  the  sea,  watched  over 
by  the  stars.  A  magnificent  death  had  come  like  a 
grace,  like  a  gift,  like  a  reward  to  that  old  ship  at 
the  end  of  her  laborious  days.  The  surrender  of  her 
weary  ghost  to  the  keeping  of  stars  and  sea  was 
stirring  like  the  sight  of  a  glorious  triumph.  The 
masts  fell  just  before  daybreak,  and  for  a  moment 
there  was  a  burst  and  turmoil  of  sparks  that  seemed 
to  fill  with  flying  fire  the  night  patient  and  watchful, 
the  vast  night  lying  silent  upon  the  sea.  At  daylight 
she  was  only  a  charred  shell,  floating  still  under  a 
cloud  of  smoke  and  bearing  a  glowing  mass  of  coal 
within. 

"  Then  the  oars  were  got  out,  and  the  boats  forming 
in  a  line  moved  round  her  remains  as  if  in  procession 
— the  long-boat  leading.  As  we  pulled  across  her 
stern  a  slim  dart  of  fire  shot  out  viciously  at  us,  and 
suddenly  she  went  down,  head  first,  in  a  great  hiss 
of  steam.  The  unconsumed  stern  was  the  last  to 
sink;  but  the  paint  had  gone,  had  cracked,  had 
peeled  off,  and  there  were  no  letters,  there  was  no 
word,  no  stubborn  device  that  was  like  her  soul,  to 
flash  at  the  rising  sun  her  creed  and  her  name. 

"  We  made  our  way  north.  A  breeze  sprang  up, 
and  about  noon  all  the  boats  came  together  for  the 


40  YOUTH. 

last  time.  I  had  no  mast  or  sail  in  mine,  but  I  made 
a  mast  out  of  a  spare  oar  and  hoisted  a  boat-awning 
for  a  sail,  with  a  boat-hook  for  a  yard.  She  was 
certainly  over-masted,  but  I  had  the  satisfaction  of 
knowing  that  with  the  wind  aft  I  could  beat  the 
other  two.  I  had  to  wait  for  them.  Then  we  all 
had  a  look  at  the  captain's  chart,  and,  after  a  sociable 
meal  of  hard  bread  and  water,  got  our  last  instruc- 
tions. These  were  simple  :  steer  north,  and  keep 
together  as  much  as  possible.  '  Be  careful  with  that 
jury-rig,  Mario w,'  said  the  captain ;  and  Mahon,  as 
I  sailed  proudly  past  his  boat,  wrinkled  his  curved 
nose  and  hailed,  *  You  will  sail  that  ship  of  yours 
under  water,  if  you  don't  look  out,  young  fellow.' 
He  was  a  malicious  old  man — and  may  the  deep  sea  **  c 
where  he  sleeps  now  rock  him  gently,  rock  him  J 
tenderly  to  the  end  of  time  ! 

"  Before  sunset  a  thick  rain-squall  passed  over  the 
two  boats,  which  were  far  astern,  and  that  was  the 
last  I  saw  of  them  for  a  time.  Next  day  I  sat 
steering  my  cockle-shell — my  first  command — with 
nothing  but  water  and  sky  around  me.  I  did  sight 
in  the  afternoon  the  upper  sails  of  a  ship  far  away, 
but  said  nothing,  and  my  men  did  not  notice  her. 
You  see  I  was  afraid  she  might  be  homeward  bound, 
and  I  had  no  mind  to  turn  back  from  the  portals  of 
the  East.  I  was  steering  for  Java — another  blessed 
name  —  like  Bankok,  you  know.  I  steered  many 
days. 

"I  need  not  tell  you  what  it  is  to  be  knocking 
about  in  an  open  boat.  I  remember  nights  and  days 
of  calm  when  we  pulled,  we  pulled,  and  the  boat 
seemed  to  stand  still,   as  if   bewitched  within   the 


YOUTH.  41 

circle  of  the  sea  horizon.  I  remember  the  heat, 
the  deluge  of  rain-squalls  that  kept  us  baling  for 
dear  life  (but  filled  our  water-cask),  and  I  remember 
sixteen  hours  on  end  with  a  mouth  dry  as  a  cinder 
and  a  steering-oar  over  the  stern  to  keep  my  first 
command  head  on  to  a  breaking  sea.  I  did  not 
know  how  good  a  man  I  was  till  then.  I  remember 
the  drawn  faces,  the  dejected  figures  of  my  two  men, 
and  I  remember  my  youth  and  the  feeling  that  will 
never  come  back  any  more — the  feeling  that  I  could 
last  for  ever,  outlast  the  sea,  the  earth,  and  all  men ; 
the  deceitful  feeling  that  lures  us  on  to  joys,  to  perils, 
to  love,  to  vain  effort — to  death ;  the  triumphant 
conviction  of  strength,  the  heat  of  life  in  the  handful 
of  dust,  the  glow  in  the  heart  that  with  every  year 
grows  dim,  grows  cold,  grows  small,  and  expires — 
and  expires,  too  soon,  too  soon — before  life  itself. 

"  And  this  is  how  I  see  the  East.  I  have  seen  its 
secret  places  and  have  looked  into  its  very  soul ;  but 
now  I  see  it  always  from  a  small  boat,  a  high  outline 
of  mountains,  blue  and  afar  in  the  morning;  like 
faint  mist  at  noon;  a  jagged  wall  of  purple  at 
sunset.  I  have  the  feel  of  the  oar  in  my  hand,  the 
vision  of  a  scorching  blue  sea  in  my  eyes.  And  I 
see  a  bay,  a  wide  bay,  smooth  as  glass  and  polished 
like  ice,  shimmering  in  the  dark.  A  red  light  burns 
far  off  upon  the  gloom  of  the  land,  and  the  night  is 
soft  and  warm.  We  drag  at  the  oars  with  aching 
arms,  and  suddenly  a  puff  of  wind,  a  puff  faint  and 
tepid  and  laden  with  strange  odours  of  blossoms,  of 
aromatic  wood,  comes  out  of  the  still  night — the 
first  sigh  of  the  East  on  my  face.  That  I  can 
never   forget.      It   was   impalpable   and   enslaving, 


42  YOUTH. 

like  a  charm,  like  a  whispered  promise  of  mysterious 
delight. 

"  We  had  been  pulling  this  finishing  spell  for 
eleven  hours.  Two  pulled,  and  he  whose  turn  it 
was  to  rest  sat  at  the  tiller.  We  had  made  out 
the  red  light  in  that  bay  and  steered  for  it,  guess- 
ing it  must  mark  some  small  coasting  port.  We 
passed  two  vessels,  outlandish  and  high  -  sterned, 
sleeping  at  anchor,  and,  approaching  the  light,  now 
very  dim,  ran  the  boat's  nose  against  the  end  of  a 
jutting  wharf.  We  were  blind  with  fatigue.  My 
men  dropped  the  oars  and  fell  off  the  thwarts  as 
if  dead.  I  made  fast  to  a  pile.  A  current  rippled 
softly.  The  scented  obscurity  of  the  shore  was 
grouped  into  vast  masses,  a  density  of  colossal 
clumps  of  vegetation,  probably — mute  and  fantastic 
shapes.  And  at  their  foot  the  semicircle  of  a 
beach  gleamed  faintly,  like  an  illusion.  There  was 
not  a  light,  not  a  stir,  not  a  sound.  The  myster- 
ious East  faced  me,  perfumed  like  a  flower,  silent 
like  death,  dark  like  a  grave. 

"  And  I  sat  weary  beyond  expression,  exulting  like 
a  conqueror,  sleepless  and  entranced  as  if  before  a 
profound,  a  fateful  enigma. 

"  A  splashing  of  oars,  a  measured  dip  reverberat- 
ing on  the  level  of  water,  intensified  by  the  silence  of 
the  shore  into  loud  claps,  made  me  jump  up.  A  boat, 
a  European  boat,  was  coming  in.  I  invoked  the 
name  of  the  dead ;  I  hailed :  Judea  ahoy !  A  thin 
shout  answered. 

"It  was  the  captain.  I  had  beaten  the  flagship 
by  three  hours,  and  I  was  glad  to  hear  the  old 
man's  voice  again,  tremulous  and  tired.     'Is  it  you, 


YOUTH.  43 

Marlow?'      'Mind   the   end   of   that   jetty,    sir,'   I 
cried. 

"  He  approached  cautiously,  and  brought  up  with 
the  deep-sea  lead-line  which  we  had  saved — for  the 
underwriters.  I  eased  my  painter  and  fell  alongside. 
He  sat,  a  broken  figure  at  the  stern,  wet  with  dew, 
his  hands  clasped  in  his  lap.  His  men  were  asleep 
already.  '  I  had  a  terrible  time  of  it,'  he  murmured. 
'  Mahon  is  behind — not  very  far.'  We  conversed  in 
whispers,  in  low  whispers,  as  if  afraid  to  wake  up 
the  land.  Guns,  thunder,  earthquakes  would  not 
have  awakened  the  men  just  then. 

"  Looking  round  as  we  talked,  I  saw  away  at  sea 
a  bright  light  travelling  in  the  night.  'There's  a 
steamer  passing  the  bay,'  I  said.  She  was  not 
passing,  she  was  entering,  and  she  even  came  close 
and  anchored.  'I  wish,'  said  the  old  man,  'you 
would  find  out  whether  she  is  English.  Perhaps 
they  could  give  us  a  passage  somewhere.'  He 
seemed  nervously  anxious.  So  by  dint  of  punch- 
ing and  kicking  I  started  one  of  my  men  into  a 
state  of  somnambulism,  and  giving  him  an  oar, 
took  another  and  pulled  towards  the  lights  of  the 
steamer. 

"There  was  a  murmur  of  voices  in  her,  metallio 
hollow  clangs  of  the  engine-room,  footsteps  on  the 
deck.  Her  ports  shone,  round  like  dilated  eyes. 
Shapes  moved  about,  and  there  was  a  shadowy 
man  high  up  on  the  bridge.     He  heard  my  oars. 

"And  then,  before  I  could  open  my  lips,  the  East 
spoke  to  me,  but  it  was  in  a  Western  voice.  A 
torrent  of  words  was  poured  into  the  enigmatical, 
the  fateful  silence;  outlandish,  angry  words,  mixed 


44  YOUTH. 

with    words    and    even   whole    sentences    of    good 
English,   less    strange    but    even   more    surprising. 
The   voice   swore  and   cursed  violently;    it  riddled 
the  solemn  peace  of  the  bay  by  a  volley  of  abuse. 
It  began  by  calling  me  Pig,  and  from  that  went 
crescendo  into  unmentionable  adjectives — in  English. 
The  man  up  there  raged  aloud  in  two  languages, 
and  with  a  sincerity  in  his  fury  that  almost  con- 
vinced me  I  had,  in  some  way,  sinned  against  the 
harmony  of  the  universe.     I  could  hardly  see  him, 
but  began  to  think  he  would  work  himself  into  a  fit. 
"  Suddenly  he  ceased,  and  I  could  hear  him  snort- 
ing and  blowing  like  a  porpoise.     I  said — - 
"  *  What  steamer  is  this,  pray  ? ' 
"  <  Eh  ?     What's  this  ?     And  who  are  you  ? ' 
" '  Castaway  crew  of  an  English  barque  burnt  at 
sea.    We  came  here  to-night.    I  am  the  second  mate. 
The  captain  is  in  the  long-boat,  and  wishes  to  know 
if  you  would  give  us  a  passage  somewhere.' 

" '  Oh,  my  goodness !  I  say.  .  .  .  This  is  the 
Celestial  from  Singapore  on  her  return  trip.  I'll 
arrange  with  your  captain  in  the  morning,  .  .  . 
and,  ...  I  say,  .  .  .  did  you  hear  me  just 
now?' 

"  'I  should  think  the  whole  bay  heard  you.' 
" '  I  thought  you  were  a  shore-boat.  Now,  look 
here — this  infernal  lazy  scoundrel  of  a  caretaker  has 
gone  to  sleep  again — curse  him.  The  light  is  out, 
and  I  nearly  ran  foul  of  the  end  of  this  damned 
jetty.  This  is  the  third  time  he  plays  me  this  trick. 
Now,  I  ask  you,  can  anybody  stand  this  kind  of 
thing  ?  It's  enough  to  drive  a  man  out  of  his  mind. 
I'll  report   him.     .      .      .      I'll   get   the  Assistant 


YOUTH.  45 

Resident  to  give  him  the  sack,  by  ...  !  See — 
there's  no  light.  It's  out,  isn't  it  ?  I  take  you  to 
witness  the  light's  out.  There  should  be  a  light, 
you  know.     A  red  light  on  the ' 

"  '  There  was  a  light,'  I  said,  mildly. 

"  ■  But  it's  out,  man  !  What's  the  use  of  talking 
like  this?  You  can  see  for  yourself  it's  out — don't 
you  ?  If  you  had  to  take  a  valuable  steamer  along 
this  God-forsaken  coast  you  would  want  a  light  too. 
I'll  kick  him  from  end  to  end  of  his  miserable  wharf. 
You'll  see  if  I  don't.     I  will ' 

"'So  I  may  tell  my  captain  you'll  take  us?'  I 
broke  in. 

"'Yes,  I'll  take  you.  Good  night,'  he  said, 
brusquely. 

"  I  pulled  back,  made  fast  again  to  the  jetty,  and 
then  went  to  sleep  at  last.  I  had  faced  the  silence 
of  the  East.  I  had  heard  some  of  its  language. 
But  when  I  opened  my  eyes  again  the  silence  was  as 
complete  as  though  it  had  never  been  broken.  I 
was  lying  in  a  flood  of  light,  and  the  sky  had  never 
looked  so  far,  so  high,  before.  I  opened  my  eyes  and 
lay  without  moving. 

"And  then  I  saw  the  men  of  the  East — they  were 
looking  at  me.  The  whole  length  of  the  jetty  was 
full  of  people.  I  saw  brown,  bronze,  yellow  faces, 
the  black  eyes,  the  glitter,  the  colour  of  an  Eastern 
crowd.  And  all  these  beings  stared  without  a 
murmur,  without  a  sigh,  without  a  movement. 
They  stared  down  at  the  boats,  at  the  sleeping  men 
who  at  night  had  come  to  them  from  the  sea.  Noth- 
ing moved.  The  fronds  of  palms  stood  still  against 
the  sky.     Not  a  branch  stirred  along  the  shore,  and 


46  YOUTH. 

the  brown  roofs  of  hidden  houses  peeped  through  the 
green  foliage,  through  the  big  leaves  that  hung 
shining  and  still  like  leaves  forged  of  heavy  metal. 
This  was  the  East  of  the  ancient  navigators,  so  old, 
so  mysterious,  resplendent  and  sombre,  living  and 
unchanged,  full  of  danger  and  promise.  And  these 
were  the  men.  I  sat  up  suddenly.  A  wave  of 
movement  passed  through  the  crowd  from  end  to 
end,  passed  along  the  heads,  swayed  the  bodies,  ran 
along  the  jetty  like  a  ripple  on  the  water,  like  a 
breath  of  wind  on  a  field — and  all  was  still  again. 
I  see  it  now — the  wide  sweep  of  the  bay,  the  glitter- 
ing sands,  the  wealth  of  green  infinite  and  varied, 
the  sea  blue  like  the  sea  of  a  dream,  the  crowd  of 
attentive  faces,  the  blaze  of  vivid  colour — the  water 
reflecting  it  all,  the  curve  of  the  shore,  the  jetty,  the 
high-sterned  outlandish  craft  floating  still,  and  the 
three  boats  with  the  tired  men  from  the  West  sleep- 
ing, unconscious  of  the  land  and  the  people  and  of 
the  violence  of  sunshine.  They  slept  thrown  across 
the  thwarts,  curled  on  bottom-boards,  in  the  careless 
attitudes  of  death.  The  head  of  the  old  skipper, 
leaning  back  in  the  stern  of  the  long-boat,  had  fallen 
on  his  breast,  and  he  looked  as  though  he  would 
never  wake.  Farther  out  old  Mahon's  face  was  up-  h 
turned  to  the  sky,  with  the  long  white  beard  spread  ~ 
out  on  his  breast,  as  though  he  had  been  shot  where  "**-" 
he  sat  at  the  tiller ;  and  a  man,  all  in  a  heap  in  the 
bows  of  the  boat,  slept  with  both  arms  embracing 
the  stem-head  and  with  his  cheek  laid  on  the  gun- 
wale.    The  East  looked  at  them  without  a  sound. 

"  I  have  known  its  fascination  since  :  I  have  seen 
the  mysterious  shores,  the  still  water,  the  lands  of 


YOUTH.  47 

brown  nations,  where  a  stealthy  Nemesis  lies  in 
wait,  pursues,  overtakes  so  many  of  the  conquering 
race,  who  are  proud  of  their  wisdom,  of  their  know- 
ledge, of  their  strength.  But  for  me  all  the  East 
is  contained  in  that  vision  of  my  youth.  It  is  all 
in  that  moment  when  I  opened  my  young  eyes  on  it. 
I  came  upon  it  from  a  tussle  with  the  sea — and  I 
was  young — and  I  saw  it  looking  at  me.  And  this 
is  all  that  is  left  of  it !  Only  a  moment ;  a  moment 
of  strength,  of  romance,  of  glamour  —  of  youth ! 
...  A  flick  of  sunshine  upon  a  strange  shore,  the 
time  to  remember,  the  time  for  a  sigh,  and — good- 
bye !— Night— Good-bye     .     .     .!" 

He  drank. 

"  Ah  !  The  good  old  time — the  good  old  time. 
Youth  and  the  sea.  Glamour  and  the  sea !  The 
good,  strong  sea,  the  salt,  bitter  sea,  that  could 
whisper  to  you  and  roar  at  you  and  knock  your 
breath  out  of  you." 

He  drank  again. 

"  By  all  that's  wonderful,  it  is  the  sea,  I  believe, 
the  sea  itself — or  is  it  youth  alone  ?  Who  can  tell  ? 
But  you  here — you  all  had  something  out  of  life: 
money,  love — whatever  one  gets  on  shore — and,  tell 
me,  wasn't  that  the  best  time,  that  time  when  we 
were  young  at  sea ;  young  and  had  nothing,  on  the 
sea  that  gives  nothing,  except  hard  knocks — and 
sometimes  a  chance  to  feel  your  strength — that  only 
— what  you  all  regret  ?  " 

And  we  all  nodded  at  him :  the  man  of  finance, 
the  man  of  accounts,  the  man  of  law,  we  all  nodded 
at  him  over  the  polished  table  that  like  a  still  sheet 
of  brown  water  reflected  our  faces,  lined,  wrinkled; 


48  YOUTH. 

our  faces  marked  by  toil,  by  deceptions,  by  success, 
by  love ;  our  weary  eyes  looking  still,  looking  always, 
looking  anxiously  for  something  out  of  life,  that  while 
it  is  expected  is  already  gone — has  passed  unseen,  in 
a  sigh,  in  a  flash — together  with  the  youth,  with  the 
strength,  with  the  romance  of  illusions. 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 


The  Nellie,  a  cruising  yawl,  swung  to  her  anchor 
without  a  flutter  of  the  sails,  and  was  at  rest.  The 
flood  had  made,  the  wind  was  nearly  calm,  and  being 
bound  down  the  river,  the  only  thing  for  it  was  to 
come  to  and  wait  for  the  turn  of  the  tide. 

The  sea-reach  of  the  Thames  stretched  before  us 
like  the  beginning  of  an  interminable  waterway.  In 
the  offing  the  sea  and  the  sky  were  welded  together 
without  a  joint,  and  in  the  luminous  space  the  tanned 
sails  of  the  barges  drifting  up  with  the  tide  seemed 
to  stand  still  in  red  clusters  of  canvas  sharply 
peaked,  with  gleams  of  varnished  sprits.  A  haze 
rested  on  the  low  shores  that  ran  out  to  sea  in  van- 
ishing flatness.  The  air  was  dark  above  Gravesend, 
and  farther  back  still  seemed  condensed  into  a 
mournful  gloom,  brooding  motionless  over  the  big- 
gest, and  the  greatest,  town  on  earth. 

The  Director  of  Companies  was  our  captain  and 
our  host.     We  four  affectionately  watched  his  back 


52  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

as  he  stood  in  the  bows  looking  to  seaward.  On  the 
whole  river  there  was  nothing  that  looked  half  so 
nautical.  He  resembled  a  pilot,  which  to  a  seaman 
is  trustworthiness  personified.  It  was  difficult  to 
realise  his  work  was  not  out  there  in  the  luminous 
estuary,  but  behind  him,  within  the  brooding  gloom. 
Between  us  there  was,  as  I  have  already  said 
somewhere,  the  bond  of  the  sea.  Besides  holding 
our  hearts  together  through  long  periods  of  separa- 
tion, it  had  the  effect  of  making  us  tolerant  of  each 
other's  yarns — and  even  convictions.  The  Lawyer 
— the  best  of  old  fellows — had,  because  of  his  many 
years  and  many  virtues,  the  only  cushion  on  deck, 
and  was  lying  on  the  only  rug.  The  Accountant 
had  brought  out  already  a  box  of  dominoes,  and  was 
toying  architecturally  with  the  bones.  Marlow  sat 
cross-legged  right  aft,  leaning  against  the  mizzen- 
mast.  He  had  sunken  cheeks,  a  yellow  complexion, 
a  straight  back,  an  ascetic  aspect,  and,  with  his  arms 
dropped,  the  palms  of  hands  outwards,  resembled  an 
idol.  The  Director,  satisfied  the  anchor  had  good 
hold,  made  his  way  aft  and  sat  down  amongst 
us.  We  exchanged  a  few  words  lazily.  Afterwards 
there  was  silence  on  board  the  yacht.  For  some 
reason  or  other  we  did  not  begin  that  game  of 
dominoes.  We  felt  meditative,  and  fit  for  nothing 
but  placid  staring.  The  day  was  ending  in  a  seren- 
ity of  still  and  exquisite  brilliance.  The  water  shone 
pacifically;  the  sky,  without  a  speck,  was  a  benign 
immensity  of  unstained  light ;  the  very  mist  on  the 
Essex  marshes  was  like  a  gauzy  and  radiant  fabric, 
hung  from  the  wooded  rises  inland,  and  draping  the 
low  shores  in  diaphanous  folds.     Only  the  gloom  to 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  53 

the  west,  brooding  over  the  upper  reaches,  became 
more  sombre  every  minute,  as  if  angered  by  the 
approach  of  the  sun. 

And  at  last,  in  its  curved  and  imperceptible  fall, 
the  sun  sank  low,  and  from  glowing  white  changed 
to  a  dull  red  without  rays  and  without  heat,  as  if 
about  to  go  out  suddenly,  stricken  to  death  by  the 
touch  of  that  gloom  brooding  over  a  crowd  of  men. 

Forthwith  a  change  came  over  the  waters,  and  the 
serenity  became  less  brilliant  but  more  profound. 
The  old  river  in  its  broad  reach  rested  unruffled  at 
the  decline  of  day,  after  ages  of  good  service  done  to 
the  race  that  peopled  its  banks,  spread  out  in  the 
tranquil  dignity  of  a  waterway  leading  to  the  utter- 
most ends  of  the  earth.  We  looked  at  the  venerable 
stream  not  in  the  vivid  flush  of  a  short  day  that 
comes  and  departs  for  ever,  but  in  the  august  light 
of  abiding  memories.  And  indeed  nothing  is  easier 
for  a  man  who  has,  as  the  phrase  goes,  "followed 
the  sea  "  with  reverence  and  affection,  than  to  evoke 
the  great  spirit  of  the  past  upon  the  lower  reaches  of 
the  Thames.  The  tidal  current  runs  to  and  fro  in 
its  unceasing  service,  crowded  with  memories  of  men 
and  ships  it  had  borne  to  the  rest  of  home  or  to  the 
battles  of  the  sea.  It  had  known  and  served  all  the 
men  of  whom  the  nation  is  proud,  from  Sir  Francis 
Drake  to  Sir  John  Franklin,  knights  all,  titled  and 
untitled — the  great  knights -errant  of  the  sea.  It 
had  borne  all  the  ships  whose  names  are  like  jewels 
flashing  in  the  night  of  time,  from  the  Golden 
Hind  returning  with  her  round  flanks  full  of  treas- 
ure, to  be  visited  by  the  Queen's  Highness  and  thus 
pass  out  of  the  gigantic    tale,   to  the  Erebus  and 


54  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

Terror,  bound  on  other  conquests — and  that  never 
returned.  It  had  known  the  ships  and  the  men. 
They  had  sailed  from  Deptford,  from  Greenwich, 
from  Erith — the  adventurers  and  the  settlers ;  kings' 
ships  and  the  ships  of  men  on  'Change;  captains, 
admirals,  the  dark  "interlopers"  of  the  Eastern 
trade,  and  the  commissioned  "  generals "  of  East 
India  fleets.  Hunters  for  gold  or  pursuers  of  fame, 
they  all  had  gone  out  on  that  stream,  bearing  the 
sword,  and  often  the  torch,  messengers  of  the  might 
within  the  land,  bearers  of  a  spark  from  the  sacred 
fire.  What  greatness  had  not  floated  on  the  ebb  of 
that  river  into  the  mystery  of  an  unknown  earth  ! 
.  .  .  The  dreams  of  men,  the  seed  of  commonwealths, 
the  germs  of  empires. 

The  sun  set;  the  dusk  fell  on  the  stream,  and 
lights  began  to  appear  along  the  shore.  The  Chap- 
man lighthouse,  a  three-legged  thing  erect  on  a  mud- 
flat,  shone  strongly.  Lights  of  ships  moved  in  the 
fairway — a  great  stir  of  lights  going  up  and  going 
down.  And  farther  west  on  the  upper  reaches  the 
place  of  the  monstrous  town  was  still  marked  omin- 
ously on  the  sky,  a  brooding  gloom  in  sunshine,  a 
lurid  glare  under  the  stars. 

"  And  this  also,"  said  Marlow  suddenly,  "  has  been 
one  of  the  dark  places  of  the  earth." 

He  was  the  only  man  of  us  who  still  "  followed  the 
sea."  The  worst  that  could  be  said  of  him  was  that 
he  did  not  represent  his  class.  He  was  a  seaman,  but 
he  was  a  wanderer  too,  while  most  seamen  lead,  if  one 
may  so  express  it,  a  sedentary  life.  Their  minds  are 
of  the  stay-at-home  order,  and  their  home  is  always 
with  them — the  ship;  and  so  is  their  country — the 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  55 

sea.  One  ship  is  very  much  like  another,  and  the 
sea  is  always  the  same.  In  the  immutability  of  their 
surroundings  the  foreign  shores,  the  foreign  faces,  the 
changing  immensity  of  life,  glide  past,  veiled  not  by 
a  sense  of  mystery  but  by  a  slightly  disdainful  ignor- 
ance; for  there  is  nothing  mysterious  to  a  seaman 
unless  it  be  the  sea  itself,  which  is  the  mistress  of 
his  existence  and  as  inscrutable  as  Destiny.  For  the 
rest,  after  his  hours  of  work,  a  casual  stroll  or  a 
casual  spree  on  shore  suffices  to  unfold  for  him  the 
secret  of  a  whole  continent,  and  generally  he  finds 
the  secret  not  worth  knowing.~T-.The  yarns  of  seamen 
have  a  direct  simplicity,  the  whole  meaning  of  which 
lies  within  the  shell  of  a  cracked  nut.  But  Marlow 
was  not  typical  (if  his  propensity  to  spin  yarns  be 
excepted),  and  to  him  the  meaning  of  an  episode  was 
not  inside  like  a  kernel  but  outside,  enveloping  the 
tale  which  brought  it  out  only  as  a  glow  brings  out 
a  haze,  in  the  likeness  of  one  of  these  misty  halos 
that  sometimes  are  made  visible  by  the  spectral 
illumination  of  moonshine. 

His  remark  did  not  seem  at  all  surprising.  It 
was  just  like  Marlow.  It  was  accepted  in  silence. 
No  one  took  the  trouble  to  grunt  even ;  and  presently 
he  said,  very  slow, — 

"I  was  thinking  of  very  old  times,  when  the 
Romans  first  came  here,  nineteen  hundred  years  ago 
— the  other  day.  .  .  .  Light  came  out  of  this  river 
since  —  you  say  Knights?  Yes;  but  it  is  like  a 
running  blaze  on  a  plain,  like  a  flash  of  lightning  in 
the  clouds.  We  live  in  the  flicker — may  it  last  as 
long  as  the  old  earth  keeps  rolling  1  But  darkness 
was  here  yesterday.     Imagine  the  feelings  of  a  com- 


56  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

mander  of  a  fine — what  d'ye  call  'em? — trireme  in 
the  Mediterranean,  ordered  suddenly  to  the  north; 
run  overland  across  the  Gauls  in  a  hurry;  put  in 
charge  of  one  of  these  craft  the  legionaries, — a  won- 
derful lot  of  handy  men  they  must  have  been  too — 
used  to  build,  apparently  by  the  hundred,  in  a  month 
or  two,  if  we  may  believe  what  we  read.  Imagine 
him  here — the  very  end  of  the  world,  a  sea  the  colour 
of  lead,  a  sky  the  colour  of  smoke,  a  kind  of  ship 
about  as  rigid  as  a  concertina — and  going  up  this 
river  with  stores,  or  orders,  or  what  you  like.  Sand- 
banks, marshes,  forests,  savages, — precious  little  to 
eat  fit  for  a  civilised  man,  nothing  but  Thames  water 
to  drink.  No  Falernian  wine  here,  no  going  ashore. 
Here  and  there  a  military  camp  lost  in  a  wilderness, 
like  a  needle  in  a  bundle  of  hay — cold,  fog,  tempests, 
disease,  exile,  and  death, — death  skulking  in  the  air, 
in  the  water,  in  the  bush.  They  must  have  been 
dying  like  flies  here.  Oh  yes  —  he  did  it.  Did  it 
very  well,  too,  no  doubt,  and  without  thinking  much 
about  it  either,  except  afterwards  to  brag  of  what  he 
had  gone  through  in  his  time,  perhaps.  They  were 
men  enough  to  face  the  darkness.  And  perhaps  he 
was  cheered  by  keeping  his  eye  on  a  chance  of  pro- 
motion to  the  fleet  at  Ravenna  by-and-by,  if  he  had 
good  friends  in  Rome  and  survived  the  awful  climate. 
Or  think  of  a  decent  young  citizen  in  a  toga — per- 
haps too  much  dice,  you  know — coming  out  here  in 
the  train  of  some  prefect,  or  tax-gatherer,  or  trader 
even,  to  mend  his  fortunes.  Land  in  a  swamp, 
march  through  the  woods,  and  in  some  inland  post 
feel  the  savagery,  the  utter  savagery,  had  closed 
round  him, — all  that  mysterious  life  of  the  wilder- 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  57 

ness  that  stirs  in  the  forest,  in  the  jungles,  in  the 
hearts  of  wild  men.  There's  no  initiation  either  into 
such  mysteries.  He  has  to  live  in  the  midst  of  the 
incomprehensible,  which  is  also  detestable.  And  it 
has  a  fascination,  too,  that  goes  to  work  upon  him. 
The  fascination  of  the  abomination  —  you  know. 
Imagine  the  growing  regrets,  the  longing  to  escape, 
the  powerless  disgust,  the  surrender,  the  hate." 

He  paused. 

"  Mind,"  he  began  again,  lifting  one  arm  from  the 
elbow,  the  palm  of  the  hand  outwards,  so  that,  with 
his  legs  folded  before  him,  he  had  the  pose  of  a 
Buddha  preaching  in  European  clothes  and  without 
a  lotus-flower — "  Mind,  none  of  us  would  feel  exactly 
like  this.  What  saves  us  is  efficiency — the  devotion 
to  efficiency.  But  these  chaps  were  not  much  ac- 
count, really.  They  were  no  colonists ;  their  admin- 
istration was  merely  a  squeeze,  and  nothing  more,  I 
suspect.  They  were  conquerors,  and  for  that  you 
want  only  brute  force — nothing  to  boast  of,  when 
you  have  it,  since  your  strength  is  just  an  accident 
arising  from  the  weakness  of  others.  They  grabbed 
what  they  could  get  for  the  sake  of  what  was  to  be 
got.  It  was  just  robbery  with  violence,  aggravated 
murder  on  a  great  scale,  and  men  going  at  it  blind — 
as  is  very  proper  for  those  who  tackle  a  darkness. 
The  conquest  of  the  earth,  which  mostly  means  the 
taking  it  away  from  those  who  have  a  different  com- 
plexion or  slightly  flatter  noses  than  ourselves,  is 
not  a  pretty  thing  when  you  look  into  it  too  much. 
What  redeems  it  is  the  idea  only.  An  idea  at  the 
back  of  it;  not  a  sentimental  pretence  but  an  idea; 
and  an  unselfish  belief  in  the  idea — something  you 


58  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

can  set  up,  and  bow  down  before,  and  offer  a  sacrifice 
to.  .  .  ." 

He  broke  off.  Flames  glided  in  the  river,  small 
green  flames,  red  flames,  white  flames,  pursuing, 
overtaking,  joining,  crossing  each  other — then  separ- 
ating slowly  or  hastily.  The  traffic  of  the  great  city 
went  on  in  the  deepening  night  upon  the  sleepless 
river.  "We  looked  on,  waiting  patiently — there  was 
nothing  else  to  do  till  the  end  of  the  flood ;  but  it  was 
only  after  a  long  silence,  when  he  said,  in  a  hesitating 
voice,  "I  suppose  you  fellows  remember  I  did  once 
turn  fresh- water  sailor  for  a  bit,"  that  we  knew  we 
were  fated,  before  the  ebb  began  to  run,  to  hear 
about  one  of  Marlow's  inconclusive  experiences. 

"I  don't  want  to  bother  you  much  with  what 
happened  to  me  personally,"  he  began,  showing  in 
this  remark  the  weakness  of  many  tellers  of  tales  who 
seem  so  often  unaware  of  what  their  audience  would 
best  like  to  hear ;  "  yet  to  understand  the  effect  of  it 
on  me  you  ought  to  know  how  I  got  out  there,  what 
I  saw,  how  I  went  up  that  river  to  the  place  where  I 
first  met  the  poor  chap.  It  was  the  farthest  point  of 
navigation  and  the  culminating  point  of  my  experi- 
ence. It  seemed  somehow  to  throw  a  kind  of  light 
on  everything  about  me — and  into  my  thoughts.  It 
was  sombre  enough  too  —  and  pitiful  —  not  extra- 
ordinary in  any  way — not  very  clear  either.  No,  not 
very  clear.  And  yet  it  seemed  to  throw  a  kind  of 
light. 

"I  had  then,  as  you  remember,  just  returned  to 
London  after  a  lot  of  Indian  Ocean,  Pacific,  China 
Seas — a  regular  dose  of  the  East — six  years  or  so, 
and   I  was  loafing  about,  hindering  you  fellows  in 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  59 

your  work  and  invading  your  homes,  just  as  though 
I  had  got  a  heavenly  mission  to  civilise  you.  It  was 
very  fine  for  a  time,  but  after  a  bit  I  did  get  tired  of 
resting.  Then  I  began  to  look  for  a  ship — I  should 
think  the  hardest  work  on  earth.  But  the  ships 
wouldn't  even  look  at  me.  And  I  got  tired  of  that 
game  too. 

"  Now  when  I  was  a  little  chap  I  had  a  passion  for 
maps.  I  would  look  for  hours  at  South  America,  or 
Africa,  or  Australia,  and  lose  myself  in  all  the  glories 
of  exploration.  At  that  time  there  were  many  blank 
spaces  on  the  earth,  and  when  I  saw  one  that  looked 
particularly  inviting  on  a  map  (but  they  all  look 
that)  I  would  put  my  finger  on  it  and  say,  When  I 
grow  up  I  will  go  there.  The  North  Pole  was  one  of 
these  places,  I  remember.  Well,  I  haven't  been  there 
yet,  and  shall  not  try  now.  The  glamour's  off. 
Other  places  were  scattered  about  the  Equator,  and 
in  every  sort  of  latitude  all  over  the  two  hemispheres. 
I  have  been  in  some  of  them,  and  .  .  .  well,  we  won't 
talk  about  that.  But  there  was  one  yet — the  biggest, 
the  most  blank,  so  to  speak — that  I  had  a  hankering 
after. 

"  True,  by  this  time  it  was  not  a  blank  space  any 
more.  It  had  got  filled  since  my  boyhood  with  rivers 
and  lakes  and  names.  It  had  ceased  to  be  a  blank 
space  of  delightful  mystery — a  white  patch  for  a  boy 
to  dream  gloriously  over.  It  had  become  a  place  of 
darkness.  But  there  was  in  it  one  river  especially,  a 
mighty  big  river,  that  you  could  see  on  the  map, 
resembling  an  immense  snake  uncoiled,  with  its  head 
in  the  sea,  its  body  at  rest  curving  afar  over  a  vast 
country,  and  its  tail  lost  in  the  depths  of  the  land. 


60  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

And  as  I  looked  at  the  map  of  it  in  a  shop-window, 
it  fascinated  me  as  a  snake  would  a  bird  —  a  silly 
little  bird.  Then  I  remembered  there  was  a  big  con- 
cern, a  Company  for  trade  on  that  river.  Dash  it  all ! 
I  thought  to  myself,  they  can't  trade  without  using 
some  kind  of  craft  on  that  lot  of  fresh  water — steam- 
boats !  "Why  shouldn't  I  try  to  get  charge  of  one. 
I  went  on  along  Fleet  Street,  but  could  not  shake  off 
the  idea.     The  snake  had  charmed  me. 

"You  understand  it  was  a  Continental  concern, 
that  Trading  society ;  but  I  have  a  lot  of  relations 
living  on  the  Continent,  because  it's  cheap  and  not  so 
nasty  as  it  looks,  they  say. 

"  I  am  sorry  to  own  I  began  to  worry  them.  This 
was  already  a  fresh  departure  for  me.  I  was  not 
used  to  get  things  that  way,  you  know.  I  always 
went  my  own  road  and  on  my  own  legs  where  I  had 
a  mind  to  go.  I  wouldn't  have  believed  it  of  myself ; 
but,  then — you  see — I  felt  somehow  I  must  get  there  by 
hook  or  by  crook.  So  I  worried  them.  The  men  said 
'My  dear  fellow,'  and  did  nothing.  Then — would 
you  believe  it  I  —  I  tried  the  women.  I,  Charlie 
Mario w,  set  the  women  to  work  —  to  get  a  job. 
Heavens !  Well,  you  see,  the  notion  drove  me.  I 
had  an  aunt,  a  dear  enthusiastic  soul.  She  wrote : 
1  It  will  be  delightful.  I  am  ready  to  do  anything, 
anything  for  you.  It  is  a  glorious  idea.  I  know  the 
wife  of  a  very  high  personage  in  the  Administration, 
and  also  a  man  who  has  lots  of  influence  with,'  &c,  &c. 
She  was  determined  to  make  no  end  of  fuss  to  get  me 
appointed  skipper  of  a  river  steamboat,  if  such  was 
my  fancy. 

"  I  got  my  appointment — of  course ;  and  I  got  it 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  61 

very  quick.  It  appears  the  Company  had  received 
news  that  one  of  their  captains  had  been  killed  in  a 
scuffle  with  the  natives.  This  was  my  chance,  and  it 
made  me  the  more  anxious  to  go.  It  was  only 
months  and  months  afterwards,  when  I  made  the 
attempt  to  recover  what  was  left  of  the  body,  that  I 
heard  the  original  quarrel  arose  from  a  misunder- 
standing about  some  hens.  Yes,  two  black  hens. 
Fresleven — that  was  the  fellow's  name,  a  Dane — 
thought  himself  wronged  somehow  in  the  bargain,  so 
he  went  ashore  and  started  to  hammer  the  chief  of 
the  village  with  a  stick.  Oh,  it  didn't  surprise  me 
in  the  least  to  hear  this,  and  at  the  same  time  to  be 
told  that  Fresleven  was  the  gentlest,  quietest  creature 
that  ever  walked  on  two  legs.  No  doubt  he  was ; 
but  he  had  been  a  couple  of  years  already  out  there 
engaged  in  the  noble  cause,  you  know,  and  he  pro- 
bably felt  the  need  at  last  of  asserting  his  self-respect 
in  some  way.  Therefore  he  whacked  the  old  nigger 
mercilessly,  while  a  big  crowd  of  his  people  watched 
him,  thunderstruck,  till  some  man, — I  was  told  the 
chief's  son, — in  desperation  at  hearing  the  old  chap 
yell,  made  a  tentative  jab  with  a  spear  at  the  white 
man — and  of  course  it  went  quite  easy  between  the 
shoulder-blades.  Then  the  whole  population  cleared 
into  the  forest,  expecting  all  kinds  of  calamities  to 
happen,  while,  on  the  other  hand,  the  steamer  Fres- 
leven commanded  left  also  in  a  bad  panic,  in  charge 
of  the  engineer,  I  believe.  Afterwards  nobody  seemed 
to  trouble  much  about  Fresleven's  remains,  till  I  got 
out  and  stepped  into  his  shoes.  I  couldn't  let  it  rest, 
though ;  but  when  an  opportunity  offered  at  last  to 
meet  my  predecessor,  the  grass  growing  through  his 


62  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

ribs  was  tall  enough  to  hide  his  bones.  They  were 
all  there.  The  supernatural  being  had  not  been 
touched  after  he  fell.  And  the  village  was  deserted, 
the  huts  gaped  black,  rotting,  all  askew  within  the 
fallen  enclosures.  A  calamity  had  come  to  it,  sure 
enough.  The  people  had  vanished.  Mad  terror  had 
scattered  them,  men,  women,  and  children,  through 
the  bush,  and  they  had  never  returned.  What 
became  of  the  hens  I  don't  know  either.  I  should 
think  the  cause  of  progress  got  them,  anyhow. 
However,  through  this  glorious  affair  I  got  my 
appointment,  before  I  had  fairly  begun  to  hope 
for  it. 

"  I  flew  around  like  mad  to  get  ready,  and  before 
forty-eight  hours  I  was  crossing  the  Channel  to  show 
myself  to  my  employers,  and  sign  the  contract.  In 
a  very  few  hours  I  arrived  in  a  city  that  always 
makes  me  think  of  a  whited  sepulchre.  Prejudice  no 
doubt.  I  had  no  difficulty  in  finding  the  Company's 
offices.  It  was  the  biggest  thing  in  the  town,  and 
everybody  I  met  was  full  of  it.  They  were  going  to 
run  an  over-sea  empire,  and  make  no  end  of  coin  by 
trade. 

"A  narrow  and  deserted  street  in  deep  shadow, 
high  houses,  innumerable  windows  with  Venetian 
blinds,  a  dead  silence,  grass  sprouting  between  the 
stones,  imposing  carriage  archways  right  and  left, 
immense  double  doors  standing  ponderously  ajar. 
I  slipped  through  one  of  these  cracks,  went  up  a 
swept  and  ungarnished  staircase,  as  arid  as  a  desert, 
and  opened  the  first  door  I  came  to.  Two  women, 
one  fat  and  the  other  slim,  sat  on  straw-bottomed 
chairs,  knitting  black  wool.     The  slim  one  got  up 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  63 

and  walked  straight  at  me — still  knitting  with  down- 
oast  eyes — and  only  just  as  I  began  to  think  of 
getting  out  of  her  way,  as  you  would  for  a  somnam- 
bulist, stood  still,  and  looked  up.  Her  dress  was  as 
plain  as  an  umbrella-cover,  and  she  turned  round 
without  a  word  and  preceded  me  into  a  waiting-room. 
I  gave  my  name,  and  looked  about.  Deal  table  in 
the  middle,  plain  chairs  all  round  the  walls,  on  one 
end  a  large  shining  map,  marked  with  all  the  colours 
of  a  rainbow.  There  was  a  vast  amount  of  red — 
good  to  see  at  any  time,  because  one  knows  that 
some  real  work  is  done  in  there,  a  deuce  of  a  lot  of 
blue,  a  little  green,  smears  of  orange,  and,  on  the 
East  Coast,  a  purple  patch,  to  show  where  the  jolly 
pioneers  of  progress  drink  the  jolly  lager-beer.  How- 
ever, I  wasn't  going  into  any  of  these.  I  was  going 
into  the  yellow.  Dead  in  the  centre.  And  the  river 
was  there  —  fascinating  —  deadly  —  like  a  snake. 
Ough !  A  door  opened,  a  white-haired  secretarial 
head,  but  wearing  a  compassionate  expression,  ap- 
peared, and  a  skinny  forefinger  beckoned  me  into 
the  sanctuary.  Its  light  was  dim,  and  a  heavy 
writing-desk  squatted  in  the  middle.  From  behind 
that  structure  came  out  an  impression  of  pale  plump- 
ness in  a  frock-coat.  The  great  man  himself.  He 
was  five  feet  six,  I  should  judge,  and  had  his  grip  on 
the  handle-end  of  ever  so  many  millions.  He  shook 
hands,  I  fancy,  murmured  vaguely,  was  satisfied  with 
my  French.     Bon  voyage. 

"  In  about  forty-five  seconds  I  found  myself  again 
in  the  waiting-room  with  the  compassionate  secretary, 
who,  full  of  desolation  and  sympathy,  made  me  sign 
some   document.       I   believe   I  undertook   amongst 


64  HEART   OP   DARKNESS. 

other  things  not  to  disclose  any  trade  secrets.  WelL 
I  am  not  going  to. 

"  I  began  to  feel  slightly  uneasy.  You  know  I  am 
not  used  to  such  ceremonies,  and  there  was  some- 
thing ominous  in  the  atmosphere.  It  was  just  as 
though  I  had  been  let  into  some  conspiracy — I  don't 
know — something  not  quite  right ;  and  I  was  glad 
to  get  out.  In  the  outer  room  the  two  women 
knitted  black  wool  feverishly.  People  were  arriving, 
and  the  younger  one  was  walking  back  and  forth 
introducing  them.  The  old  one  sat  on  her  chair. 
Her  flat  cloth  slippers  were  propped  up  on  a  foot- 
warmer,  and  a  cat  reposed  on  her  lap.  She  wore  a 
starched  white  affair  on  her  head,  had  a  wart  on  one 
cheek,  and  silver-rimmed  spectacles  hung  on  the  tip 
of  her  nose.  She  glanced  at  me  above  the  glasses. 
The  swift  and  indifferent  placidity  of  that  look 
troubled  me.  Two  youths  with  foolish  and  cheery 
countenances  were  being  piloted  over,  and  she  threw 
at  them  the  same  quick  glance  of  unconcerned 
wisdom.  She  seemed  to  know  all  about  them  and 
about  me  too.  An  eerie  feeling  came  over  me.  She 
seemed  uncanny  and  fateful.  Often  far  away  there 
I  thought  of  these  two,  guarding  the  door  of  Dark- 
ness, knitting  black  wool  as  for  a  warm  pall,  one 
introducing,  introducing  continuously  to  the  un- 
known, the  other  scrutinising  the  cheery  and  foolish 
faces  with  unconcerned  old  eyes.  Ave  I  Old  knitter 
of  black  wool.  Morituri  te  salutant  Not  many  of 
those  she  looked  at  ever  saw  her  again — not  half,  by 
a  long  way. 

"  There  was  yet  a  visit  to  the  doctor.  '  A  simple 
formality,'  assured  me  the  secretary,  with  an  air  of 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  65 

taking  an  immense  part  in  all  my  sorrows.  Accord- 
ingly a  young  chap  wearing  his  hat  over  the  left 
eyebrow,  some  clerk  I  suppose, — there  must  have 
been  clerks  in  the  business,  though  the  house  was  as 
still  as  a  house  in  a  city  of  the  dead, — came  from 
somewhere  up-stairs,  and  led  me  forth.  He  was 
shabby  and  careless,  with  ink-stains  on  the  sleeves  of 
his  jacket,  and  his  cravat  was  large  and  billowy, 
under  a  chin  shaped  like  the  toe  of  an  old  boot.  It 
was  a  little  too  early  for  the  doctor,  so  I  proposed  a 
drink,  and  thereupon  he  developed  a  vein  of  joviality. 
As  we  sat  over  our  vermuths  he  glorified  the  Com- 
pany's business,  and  by-and-by  I  expressed  casually 
my  surprise  at  him  not  going  out  there.  He  became 
very  cool  and  collected  all  at  once.  '  I  am  not  such 
a  fool  as  I  look,  quoth  Plato  to  his  disciples,'  he  said 
sententiously,  emptied  his  glass  with  great  resolution, 
and  we  rose. 

"  The  old  doctor  felt  my  pulse,  evidently  thinking 
of  something  else  the  while.  '  Good,  good  for  there,' 
he  mumbled,  and  then  with  a  certain  eagerness 
asked  me  whether  I  would  let  him  measure  my 
head.  Rather  surprised,  I  said  Yes,  when  he  pro- 
duced a  thing  like  calipers  and  got  the  dimensions 
back  and  front  and  every  way,  taking  notes  care- 
fully. He  was  an  unshaven  little  man  in  a 
threadbare  coat  like  a  gaberdine,  with  his  feet  in 
slippers,  and  I  thought  him  a  harmless  fool.  'I 
always  ask  leave,  in  the  interests  of  science,  to 
measure  the  crania  of  those  going  out  there,'  he 
said.  'And  when  they  come  back  too?'  I  asked. 
'Oh,  I  never  see  them,'  he  remarked;  'and,  more- 
over, the  changes  take  place  inside,  you  know.'     He 

E 


66  HEAKT  OF  DAKKNESS. 

smiled,  as  if  at  some  quiet  joke.  '  So  you  are  going 
out  there.  Famous.  Interesting  too.'  He  gave 
me  a  searching  glance,  and  made  another  note. 
'  Ever  any  madness  in  your  family  ? '  he  asked,  in 
a  matter-of-fact  tone.  I  felt  very  annoyed.  'Is 
that  question  in  the  interests  of  science  too?'  'It 
would  be,'  he  said,  without  taking  notice  of  my 
irritation,  'interesting  for  science  to  watch  the 
mental  changes  of  individuals,  on  the  spot,  but 
.  .  .  '  '  Are  you  an  alienist  ? '  I  interrupted. 
'Every  doctor  should  be — a  little,'  answered  that 
original,  imperturbably.  'I  have  a  little  theory 
which  you  Messieurs  who  go  out  there  must  help 
me  to  prove.  This  is  my  share  in  the  advantages 
my  country  shall  reap  from  the  possession  of  such 
a  magnificent  dependency.  The  mere  wealth  I 
leave  to  others.  Pardon  my  questions,  but  you 
are  the  first  Englishman  coming  under  my  obser- 
vation .  .  .  '  I  hastened  to  assure  him  I  was  not 
in  the  least  typical.  'If  I  were,'  said  I,  'I 
wouldn't  be  talking  like  this  with  you.'  'What 
you  say  is  rather  profound,  and  probably  erron- 
eous,' he  said,  with  a  laugh.  'Avoid  irritation 
more  than  exposure  to  the  sun.  Adieu.  How  do 
you  English  say,  eh  ?  Good-bye.  Ah !  Good-bye. 
Adieu.  In  the  tropics  one  must  before  everything 
keep  calm.'  .  .  .  He  lifted  a  warning  forefinger.  .  .  . 
'  Du  calme,  du  calme.     Adieu.1 

"One  thing  more  remained  to  do — say  good-bye 
to  my  excellent  aunt.  I  found  her  triumphant.  I 
had  a  cup  of  tea — the  last  decent  cup  of  tea  for 
many  days — and  in  a  room  that  most  soothingly 
looked  just  as  you  would  expect  a  lady's  drawing- 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  67 

room  to  look,  we  had  a  long  quiet  chat  by  the 
fireside.  In  the  course  of  these  confidences  it 
became  quite  plain  to  me  I  had  been  represented 
to  the  wife  of  the  high  dignitary,  and  goodness 
knows  to  how  many  more  people  besides,  as  an 
exceptional  and  gifted  creature — a  piece  of  good 
fortune  for  the  Company — a  man  you  don't  get 
hold  of  every  day.  Good  heavens !  and  I  was 
going  to  take  charge  of  a  two  -  penny  -  half  penny 
river-steamboat  with  a  penny  whistle  attached !  It 
appeared,  however,  I  was  also  one  of  the  Workers, 
with  a  capital  —  you  know.  Something  like  an 
emissary  of  light,  something  like  a  lower  sort  of 
apostle.  There  had  been  a  lot  of  such  rot  let 
loose  in  print  and  talk  just  about  that  time,  and 
the  excellent  woman,  living  right  in  the  rush  of  all 
that  humbug,  got  carried  off  her  feet.  She  talked 
about  'weaning  those  ignorant  millions  from  their 
horrid  ways,'  till,  upon  my  word,  she  made  me 
quite  uncomfortable.  I  ventured  to  hint  that  the 
Company  was  run  for  profit. 

" '  You  forget,  dear  Charlie,  that  the  labourer  is 
worthy  of  his  hire,'  she  said,  brightly.  It's  queer 
how  out  of  touch  with  truth  women  are.  They  live 
in  a  world  of  their  own,  and  there  had  never  been 
anything  like  it,  and  never  can  be.  It  is  too 
beautiful  altogether,  and  if  they  were  to  set  it  up 
it  would  go  to  pieces  before  the  first  sunset.  Some 
confounded  fact  we  men  have  been  living  contentedly 
with  ever  since  the  day  of  creation  would  start  up 
and  knock  the  whole  thing  over. 

"  After  this  I  got  embraced,  told  to  wear  flannel, 
be  sure  to  write  often,  and  so  on — and  I  left.     In 


68  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

the  street — I  don't  know  why — a  queer  feeling  came 
to  me  that  I  was  an  impostor.  Odd  thing  that  I, 
who  used  to  clear  out  for  any  part  of  the  world  at 
twenty-four  hours'  notice,  with  less  thought  than 
most  men  give  to  the  crossing  of  a  street,  had  a 
moment — I  won't  say  of  hesitation,  but  of  startled 
pause,  before  this  commonplace  affair.  The  best 
way  I  can  explain  it  to  you  is  by  saying  that,  for 
a  second  or  two,  I  felt  as  though,  instead  of  going 
to  the  centre  of  a  continent,  I  were  about  to  set  off 
for  the  centre  of  the  earth. 

"I  left  in  a  French  steamer,  and  she  called  in 
every  blamed  port  they  have  out  there,  for,  as  far 
as  I  could  see,  the  sole  purpose  of  landing  soldiers 
and  custom-house  officers.  I  watched  the  coast. 
Watching  a  coast  as  it  slips  by  the  ship  is  like 
thinking  about  an  enigma.  There  it  is  before  you 
— smiling,  frowning,  inviting,  grand,  mean,  insipid, 
or  savage,  and  always  mute  with  an  air  of  whisper- 
ing, Come  and  find  out.  This  one  was  almost 
featureless,  as  if  still  in  the  making,  with  an 
aspect  of  monotonous  grimness.  The  edge  of  a 
colossal  jungle,  so  dark  -  green  as  to  be  almost 
black,  fringed  with  white  surf,  ran  straight,  like 
a  ruled  line,  far,  far  away  along  a  blue  sea  whose 
glitter  was  blurred  by  a  creeping  mist.  The  sun 
was  fierce,  the  land  seemed  to  glisten  and  drip  with 
steam.  Here  and  there  greyish  -  whitish  specks 
showed  up,  clustered  inside  the  white  surf,  with  a 
flag  flying  above  them  perhaps.  Settlements  some 
centuries  old,  and  still  no  bigger  than  pin-heads  on 
the  untouched  expanse  of  their  background.  We 
pounded   along,   stopped,   landed  soldiers  ;  went  on, 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  69 

landed  custom-house  clerks  to  levy  toll  in  what 
looked  like  a  God-forsaken  wilderness,  with  a  tin 
shed  and  a  flag-pole  lost  in  it ;  landed  more  soldiers 
— to  take  care  of  the  custom-house  clerks,  presum- 
ably. Some,  I  heard,  got  drowned  in  the  surf ;  but 
whether  they  did  or  not,  nobody  seemed  particularly 
to  care.  They  were  just  flung  out  there,  and  on  we 
went.  Every  day  the  coast  looked  the  same,  as 
though  we  had  not  moved ;  but  we  passed  various 
places  —  trading  places  —  with  names  like  Gran' 
Bassam  Little  Popo,  names  that  seemed  to  belong  to 
some  sordid  farce  acted  in  front  of  a  sinister  back- 
cloth.  The  idleness  of  a  passenger,  my  isolation 
amongst  all  these  men  with  whom  I  had  no  point  of 
contact,  the  oily  and  languid  sea,  the  uniform 
sombreness  of  the  coast,  seemed  to  keep  me  away 
from  the  truth  of  things,  within  the  toil  of  a  mourn- 
ful and  senseless  delusion.  The  voice  of  the  surf 
heard  now  and  then  was  a  positive  pleasure,  like  the 
speech  of  a  brother.  It  was  something  natural,  that 
had  its  reason,  that  had  a  meaning.  Now  and  then 
a  boat  from  the  shore  gave  one  a  momentary  contact 
with  reality.  It  was  paddled  by  black  fellows.  You 
could  see  from  afar  the  white  of  their  eyeballs 
glistening.  They  shouted,  sang ;  their  bodies 
streamed  with  perspiration  ;  they  had  faces  like  gro- 
tesque masks  —  these  chaps  ;  but  they  had  bone, 
muscle,  a  wild  vitality,  an  intense  energy  of  move- 
ment, that  was  as  natural  and  true  as  the  surf  along 
their  coast.  They  wanted  no  excuse  for  being  there. 
They  were  a  great  comfort  to  look  at.  For  a  time 
I  would  feel  I  belonged  still  to  a  world  of  straight- 
forward facts ;  but  the  feeling  would  not  last  long. 


70  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

Something  would  turn  up  to  scare  it  away.  Once,  I 
remember,  we  came  upon  a  man-of-war  anchored  off 
the  coast.  There  wasn't  even  a  shed  there,  and  she 
was  shelling  the  bush.  It  appears  the  French  had 
one  of  their  wars  going  on  thereabouts.  Her  en- 
sign dropped  limp  like  a  rag;  the  muzzles  of  the 
long  eight-inch  guns  stuck  out  all  over  the  low  hull ; 
the  greasy,  slimy  swell  swung  her  up  lazily  and  let 
her  down,  swaying  her  thin  masts.  In  the  empty 
immensity  of  earth,  sky,  and  water,  there  she  was, 
incomprehensible,  firing  into  a  continent.  Pop, 
would  go  one  of  the  eight-inch  guns  ;  a  small  flame 
would  dart  and  vanish,  a  little  white  smoke  would 
disappear,  a  tiny  projectile  would  give  a  feeble 
screech  —  and  nothing  happened.  Nothing  could 
happen.  There  was  a  touch  of  insanity  in  the  pro- 
ceeding, a  sense  of  lugubrious  drollery  in  the  sight ; 
and  it  was  not  dissipated  by  somebody  on  board 
assuring  me  earnestly  there  was  a  camp  of  natives — 
he  called  them  enemies ! — hidden  out  of  sight  some- 
where. 

"  We  gave  her  her  letters  (I  heard  the  men  in  that 
lonely  ship  were  dying  of  fever  at  the  rate  of  three 
a-day)  and  went  on.  We  called  at  some  more  places 
with  farcical  names,  where  the  merry  dance  of  death 
and  trade  goes  on  in  a  still  and  earthy  atmosphere 
as  of  an  overheated  catacomb  ;  all  along  the  formless 
coast  bordered  by  dangerous  surf,  as  if  Nature  her- 
self had  tried  to  ward  off  intruders  ;  in  and  out 
of  rivers,  streams  of  death  in  life,  whose  banks  were 
rotting  into  mud,  whose  waters,  thickened  into  slime, 
invaded  the  contorted  mangroves,  that  seemed  to 
writhe  at  us  in  the  extremity  of  an  impotent  despair. 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  71 

Nowhere  did  we  stop  long  enough  to  get  a  par- 
ticularised impression,  but  the  general  sense  of 
vague  and  oppressive  wonder  grew  upon  me.  It 
was  like  a  weary  pilgrimage  amongst  hints  for 
nightmares. 

"It  was  upward  of  thirty  days  before  I  saw  the 
mouth  of  the  big  river.  We  anchored  off  the  seat  of 
the  government.  But  my  work  would  not  begin  till 
some  two  hundred  miles  farther  on.  So  as  soon  as  I 
could  I  made  a  start  for  a  place  thirty  miles  higher 
up. 

"  I  had  my  passage  on  a  little  sea-going  steamer. 
Her  captain  was  a  Swede,  and  knowing  me  for  a 
seaman,  invited  me  on  the  bridge.  He  was  a  young 
man,  lean,  fair,  and  morose,  with  lanky  hair  and  a 
shuffling  gait.  As  we  left  the  miserable  little  wharf,  he 
tossed  his  head  contemptuously  at  the  shore.  '  Been 
living  there?' he  asked.  I  said,  'Yes.'  'Fine  lot 
these  government  chaps — are  they  not  ? '  he  went  on, 
speaking  English  with  great  precision  and  consider- 
able bitterness.  'It  is  funny  what  some  people 
will  do  for  a  few  francs  a-month.  I  wonder  what 
becomes  of  that  kind  when  it  goes  up  country?' 
I  said  to  him  I  expected  to  see  that  soon.  '  So-o-o  ! ' 
he  exclaimed.  He  shuffled  athwart,  keeping  one 
eye  ahead  vigilantly.  'Don't  be  too  sure,'  he 
continued.  'The  other  day  I  took  up  a  man 
who  hanged  himself  on  the  road.  He  was  a 
Swede,  too.'  '  Hanged  himself !  Why,  in  God's 
name  ? '  I  cried.  He  kept  on  looking  out  watchfully. 
'  Who  knows  ?  The  sun  too  much  for  him,  or  the 
country  perhaps.' 

At  last  we  opened  a  reach.      A  rocky  cliff  ap- 


72  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

peared,  mounds  of  turned -up  earth  by  the  shore, 
houses  on  a  hill,  others,  with  iron  roofs,  amongst  a 
waste  of  excavations,  or  hanging  to  the  declivity. 
A  continuous  noise  of  the  rapids  above  hovered  over 
this  scene  of  inhabited  devastation.  A  lot  of  people, 
mostly  black  and  naked,  moved  about  like  ants.  A 
jetty  projected  into  the  river.  A  blinding  sunlight 
drowned  all  this  at  times  in  a  sudden  recrudescence 
of  glare.  '  There's  your  Company's  station,'  said  the 
Swede,  pointing  to  three  wooden  barrack-like  struc- 
tures on  the  rocky  slope.  *  I  will  send  your  things 
up.     Four  boxes  did  you  say  ?     So.     Farewell.' 

"  I  came  upon  a  boiler  wallowing  in  the  grass, 
then  found  a  path  leading  up  the  hill.  It  turned 
aside  for  the  boulders,  and  also  for  an  undersized 
railway-truck  lying  there  on  its  back  with  its  wheels 
in  the  air.  One  was  off.  The  thing  looked  as  dead 
as  the  carcass  of  some  animal.  I  came  upon  more 
pieces  of  decaying  machinery,  a  stack  of  rusty  rails. 
To  the  left  a  clump  of  trees  made  a  shady  spot, 
where  dark  things  seemed  to  stir  feebly.  I  blinked, 
the  path  was  steep.  A  horn  tooted  to  the  right,  and 
I  saw  the  black  people  run.  A  heavy  and  dull 
detonation  shook  the  ground,  a  puff  of  smoke  came 
out  of  the  cliff,  and  that  was  all.  No  change  ap- 
peared on  the  face  of  the  rock.  They  were  building 
a  railway.  The  cliff  was  not  in  the  way  or  any- 
thing ;  but  this  objectless  blasting  was  all  the  work 
going  on. 

"A  slight  clinking  behind  me  made  me  turn  my 
head.  Six  black  men  advanced  in  a  file,  toiling  up 
the  path.  They  walked  erect  and  slow,  balancing 
small  baskets  full  of  earth  on   their  heads,  and  the 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  73 

clink  kept  time  with  their  footsteps.  Black  rags 
were  wound  round  their  loins,  and  the  short  ends 
behind  wagged  to  and  fro  like  tails.  I  could  see 
every  rib,  the  joints  of  their  limbs  were  like  knots 
in  a  rope ;  each  had  an  iron  collar  on  his  neck,  and 
all  were  connected  together  with  a  chain  whose 
bights  swung  between  them,  rhythmically  clinking. 
Another  report  from  the  cliff  made  me  think  sud- 
denly of  that  ship  of  war  I  had  seen  firing  into  a 
continent.  It  was  the  same  kind  of  ominous  voice  ; 
but  these  men  could  by  no  stretch  of  imagination 
be  called  enemies.  They  were  called  criminals,  and 
the  outraged  law,  like  the  bursting  shells,  had  come 
to  them,  an  insoluble  mystery  from  over  the  sea.  All 
their  meagre  breasts  panted  together,  the  violently 
dilated  nostrils  quivered,  the  eyes  stared  stonily  up- 
hill. They  passed  me  within  six  inches,  without  a 
glance,  with  that  complete,  deathlike  indifference  of 
unhappy  savages.  Behind  this  raw  matter  one  of 
the  reclaimed,  the  product  of  the  new  forces  at  work, 
strolled  despondently,  carrying  a  rifle  by  its  middle. 
He  had  a  uniform  jacket  with  one  button  off,  and 
seeing  a  white  man  on  the  path,  hoisted  his  weapon 
to  his  shoulder  with  alacrity.  This  was  simple  pru- 
dence, white  men  being  so  much  alike  at  a  distance 
that  he  could  not  tell  who  I  might  be.  He  was 
speedily  reassured,  and  with  a  large,  white,  rascally 
grin,  and  a  glance  at  his  charge,  seemed  to  take 
me  into  partnership  in  his  exalted  trust.  After  all, 
I  also  was  a  part  of  the  great  cause  of  these  high 
and  just  proceedings. 

"Instead  of  going  up,  I  turned  and  descended  to 
the  left.     My  idea  was  to  let  that  chain-gang  get 


74  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

out  of  sight  before  I  climbed  the  hill.  You  know 
I  am  not  particularly  tender ;  I've  had  to  strike  and 
to  fend  off.  I've  had  to  resist  and  to  attack  some- 
times— that's  only  one  way  of  resisting — without 
counting  the  exact  cost,  according  to  the  demands 
of  such  sort  of  life  as  I  had  blundered  into.  I've 
seen  the  devil  of  violence,  and  the  devil  of  greed, 
and  the  devil  of  hot  desire ;  but,  by  all  the  stars ! 
these  were  strong,  lusty,  red-eyed  devils,  that  swayed 
and  drove  men — men,  I  tell  you.  But  as  I  stood  on 
this  hillside,  I  foresaw  that  in  the  blinding  sunshine 
of  that  land  I  would  become  acquainted  with  a 
flabby,  pretending,  weak-eyed  devil  of  a  rapacious 
and  pitiless  folly.  How  insidious  he  could  be,  too, 
I  was  only  to  find  out  several  months  later  and  a 
thousand  miles  farther.  For  a  moment  I  stood 
appalled,  as  though  by  a  warning.  Finally  I  de- 
scended the  hill,  obliquely,  towards  the  trees  I  had 
seen. 

"I  avoided  a  vast  artificial  hole  somebody  had 
been  digging  on  the  slope,  the  purpose  of  which 
I  found  it  impossible  to  divine.  It  wasn't  a  quarry 
or  a  sandpit,  anyhow.  It  was  just  a  hole.  It  might 
have  been  connected  with  the  philanthropic  desire 
of  giving  the  criminals  something  to  do.  I  don't 
know.  Then  I  nearly  fell  into  a  very  narrow  ravine, 
almost  no  more  than  a  scar  in  the  hillside.  I  dis- 
covered that  a  lot  of  imported  drainage -pipes  for 
the  settlement  had  been  tumbled  in  there.  There 
wasn't  one  that  was  not  broken.  It  was  a  wanton 
smash-up.  At  last  I  got  under  the  trees.  My  pur- 
pose was  to  stroll  into  the  shade  for  a  moment ;  but 
no  sooner  within  than  it  seemed  to  me  I  had  stepped 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  75 

into  the  gloomy  circle  of  some  Inferno.  The  rapids 
were  near,  and  an  uninterrupted,  uniform,  headlong, 
rushing  noise  filled  the  mournful  stillness  of  the 
grove,  where  not  a  breath  stirred,  not  a  leaf  moved, 
with  a  mysterious  sound  —  as  though  the  tearing 
pace  of  the  launched  earth  had  suddenly  become 
audible. 

"Black  shapes  crouched,  lay,  sat  between  the 
trees,  leaning  against  the  trunks,  clinging  to  the 
earth,  half  coming  out,  half  effaced  within  the  dim 
light,  in  all  the  attitudes  of  pain,  abandonment,  and 
despair.  Another  mine  on  the  cliff  went  off,  followed 
by  a  slight  shudder  of  the  soil  under  my  feet.  The 
work  was  going  on.  The  work  !  And  this  was  the 
place  where  some  of  the  helpers  had  withdrawn  to 
die. 

"They  were  dying  slowly  —  it  was  very  clear. 
They  were  not  enemies,  they  were  not  criminals, 
they  were  nothing  earthly  now, — nothing  but  black 
shadows  of  disease  and  starvation,  lying  confusedly 
in  the  greenish  gloom.  Brought  from  all  the  re- 
cesses of  the  coast  in  all  the  legality  of  time  con- 
tracts, lost  in  uncongenial  surroundings,  fed  on 
unfamiliar  food,  they  sickened,  became  inefficient, 
and  were  then  allowed  to  crawl  away  and  rest. 
These  moribund  shapes  were  free  as  air — and  nearly 
as  thin.  I  began  to  distinguish  the  gleam  of  eyes 
under  the  trees.  Then,  glancing  down,  I  saw  a 
face  near  my  hand.  The  black  bones  reclined  at 
full  length  with  one  shoulder  against  the  tree,  and 
slowly  the  eyelids  rose  and  the  sunken  eyes  looked 
up  at  me,  enormous  and  vacant,  a  kind  of  blind, 
white  flicker  in  the  depths  of  the  orbs,  which  died 


76  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

out  slowly.  The  man  seemed  young — almost  a  boy 
— but  you  know  with  them  it's  hard  to  tell.  I 
found  nothing  else  to  do  but  to  offer  him  one  of 
my  good  Swede's  ship's  biscuits  I  had  in  my  pocket. 
The  fingers  closed  slowly  on  it  and  held — there  was 
no  other  movement  and  no  other  glance.  He  had 
tied  a  bit  of  white  worsted  round  his  neck — Why? 
"Where  did  he  get  it?  Was  it  a  badge — an  orna- 
ment— a  charm — a  propitiatory  act?  Was  there 
any  idea  at  all  connected  with  it  ?  It  looked  start- 
ling round  his  black  neck,  this  bit  of  white  thread 
from  beyond  the  seas. 

"Near  the  same  tree  two  more  bundles  of  acute 
angles  sat  with  their  legs  drawn  up.  One,  with 
his  chin  propped  on  his  knees,  stared  at  nothing,  in 
an  intolerable  and  appalling  manner:  his  brother 
phantom  rested  its  forehead,  as  if  overcome  with  a 
great  weariness ;  and  all  about  others  were  scattered 
in  every  pose  of  contorted  collapse,  as  in  some  picture 
of  a  massacre  or  a  pestilence.  While  I  stood  horror- 
struck,  one  of  these  creatures  rose  to  his  hands  and 
knees,  and  went  off  on  all-fours  towards  the  river  to 
drink.  He  lapped  out  of  his  hand,  then  sat  up  in 
the  sunlight,  crossing  his  shins  in  front  of  him, 
and  after  a  time  let  his  woolly  head  fall  on  his 
breastbone. 

"  I  didn't  want  any  more  loitering  in  the  shade, 
and  I  made  haste  towards  the  station.  When  near 
the  buildings  I  met  a  white  man,  in  such  an  unex- 
pected elegance  of  get-up  that  in  the  first  moment  I 
took  him  for  a  sort  of  vision.  I  saw  a  high  starched 
collar,  white  cuffs,  a  light  alpaca  jacket,  snowy 
trousers,  a  clear  necktie,  and  varnished  boots.     No 


HEAKT   OF  DARKNESS.  77 

hat.  Hair  parted,  brushed,  oiled,  under  a  green- 
lined  parasol  held  in  a  big  white  hand.  He  was 
amazing,  and  had  a  penholder  behind  his  ear. 

"I  shook  hands  with  this  miracle,  and  I  learned 
he  was  the  Company's  chief  accountant,  and  that 
all  the  book-keeping  was  done  at  this  station.  He 
had  come  out  for  a  moment,  he  said,  '  to  get  a  breath 
of  fresh  air.'  The  expression  sounded  wonderfully 
odd,  with  its  suggestion  of  sedentary  desk-life.  I 
wouldn't  have  mentioned  the  fellow  to  you  at  all, 
only  it  was  from  his  lips  that  I  first  heard  the  name 
of  the  man  who  is  so  indissolubly  connected  with  the 
memories  of  that  time.  Moreover,  I  respected  the 
fellow.  Yes ;  I  respected  his  collars,  his  vast  cuffs, 
his  brushed  hair.  His  appearance  was  certainly 
that  of  a  hairdresser's  dummy;  but  in  the  great 
demoralisation  of  the  land  he  kept  up  his  appear- 
ance. That's  backbone.  His  starched  collars  and 
got-up  shirt-fronts  were  achievements  of  character. 
He  had  been  out  nearly  three  years ;  and,  later  on,  I 
could  not  help  asking  him  how  he  managed  to  sport 
such  linen.  He  had  just  the  faintest  blush,  and 
said  modestly,  '  I've  been  teaching  one  of  the  native 
women  about  the  station.  It  was  difficult.  She 
had  a  distaste  for  the  work.'  Thus  this  man  had 
verily  accomplished  something.  And  he  was  devoted 
to  his  books,  which  were  in  apple-pie  order. 

"Everything  else  in  the  station  was  in  a  muddle, 
— heads,  things,  buildings.  Strings  of  dusty  niggers 
with  splay  feet  arrived  and  departed ;  a  stream  of 
manufactured  goods,  rubbishy  cottons,  beads,  and 
brass-wire  set  into  the  depths  of  darkness,  and  in 
return  came  a  precious  trickle  of  ivory. 


78  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

"I  had  to  wait  in  the  station  for  ten  days — an 
eternity.  I  lived  in  a  hut  in  the  yard,  but  to  be 
out  of  the  chaos  I  would  sometimes  get  into  the 
accountant's  office.  It  was  built  of  horizontal 
planks,  and  so  badly  put  together  that,  as  he  bent 
over  his  high  desk,  he  was  barred  from  neck  to  heels 
with  narrow  strips  of  sunlight.  There  was  no  need 
to  open  the  big  shutter  to  see.  It  was  hot  there  too; 
big  flies  buzzed  fiendishly,  and  did  not  sting,  but 
stabbed.  I  sat  generally  on  the  floor,  while,  of 
faultless  appearance  (and  even  slightly  scented), 
perching  on  a  high  stool,  he  wrote,  he  wrote.  Some- 
times he  stood  up  for  exercise.  When  a  truckle-bed 
with  a  sick  man  (some  invalided  agent  from  up- 
country)  was  put  in  there,  he  exhibited  a  gentle 
annoyance.  'The  groans  of  this  sick  person,'  he 
said,  'distract  my  attention.  And  without  that  it 
is  extremely  difficult  to  guard  against  clerical  errors 
in  this  climate.' 

"One  day  he  remarked,  without  lifting  his  head, 
'In  the  interior  you  will  no  doubt  meet  Mr  Kurtz.' 
On  my  asking  who  Mr  Kurtz  was,  he  said  he  was  a 
first-class  agent;  and  seeing  my  disappointment  at 
this  information,  he  added  slowly,  laying  down  his 
pen,  '  He  is  a  very  remarkable  person.'  Further 
questions  elicited  from  him  that  Mr  Kurtz  was  at 
present  in  charge  of  a  trading  post,  a  very  important 
one,  in  the  true  ivory-country,  at  '  the  very  bottom 
of  there.  Sends  in  as  much  ivory  as  all  the  others 
put  together  .  .  .  '  He  began  to  write  again.  The 
sick  man  was  too  ill  to  groan.  The  flies  buzzed  in  a 
great  peace. 

"  Suddenly  there  was  a  growing  murmur  of  voices 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  79 

and  a  great  tramping  of  feet.  A  caravan  had  come 
in.  A  violent  babble  of  uncouth  sounds  burst  out  on 
the  other  side  of  the  planks.  All  the  carriers  were 
speaking  together,  and  in  the  midst  of  the  uproar 
the  lamentable  voice  of  the  chief  agent  was  heard 
*  giving  it  up '  tearfully  for  the  twentieth  time  that 
day.  .  .  .  He  rose  slowly.  '  What  a  frightful  row,' 
he  said.  He  crossed  the  room  gently  to  look  at  the 
sick  man,  and  returning,  said  to  me,  'He  does  not 
hear.'  'What!  Dead?'  I  asked,  startled.  'No,  not 
yet,'  he  answered,  with  great  composure.  Then, 
alluding  with  a  toss  of  the  head  to  the  tumult  in  the 
station-yard,  'When  one  has  got  to  make  correct 
entries,  one  comes  to  hate  those  savages  —  hate 
them  to  the  death.'  He  remained  thoughtful  for  a 
moment.  'When  you  see  Mr  Kurtz,'  he  went  on, 
'  tell  him  from  me  that  everything  here ' — he  glanced 
at  the  desk — 'is  very  satisfactory.  I  don't  like  to 
write  to  him — with  those  messengers  of  ours  you 
never  know  who  may  get  hold  of  your  letter — at  that 
Central  Station.'  He  stared  at  me  for  a  moment 
with  his  mild,  bulging  eyes.  'Oh,  he  will  go  far, 
very  far,'  he  began  again.  'He  will  be  a  somebody 
in  the  Administration  before  long.  They,  above — 
the  Council  in  Europe,  you  know — mean  him  to  be.' 
"  He  turned  to  his  work.  The  noise  outside  had 
ceased,  and  presently  in  going  out  I  stopped  at  the 
door.  In  the  steady  buzz  of  flies  the  homeward- 
bound  agent  was  lying  flushed  and  insensible ;  the 
other,  bent  over  his  books,  was  making  correct 
entries  of  perfectly  correct  transactions;  and  fifty 
feet  below  the  doorstep  I  could  see  the  still  tree- 
tops  of  the  grove  of  death. 


80  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

"Next  day  I  left  that  station  at  last,  with  a 
caravan  of  sixty  men,  for  a  two  -  hundred  -  mile 
tramp. 

"No  use  telling  you  much  about  that.  Paths, 
paths,  everywhere;  a  stamped-in  network  of  paths 
spreading  over  the  empty  land,  through  long  grass, 
through  burnt  grass,  through  thickets,  down  and 
up  chilly  ravines,  up  and  down  stony  hills  ablaze 
with  heat;  and  a  solitude,  a  solitude,  nobody,  not 
a  hut.  The  population  had  cleared  out  a  long 
time  ago.  Well,  if  a  lot  of  mysterious  niggers 
armed  with  all  kinds  of  fearful  weapons  suddenly 
took  to  travelling  on  the  road  between  Deal  and 
Gravesend,  catching  the  yokels  right  and  left  to 
carry  heavy  loads  for  them,  I  fancy  every  farm 
and  cottage  thereabouts  would  get  empty  very  soon. 
Only  here  the  dwellings  were  gone  too.  Still  I 
passed  through  several  abandoned  villages.  There's 
something  pathetically  childish  in  the  ruins  of  grass 
walls.  Day  after  day,  with  the  stamp  and  shuffle 
of  sixty  pair  of  bare  feet  behind  me,  each  pair 
under  a  60-lb.  load.  Camp,  cook,  sleep,  strike  camp, 
march.  Now  and  then  a  carrier  dead  in  harness, 
at  rest  in  the  long  grass  near  the  path,  with  an 
empty  water-gourd  and  his  long  staff  lying  by  his 
side.  A  great  silence  around  and  above.  Perhaps 
on  some  quiet  night  the  tremor  of  far-off  drums, 
sinking,  swelling,  a  tremor  vast,  faint ;  a  sound 
weird,  appealing,  suggestive,  and  wild — and  perhaps 
with  as  profound  a  meaning  as  the  sound  of  bells 
in  a  Christian  country.  Once  a  white  man  in  an 
unbuttoned  uniform,  camping  on  the  path  with  an 
armed   escort    of    lank   Zanzibaris,    very   hospitable 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  81 

and  festive — not  to  say  drunk.  Was  looking  after 
the  upkeep  of  the  road,  he  declared.  Can't  say  I 
saw  any  road  or  any  upkeep,  unless  the  body  of  a 
middle-aged  negro,  with  a  bullet-hole  in  the  fore- 
head, upon  which  I  absolutely  stumbled  three  miles 
farther  on,  may  be  considered  as  a  permanent  im- 
provement. I  had  a  white  companion  too,  not  a 
bad  chap,  but  rather  too  fleshy  and  with  the  ex- 
asperating habit  of  fainting  on  the  hot  hillsides, 
miles  away  from  the  least  bit  of  shade  and  water. 
Annoying,  you  know,  to  hold  your  own  coat  like 
a  parasol  over  a  man's  head  while  he  is  coming-to. 
I  couldn't  help  asking  him  once  what  he  meant 
by  coming  there  at  all.  '  To  make  money,  of  course. 
What  do  you  think  ? '  he  said,  scornfully.  Then  he 
got  fever,  and  had  to  be  carried  in  a  hammock 
slung  under  a  pole.  As  he  weighed  sixteen  stone 
I  had  no  end  of  rows  with  the  carriers.  They 
jibbed,  ran  away,  sneaked  off  with  their  loads  in 
the  night  —  quite  a  mutiny.  So,  one  evening,  I 
made  a  speech  in  English  with  gestures,  not  one 
of  which  was  lost  to  the  sixty  pairs  of  eyes  before 
me,  and  the  next  morning  I  started  the  hammock 
off  in  front  all  right.  An  hour  afterwards  I  came 
upon  the  whole  concern  wrecked  in  a  bush — man, 
hammock,  groans,  blankets,  horrors.  The  heavy 
pole  had  skinned  his  poor  nose.  He  was  very 
anxious  for  me  to  kill  somebody,  but  there  wasn't 
the  shadow  of  a  carrier  near.  I  remembered  the 
old  doctor, — '  It  would  be  interesting  for  science  to 
watch  the  mental  changes  of  individuals,  on  the 
spot.'  I  felt  I  was  becoming  scientifically  inter- 
esting.     However,  all  that  is  to  no  purpose.      On 

F 


82  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

the  fifteenth  day  I  came  in  sight  of  the  big  river 
again,  and  hobbled  into  the  Central  Station.  It 
was  on  a  back  water  surrounded  by  scrub  and 
forest,  with  a  pretty  border  of  smelly  mud  on  one 
side,  and  on  the  three  others  enclosed  by  a  crazy 
fence  of  rushes.  A  neglected  gap  was  all  the  gate 
it  had,  and  the  first  glance  at  the  place  was  enough 
to  let  you  see  the  flabby  devil  was  running  that 
show.  White  men  with  long  staves  in  their  hands 
appeared  languidly  from  amongst  the  buildings, 
strolling  up  to  take  a  look  at  me,  and  then  re- 
tired out  of  sight  somewhere.  One  of  them,  a  stout, 
excitable  chap  with  black  moustaches,  informed  me 
with  great  volubility  and  many  digressions,  as  soon 
as  I  told  him  who  I  was,  that  my  steamer  was 
at  the  bottom  of  the  river.  I  was  thunderstruck. 
What,  how,  why?  Oh,  it  was  'all  right.'  The 
*  manager  himself  was  there.  All  quite  correct. 
'  Everybody  had  behaved  splendidly  !  splendidly  ! ' 
— 'you  must,'  he  said  in  agitation,  'go  and  see 
the  general  manager  at  once.     He  is  waiting ! ' 

"  I  did  not  see  the  real  significance  of  that  wreck 
at  once.  I  fancy  I  see  it  now,  but  I  am  not  sure — 
not  at  all.  Certainly  the  affair  was  too  stupid — 
when  I  think  of  it — to  be  altogether  natural.  Still. 
.  .  .  But  at  the  moment  it  presented  itself  simply 
as  a  confounded  nuisance.  The  steamer  was  sunk. 
They  had  started  two  days  before  in  a  sudden  hurry 
up  the  river  with  the  manager  on  board,  in  charge 
of  some  volunteer  skipper,  and  before  they  had  been 
out  three  hours  they  tore  the  bottom  out  of  her  on 
stones,  and  she  sank  near  the  south  bank.  I  asked 
myself  what  I  was  to  do  there,  now  my  boat  was 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  83 

lost.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  I  had  plenty  to  do  in 
fishing  my  command  out  of  the  river.  I  had  to 
set  about  it  the  very  next  day.  That,  and  the 
repairs  when  I  brought  the  pieces  to  the  station, 
took  some  months. 

"My  first  interview  with  the  manager  was  curi- 
ous. He  did  not  ask  me  to  sit  down  after  my 
twenty-mile  walk  that  morning.  He  was  common- 
place in  complexion,  in  feature,  in  manners,  and  in 
voice.  He  was  of  middle  size  and  of  ordinary  build. 
His  eyes,  of  the  usual  blue,  were  perhaps  remark- 
ably cold,  and  he  certainly  could  make  his  glance 
fall  on  one  as  trenchant  and  heavy  as  an  axe.  But 
even  at  these  times  the  rest  of  his  person  seemed  to 
disclaim  the  intention.  Otherwise  there  was  only 
an  indefinable,  faint  expression  of  his  lips,  something 
stealthy — a  smile — not  a  smile — I  remember  it,  but 
I  can't  explain.  It  was  unconscious,  this  smile  was, 
though  just  after  he  had  said  something  it  got  in- 
tensified for  an  instant.  It  came  at  the  end  of  his 
speeches  like  a  seal  applied  on  the  words  to  make 
the  meaning  of  the  commonest  phrase  appear  ab- 
solutely inscrutable.  He  was  a  common  trader, 
from  his  youth  up  employed  in  these  parts  — 
nothing  more.  He  was  obeyed,  yet  he  inspired 
neither  love  nor  fear,  nor  even  respect.  He  in- 
spired uneasiness.  That  was  it !  Uneasiness.  Not 
a  definite  mistrust — just  uneasiness — nothing  more. 
You  have  no  idea  how  effective  such  a  .  .  .  a  .  .  . 
faculty  can  be.  He  had  no  genius  for  organising, 
for  initiative,  or  for  order  even.  That  was  evident 
in  such  things  as  the  deplorable  state  of  the 
station.     He  had  no  learning,  and  no  intelligence. 


84  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

His  position  had  come  to  him  —  why?  Perhaps 
because  he  was  never  ill  .  .  .  He  had  served 
three  terms  of  three  years  out  there  .  .  .  Because 
triumphant  health  in  the  general  rout  of  constitu- 
tions is  a  kind  of  power  in  itself.  When  he  went 
home  on  leave  he  rioted  on  a  large  scale  —  pom- 
pously. Jack  ashore  —  with  a  difference  —  in  ex- 
ternals only.  This  one  could  gather  from  his 
casual  talk.  He  originated  nothing,  he  could  keep 
the  routine  going  —  that's  all.  But  he  was  great. 
He  was  great  by  this  little  thing  that  it  was 
impossible  to  tell  what  could  control  such  a  man. 
He  never  gave  that  secret  away.  Perhaps  there 
was  nothing  within  him.  Such  a  suspicion  made 
one  pause  —  for  out  there  there  were  no  external 
checks.  Once  when  various  tropical  diseases  had 
laid  low  almost  every  '  agent '  in  the  station,  he 
was  heard  to  say,  'Men  who  come  out  here  should 
have  no  entrails.'  He  sealed  the  utterance  with 
that  smile  of  his,  as  though  it  had  been  a  door 
opening  into  a  darkness  he  had  in  his  keeping. 
You  fancied  you  had  seen  things  —  but  the  seal 
was  on.  When  annoyed  at  meal-times  by  the  con- 
stant quarrels  of  the  white  men  about  precedence, 
he  ordered  an  immense  round  table  to  be  made, 
for  which  a  special  house  had  to  be  built.  This 
was  the  station's  mess-room.  Where  he  sat  was 
the  first  place  —  the  rest  were  nowhere.  One  felt 
this  to  be  his  unalterable  conviction.  He  was 
neither  civil  nor  uncivil.  He  was  quiet.  He 
allowed  his  '  boy '  —  an  overfed  young  negro  from 
the  coast — to  treat  the  white  men,  under  his  very 
eyes,  with  provoking  insolence. 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  85 

"He  began  to  speak  as  soon  as  he  saw  me.  I 
had  been  very  long  on  the  road.  He  could  not 
wait.  Had  to  start  without  me.  The  up-river 
stations  had  to  be  relieved.  There  had  been  so 
many  delays  already  that  he  did  not  know  who 
was  dead  and  who  was  alive,  and  how  they  got 
on  —  and  so  on,  and  so  on.  He  paid  no  attention 
to  my  explanations,  and,  playing  with  a  stick  of 
sealing-wax,  repeated  several  times  that  the  situa- 
tion was  '  very  grave,  very  grave.'  There  were 
rumours  that  a  very  important  station  was  in 
jeopardy,  and  its  chief,  Mr  Kurtz,  was  ill.  Hoped 
it  was  not  true.  Mr  Kurtz  was  ...  I  felt  weary 
and  irritable.  Hang  Kurtz,  I  thought.  I  inter- 
rupted him  by  saying  I  had  heard  of  Mr  Kurtz 
on  the  coast.  *  Ah !  So  they  talk  of  him  down 
there,'  he  murmured  to  himself.  Then  he  began 
again,  assuring  me  Mr  Kurtz  was  the  best  agent 
he.  had,  an  exceptional  man,  of  the  greatest  im- 
portance to  the  Company ;  therefore  I  could  under- 
stand his  anxiety.  He  was,  he  said,  '  very,  very 
uneasy.'  Certainly  he  fidgeted  on  his  chair  a  good 
deal,  exclaimed,  '  Ah,  Mr  Kurtz ! '  broke  the  stick 
of  sealing-wax  and  seemed  dumfounded  by  the 
accident.  Next  thing  he  wanted  to  know  'how 
long  it  would  take  to'  ...  I  interrupted  him 
again.  Being  hungry,  you  know,  and  kept  on 
my  feet  too,  I  was  getting  savage.  'How  could 
I  tell,'  I  said.  'I  hadn't  even  seen  the  wreck  yet 
—  some  months,  no  doubt.'  All  this  talk  seemed 
to  me  so  futile.  '  Some  months,'  he  said.  '  Well, 
let  us  say  three  months  before  we  can  make  a 
start.      Yes.      That    ought    to    do    the    affair.'      I 


86  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

flung  out  of  his  hut  (he  lived  all  alone  in  a  clay- 
hut  with  a  sort  of  verandah)  muttering  to  myself 
my  opinion  of  him.  He  was  a  chattering  idiot. 
Afterwards  I  took  it  back  when  it  was  borne  in 
upon  me  startlingly  with  what  extreme  nicety  he 
had  estimated  the  time  requisite  for  the  'affair.' 

"I  went  to  work  the  next  day,  turning,  so  to 
speak,  my  back  on  that  station.  In  that  way 
only  it  seemed  to  me  I  could  keep  my  hold  on 
the  redeeming  facts  of  life.  Still,  one  must  look 
about  sometimes ;  and  then  I  saw  this  station, 
these  men  strolling  aimlessly  about  in  the  sun- 
shine of  the  yard.  I  asked  myself  sometimes 
what  it  all  meant.  They  wandered  here  and 
there  with  their  absurd  long  staves  in  their  hands, 
like  a  lot  of  faithless  pilgrims  bewitched  inside  a 
rotten  fence.  The  word  'ivory'  rang  in  the  air, 
was  whispered,  was  sighed.  You  would  think 
they  were  praying  to  it.  A  taint  of  imbecile 
rapacity  blew  through  it  all,  like  a  whiff  from 
some  corpse.  By  Jove !  I've  never  seen  anything 
so  unreal  in  my  life.  And  outside,  the  silent 
wilderness  surrounding  this  cleared  speck  on  the 
earth  struck  me  as  something  great  and  invin- 
cible, like  evil  or  truth,  waiting  patiently  for  the 
passing  away  of  this  fantastic  invasion. 

"  Oh,  these  months  !  Well,  never  mind.  Various 
things  happened.  One  evening  a  grass  shed  full 
of  calico,  cotton  prints,  beads,  and  I  don't  know 
what  else,  burst  into  a  blaze  so  suddenly  that 
you  would  have  thought  the  earth  had  opened  to 
let  an  avenging  fire  consume  all  that  trash.  I 
was   smoking   my  pipe   quietly   by   my  dismantled 


HEABT  OF  DAKKNESS.  87 

steamer,  and  saw  them  all  cutting  capers  in  the 
light,  with  their  arms  lifted  high,  when  the  stout 
man  with  moustaches  came  tearing  down  to  the 
river,  a  tin  pail  in  his  hand,  assured  me  that 
everybody  was  'behaving  splendidly,  splendidly,' 
dipped  about  a  quart  of  water  and  tore  back 
again.  I  noticed  there  was  a  hole  in  the  bottom 
of  his  pail. 

"  I  strolled  up.  There  was  no  hurry.  You  see  the 
thing  had  gone  off  like  a  box  of  matches.  It  had 
been  hopeless  from  the  very  first.  The  flame  had 
leaped  high,  driven  everybody  back,  lighted  up 
everything — and  collapsed.  The  shed  was  already  a 
heap  of  embers  glowing  fiercely.  A  nigger  was  being 
beaten  near  by.  They  said  he  had  caused  the  fire  in 
some  way ;  be  that  as  it  may,  he  was  screeching  most 
horribly.  I  saw  him,  later  on,  for  several  days, 
sitting  in  a  bit  of  shade  looking  very  sick  and  trying 
to  recover  himself :  afterwards  he  arose  and  went  out 
— and  the  wilderness  without  a  sound  took  him  into 
its  bosom  again.  As  I  approached  the  glow  from  the 
dark  I  found  myself  at  the  back  of  two  men,  talking. 
I  heard  the  name  of  Kurtz  pronounced,  then  the 
words,  '  take  advantage  of  this  unfortunate  accident.' 
One  of  the  men  was  the  manager.  I  wished  him  a 
good  evening.  '  Did  you  ever  see  anything  like  it — 
eh?  it  is  incredible,'  he  said,  and  walked  off.  The 
other  man  remained.  He  was  a  first-class  agent, 
young,  gentlemanly,  a  bit  reserved,  with  a  forked 
little  beard  and  a  hooked  nose.  He  was  stand-offish 
with  the  other  agents,  and  they  on  their  side  said  he 
was  the  manager's  spy  upon  them.  As  to  me,  I  had 
hardly  ever  spoken  to  him  before.     We  got  into  talk, 


88  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

and  by-and-by  we  strolled  away  from  the  hissing 
ruins.  Then  he  asked  me  to  his  room,  which  was  in 
the  main  building  of  the  station.  He  struck  a 
match,  and  I  perceived  that  this  young  aristocrat 
had  not  only  a  silver-mounted  dressing-case  but  also 
a  whole  candle  all  to  himself.  Just  at  that  time  the 
manager  was  the  only  man  supposed  to  have  any 
right  to  candles.  Native  mats  covered  the  clay 
walls ;  a  collection  of  spears,  assegais,  shields,  knives 
was  hung  up  in  trophies.  The  business  intrusted  to 
this  fellow  was  the  making  of  bricks — so  I  had  been 
informed;  but  there  wasn't  a  fragment  of  a  brick 
anywhere  in  the  station,  and  he  had  been  there  more 
than  a  year — waiting.  It  seems  he  could  not  make 
bricks  without  something,  I  don't  know  what — straw 
maybe.  Anyways,  it  could  not  be  found  there,  and 
as  it  was  not  likely  to  be  sent  from  Europe,  it  did  not 
appear  clear  to  me  what  he  was  waiting  for.  An  act 
of  special  creation  perhaps.  However,  they  were  all 
waiting — all  the  sixteen  or  twenty  pilgrims  of  them 
— for  something ;  and  upon  my  word  it  did  not  seem 
an  uncongenial  occupation,  from  the  way  they  took 
it,  though  the  only  thing  that  ever  came  to  them  was 
disease — as  far  as  I  could  see.  They  beguiled  the 
time  by  backbiting  and  intriguing  against  each  other 
in  a  foolish  kind  of  way.  There  was  an  air  of 
plotting  about  that  station,  but  nothing  came  of  it, 
of  course.  It  was  as  unreal  as  everything  else — as 
the  philanthropic  pretence  of  the  whole  concern,  as 
their  talk,  as  their  government,  as  their  show  of 
work.  The  only  real  feeling  was  a  desire  to  get 
appointed  to  a  trading-post  where  ivory  was  to  be 
had,  so  that  they  could  earn  percentages.     They  in- 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  89 

trigued  and  slandered  and  hated  each  other  only  on 
that  account, — but  as  to  effectually  lifting  a  little 
finger — oh,  no.  By  heavens !  there  is  something  after 
all  in  the  world  allowing  one  man  to  steal  a  horse 
while  another  must  not  look  at  a  halter.  Steal  a 
horse  straight  out.  Very  well.  He  has  done  it. 
Perhaps  he  can  ride.  But  there  is  a  way  of  looking 
at  a  halter  that  would  provoke  the  most  charitable  of 
saints  into  a  kick. 

"  I  had  no  idea  why  he  wanted  to  be  sociable,  but 
as  we  chatted  in  there  it  suddenly  occurred  to  me 
the  fellow  was  trying  to  get  at  something — in  fact, 
pumping  me.  He  alluded  constantly  to  Europe,  to 
the  people  I  was  supposed  to  know  there — putting 
leading  questions  as  to  my  acquaintances  in  the 
sepulchral  city,  and  so  on.  His  little  eyes  glittered 
like  mica  discs — with  curiosity, — though  he  tried  to 
keep  up  a  bit  of  superciliousness.  At  first  I  was 
astonished,  but  very  soon  I  became  awfully  curious 
to  see  what  he  would  find  out  from  me.  I  couldn't 
possibly  imagine  what  I  had  in  me  to  make  it  worth 
his  while.  It  was  very  pretty  to  see  how  he  baffled 
himself,  for  in  truth  my  body  was  full  of  chills,  and 
my  head  had  nothing  in  it  but  that  wretched  steam- 
boat business.  It  was  evident  he  took  me  for  a  per- 
fectly shameless  prevaricator.  At  last  he  got  angry, 
and,  to  conceal  a  movement  of  furious  annoyance,  he 
yawned.  I  rose.  Then  I  noticed  a  small  sketch  in 
oils,  on  a  panel,  representing  a  woman,  draped  and 
blindfolded,  carrying  a  lighted  torch.  The  back- 
ground was  sombre — almost  black.  The  movement 
of  the  woman  was  stately,  and  the  effect  of  the  torch- 
light on  the  face  was  sinister. 


90  HEART   OP  DARKNESS. 

"  It  arrested  me,  and  he  stood  by  civilly,  holding  a 
half-pint  champagne  bottle  (medical  comforts)  with 
the  candle  stuck  in  it.  To  my  question  he  said  Mr 
Kurtz  had  painted  this — in  this  very  station  more 
than  a  year  ago — while  waiting  for  means  to  go  to 
his  trading-post.  'Tell  me,  pray,'  said  I,  'who  is 
this  Mr  Kurtz?' 

"  '  The  chief  of  the  Inner  Station,'  he  answered  in 
a  short  tone,  looking  away.  '  Much  obliged,'  I  said, 
laughing.  'And  you  are  the  brickmaker  of  the 
Central  Station.  Every  one  knows  that.'  He  was 
silent  for  a  while.  'He  is  a  prodigy,'  he  said  at  last. 
'  He  is  an  emissary  of  pity,  and  science,  and  progress, 
and  devil  knows  what  else.  We  want,'  he  began  to 
declaim  suddenly,  '  for  the  guidance  of  the  cause  in- 
trusted to  us  by  Europe,  so  to  speak,  higher  intelli- 
gence, wide  sympathies,  a  singleness  of  purpose.' 
'  Who  says  that  ? '  I  asked.  '  Lots  of  them,'  he  replied. 
i  Some  even  write  that ;  and  so  he  comes  here,  a 
special  being,  as  you  ought  to  know.'  '  Why  ought 
I  to  know  ? '  I  interrupted,  really  surprised.  He  paid 
no  attention.  '  Yes.  To-day  he  is  chief  of  the  best 
station,  next  year  he  will  be  assistant-manager,  two 
years  more  and  .  .  .  but  I  daresay  you  know  what 
he  will  be  in  two  years'  time.  You  are  of  the  new 
gang — the  gang  of  virtue.  The  same  people  who 
sent  him  specially  also  recommended  you.  Oh,  don't 
say  no.  I've  my  own  eyes  to  trust.'  Light  dawned 
upon  me.  My  dear  aunt's  influential  acquaintances 
were  producing  an  unexpected  effect  upon  that  young 
man.  I  nearly  burst  into  a  laugh.  'Do  you  read 
the  Company's  confidential  correspondence  ? '  I  asked. 
He  hadn't  a  word  to  say.    It  was  great  fun.     '  When 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  91 

Mr  Kurtz,'  I  continued  severely,  '  is  General  Manager, 
you  won't  have  the  opportunity.' 

"He  blew  the  candle  out  suddenly,  and  we  went 
outside.  The  moon  had  risen.  Black  figures  strolled 
about  listlessly,  pouring  water  on  the  glow,  whence 
proceeded  a  sound  of  hissing ;  steam  ascended  in  the 
moonlight,  the  beaten  nigger  groaned  somewhere. 
1  What  a  row  the  brute  makes ! '  said  the  indefati- 
gable man  with  the  moustaches,  appearing  near  us. 
'Serve  him  right.  Transgression — punishment — 
bang  !  Pitiless,  pitiless.  That's  the  only  way.  This 
will  prevent  all  conflagrations  for  the  future.  I  was 
just  telling  the  manager  .  .  .  '  He  noticed  my  com- 
panion, and  became  crestfallen  all  at  once.  '  Not  in 
bed  yet,'  he  said,  with  a  kind  of  servile  heartiness ; 
'it's  so  natural.  Ha!  Danger — agitation.'  He 
vanished.  I  went  on  to  the  river-side,  and  the  other 
followed  me.  I  heard  a  scathing  murmur  at  my  ear, 
'  Heap  of  muffs — go  to.'  The  pilgrims  could  be  seen 
in  knots  gesticulating,  discussing.  Several  had  still 
their  staves  in  their  hands.  I  verily  believe  they 
took  these  sticks  to  bed  with  them.  Beyond  the 
fence  the  forest  stood  up  spectrally  in  the  moonlight, 
and  through  the  dim  stir,  through  the  faint  sounds 
of  that  lamentable  courtyard,  the  silence  of  the  land 
went  home  to  one's  very  heart, — its  mystery,  its 
greatness,  the  amazing  reality  of  its  concealed  life. 
The  hurt  nigger  moaned  feebly  somewhere  near  by, 
and  then  fetched  a  deep  sigh  that  made  me  mend 
my  pace  away  from  there.  I  felt  a  hand  intro- 
ducing itself  under  my  arm.  'My  dear  sir,'  said 
the  fellow,  'I  don't  want  to  be  misunderstood,  and 
especially  by  you,  who  will  see  Mr  Kurtz  long  before 


92  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

I  can  have  that  pleasure.      I  wouldn't  like  him  to 
get  a  false  idea  of  my  disposition.  .  .  .' 

"I  let  him  run  on,  this  papier-mache  Mephisto- 
pheles,  and  it  seemed  to  me  that  if  I  tried  I  could 
poke  my  forefinger  through  him,  and  would  find  noth- 
ing inside  but  a  little  loose  dirt,  maybe.  He,  don't 
you  see,  had  been  planning  to  be  assistant -manager 
by-and-by  under  the  present  man,  and  I  could  see  that 
the  coming  of  that  Kurtz  had  upset  them  both  not  a 
little.  He  talked  precipitately,  and  I  did  not  try  to 
stop  him.  I  had  my  shoulders  against  the  wreck 
of  my  steamer,  hauled  up  on  the  slope  like  a  carcass 
of  some  big  river  animal.  The  smell  of  mud,  of 
primeval  mud,  by  Jove !  was  in  my  nostrils,  the  high 
stillness  of  primeval  forest  was  before  my  eyes  ;  there 
were  shiny  patches  on  the  black  creek.  The  moon 
had  spread  over  everything  a  thin  layer  of  silver — 
over  the  rank  grass,  over  the  mud,  upon  the  wall  of 
matted  vegetation  standing  higher  than  the  wall  of 
a  temple,  over  the  great  river  I  could  see  through  a 
sombre  gap  glittering,  glittering,  as  it  flowed  broadly 
by  without  a  murmur.  All  this  was  great,  expectant, 
mute,  while  the  man  jabbered  about  himself.  I 
wondered  whether  the  stillness  on  the  face  of  the 
immensity  looking  at  us  two  were  meant  as  an 
appeal  or  as  a  menace.  What  were  we  who  had 
strayed  in  here  ?  Could  we  handle  that  dumb  thing, 
or  would  it  handle  us?  I  felt  how  big,  how  con- 
foundedly big,  was  that  thing  that  couldn't  talk,  and 
perhaps  was  deaf  as  well.  What  was  in  there?  I 
could  see  a  little  ivory  coming  out  from  there,  and  I 
had  heard  Mr  Kurtz  was  in  there.  I  had  heard 
enough  about  it  too — God  knows !     Yet  somehow  it 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  93 

didn't  bring  any  image  with  it — no  more  than  if  I 
had  been  told  an  angel  or  a  fiend  was  in  there.  I 
believed  it  in  the  same  way  one  of  you  might  believe 
there  are  inhabitants  in  the  planet  Mars.  I  knew 
once  a  Scotch  sailmaker  who  was  certain,  dead  sure, 
there  were  people  in  Mars.  If  you  asked  him  for 
some  idea  how  they  looked  and  behaved,  he  would 
get  shy  and  mutter  something  about  'walking  on 
all-fours.'  If  you  as  much  as  smiled,  he  would — 
though  a  man  of  sixty — offer  to  fight  you.  I  would 
not  have  gone  so  far  as  to  fight  for  Kurtz,  but  I 
went  for  him  near  enough  to  a  lie.  You  know  I 
hate,  detest,  and  can't  bear  a  lie,  not  because  I  am 
straighter  than  the  rest  of  us,  but  simply  because  it 
appals  me.  There  is  a  taint  of  death,  a  flavour  of 
mortality  in  lies, — which  is  exactly  what  I  hate  and 
detest  in  the  world — what  I  want  to  forget.  It 
makes  me  miserable  and  sick,  like  biting  something 
rotten  would  do.  Temperament,  I  suppose.  Well, 
I  went  near  enough  to  it  by  letting  the  young  fool 
there  believe  anything  he  liked  to  imagine  as  to  my 
influence  in  Europe.  I  became  in  an  instant  as 
much  of  a  pretence  as  the  rest  of  the  bewitched 
pilgrims.  This  simply  because  I  had  a  notion  it 
somehow  would  be  of  help  to  that  Kurtz  whom  at 
the  time  I  did  not  see — you  understand.  He  was 
just  a  word  for  me.  I  did  not  see  the  man  in  the 
name  any  more  than  you  do.  Do  you  see  him  ?  Do 
you  see  the  story  ?  Do  you  see  anything  ?  It  seems 
to  me  I  am  trying  to  tell  you  a  dream — making  a 
vain  attempt,  because  no  relation  of  a  dream  can 
convey  the  dream-sensation,  that  commingling  of 
absurdity,  surprise,   and  bewilderment  in  a  tremor 


94  HEABT  OF  DARKNESS. 

of  struggling  revolt,  that  notion  of  being  captured 
by  the  incredible  which  is  of  the  very  essence  of 
dreams.  ..." 

He  was  silent  for  a  while. 

"...  No,  it  is  impossible;  it  is  impossible  to 
convey  the  life-sensation  of  any  given  epoch  of  one's 
existence, — that  which  makes  its  truth,  its  meaning 
— its  subtle  and  penetrating  essence.  It  is  impossible. 
We  live,  as  we  dream — alone.  ..." 

He  paused  again  as  if  reflecting,  then  added — 

"Of  course  in  this  you  fellows  see  more  than  I 
could  then.     You  see  me,  whom  you  know.  ..." 

It  had  become  so  pitch  dark  that  we  listeners 
could  hardly  see  one  another.  For  a  long  time 
already  he,  sitting  apart,  had  been  no  more  to  us 
than  a  voice.  There  was  not  a  word  from  anybody. 
The  others  might  have  been  asleep,  but  I  was  awake. 
I  listened,  I  listened  on  the  watch  for  the  sentence, 
for  the  word,  that  would  give  me  the  clue  to  the 
faint  uneasiness  inspired  by  this  narrative  that 
seemed  to  shape  itself  without  human  lips  in  the 
heavy  night-air  of  the  river. 

" .  .  .  Yes — I  let  him  run  on,"  Mario w  began 
again,  "  and  think  what  he  pleased  about  the  powers 
that  were  behind  me.  I  did  !  And  there  was  nothing 
behind  me !  There  was  nothing  but  that  wretched, 
old,  mangled  steamboat  I  was  leaning  against,  while 
he  talked  fluently  about  '  the  necessity  for  every  man 
to  get  on.'  'And  when  one  comes  out  here,  you 
conceive,  it  is  not  to  gaze  at  the  moon.'  Mr  Kurtz 
was  a  '  universal  genius,'  but  even  a  genius  would 
find  it  easier  to  work  with  'adequate  tools — intel- 
ligent men.'     He  did  not  make  bricks — why,  there 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  95 

was  a  physical  impossibility  in  the  way — as  I  was 
well  aware ;  and  if  he  did  secretarial  work  for  the 
manager,  it  was  because  'no  sensible  man  rejects 
wantonly  the  confidence  of  his  superiors.'  Did  I 
see  it  ?  I  saw  it.  What  more  did  I  want  ?  What 
I  really  wanted  was  rivets,  by  heaven  !  Rivets.  To 
get  on  with  the  work — to  stop  the  hole.  Rivets  I 
wanted.  There  were  cases  of  them  down  at  the 
coast — cases — piled  up — burst — split !  You  kicked 
a  loose  rivet  at  every  second  step  in  that  station 
yard  on  the  hillside.  Rivets  had  rolled  into  the 
grove  of  death.  You  could  fill  your  pockets  with 
rivets  for  the  trouble  of  stooping  down — and  there 
wasn't  one  rivet  to  be  found  where  it  was  wanted. 
We  had  plates  that  would  do,  but  nothing  to  fasten 
them  with.  And  every  week  the  messenger,  a  lone 
negro,  letter-bag  on  shoulder  and  staff  in  hand,  left 
our  station  for  the  coast.  And  several  times  a  week 
a  coast  caravan  came  in  with  trade  goods, — ghastly 
glazed  calico  that  made  you  shudder  only  to  look  at 
it,  glass  beads  value  about  a  penny  a  quart,  con- 
founded spotted  cotton  handkerchiefs.  And  no 
rivets.  Three  carriers  could  have  brought  all  that 
was  wanted  to  set  that  steamboat  afloat. 

"  He  was  becoming  confidential  now,  but  I  fancy 
my  unresponsive  attitude  must  have  exasperated 
him  at  last,  for  he  judged  it  necessary  to  inform 
me  he  feared  neither  God  nor  devil,  let  alone  any 
mere  man.  I  said  I  could  see  that  very  well,  but 
what  I  wanted  was  a  certain  quantity  of  rivets — 
and  rivets  were  what  really  Mr  Kurtz  wanted,  if  he 
had  only  known  it.  Now  letters  went  to  the  coast 
every  week.  .  .  .   'My  dear  sir,'  he  cried,  'I  write 


96  HEAKT  OF  DAKKNESS. 

from  dictation.'  I  demanded  rivets.  There  was 
a  way — for  an  intelligent  man.  He  changed  his 
manner;  became  very  cold,  and  suddenly  began  to 
talk  about  a  hippopotamus ;  wondered  whether  sleep- 
ing on  board  the  steamer  (I  stuck  to  my  salvage  night 
and  day)  I  wasn't  disturbed.  There  was  an  old 
hippo  that  had  the  bad  habit  of  getting  out  on  the 
bank  and  roaming  at  night  over  the  station  grounds. 
The  pilgrims  used  to  turn  out  in  a  body  and  empty 
every  rifle  they  could  lay  hands  on  at  him.  Some 
even  had  sat  up  o'  nights  for  him.  All  this  energy 
was  wasted,  though.  '  That  animal  has  a  charmed 
life,'  he  said;  'but  you  can  say  this  only  of  brutes 
in  this  country.  No  man — you  apprehend  me  ? — no 
man  here  bears  a  charmed  life.'  He  stood  there  for 
a  moment  in  the  moonlight  with  his  delicate  hooked 
nose  set  a  little  askew,  and  his  mica  eyes  glittering 
without  a  wink,  then,  with  a  curt  Good  night,  he 
strode  off.  I  could  see  he  was  disturbed  and  con- 
siderably puzzled,  which  made  me  feel  more  hopeful 
than  I  had  been  for  days.  It  was  a  great  comfort 
to  turn  from  that  chap  to  my  influential  friend,  the 
battered,  twisted,  ruined,  tin-pot  steamboat.  I  clam- 
bered on  board.  She  rang  under  my  feet  like  an 
empty  Huntley  &  Palmer  biscuit-tin  kicked  along 
a  gutter;  she  was  nothing  so  solid  in  make,  and 
rather  less  pretty  in  shape,  but  I  had  expended 
enough  hard  work  on  her  to  make  me  love  her.  No 
influential  friend  would  have  served  me  better.  She 
had  given  me  a  chance  to  come  out  a  bit — to  find 
out  what  I  could  do.  No,  I  don't  like  work.  I  had 
rather  laze  about  and  think  of  all  the  fine  things 
that  can  be  done.     I  don't  like  work — no  man  does 


HEAKT   OF  DARKNESS.  97 

— but  I  like  what  is  in  the  work, — the  chance  to  find 
yourself.  Your  own  reality — for  yourself,  not  for 
others — what  no  other  man  can  ever  know.  They 
can  only  see  the  mere  show,  and  never  can  tell  what 
it  really  means. 

"  I  was  not  surprised  to  see  somebody  sitting  aft, 
on  the  deck,  with  his  legs  dangling  over  the  mud. 
You  see  I  rather  chummed  with  the  few  mechanics 
there  were  in  that  station,  whom  the  other  pilgrims 
naturally  despised — on  account  of  their  imperfect 
manners,  I  suppose.  This  was  the  foreman — a 
boiler-maker  by  trade — a  good  worker.  He  was  a 
lank,  bony,  yellow-faced  man,  with  big  intense  eyes. 
His  aspect  was  worried,  and  his  head  was  as  bald  as 
the  palm  of  my  hand ;  but  his  hair  in  falling  seemed 
to  have  stuck  to  his  chin,  and  had  prospered  in  the 
new  locality,  for  his  beard  hung  down  to  his  waist. 
He  was  a  widower  with  six  young  children  (he  had 
left  them  in  charge  of  a  sister  of  his  to  come  out 
there),  and  the  passion  of  his  life  was  pigeon-flying. 
He  was  an  enthusiast  and  a  connoisseur.  He  would 
rave  about  pigeons.  After  work  hours  he  used  some- 
times to  come  over  from  his  hut  for  a  talk  about  his 
children  and  his  pigeons  ;  at  work,  when  he  had  to 
crawl  in  the  mud  under  the  bottom  of  the  steamboat, 
he  would  tie  up  that  beard  of  his  in  a  kind  of  white 
serviette  he  brought  for  the  purpose.  It  had  loops 
to  go  over  his  ears.  In  the  evening  he  could  be  seen 
squatted  on  the  bank  rinsing  that  wrapper  in  the 
creek  with  great  care,  then  spreading  it  solemnly  on 
a  bush  to  dry. 

"  I  slapped  him  on  the  back  and  shouted  '  We 
shall  have  rivets ! '     He  scrambled  to  his  feet  ex- 

G 


98  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

claiming  '  No !  Rivets  ! '  as  though  he  couldn't 
believe  his  ears.  Then  in  a  low  voice,  '  You  .  .  .  eh  ?  ' 
I  don't  know  why  we  behaved  like  lunatics.  I  put 
my  finger  to  the  side  of  my  nose  and  nodded  mys- 
teriously. '  Good  for  you ! '  he  cried,  snapped  his 
fingers  above  his  head,  lifting  one  foot.  I  tried  a  jig. 
We  capered  on  the  iron  deck.  A  frightful  clatter 
came  out  of  that  hulk,  and  the  virgin  forest  on  the 
other  bank  of  the  creek  sent  it  back  in  a  thundering 
roll  upon  the  sleeping  station.  It  must  have  made 
some  of  the  pilgrims  sit  up  in  their  hovels.  A  dark 
figure  obscured  the  lighted  doorway  of  the  manager's 
hut,  vanished,  then,  a  second  or  so  after,  the  doorway 
itself  vanished  too.  We  stopped,  and  the  silence 
driven  away  by  the  stamping  of  our  feet  flowed  back 
again  from  the  recesses  of  the  land.  The  great  wall 
of  vegetation,  an  exuberant  and  entangled  mass  of 
trunks,  branches,  leaves,  boughs,  festoons,  motionless 
in  the  moonlight,  was  like  a  rioting  invasion  of  sound- 
less life,  a  rolling  wave  of  plants,  piled  up,  crested, 
ready  to  topple  over  the  creek,  to  sweep  every  little 
man  of  us  out  of  his  little  existence.  And  it  moved 
not.  A  deadened  burst  of  mighty  splashes  and  snorts 
reached  us  from  afar,  as  though  an  ichthyosaurus 
had  been  taking  a  bath  of  glitter  in  the  great  river. 
'After  all,'  said  the  boiler-maker  in  a  reasonable  tone, 
'  why  shouldn't  we  get  the  rivets  ?  '  Why  not,  indeed  ! 
I  did  not  know  of  any  reason  why  we  shouldn't. 
'  They'll  come  in  three  weeks,'  I  said,  confidently. 

"  But  they  didn't.  Instead  of  rivets  there  came 
an  invasion,  an  infliction,  a  visitation.  It  came  in 
sections  during  the  next  three  weeks,  each  section 
headed  by  a  donkey  carrying  a  white  man  in  new 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  99 

clothes  and  tan  shoes,  bowing  from  that  elevation 
right  and  left  to  the  impressed  pilgrims.  A  quarrel- 
some band  of  footsore  sulky  niggers  trod  on  the  heels 
of  the  donkey ;  a  lot  of  tents,  camp-stools,  tin  boxes, 
white  cases,  brown  bales  would  be  shot  down  in  the 
courtyard,  and  the  air  of  mystery  would  deepen  a 
little  over  the  muddle  of  the  station.  Five  such 
instalments  came,  with  their  absurd  air  of  disorderly 
flight  with  the  loot  of  innumerable  outfit  shops  and 
provision  stores,  that,  one  would  think,  they  were 
lugging,  after  a  raid,  into  the  wilderness  for  equit- 
able division.  It  was  an  inextricable  mess  of  things 
decent  in  themselves  but  that  human  folly  made  look 
like  the  spoils  of  thieving. 

"  This  devoted  band  called  itself  the  Eldorado  Ex- 
ploring Expedition,  and  I  believe  they  were  sworn 
to  secrecy.  Their  talk,  however,  was  the  talk  of 
sordid  buccaneers :  it  was  reckless  without  hardi- 
hood, greedy  without  audacity,  and  cruel  without 
courage ;  there  was  not  an  atom  of  foresight  or  of 
serious  intention  in  the  whole  batch  of  them,  and 
they  did  not  seem  aware  these  things  are  wanted 
for  the  work  of  the  world.  To  tear  treasure  out 
of  the  bowels  of  the  land  was  their  desire,  with  no 
more  moral  purpose  at  the  back  of  it  than  there  is  in 
burglars  breaking  into  a  safe.  Who  paid  the  ex- 
penses of  the  noble  enterprise  I  don't  know;  but 
the  uncle  of  our  manager  was  leader  of  that  lot. 

"  In  exterior  he  resembled  a  butcher  in  a  poor 
neighbourhood,  and  his  eyes  had  a  look  of  sleepy 
cunning.  He  carried  his  fat  paunch  with  ostenta- 
tion on  his  short  legs,  and  during  the  time  his  gang 
infested  the  station  spoke  to  no  one  but  his  nephew. 


100  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

You  could  see  these  two  roaming  about  all  day  long 
with  their  heads  close  together  in  an  everlasting 
confab. 

"  I  had  given  up  worrying  myself  about  the  rivets. 
One's  capacity  for  that  kind  of  folly  is  more  limited 
than  you  would  suppose.  I  said  Hang  ! — and  let 
things  slide.  I  had  plenty  of  time  for  meditation,  and 
now  and  then  I  would  give  some  thought  to  Kurtz. 
I  wasn't  very  interested  in  him.  No.  Still,  I  was 
curious  to  see  whether  this  man,  who  had  come  out 
equipped  with  moral  ideas  of  some  sort,  would  climb 
to  the  top  after  all,  and  how  he  would  set  about 
his  work  when  there." 


II. 


"  One  evening  as  I  was  lying  flat  on  the  deck  of 
my  steamboat,  I  heard  voices  approaching  —  and 
there  were  the  nephew  and  the  uncle  strolling  along 
the  bank.  I  laid  my  head  on  my  arm  again,  and  had 
nearly  lost  myself  in  a  doze,  when  somebody  said  in 
my  ear,  as  it  were  :  '  I  am  as  harmless  as  a  little 
child,  but  I  don't  like  to  be  dictated  to.  Am  I  the 
manager — or  am  I  not  ?  I  was  ordered  to  send  him 
there.  It's  incredible.'  ...  I  became  aware  that 
the  two  were  standing  on  the  shore  alongside  the 
forepart  of  the  steamboat,  just  below  my  head.  I 
did  not  move ;  it  did  not  occur  to  me  to  move  :  I  was 
sleepy.  'It  is  unpleasant,'  grunted  the  uncle.  'He 
has  asked  the  Administration  to  be  sent  there,'  said 
the  other,  '  with  the  idea  of  showing  what  he  could 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  101 

do  ;  and  I  was  instructed  accordingly.  Look  at  the 
influence  that  man  must  have.  Is  it  not  frightful  ? ' 
They  both  agreed  it  was  frightful,  then  made  several 
bizarre  remarks  :  '  Make  rain  and  fine  weather — one 
man — the  Council — by  the  nose' — bits  of  absurd 
sentences  that  got  the  better  of  my  drowsiness,  so 
that  I  had  pretty  near  the  whole  of  my  wits  about 
me  when  the  uncle  said,  '  The  climate  may  do  away 
with  this  difficulty  for  you.  Is  he  alone  there  ? ' 
'Yes,'  answered  the  manager;  'he  sent  his  assistant 
down  the  river  with  a  note  to  me  in  these  terms  : 
"  Clear  this  poor  devil  out  of  the  country,  and  don't 
bother  sending  more  of  that  sort.  I  had  rather  be 
alone  than  have  the  kind  of  men  you  can  dispose  of 
with  me."  It  was  more  than  a  year  ago.  Can  you 
imagine  such  impudence!'  'Anything  since  then?' 
asked  the  other,  hoarsely.  '  Ivory,'  jerked  the 
nephew ;  '  lots  of  it — prime  sort — lots — most  annoy- 
ing, from  him.'  'And  with  that?'  questioned  the 
heavy  rumble.  '  Invoice,'  was  the  reply  fired  out,  so 
to  speak.  Then  silence.  They  had  been  talking 
about  Kurtz. 

"I  was  broad  awake  by  this  time,  but,  lying 
perfectly  at  ease,  remained  still,  having  no  induce- 
ment to  change  my  position.  '  How  did  that  ivory 
come  all  this  way  ? '  growled  the  elder  man,  who 
seemed  very  vexed.  The  other  explained  that  it  had 
come  with  a  fleet  of  canoes  in  charge  of  an  English 
half-caste  clerk  Kurtz  had  with  him ;  that  Kurtz  had 
apparently  intended  to  return  himself,  the  station 
being  by  that  time  bare  of  goods  and  stores,  but  after 
coming  three  hundred  miles,  had  suddenly  decided  to 
go  back,  which  he  started  to  do  alone  in  a  small  dug- 


102  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

out  with  four  paddlers,  leaving  the  half-caste  to  con- 
tinue down  the  river  with  the  ivory.  The  two 
fellows  there  seemed  astounded  at  anybody  attempt- 
ing such  a  thing.  They  were  at  a  loss  for  an 
adequate  motive.  As  to  me,  I  seemed  to  see  Kurtz 
for  the  first  time.  It  was  a  distinct  glimpse  :  the  dug- 
out, four  paddling  savages,  and  the  lone  white  man 
turning  his  back  suddenly  on  the  headquarters,  on 
relief,  on  thoughts  of  home — perhaps;  setting  his 
face  towards  the  depths  of  the  wilderness,  towards  his 
empty  and  desolate  station.  I  did  not  know  the 
motive.  Perhaps  he  was  just  simply  a  fine  fellow 
who  stuck  to  his  work  for  its  own  sake.  His  name, 
you  understand,  had  not  been  pronounced  once.  He 
was  'that  man.'  The  half-caste,  who,  as  far  as  I 
could  see,  had  conducted  a  difficult  trip  with  great 
prudence  and  pluck,  was  invariably  alluded  to  as 
'  that  scoundrel.'  The  '  scoundrel '  had  reported  that 
the  'man'  had  been  very  ill  —  had  recovered  im- 
perfectly. .  .  .  The  two  below  me  moved  away  then 
a  few  paces,  and  strolled  back  and  forth  at  some  little 
distance.  I  heard  :  '  Military  post  —  doctor  —  two 
hundred  miles — quite  alone  now — unavoidable  delays 
— nine  months — no  news — strange  rumours.'  They 
approached  again,  just  as  the  manager  was  saying, 
1  No  one,  as  far  as  I  know,  unless  a  species  of  wander- 
ing trader — a  pestilential  fellow,  snapping  ivory  from 
the  natives.'  Who  was  it  they  were  talking  about 
now?  I  gathered  in  snatches  that  this  was  some 
man  supposed  to  be  in  Kurtz's  district,  and  of  whom 
the  manager  did  not  approve.  '  We  will  not  be  free 
from  unfair  competition  till  one  of  these  fellows  is 
hanged    for    an    example,'    he     said.       'Certainly,' 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  103 

grunted  the  other ;  '  get  him  hanged  !  Why  not  ? 
Anything — anything  can  be  done  in  this  country. 
That's  what  I  say;  nobody  here,  you  understand, 
here,  can  endanger  your  position.  And  why  ?  You 
stand  the  climate  —  you  outlast  them  all.  The 
danger  is  in  Europe ;  but  there  before  I  left  I  took 

care  to '     They  moved  off  and  whispered,  then 

their  voices  rose  again.  '  The  extraordinary  series  of 
delays  is  not  my  fault.  I  did  my  possible.'  The  fat 
man  sighed,  'Very  sad.'  'And  the  pestiferous 
absurdity  of  his  talk,'  continued  the  other;  'he 
bothered  me  enough  when  he  was  here.  "Each 
station  should  be  like  a  beacon  on  the  road  towards 
better  things,  a  centre  for  trade  of  course,  but  also  for 
humanising,  improving,  instructing."  Conceive  you 
— that  ass !  And  he  wants  to  be  manager !  No, 
it's '  Here  he  got  choked  by  excessive  indigna- 
tion, and  I  lifted  my  head  the  least  bit.  I  was 
surprised  to  see  how  near  they  were — right  under 
me.  I  could  have  spat  upon  their  hats.  They  were 
looking  on  the  ground,  absorbed  in  thought.  The 
manager  was  switching  his  leg  with  a  slender  twig : 
his  sagacious  relative  lifted  his  head.  '  You  have 
been  well  since  you  came  out  this  time  ? '  he  asked. 
The  other  gave  a  start.  '  Who  ?  I  ?  Oh  !  Like  a 
charm — like  a  charm.  But  the  rest — oh,  my  good- 
ness !  All  sick.  They  die  so  quick,  too,  that  I 
haven't  the  time  to  send  them  out  of  the  country — 
it's  incredible  ! '  '  H'm.  Just  so,'  grunted  the  uncle. 
'Ah!  my  boy,  trust  to  this — I  say,  trust  to  this.'  I 
saw  him  extend  his  short  nipper  of  an  arm  for  a 
gesture  that  took  in  the  forest,  the  creek,  the  mud, 
the  river, — seemed  to  beckon  with  a  dishonouring 


104  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

flourish  before  the  sunlit  face  of  the  land  a  treach- 
erous appeal  to  the  lurking  death,  to  the  hidden  evil, 
to  the  profound  darkness  of  its  heart.  It  was  so 
startling  that  I  leaped  to  my  feet  and  looked  back  at 
the  edge  of  the  forest,  as  though  I  had  expected  an 
answer  of  some  sort  to  that  black  display  of  con- 
fidence. You  know  the  foolish  notions  that  come  to 
one  sometimes.  The  high  stillness  confronted  these 
two  figures  with  its  ominous  patience,  waiting  for  the 
passing  away  of  a  fantastic  invasion. 

"  They  swore  aloud  together — out  of  sheer  fright, 
I  believe — then  pretending  not  to  know  anything  of 
my  existence,  turned  back  to  the  station.  The  sun 
was  low ;  and  leaning  forward  side  by  side,  they 
seemed  to  be  tugging  painfully  uphill  their  two 
ridiculous  shadows  of  unequal  length,  that  trailed 
behind  them  slowly  over  the  tall  grass  without 
bending  a  single  blade. 

"In  a  few  days  the  Eldorado  Expedition  went 
into  the  patient  wilderness,  that  closed  upon  it  as 
the  sea  closes  over  a  diver.  Long  afterwards  the 
news  came  that  all  the  donkeys  were  dead.  I  know 
nothing  as  to  the  fate  of  the  less  valuable  animals. 
They,  no  doubt,  like  the  rest  of  us,  found  what  they 
deserved.  I  did  not  inquire.  I  was  then  rather  ex- 
cited at  the  prospect  of  meeting  Kurtz  very  soon. 
When  I  say  very  soon  I  mean  it  comparatively.  It 
was  just  two  months  from  the  day  we  left  the  creek 
when  we  came  to  the  bank  below  Kurtz's  station. 

"  Going  up  that  river  was  like  travelling  back  to 
the  earliest  beginnings  of  the  world,  when  vegetation 
rioted  on  the  earth  and  the  big  trees  were  kings. 
An  empty  stream,  a  great  silence,  an  impenetrable 


HEABT  OF  DARKNESS.  105 

forest.  The  air  was  warm,  thick,  heavy,  sluggish. 
There  was  no  joy  in  the  brilliance  of  sunshine.  The 
long  stretches  of  the  waterway  ran  on,  deserted,  into 
the  gloom  of  overshadowed  distances.  On  silvery 
sandbanks  hippos  and  alligators  sunned  themselves 
side  by  side.  The  broadening  waters  flowed  through 
a  mob  of  wooded  islands ;  you  lost  your  way  on  that 
river  as  you  would  in  a  desert,  and  butted  all  day 
long  against  shoals,  trying  to  find  the  channel,  till 
you  thought  yourself  bewitched  and  cut  off  for  ever 
from  everything  you  had  known  once — somewhere — 
far  away — in  another  existence  perhaps.  There  were 
moments  when  one's  past  came  back  to  one,  as  it 
will  sometimes  when  you  have  not  a  moment  to  spare 
to  yourself ;  but  it  came  in  the  shape  of  an  unrestful 
and  noisy  dream,  remembered  with  wonder  amongst 
the  overwhelming  realities  of  this  strange  world  of 
plants,  and  water,  and  silence.  And  this  stillness  of 
life  did  not  in  the  least  resemble  a  peace.  It  was  the 
stillness  of  an  implacable  force  brooding  over  an  in- 
scrutable intention.  It  looked  at  you  with  a  venge- 
ful aspect.  I  got  used  to  it  afterwards;  I  did  not 
see  it  any  more;  I  had  no  time.  I  had  to  keep 
guessing  at  the  channel ;  I  had  to  discern,  mostly  by 
inspiration,  the  signs  of  hidden  banks  ;  I  watched  for 
sunken  stones;  I  was  learning  to  clap  my  teeth 
smartly  before  my  heart  flew  out,  when  I  shaved  by 
a  fluke  some  infernal  sly  old  snag  that  would  have 
ripped  the  life  out  of  the  tin -pot  steamboat  and 
drowned  all  the  pilgrims ;  I  had  to  keep  a  look-out 
for  the  signs  of  dead  wood  we  could  cut  up  in  the 
night  for  next  day's  steaming.  When  you  have  to 
attend  to  things  of  that  sort,  to  the  mere  incidents 


106  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

of  the  surface,  the  reality — the  reality,  I  tell  you — 
fades.  The  inner  truth  is  hidden — luckily,  luckily. 
But  I  felt  it  all  the  same ;  I  felt  often  its  mysterious 
stillness  watching  me  at  my  monkey  tricks,  just  as 
it  watches  you  fellows  performing  on  your  re- 
spective tight -ropes  for — what  is  it?  half-a-crown 
a  tumble " 

"Try  to  be  civil,  Mario w,"  growled  a  voice,  and 
I  knew  there  was  at  least  one  listener  awake  besides 
myself. 

"  I  beg  your  pardon.  I  forgot  the  heartache  which 
makes  up  the  rest  of  the  price.  And  indeed  what 
does  the  price  matter,  if  the  trick  be  well  done? 
You  do  your  tricks  very  well.  And  I  didn't  do  badly 
either,  since  I  managed  not  to  sink  that  steamboat 
on  my  first  trip.  It's  a  wonder  to  me  yet.  Imagine 
a  blindfolded  man  set  to  drive  a  van  over  a  bad  road. 
I  sweated  and  shivered  over  that  business  consider- 
ably, I  can  tell  you.  After  all,  for  a  seaman,  to 
scrape  the  bottom  of  the  thing  that's  supposed  to 
float  all  the  time  under  his  care  is  the  unpardonable 
sin.  No  one  may  know  of  it,  but  you  never  forget 
the  thump — eh  ?  A  blow  on  the  very  heart.  You 
remember  it,  you  dream  of  it,  you  wake  up  at  night 
and  think  of  it — years  after — and  go  hot  and  cold 
all  over.  I  don't  pretend  to  say  that  steamboat 
floated  all  the  time.  More  than  once  she  had  to 
wade  for  a  bit,  with  twenty  cannibals  splashing 
around  and  pushing.  We  had  enlisted  some  of  these 
chaps  on  the  way  for  a  crew.  Fine  fellows — canni- 
bals— in  their  place.  They  were  men  one  could  work 
with,  and  I  am  grateful  to  them.  And,  after  all, 
they  did  not  eat  each  other  before  my  face :  they  had 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  107 

brought  along  a  provision  of  hippo-meat  which  went 
rotten,  and  made  the  mystery  of  the  wilderness  stink 
in  my  nostrils.  Phoo  !  I  can  sniff  it  now.  I  had 
the  manager  on  board  and  three  or  four  pilgrims 
with  their  staves  —  all  complete.  Sometimes  we 
came  upon  a  station  close  by  the  bank,  clinging  to  the 
skirts  of  the  unknown,  and  the  white  men  rushing 
out  of  a  tumble-down  hovel,  with  great  gestures  of 
joy  and  surprise  and  welcome,  seemed  very  strange, 
— had  the  appearance  of  being  held  there  captive  by 
a  spell.  The  word  ivory  would  ring  in  the  air  for  a 
while — and  on  we  went  again  into  the  silence,  along 
empty  reaches,  round  the  still  bends,  between  the 
high  walls  of  our  winding  way,  reverberating  in 
hollow  claps  the  ponderous  beat  of  the  stern- wheel. 
Trees,  trees,  millions  of  trees,  massive,  immense,  run- 
ning up  high ;  and  at  their  foot,  hugging  the  bank 
against  the  stream,  crept  the  little  begrimed  steam- 
boat, like  a  sluggish  beetle  crawling  on  the  floor  of  a 
lofty  portico.  It  made  you  feel  very  small,  very  lost, 
and  yet  it  was  not  altogether  depressing  that  feeling. 
After  all,  if  you  were  small,  the  grimy  beetle  crawled 
on  —  which  was  just  what  you  wanted  it  to  do. 
Where  the  pilgrims  imagined  it  crawled  to  I  don't 
know.  To  some  place  where  they  expected  to  get 
something,  I  bet !  For  me  it  crawled  towards  Kurtz 
— exclusively ;  but  when  the  steam  -  pipes  started 
leaking  we  crawled  very  slow.  The  reaches  opened 
before  us  and  closed  behind,  as  if  the  forest  had 
stepped  leisurely  across  the  water  to  bar  the  way  for 
our  return.  We  penetrated  deeper  and  deeper  into 
the  heart  of  darkness.  It  was  very  quiet  there.  At 
night  sometimes  the  roll  of  drums  behind  the  curtain 


108  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

of  trees  would  run  up  the  river  and  remain  sustained 
faintly,  as  if  hovering  in  the  air  high  over  our  heads, 
till  the  first  break  of  day.  Whether  it  meant  war, 
peace,  or  prayer  we  could  not  tell.  The  dawns  were 
heralded  by  the  descent  of  a  chill  stillness ;  the  wood- 
cutters slept,  their  fires  burned  low ;  the  snapping  of 
a  twig  would  make  you  start.  We  were  wanderers 
on  a  prehistoric  earth,  on  an  earth  that  wore  the 
aspect  of  an  unknown  planet.  We  could  have  fan- 
cied ourselves  the  first  of  men  taking  possession  of 
an  accursed  inheritance,  to  be  subdued  at  the  cost 
of  profound  anguish  and  of  excessive  toil.  But  sud- 
denly, as  we  struggled  round  a  bend,  there  would  be 
a  glimpse  of  rush  walls,  of  peaked  grass-roofs,  a  burst 
of  yells,  a  whirl  of  black  limbs,  a  mass  of  hands  clap- 
ping, of  feet  stamping,  of  bodies  swaying,  of  eyes 
rolling,  under  the  droop  of  heavy  and  motionless 
foliage.  The  steamer  toiled  along  slowly  on  the 
edge  of  a  black  and  incomprehensible  frenzy.  The 
prehistoric  man  was  cursing  us,  praying  to  us,  wel- 
coming us — who  could  tell  ?  We  were  cut  off  from 
the  comprehension  of  our  surroundings ;  we  glided 
past  like  phantoms,  wondering  and  secretly  appalled, 
as  sane  men  would  be  before  an  enthusiastic  out- 
break in  a  madhouse.  We  could  not  understand, 
because  we  were  too  far  and  could  not  remember, 
because  we  were  travelling  in  the  night  of  first  ages, 
of  those  ages  that  are  gone,  leaving  hardly  a  sign — 
and  no  memories. 

"The  earth  seemed  unearthly.  We  are  accus- 
tomed to  look  upon  the  shackled  form  of  a  conquered 
monster,  but  there — there  you  could  look  at  a  thing 
monstrous  and  free.     It  was  unearthly,  and  the  men 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  109 

were No,  they  were  not  inhuman.     Well,  you 

know,  that  was  the  worst  of  it  —  this  suspicion  of 
their  not  being  inhuman.  It  would  come  slowly  to 
one.  They  howled,  and  leaped,  and  spun,  and  made 
horrid  faces ;  but  what  thrilled  you  was  just  the 
thought  of  their  humanity — like  yours — the  thought 
of  your  remote  kinship  with  this  wild  and  passionate 
uproar.  Ugly.  Yes,  it  was  ugly  enough;  but  if 
you  were  man  enough  you  would  admit  to  yourself 
that  there  was  in  you  just  the  faintest  trace  of  a 
response  to  the  terrible  frankness  of  that  noise,  a 
dim  suspicion  of  there  being  a  meaning  in  it  which 
you  —  you  so  remote  from  the  night  of  first  ages 
— could  comprehend.  And  why  not  ?  The  mind  of 
man  is  capable  of  anything — because  everything  is 
in  it,  all  the  past  as  well  as  all  the  future.  What 
was  there  after  all?  Joy,  fear,  sorrow,  devotion, 
valour,  rage  —  who  can  tell? — but  truth  —  truth 
stripped  of  its  cloak  of  time.  Let  the  fool  gape  and 
shudder — the  man  knows,  and  can  look  on  without  a 
wink.  But  he  must  at  least  be  as  much  of  a  man  as 
these  on  the  shore.  He  must  meet  that  truth  with 
his  own  true  stuff — with  his  own  inborn  strength. 
Principles?  Principles  won't  do.  Acquisitions, 
clothes,  pretty  rags — rags  that  would  fly  off  at  the 
first  good  shake.  No  ;  you  want  a  deliberate  belief. 
An  appeal  to  me  in  this  fiendish  row  —  is  there? 
Very  well ;  I  hear  ;  I  admit,  but  I  have  a  voice  too, 
and  for  good  or  evil  mine  is  the  speech  that  cannot 
be  silenced.  Of  course,  a  fool,  what  with  sheer  fright 
and  fine  sentiments,  is  always  safe.  Who's  that 
grunting?  You  wonder  I  didn't  go  ashore  for  a 
howl  and  a  dance  ?     Well,  no — I  didn't.     Fine  senti- 


110  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

ments,  you  say  ?  Fine  sentiments,  be  hanged !  I 
had  no  time.  I  had  to  mess  about  with  white-lead 
and  strips  of  woollen  blanket  helping  to  put  band- 
ages on  those  leaky  steam-pipes — I  tell  you.  I  had 
to  watch  the  steering,  and  circumvent  those  snags, 
and  get  the  tin -pot  along  by  hook  or  by  crook. 
There  was  surface-truth  enough  in  these  things  to 
save  a  wiser  man.  And  between  whiles  I  had  to 
look  after  the  savage  who  was  fireman.  He  was  an 
improved  specimen;  he  could  fire  up  a  vertical 
boiler.  He  was  there  below  me,  and,  upon  my  word, 
to  look  at  him  was  as  edifying  as  seeing  a  dog  in  a 
parody  of  breeches  and  a  feather  hat,  walking  on 
his  hind -legs.  A  few  months  of  training  had  done 
for  that  really  fine  chap.  He  squinted  at  the  steam- 
gauge  and  at  the  water-gauge  with  an  evident  effort 
of  intrepidity — and  he  had  filed  teeth  too,  the  poor 
devil,  and  the  wool  of  his  pate  shaved  into  queer 
patterns,  and  three  ornamental  scars  on  each  of  his 
cheeks.  He  ought  to  have  been  clapping  his  hands 
and  stamping  his  feet  on  the  bank,  instead  of  which 
he  was  hard  at  work,  a  thrall  to  strange  witchcraft, 
full  of  improving  knowledge.  He  was  useful  because 
he  had  been  instructed ;  and  what  he  knew  was  this 
— that  should  the  water  in  that  transparent  thing 
disappear,  the  evil  spirit  inside  the  boiler  would  get 
angry  through  the  greatness  of  his  thirst,  and  take  a 
terrible  vengeance.  So  he  sweated  and  fired  up  and 
watched  the  glass  fearfully  (with  an  impromptu 
charm,  made  of  rags,  tied  to  his  arm,  and  a  piece  of 
polished  bone,  as  big  as  a  watch,  stuck  flatways 
through  his  lower  lip),  while  the  wooded  banks 
slipped  past  us  slowly,  the  short  noise  was  left  be- 


HEART  OP  DARKNESS.  Ill 

hind,  the  interminable  miles  of  silence — and  we  crept 
on,  towards  Kurtz.  But  the  snags  were  thick,  the 
water  was  treacherous  and  shallow,  the  boiler  seemed 
indeed  to  have  a  sulky  devil  in  it,  and  thus  neither 
that  fireman  nor  I  had  any  time  to  peer  into  our 
creepy  thoughts. 

"Some  fifty  miles  below  the  Inner  Station  we 
came  upon  a  hut  of  reeds,  an  inclined  and  melan- 
choly pole,  with  the  unrecognisable  tatters  of  what 
had  been  a  flag  of  some  sort  flying  from  it,  and  a 
neatly  stacked  wood -pile.  This  was  unexpected. 
We  came  to  the  bank,  and  on  the  stack  of  fire- 
wood found  a  flat  piece  of  board  with  some  faded 
pencil -writing  on  it.  When  deciphered  it  said: 
'Wood  for  you.  Hurry  up.  Approach  cautiously.' 
There  was  a  signature,  but  it  was  illegible — not 
Kurtz — a  much  longer  word.  Hurry  up.  Where? 
Up  the  river?  'Approach  cautiously.'  We  had 
not  done  so.  But  the  warning  could  not  have 
been  meant  for  the  place  where  it  could  be  only 
found  after  approach.  Something  was  wrong 
above.  But  what — and  how  much  ?  That  was 
the  question.  We  commented  adversely  upon  the 
imbecility  of  that  telegraphic  style.  The  bush 
around  said  nothing,  and  would  not  let  us  look 
very  far,  either.  A  torn  curtain  of  red  twill  hung 
in  the  doorway  of  the  hut,  and  flapped  sadly  in 
our  faces.  The  dwelling  was  dismantled;  but  we 
could  see  a  white  man  had  lived  there  not  very 
long  ago.  There  remained  a  rude  table — a  plank 
on  two  posts ;  a  heap  of  rubbish  reposed  in  a 
dark  corner,  and  by  the  door  I  picked  up  a  book. 
It   had   lost   its  covers,    and    the   pages    had    been 


112  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

thumbed  into  a  state  of  extremely  dirty  softness ; 
but  the  back  had  been  lovingly  stitched  afresh  with 
white  cotton  thread,  which  looked  clean  yet.  It 
was  an  extraordinary  find.  Its  title  was,  'An 
Inquiry  into  some  Points  of  Seamanship,'  by  a 
man  Tower,  Towson — some  such  name — Master  in 
his  Majesty's  Navy.  The  matter  looked  dreary 
reading  enough,  with  illustrative  diagrams  and  re- 
pulsive tables  of  figures,  and  the  copy  was  sixty 
years  old.  I  handled  this  amazing  antiquity  with 
the  greatest  possible  tenderness,  lest  it  should  dis- 
solve in  my  hands.  Within,  Towson  or  Towser 
was  inquiring  earnestly  into  the  breaking  strain  of 
ships'  chains  and  tackle,  and  other  such  matters. 
Not  a  very  enthralling  book;  but  at  the  first 
glance  you  could  see  there  a  singleness  of  intention, 
an  honest  concern  for  the  right  way  of  going  to 
work,  which  made  these  humble  pages,  thought  out 
so  many  years  ago,  luminous  with  another  than  a 
professional  light.  The  simple  old  sailor,  with  his 
talk  of  chains  and  purchases,  made  me  forget  the 
jungle  and  the  pilgrims  in  a  delicious  sensation 
of  having  come  upon  something  unmistakably  real. 
Such  a  book  being  there  was  wonderful  enough ; 
but  still  more  astounding  were  the  notes  pencilled 
in  the  margin,  and  plainly  referring  to  the  text. 
I  couldn't  believe  my  eyes !  They  were  in  cipher ! 
Yes,  it  looked  like  cipher.  Fancy  a  man  lugging 
with  him  a  book  of  that  description  into  this  no- 
where and  studying  it  —  and  making  notes  —  in 
cipher  at  that !     It  was  an  extravagant  mystery. 

"I   had   been   dimly    aware  for  some  time   of   a 
worrying  noise,  and   when  I  lifted  my  eyes  I  saw 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  113 

the  wood-pile  was  gone,  and  the  manager,  aided 
by  all  the  pilgrims,  was  shouting  at  me  from  the 
river-side.  I  slipped  the  book  into  my  pocket.  I 
assure  you  to  leave  off  reading  was  like  tearing 
myself  away  from  the  shelter  of  an  old  and  solid 
friendship. 

"I  started  the  lame  engine  ahead.  'It  must  be 
this  miserable  trader — this  intruder,'  exclaimed  the 
manager,  looking  back  malevolently  at  the  place 
we  had  left.  'He  must  be  English,'  I  said.  'It 
will  not  save  him  from  getting  into  trouble  if  he 
is  not  careful,'  muttered  the  manager  darkly.  I 
observed  with  assumed  innocence  that  no  man  was 
safe  from  trouble  in  this  world. 

"The  current  was  more  rapid  now,  the  steamer 
seemed  at  her  last  gasp,  the  stern-wheel  flopped 
languidly,  and  I  caught  myself  listening  on  tiptoe 
for  the  next  beat  of  the  float,  for  in  sober  truth  I 
expected  the  wretched  thing  to  give  up  every 
moment.  It  was  like  watching  the  last  flickers 
of  a  life.  But  still  we  crawled.  Sometimes  I 
would  pick  out  a  tree  a  little  way  ahead  to  measure 
our  progress  towards  Kurtz  by,  but  I  lost  it  in- 
variably before  we  got  abreast.  To  keep  the  eyes 
so  long  on  one  thing  was  too  much  for  human 
patience.  The  manager  displayed  a  beautiful  re- 
signation. I  fretted  and  fumed  and  took  to 
arguing  with  myself  whether  or  no  I  would  talk 
openly  with  Kurtz ;  but  before  I  could  come  to 
any  conclusion  it  occurred  to  me  that  my  speech 
or  my  silence,  indeed  any  action  of  mine,  would  be 
a  mere  futility.  What  did  it  matter  what  any 
one   knew   or   ignored?     What  did   it  matter  who 

H 


114  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

was  manager?  One  gets  sometimes  such  a  flash 
of  insight.  The  essentials  of  this  affair  lay  deep 
under  the  surface,  beyond  my  reach,  and  beyond 
my  power  of  meddling. 

"Towards  the  evening  of  the  second  day  we 
judged  ourselves  about  eight  miles  from  Kurtz's 
station.  I  wanted  to  push  on ;  but  the  manager 
looked  grave,  and  told  me  the  navigation  up  there 
was  so  dangerous  that  it  would  be  advisable,  the 
sun  being  very  low  already,  to  wait  where  we  were 
till  next  morning.  Moreover,  he  pointed  out  that 
if  the  warning  to  approach  cautiously  were  to  be 
followed,  we  must  approach  in  daylight — not  at 
dusk,  or  in  the  dark.  This  was  sensible  enough. 
Eight  miles  meant  nearly  three  hours'  steaming  for 
us,  and  I  could  also  see  suspicious  ripples  at  the 
upper  end  of  the  reach.  Nevertheless,  I  was  an- 
noyed beyond  expression  at  the  delay,  and  most 
unreasonably  too,  since  one  night  more  could  not 
matter  much  after  so  many  months.  As  we  had 
plenty  of  wood,  and  caution  was  the  word,  I  brought 
up  in  the  middle  of  the  stream.  The  reach  was 
narrow,  straight,  with  high  sides  like  a  railway 
cutting.  The  dusk  came  gliding  into  it  long  before 
the  sun  had  set.  The  current  ran  smooth  and  swift, 
but  a  dumb  immobility  sat  on  the  banks.  The  liv- 
ing trees,  lashed  together  by  the  creepers  and  every 
living  bush  of  the  undergrowth,  might  have  been 
changed  into  stone,  even  to  the  slenderest  twig,  to 
the  lightest  leaf.  It  was  not  sleep — it  seemed  un- 
natural, like  a  state  of  trance.  Not  the  faintest 
sound  of  any  kind  could  be  heard.  You  looked  on 
amazed,    and    began   to   suspect   yourself   of    being 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  115 

deaf  —  then  the  night  came  suddenly,  and  struck 
you  blind  as  well.  About  three  in  the  morning 
some  large  fish  leaped,  and  the  loud  splash  made 
me  jump  as  though  a  gun  had  been  fired.  When 
the  sun  rose  there  was  a  white  fog,  very  warm  and 
clammy,  and  more  blinding  than  the  night.  It  did 
not  shift  or  drive ;  it  was  just  there,  standing  all 
round  you  like  something  solid.  At  eight  or  nine, 
perhaps,  it  lifted  as  a  shutter  lifts.  We  had  a 
glimpse  of  the  towering  multitude  of  trees,  of  the 
immense  matted  jungle,  with  the  blazing  little  ball 
of  the  sun  hanging  over  it — all  perfectly  still — and 
then  the  white  shutter  came  down  again,  smoothly, 
as  if  sliding  in  greased  grooves.  I  ordered  the  chain, 
which  we  had  begun  to  heave  in,  to  be  paid  out 
again.  Before  it  stopped  running  with  a  muffled 
rattle,  a  cry,  a  very  loud  cry,  as  of  infinite  desola- 
tion, soared  slowly  in  the  opaque  air.  It  ceased. 
A  complaining  clamour,  modulated  in  savage  dis- 
cords, filled  our  ears.  The  sheer  unexpectedness  of 
it  made  my  hair  stir  under  my  cap.  I  don't  know 
how  it  struck  the  others :  to  me  it  seemed  as  though 
the  mist  itself  had  screamed,  so  suddenly,  and  ap- 
parently from  all  sides  at  once,  did  this  tumultuous 
and  mournful  uproar  arise.  It  culminated  in  a 
hurried  outbreak  of  almost  intolerably  excessive 
shrieking,  which  stopped  short,  leaving  us  stiffened 
in  a  variety  of  silly  attitudes,  and  obstinately  listen- 
ing to  the  nearly  as  appalling  and  excessive  silence. 
'  Good  God  !  What  is  the  meaning ? '  stam- 
mered at  my  elbow  one  of  the  pilgrims, — a  little 
fat  man,  with  sandy  hair  and  red  whiskers,  who 
wore  side-spring  boots,   and   pink   pyjamas    tucked 


116  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

into  his  socks.  Two  others  remained  open-mouthed 
a  whole  minute,  then  dashed  into  the  little  cabin, 
to  rush  out  incontinently  and  stand  darting  scared 
glances,  with  Winchesters  at  '  ready '  in  their  hands. 
What  we  could  see  was  just  the  steamer  we  were 
on,  her  outlines  blurred  as  though  she  had  been  on 
the  point  of  dissolving,  and  a  misty  strip  of  water, 
perhaps  two  feet  broad,  around  her — and  that  was 
all.  The  rest  of  the  world  was  nowhere,  as  far  as 
our  eyes  and  ears  were  concerned.  Just  nowhere. 
Gone,  disappeared ;  swept  off  without  leaving  a 
whisper  or  a  shadow  behind. 

"I  went  forward,  and  ordered  the  chain  to  be 
hauled  in  short,  so  as  to  be  ready  to  trip  the 
anchor  and  move  the  steamboat  at  once  if  neces- 
sary. '  Will  they  attack  ? '  whispered  an  awed  voice. 
'We  will  be  all  butchered  in  this  fog,'  murmured 
another.  The  faces  twitched  with  the  strain,  the 
hands  trembled  slightly,  the  eyes  forgot  to  wink. 
It  was  very  curious  to  see  the  contrast  of  expres- 
sions of  the  white  men  and  of  the  black  fellows 
of  our  crew,  who  were  as  much  strangers  to  that 
part  of  the  river  as  we,  though  their  homes  were 
only  eight  hundred  miles  away.  The  whites,  of 
course  greatly  discomposed,  had  besides  a  curious 
look  of  being  painfully  shocked  by  such  an  outra- 
geous row.  The  others  had  an  alert,  naturally  inter- 
ested expression ;  but  their  faces  were  essentially 
quiet,  even  those  of  the  one  or  two  who  grinned 
as  they  hauled  at  the  chain.  Several  exchanged 
short,  grunting  phrases,  which  seemed  to  settle  the 
matter  to  their  satisfaction.  Their  headman,  a 
young,    broad  -  chested    black,    severely   draped    in 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  117 

dark -blue  fringed  cloths,  with  fierce  nostrils  and 
his  hair  all  done  up  artfully  in  oily  ringlets,  stood 
near  me.  'Aha!'  I  said,  just  for  good  fellowship's 
sake.  'Catch  'im,'  he  snapped,  with  a  bloodshot 
widening  of  his  eyes  and  a  flash  of  sharp  teeth — 
'catch  'im.  Give  'im  to  us.'  'To  you,  eh?'  I 
asked;  'what  would  you  do  with  them?'  'Eat 
'im ! '  he  said,  curtly,  and,  leaning  his  elbow  on  the 
rail,  looked  out  into  the  fog  in  a  dignified  and  pro- 
foundly pensive  attitude.  I  would  no  doubt  have 
been  properly  horrified,  had  it  not  occurred  to  me 
that  he  and  his  chaps  must  be  very  hungry :  that 
they  must  have  been  growing  increasingly  hungry 
for  at  least  this  month  past.  They  had  been  en- 
gaged for  six  months  (I  don't  think  a  single  one 
of  them  had  any  clear  idea  of  time,  as  we  at  the 
end  of  countless  ages  have.  They  still  belonged 
to  the  beginnings  of  time  —  had  no  inherited  ex- 
perience to  teach  them  as  it  were),  and  of  course, 
as  long  as  there  was  a  piece  of  paper  written  over 
in  accordance  with  some  farcical  law  or  other  made 
down  the  river,  it  didn't  enter  anybody's  head  to 
trouble  how  they  would  live.  Certainly  they  had 
brought  with  them  some  rotten  hippo-meat,  which 
couldn't  have  lasted  very  long,  anyway,  even  if  the 
pilgrims  hadn't,  in  the  midst  of  a  shocking  hulla- 
baloo, thrown  a  considerable  quantity  of  it  over- 
board. It  looked  like  a  high-handed  proceeding; 
but  it  was  really  a  case  of  legitimate  self-defence. 
You  can't  breathe  dead  hippo  waking,  sleeping,  and 
eating,  and  at  the  same  time  keep  your  precarious 
grip  on  existence.  Besides  that,  they  had  given 
them  every  week  three  pieces  of  brass  wire,  each 


118  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

about  nine  inches  long;  and  the  theory  was  they 
were  to  buy  their  provisions  with  that  currency  in 
river-side  villages.  You  can  see  how  that  worked. 
There  were  either  no  villages,  or  the  people  were 
hostile,  or  the  director,  who  like  the  rest  of  us  fed 
out  of  tins,  with  an  occasional  old  he-goat  thrown 
in,  didn't  want  to  stop  the  steamer  for  some  more 
or  less  recondite  reason.  So,  unless  they  swallowed 
the  wire  itself,  or  made  loops  of  it  to  snare  the 
fishes  with,  I  don't  see  what  good  their  extravagant 
salary  could  be  to  them.  I  must  say  it  was  paid 
with  a  regularity  worthy  of  a  large  and  honourable 
trading  company.  For  the  rest,  the  only  thing  to 
eat — though  it  didn't  look  eatable  in  the  least — I 
saw  in  their  possession  was  a  few  lumps  of  some 
stuff  like  half -cooked  dough,  of  a  dirty  lavender 
colour,  they  kept  wrapped  in  leaves,  and  now  and 
then  swallowed  a  piece  of,  but  so  small  that  it 
seemed  done  more  for  the  looks  of  the  thing  than 
for  any  serious  purpose  of  sustenance.  Why  in 
the  name  of  all  the  gnawing  devils  of  hunger  they 
didn't  go  for  us — they  were  thirty  to  five — and 
have  a  good  tuck  in  for  once,  amazes  me  now 
when  I  think  of  it.  They  were  big  powerful  men, 
with  not  much  capacity  to  weigh  the  consequences, 
with  courage,  with  strength,  even  yet,  though  their 
skins  were  no  longer  glossy  and  their  muscles  no 
longer  hard.  And  I  saw  that  something  restraining, 
one  of  those  human  secrets  that  baffle  probability, 
had  come  into  play  there.  I  looked  at  them  with 
a  swift  quickening  of  interest  —  not  because  it 
occurred  to  me  I  might  be  eaten  by  them  before 
very  long,  though  I  own  to  you  that  just  then  I 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  119 

perceived — in  a  new  light,  as  it  were — how  un- 
wholesome the  pilgrims  looked,  and  I  hoped,  yes, 
I  positively  hoped,  that  my  aspect  was  not  so — 
what  shall  I  say  ? — so — unappetising :  a  touch  of 
fantastic  vanity  which  fitted  well  with  the  dream- 
sensation  that  pervaded  all  my  days  at  that  time. 
Perhaps  I  had  a  little  fever  too.  One  can't  live 
with  one's  finger  everlastingly  on  one's  pulse.  I 
had  often  'a  little  fever,'  or  a  little  touch  of  other 
things — the  playful  paw-strokes  of  the  wilderness, 
the  preliminary  trifling  before  the  more  serious 
onslaught  which  came  in  due  course.  Yes;  I 
looked  at  them  as  you  would  on  any  human  being, 
with  a  curiosity  of  their  impulses,  motives,  capaci- 
ties, weaknesses,  when  brought  to  the  test  of  an 
inexorable  physical  necessity.  Restraint !  What 
possible  restraint?  Was  it  superstition,  disgust, 
patience,  fear — or  some  kind  of  primitive  honour? 
No  fear  can  stand  up  to  hunger,  no  patience  can 
wear  it  out,  disgust  simply  does  not  exist  where 
hunger  is;  and  as  to  superstition,  beliefs,  and  what 
you  may  call  principles,  they  are  less  than  chaff  in 
a  breeze.  Don't  you  know  the  devilry  of  linger- 
ing starvation,  its  exasperating  torment,  its  black 
thoughts,  its  sombre  and  brooding  ferocity?  Well, 
I  do.  It  takes  a  man  all  his  inborn  strength  to 
fight  hunger  properly.  It's  really  easier  to  face 
bereavement,  dishonour,  and  the  perdition  of  one's 
soul  —  than  this  kind  of  prolonged  hunger.  Sad, 
but  true.  And  these  chaps  too  had  no  earthly 
reason  for  any  kind  of  scruple.  Restraint !  I 
would  just  as  soon  have  expected  restraint  from  a 
hyena  prowling  amongst  the  corpses  of  a  battlefield. 


120  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

But  there  was  the  fact  facing  me — the  fact  dazzling, 
to  be  seen,  like  the  foam  on  the  depths  of  the  sea, 
like  a  ripple  on  an  unfathomable  enigma,  a  mystery- 
greater — when  I  thought  of  it — than  the  curious, 
inexplicable  note  of  desperate  grief  in  this  savage 
clamour  that  had  swept  by  us  on  the  river-bank, 
behind  the  blind  whiteness  of  the  fog. 

"  Two  pilgrims  were  quarrelling  in  hurried  whispers 
as  to  which  bank.  '  Left.'  ■  No,  no  ;  how  can  you  ? 
Right,  right,  of  course.'  'It  is  very  serious,'  said  the 
manager's  voice  behind  me ;  '  I  would  be  desolated  if 
anything  should  happen  to  Mr  Kurtz  before  we  came 
up.'  I  looked  at  him,  and  had  not  the  slightest 
doubt  he  was  sincere.  He  was  just  the  kind  of  man 
who  would  wish  to  preserve  appearances.  That  was 
his  restraint.  But  when  he  muttered  something 
about  going  on  at  once,  I  did  not  even  take  the 
trouble  to  answer  him.  I  knew,  and  he  knew,  that 
it  was  impossible.  Were  we  to  let  go  our  hold  of 
the  bottom,  we  would  be  absolutely  in  the  air — 
in  space.  We  wouldn't  be  able  to  tell  where  we 
were  going  to  —  whether  up  or  down  stream,  or 
across  —  till  we  fetched  against  one  bank  or  the 
other, — and  then  we  wouldn't  know  at  first  which 
it  was.  Of  course  I  made  no  move.  I  had  no  mind 
for  a  smash -up.  You  couldn't  imagine  a  more 
deadly  place  for  a  shipwreck.  Whether  drowned 
at  once  or  not,  we  were  sure  to  perish  speedily  in 
one  way  or  another.  '  I  authorise  you  to  take  all 
the  risks,'  he  said,  after  a  short  silence.  'I  refuse 
to  take  any,'  I  said  shortly ;  which  was  just  the 
answer  he  expected,  though  its  tone  might  have 
surprised  him.     'Well,  I  must  defer  to  your  judg- 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  121 

ment.  You  are  captain,'  he  said,  with  marked 
civility.  I  turned  my  shoulder  to  him  in  sign  of 
my  appreciation,  and  looked  into  the  fog.  How 
long  would  it  last  ?  It  was  the  most  hopeless  look- 
out. The  approach  to  this  Kurtz  grubbing  for  ivory 
in  the  wretched  bush  was  beset  by  as  many  dangers 
as  though  he  had  been  an  enchanted  princess  sleep- 
ing in  a  fabulous  castle.  *  Will  they  attack,  do  you 
think  ?  '  asked  the  manager,  in  a  confidential  tone. 

"I  did  not  think  they  would  attack,  for  several 
obvious  reasons.  The  thick  fog  was  one.  If  they 
left  the  bank  in  their  canoes  they  would  get  lost 
in  it,  as  we  would  be  if  we  attempted  to  move. 
Still,  I  had  also  judged  the  jungle  of  both  banks 
quite  impenetrable — and  yet  eyes  were  in  it,  eyes 
that  had  seen  us.  The  river-side  bushes  were 
certainly  very  thick;  but  the  undergrowth  behind 
was  evidently  penetrable.  However,  during  the 
short  lift  I  had  seen  no  canoes  anywhere  in  the 
reach — certainly  not  abreast  of  the  steamer.  But 
what  made  the  idea  of  attack  inconceivable  to  me 
was  the  nature  of  the  noise — of  the  cries  we  had 
heard.  They  had  not  the  fierce  character  boding  of 
immediate  hostile  intention.  Unexpected,  wild,  and 
violent  as  they  had  been,  they  had  given  me  an 
irresistible  impression  of  sorrow.  The  glimpse  of  the 
steamboat  had  for  some  reason  filled  those  savages 
with  unrestrained  grief.  The  danger,  if  any,  I  ex- 
pounded, was  from  our  proximity  to  a  great  human 
passion  let  loose.  Even  extreme  grief  may  ultimately 
vent  itself  in  violence — but  more  generally  takes  the 
form  of  apathy.  .  .  . 

"  You  should  have  seen  the  pilgrims  stare  !     They 


122  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

had  no  heart  to  grin,  or  even  to  revile  me;  but  I 
believe  they  thought  me  gone  mad — with  fright, 
maybe.  I  delivered  a  regular  lecture.  My  dear 
boys,  it  was  no  good  bothering.  Keep  a  look-out? 
"Well,  you  may  guess  I  watched  the  fog  for  the 
signs  of  lifting  as  a  cat  watches  a  mouse;  but  for 
anything  else  our  eyes  were  of  no  more  use  to  us 
than  if  we  had  been  buried  miles  deep  in  a  heap 
of  cotton- wool.  It  felt  like  it  too — choking,  warm, 
stifling.  Besides,  all  I  said,  though  it  sounded  ex- 
travagant, was  absolutely  true  to  fact.  What  we 
afterwards  alluded  to  as  an  attack  was  really  an 
attempt  at  repulse.  The  action  was  very  far  from 
being  aggressive — it  was  not  even  defensive,  in  the 
usual  sense :  it  was  undertaken  under  the  stress  of 
desperation,  and  in  its  essence  was  purely  protective. 
"  It  developed  itself,  I  should  say,  two  hours  after 
the  fog  lifted,  and  its  commencement  was  at  a  spot, 
roughly  speaking,  about  a  mile  and  a  half  below 
Kurtz's  station.  We  had  just  floundered  and  flopped 
round  a  bend,  when  I  saw  an  islet,  a  mere  grassy 
hummock  of  bright  green,  in  the  middle  of  the 
stream.  It  was  the  only  thing  of  the  kind;  but 
as  we  opened  the  reach  more,  I  perceived  it  was  the 
head  of  a  long  sandbank,  or  rather  of  a  chain  of 
shallow  patches  stretching  down  the  middle  of  the 
river.  They  were  discoloured,  just  awash,  and  the 
whole  lot  was  seen  just  under  the  water,  exactly 
as  a  man's  backbone  is  seen  running  down  the 
middle  of  his  back  under  the  skin.  Now,  as  far 
as  I  did  see,  I  could  go  to  the  right  or  to  the  left 
of  this.  I  didn't  know  either  channel,  of  course. 
The  banks  looked  pretty  well  alike,  the  depth  ap- 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  123 

peared  the  same ;  but  as  I  had  been  informed  the 
station  was  on  the  west  side,  I  naturally  headed  for 
the  western  passage. 

"No  sooner  had  we  fairly  entered  it  than  I  be- 
came aware  it  was  much  narrower  than  I  had 
supposed.  To  the  left  of  us  there  was  the  long 
uninterrupted  shoal,  and  to  the  right  a  high,  steep 
bank  heavily  overgrown  with  bushes.  Above  the 
bush  the  trees  stood  in  serried  ranks.  The  twigs 
overhung  the  current  thickly,  and  from  distance  to 
distance  a  large  limb  of  some  tree  projected  rigidly 
over  the  stream.  It  was  then  well  on  in  the  after- 
noon, the  face  of  the  forest  was  gloomy,  and  a  broad 
strip  of  shadow  had  already  fallen  on  the  water.  In 
this  shadow  we  steamed  up — very  slowly,  as  you 
may  imagine.  I  sheered  her  well  inshore — the  water 
being  deepest  near  the  bank,  as  the  sounding-pole 
informed  me. 

"One  of  my  hungry  and  forbearing  friends  was 
sounding  in  the  bows  just  below  me.  This  steam- 
boat was  exactly  like  a  decked  scow.  On  the  deck 
there  were  two  little  teak-wood  houses,  with  doors 
and  windows.  The  boiler  was  in  the  fore-end,  and 
the  machinery  right  astern.  Over  the  whole  there 
was  a  light  roof,  supported  on  stanchions.  The  fun- 
nel projected  through  that  roof,  and  in  front  of  the 
funnel  a  small  cabin  built  of  light  planks  served  for 
a  pilot-house.  It  contained  a  couch,  two  camp- 
stools,  a  loaded  Martini-Henry  leaning  in  one  corner, 
a  tiny  table,  and  the  steering-wheel.  It  had  a  wide 
door  in  front  and  a  broad  shutter  at  each  side.  All 
these  were  always  thrown  open,  of  course.  I  spent 
my  days  perched  up  there  on  the  extreme  fore-end 


124  HEABT  OF  DARKNESS. 

of  that  roof,  before  the  door.  At  night  I  slept,  or 
tried  to,  on  the  couch.  An  athletic  black  belonging 
to  some  coast  tribe,  and  educated  by  my  poor  pre- 
decessor, was  the  helmsman.  He  sported  a  pair  of 
brass  earrings,  wore  a  blue  cloth  wrapper  from  the 
waist  to  the  ankles,  and  thought  all  the  world  of 
himself.  He  was  the  most  unstable  kind  of  fool  I 
had  ever  seen.  He  steered  with  no  end  of  a  swagger 
while  you  were  by;  but  if  he  lost  sight  of  you,  he 
became  instantly  the  prey  of  an  abject  funk,  and 
would  let  that  cripple  of  a  steamboat  get  the  upper 
hand  of  him  in  a  minute. 

"I  was  looking  down  at  the  sounding-pole,  and 
feeling  much  annoyed  to  see  at  each  try  a  little  more 
of  it  stick  out  of  that  river,  when  I  saw  my  poleman 
give  up  the  business  suddenly,  and  stretch  himself 
flat  on  the  deck,  without  even  taking  the  trouble  to 
haul  his  pole  in.  He  kept  hold  on  it  though,  and  it 
trailed  in  the  water.  At  the  same  time  the  fireman, 
whom  I  could  also  see  below  me,  sat  down  abruptly 
before  his  furnace  and  ducked  his  head.  I  was 
amazed.  Then  I  had  to  look  at  the  river  mighty 
quick,  because  there  was  a  snag  in  the  fairway. 
Sticks,  little  sticks,  were  flying  about — thick :  they 
were  whizzing  before  my  nose,  dropping  below  me, 
striking  behind  me  against  my  pilot-house.  All 
this  time  the  river,  the  shore,  the  woods,  were  very 
quiet — perfectly  quiet.  I  could  only  hear  the  heavy 
splashing  thump  of  the  stern-wheel  and  the  patter 
of  these  things.  We  cleared  the  snag  clumsily. 
Arrows,  by  Jove !  We  were  being  shot  at !  I 
stepped  in  quickly  to  close  the  shutter  on  the  land- 
side.     That  fool-helmsman,  his  hands  on  the  spokes, 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  125 

was  lifting  his  knees  high,  stamping  his  feet,  champ- 
ing his  mouth,  like  a  reined -in  horse.  Confound 
him !  And  we  were  staggering  within  ten  feet  of 
the  bank.  I  had  to  lean  right  out  to  swing  the 
heavy  shutter,  and  I  saw  a  face  amongst  the  leaves 
on  the  level  with  my  own,  looking  at  me  very  fierce 
and  steady ;  and  then  suddenly,  as  though  a  veil  had 
been  removed  from  my  eyes,  I  made  out,  deep  in  the 
tangled  gloom,  naked  breasts,  arms,  legs,  glaring 
eyes, — the  bush  was  swarming  with  human  limbs  in 
movement,  glistening,  of  bronze  colour.  The  twigs 
shook,  swayed,  and  rustled,  the  arrows  flew  out  of 
them,  and  then  the  shutter  came  to.  *  Steer  her 
straight,'  I  said  to  the  helmsman.  He  held  his  head 
rigid,  face  forward;  but  his  eyes  rolled,  he  kept  on 
lifting  and  setting  down  his  feet  gently,  his  mouth 
foamed  a  little.  '  Keep  quiet ! '  I  said  in  a  fury. 
I  might  just  as  well  have  ordered  a  tree  not  to 
sway  in  the  wind.  I  darted  out.  Below  me  there 
was  a  great  scuffle  of  feet  on  the  iron  deck;  con- 
fused exclamations ;  a  voice  screamed,  '  Can  you  turn 
back  ? '  I  caught  sight  of  a  V-shaped  ripple  on  the 
water  ahead.  What  ?  Another  snag !  A  fusillade 
burst  out  under  my  feet.  The  pilgrims  had  opened 
with  their  Winchesters,  and  were  simply  squirting 
lead  into  that  bush.  A  deuce  of  a  lot  of  smoke  came 
up  and  drove  slowly  forward.  I  swore  at  it.  Now 
I  couldn't  see  the  ripple  or  the  snag  either.  I  stood 
in  the  doorway,  peering,  and  the  arrows  came  in 
swarms.  They  might  have  been  poisoned,  but  they 
looked  as  though  they  wouldn't  kill  a  cat.  The  bush 
began  to  howl.  Our  wood-cutters  raised  a  warlike 
whoop  ;  the  report  of  a  rifle  just  at  my  back  deafened 


126  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

me.  I  glanced  over  my  shoulder,  and  the  pilot- 
house was  yet  full  of  noise  and  smoke  when  I  made 
a  dash  at  the  wheel.  The  fool-nigger  had  dropped 
everything,  to  throw  the  shutter  open  and  let  off 
that  Martini  -  Henry.  He  stood  before  the  wide 
opening,  glaring,  and  I  yelled  at  him  to  come  back, 
while  I  straightened  the  sudden  twist  out  of  that 
steamboat.  There  was  no  room  to  turn  even  if  I  had 
wanted  to,  the  snag  was  somewhere  very  near  ahead 
in  that  confounded  smoke,  there  was  no  time  to  lose, 
so  I  just  crowded  her  into  the  bank — right  into  the 
bank,  where  I  knew  the  water  was  deep. 

"  We  tore  slowly  along  the  overhanging  bushes 
in  a  whirl  of  broken  twigs  and  flying  leaves.  The 
fusillade  below  stopped  short,  as  I  had  foreseen  it 
would  when  the  squirts  got  empty.  I  threw  my 
head  back  to  a  glinting  whizz  that  traversed  the 
pilot-house,  in  at  one  shutter-hole  and  out  at  the 
other.  Looking  past  that  mad  helmsman,  who  was 
shaking  the  empty  rifle  and  yelling  at  the  shore,  I 
saw  vague  forms  of  men  running  bent  double,  leap- 
ing, gliding,  distinct,  incomplete,  evanescent.  Some- 
thing big  appeared  in  the  air  before  the  shutter,  the 
rifle  went  overboard,  and  the  man  stepped  back 
swiftly,  looked  at  me  over  his  shoulder  in  an  extra- 
ordinary, profound,  familiar  manner,  and  fell  upon 
my  feet.  The  side  of  his  head  hit  the  wheel  twice, 
and  the  end  of  what  appeared  a  long  cane  clattered 
round  and  knocked  over  a  little  camp-stool.  It 
looked  as  though  after  wrenching  that  thing  from 
somebody  ashore  he  had  lost  his  balance  in  the  effort. 
The  thin  smoke  had  blown  away,  we  were  clear  of  the 
snag,  and  looking  ahead  I  could  see  that  in  another 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  127 

hundred  yards  or  so  I  would  be  free  to  sheer  off, 
away  from  the  bank  ;  but  my  feet  felt  so  very  warm 
and  wet  that  I  had  to  look  down.  The  man  had 
rolled  on  his  back  and  stared  straight  up  at  me ;  both 
his  hands  clutched  that  cane.  It  was  the  shaft  of  a 
spear  that,  either  thrown  or  lounged  through  the 
opening,  had  caught  him  in  the  side  just  below  the 
ribs  ;  the  blade  had  gone  in  out  of  sight,  after  making 
a  frightful  gash ;  my  shoes  were  full ;  a  pool  of 
blood  lay  very  still,  gleaming  dark-red  under  the 
wheel ;  his  eyes  shone  with  an  amazing  lustre.  The 
fusillade  burst  out  again.  He  looked  at  me  anxiously, 
gripping  the  spear  like  something  precious,  with  an 
air  of  being  afraid  I  would  try  to  take  it  away  from 
him.  I  had  to  make  an  effort  to  free  my  eyes  from 
his  gaze  and  attend  to  the  steering.  With  one  hand 
I  felt  above  my  head  for  the  line  of  the  steam- whistle, 
and  jerked  out  screech  after  screech  hurriedly.  The 
tumult  of  angry  and  warlike  yells  was  checked 
instantly,  and  then  from  the  depths  of  the  woods 
went  out  such  a  tremulous  and  prolonged  wail  of 
mournful  fear  and  utter  despair  as  may  be  imagined 
to  follow  the  flight  of  the  last  hope  from  the  earth. 
There  was  a  great  commotion  in  the  bush;  the 
shower  of  arrows  stopped,  a  few  dropping  shots  rang 
out  sharply — then  silence,  in  which  the  languid  beat 
of  the  stern-wheel  came  plainly  to  my  ears.  I  put 
the  helm  hard  a-starboard  at  the  moment  when 
the  pilgrim  in  pink  pyjamas,  very  hot  and  agi- 
tated,   appeared   in    the   doorway.       'The   manager 

sends   me '    he   began   in   an    official   tone,   and 

stopped  short.  '  Good  God  ! '  he  said,  glaring  at 
the  wounded  man. 


128  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

"  We  two  whites  stood  over  him,  and  his  lustrous 
and  inquiring  glance  enveloped  us  both.  I  declare 
it  looked  as  though  he  would  presently  put  to  us 
some  question  in  an  understandable  language;  but 
he  died  without  uttering  a  sound,  without  moving  a 
limb,  without  twitching  a  muscle.  Only  in  the  very 
last  moment,  as  though  in  response  to  some  sign  we 
could  not  see,  to  some  whisper  we  could  not  hear,  he 
frowned  heavily,  and  that  frown  gave  to  his  black 
death-mask  an  inconceivably  sombre,  brooding,  and- 
menacing  expression.  The  lustre  of  inquiring  glance 
faded  swiftly  into  vacant  glassiness.  'Can  you 
steer  ? '  I  asked  the  agent  eagerly.  He  looked  very 
dubious ;  but  I  made  a  grab  at  his  arm,  and  he 
understood  at  once  I  meant  him  to  steer  whether  or 
no.  To  tell  you  the  truth,  I  was  morbidly  anxious 
to  change  my  shoes  and  socks.  'He  is  dead,'  mur- 
mured the  fellow,  immensely  impressed.  '  No  doubt 
about  it,'  said  I,  tugging  like  mad  at  the  shoe-laces. 
'And,  by  the  way,  I  suppose  Mr  Kurtz  is  dead  as 
well  by  this  time.' 

"  For  the  moment  that  was  the  dominant  thought. 
There  was  a  sense  of  extreme  disappointment,  as 
though  I  had  found  out  I  had  been  striving  after 
something  altogether  without  a  substance.  I  couldn't 
have  been  more  disgusted  if  I  had  travelled  all  this 
way  for  the  sole  purpose  of  talking  with  Mr  Kurtz. 
Talking  with.  ...  I  flung  one  shoe  overboard,  and 
became  aware  that  that  was  exactly  what  I  had  been 
looking  forward  to — a  talk  with  Kurtz.  I  made  the 
strange  discovery  that  I  had  never  imagined  him  as 
doing,  you  know,  but  as  discoursing.  I  didn't  say 
to  myself,  '  Now  I  will  never  see  him,'  or  '  Now  I  will 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  129 

never  shake  him  by  the  hand,'  but,  'Now  I  will 
never  hear  him.'  The  man  presented  himself  as  a 
voice.  Not  of  course  that  I  did  not  connect  him  with 
some  sort  of  action.  Hadn't  I  been  told  in  all  the 
tones  of  jealousy  and  admiration  that  he  had  col- 
lected, bartered,  swindled,  or  stolen  more  ivory  than 
all  the  other  agents  together.  That  was  not  the 
point.  The  point  was  in  his  being  a  gifted  creature, 
and  that  of  all  his  gifts  the  one  that  stood  out  pre- 
eminently, that  carried  with  it  a  sense  of  real  pres- 
ence, was  his  ability  to  talk,  his  words — the  gift  of 
expression,  the  bewildering,  the  illuminating,  the 
most  exalted  and  the  most  contemptible,  the  pul- 
sating stream  of  light,  or  the  deceitful  flow  from  the 
heart  of  an  impenetrable  darkness. 

"  The  other  shoe  went  flying  unto  the  devil-god  of 
that  river.  I  thought,  By  Jove !  it's  all  over.  We 
are  too  late ;  he  has  vanished — the  gift  has  vanished, 
by  means  of  some  spear,  arrow,  or  club.  I  will  never 
hear  that  chap  speak  after  all, — and  my  sorrow  had 
a  startling  extravagance  of  emotion,  even  such  as  I 
had  noticed  in  the  howling  sorrow  of  these  savages 
in  the  bush.  I  couldn't  have  felt  more  of  lonely 
desolation  somehow,  had  I  been  robbed  of  a  belief  or 
had  missed  my  destiny  in  life.  .  .  .  Why  do  you  sigh 
in   this   beastly   way,    somebody?     Absurd?     Well, 

absurd.      Good    Lord !     mustn't    a    man    ever 

Here,  give  me  some  tobacco."     .     .     . 

There  was  a  pause  of  profound  stillness,  then  a 
match  flared,  and  Marlow's  lean  face  appeared,  worn, 
hollow,  with  downward  folds  and  dropped  eyelids, 
with  an  aspect  of  concentrated  attention ;  and  as 
he  took  vigorous  draws  at  his  pipe,  it  seemed  to 

I 


130  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

retreat  and  advance  out  of  the  night  in  the  regular 
flicker  of  the  tiny  flame.     The  match  went  out. 

"Absurd  !  "  he  cried.  "  This  is  the  worst  of  trying 
to  tell.  .  .  .  Here  you  all  are,  each  moored  with 
two  good  addresses,  like  a  hulk  with  two  anchors,  a 
butcher  round  one  corner,  a  policeman  round  an- 
other, excellent  appetites,  and  temperature  normal 
— you  hear  —  normal  from  year's  end  to  year's 
end.  And  you  say,  Absurd  !  Absurd  be — exploded  ! 
Absurd !  My  dear  boys,  what  can  you  expect  from 
a  man  who  out  of  sheer  nervousness  had  just  flung 
overboard  a  pair  of  new  shoes.  Now  I  think  of  it, 
it  is  amazing  I  did  not  shed  tears.  I  am,  upon  the 
whole,  proud  of  my  fortitude.  I  was  cut  to  the 
quick  at  the  idea  of  having  lost  the  inestimable 
privilege  of  listening  to  the  gifted  Kurtz.  Of  course 
I  was  wrong.  The  privilege  was  waiting  for  me. 
Oh  yes,  I  heard  more  than  enough.  And  I  was 
right,  too.  A  voice.  He  was  very  little  more  than 
a  voice.  And  I  heard — him — it — this  voice — other 
voices — all  of  them  were  so  little  more  than  voices — 
and  the  memory  of  that  time  itself  lingers  around 
me,  impalpable,  like  a  dying  vibration  of  one  immense 
jabber,  silly,  atrocious,  sordid,  savage,  or  simply 
mean,  without  any  kind  of  sense.  Voices,  voices — 
even  the  girl  herself — now " 

He  was  silent  for  a  long  time. 

"I  laid  the  ghost  of  his  gifts  at  last  with  a  lie,"  he 
began  suddenly.  "  Girl !  What  ?  Did  I  mention  a 
girl  ?  Oh,  she  is  out  of  it — completely.  They — the 
women  I  mean — are  out  of  it — should  be  out  of  it. 
We  must  help  them  to  stay  in  that  beautiful  world  of 
their  own,  lest  ours  gets  worse.     Oh,  she  had  to  be 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  131 

out  of  it.  You  should  have  heard  the  disinterred 
body  of  Mr  Kurtz  saying,  'My  Intended.'  You 
would  have  perceived  directly  then  how  completely 
she  was  out  of  it.  And  the  lofty  frontal  bone  of  Mr 
Kurtz !  They  say  the  hair  goes  on  growing  some- 
times, but  this  —  ah  —  specimen,  was  impressively 
bald.  The  wilderness  had  patted  him  on  the  head, 
and,  behold,  it  was  like  a  ball — an  ivory  ball ;  it  had 
caressed  him,  and — lo  ! — he  had  withered;  it  had 
taken  him,  loved  him,  embraced  him,  got  into  his 
veins,  consumed  his  flesh,  and  sealed  his  soul  to  its 
own  by  the  inconceivable  ceremonies  of  some  devil- 
ish initiation.  He  was  its  spoiled  and  pampered 
favourite.  Ivory  ?  I  should  think  so.  Heaps  of  it, 
stacks  of  it.  The  old  mud  shanty  was  bursting  with 
it.  You  would  think  there  was  not  a  single  tusk  left 
either  above  or  below  the  ground  in  the  whole  coun- 
try. '  Mostly  fossil,'  the  manager  had  remarked  dis- 
paragingly. It  was  no  more  fossil  than  I  am ;  but 
they  call  it  fossil  when  it  is  dug  up.  It  appears  these 
niggers  do  bury  the  tusks  sometimes — but  evidently 
they  couldn't  bury  this  parcel  deep  enough  to  save 
the  gifted  Mr  Kurtz  from  his  fate.  We  filled  the 
steamboat  with  it,  and  had  to  pile  a  lot  on  the  deck. 
Thus  he  could  see  and  enjoy  as  long  as  he  could  see, 
because  the  appreciation  of  this  favour  had  remained 
with  him  to  the  last.  You  should  have  heard  him 
say,  'My  ivory.'  Oh  yes,  I  heard  him.  'My  In- 
tended,   my   ivory,   my  station,   my   river,  my ' 

everything  belonged  to  him.  It  made  me  hold  my 
breath  in  expectation  of  hearing  the  wilderness  burst 
into  a  prodigious  peal  of  laughter  that  would  shake 
the  fixed  stars  in  their  places.     Everything  belonged 


132  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

to  him — but  that  was  a  trifle.  The  thing  was  to 
know  what  he  belonged  to,  how  many  powers  of 
darkness  claimed  him  for  their  own.  That  was  the 
reflection  that  made  you  creepy  all  over.  It  was 
impossible — it  was  not  good  for  one  either — trying 
to  imagine.  He  had  taken  a  high  seat  amongst 
the  devils  of  the  land — I  mean  literally.  You  can't 
understand.  How  could  you  ? — with  solid  pavement 
under  your  feet,  surrounded  by  kind  neighbours 
ready  to  cheer  you  or  to  fall  on  you,  stepping  deli- 
cately between  the  butcher  and  the  policeman,  in  the 
holy  terror  of  scandal  and  gallows  and  lunatic 
asylums  —  how  can  you  imagine  what  particular 
region  of  the  first  ages  a  man's  untrammelled  feet 
may  take  him  into  by  the  way  of  solitude — utter 
solitude  without  a  policeman — by  the  way  of  silence 
— utter  silence,  where  no  warning  voice  of  a  kind 
neighbour  can  be  heard  whispering  of  public  opinion  ? 
These  little  things  make  all  the  great  difference. 
When  they  are  gone  you  must  fall  back  upon  your 
own  innate  strength,  upon  your  own  capacity  for 
faithfulness.  Of  course  you  may  be  too  much  of  a 
fool  to  go  wrong — too  dull  even  to  know  you  are 
being  assaulted  by  the  powers  of  darkness.  I  take 
it,  no  fool  ever  made  a  bargain  for  his  soul  with  the 
devil :  the  fool  is  too  much  of  a  fool,  or  the  devil  too 
much  of  a  devil — I  don't  know  which.  Or  you  may 
be  such  a  thunderingly  exalted  creature  as  to  be 
altogether  deaf  and  blind  to  anything  but  heavenly 
sights  and  sounds.  Then  the  earth  for  you  is  only 
a  standing  place — and  whether  to  be  like  this  is  your 
loss  or  your  gain  I  won't  pretend  to  say.  But  most 
of  us  are   neither   one   nor   the  other.      The   earth 


HEART  OP  DARKNESS.  133 

for  us  is  a  place  to  live  in,  where  we  must  put  up 
with  sights,  with  sounds,  with  smells  too,  by  Jove ! — 
breathe  dead  hippo,  so  to  speak,  and  not  be  contam- 
inated. And  there,  don't  you  see?  your  strength 
comes  in,  the  faith  in  your  ability  for  the  digging  of 
unostentatious  holes  to  bury  the  stuff  in  —  your 
power  of  devotion,  not  to  yourself,  but  to  an  obscure, 
back-breaking  business.  And  that's  difficult  enough. 
Mind,  I  am  not  trying  to  excuse  or  even  explain — I 
am  trying  to  account  to  myself  for — for — Mr  Kurtz 
— for  the  shade  of  Mr  Kurtz.  This  initiated  wraith 
from  the  back  of  Nowhere  honoured  me  with  its 
amazing  confidence  before  it  vanished  altogether. 
This  was  because  it  could  speak  English  to  me.  The 
original  Kurtz  had  been  educated  partly  in  England, 
and — as  he  was  good  enough  to  say  himself — his 
sympathies  were  in  the  right  place.  His  mother 
was  half-English,  his  father  was  half-French.  All 
Europe  contributed  to  the  making  of  Kurtz;  and 
by-and-by  I  learned  that,  most  appropriately,  the 
International  Society  for  the  Suppression  of  Savage 
Customs  had  intrusted  him  with  the  making  of 
a  report,  for  its  future  guidance.  And  he  had 
written  it  too.  I've  seen  it.  I've  read  it.  It  was 
eloquent,  vibrating  with  eloquence,  but  too  high- 
strung,  I  think.  Seventeen  pages  of  close  writing 
he  had  found  time  for !  But  this  must  have  been 
before  his  —  let  us  say  —  nerves,  went  wrong,  and 
caused  him  to  preside  at  certain  midnight  dances 
ending  with  unspeakable  rites,  which — as  far  as  I 
reluctantly  gathered  from  what  I  heard  at  various 
times — were  offered  up  to  him— do  you  understand  ? 
— to  Mr  Kurtz  himself.       But  it   was    a  beautiful 


134  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

piece  of  writing.  The  opening  paragraph,  however, 
in  the  light  of  later  information,  strikes  me  now  as 
ominous.  He  began  with  the  argument  that  we 
whites,  from  the  point  of  development  we  had  ar- 
rived at,  '  must  necessarily  appear  to  them  [savages] 
in  the  nature  of  supernatural  beings — we  approach 
them  with  the  might  as  of  a  deity,'  and  so  on,  and  so 
on.  'By  the  simple  exercise  of  our  will  we  can 
exert  a  power  for  good  practically  unbounded,'  &c, 
&c.  From  that  point  he  soared  and  took  me  with 
him.  The  peroration  was  magnificent,  though  diffi- 
cult to  remember,  you  know.  It  gave  me  the  notion 
of  an  exotic  Immensity  ruled  by  an  august  Benevo- 
lence. It  made  me  tingle  with  enthusiasm.  This 
was  the  unbounded  power  of  eloquence — of  words — 
of  burning  noble  words.  There  were  no  practical 
hints  to  interrupt  the  magic  current  of  phrases, 
unless  a  kind  of  note  at  the  foot  of  the  last  page, 
scrawled  evidently  much  later,  in  an  unsteady  hand, 
may  be  regarded  as  the  exposition  of  a  method.  It 
was  very  simple,  and  at  the  end  of  that  moving 
appeal  to  every  altruistic  sentiment  it  blazed  at  you, 
luminous  and  terrifying,  like  a  flash  of  lightning  in 
a  serene  sky  :  '  Exterminate  all  the  brutes  ! '  The 
curious  part  was  that  he  had  apparently  forgotten 
all  about  that  valuable  postscriptum,  because,  later 
on,  when  he  in  a  sense  came  to  himself,  he  repeatedly 
entreated  me  to  take  good  care  of  'my  pamphlet '  (he 
called  it),  as  it  was  sure  to  have  in  the  future  a  good 
influence  upon  his  career.  I  had  full  information  about 
all  these  things,  and,  besides,  as  it  turned  out,  I  was  to 
have  the  care  of  his  memory.  I've  done  enough  for 
it  to  give  me  the  indisputable  right  to  lay  it,  if  I 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  135 

choose,  for  an  everlasting  rest  in  the  dust-bin  of 
progress,  amongst  all  the  sweepings  and,  figur- 
atively speaking,  all  the  dead  cats  of  civilisation. 
But  then,  you  see,  I  can't  choose.  He  won't  be 
forgotten.  Whatever  he  was,  he  was  not  common. 
He  had  the  power  to  charm  or  frighten  rudiment- 
ary souls  into  an  aggravated  witch -dance  in  his 
honour ;  he  could  also  fill  the  small  souls  of  the 
pilgrims  with  bitter  misgivings  :  he  had  one  devoted 
friend  at  least,  and  he  had  conquered  one  soul  in  the 
world  that  was  neither  rudimentary  nor  tainted  with 
self-seeking.  No;  I  can't  forget  him,  though  I  am 
not  prepared  to  affirm  the  fellow  was  exactly  worth 
the  life  we  lost  in  getting  to  him.  I  missed  my  late 
helmsman  awfully, — I  missed  him  even  while  his  body 
was  still  lying  in  the  pilot-house.  Perhaps  you  will 
think  it  passing  strange  this  regret  for  a  savage 
who  was  no  more  account  than  a  grain  of  sand  in 
a  black  Sahara.  Well,  don't  you  see,  he  had  done 
something,  he  had  steered ;  for  months  I  had  him  at 
my  back — a  help — an  instrument.  It  was  a  kind  of 
partnership.  He  steered  for  me — I  had  to  look  after 
him,  I  worried  about  his  deficiencies,  and  thus  a 
subtle  bond  had  been  created,  of  which  I  only  be- 
came aware  when  it  was  suddenly  broken.  And  the 
intimate  profundity  of  that  look  he  gave  me  when 
he  received  his  hurt  remains  to  this  day  in  my 
memory — like  a  claim  of  distant  kinship  affirmed  in 
a  supreme  moment. 

"  Poor  fool !  If  he  had  only  left  that  shutter 
alone.  He  had  no  restraint,  no  restraint — just  like 
Kurtz — a  tree  swayed  by  the  wind.  As  soon  as  I 
had  put  on  a  dry  pair  of  slippers,  I  dragged  him  out, 


136  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

after  first  jerking  the  spear  out  of  his  side,  which 
operation  I  confess  I  performed  with  my  eyes  shut 
tight.  His  heels  leaped  together  over  the  little  door- 
step ;  his  shoulders  were  pressed  to  my  breast ;  I 
hugged  him  from  behind  desperately.  Oh !  he  was 
heavy,  heavy;  heavier  than  any  man  on  earth,  I 
should  imagine.  Then  without  more  ado  I  tipped 
him  overboard.  The  current  snatched  him  as  though 
he  had  been  a  wisp  of  grass,  and  I  saw  the  body  roll 
over  twice  before  I  lost  sight  of  it  for  ever.  All  the 
pilgrims  and  the  manager  were  then  congregated  on 
the  awning-deck  about  the  pilot-house,  chattering  at 
each  other  like  a  flock  of  excited  magpies,  and  there 
was  a  scandalised  murmur  at  my  heartless  prompt- 
itude. What  they  wanted  to  keep  that  body  hanging 
about  for  I  can't  guess.  Embalm  it,  maybe.  But  I 
had  also  heard  another,  and  a  very  ominous,  murmur 
on  the  deck  below.  My  friends  the  wood -cutters 
were  likewise  scandalised,  and  with  a  better  show  of 
reason — though  I  admit  that  the  reason  itself  was 
quite  inadmissible.  Oh,  quite !  I  had  made  up  my 
mind  that  if  my  late  helmsman  was  to  be  eaten,  the 
fishes  alone  should  have  him.  He  had  been  a  very 
second-rate  helmsman  while  alive,  but  now  he  was 
dead  he  might  have  become  a  first-class  temptation, 
and  possibly  cause  some  startling  trouble.  Besides,  I 
was  anxious  to  take  the  wheel,  the  man  in  pink 
pyjamas  showing  himself  a  hopeless  duffer  at  the 
business. 

"  This  I  did  directly  the  simple  funeral  was  over. 
"We  were  going  half-speed,  keeping  right  in  the 
middle  of  the  stream,  and  I  listened  to  the  talk  about 
me.     They  had  given  up  Kurtz,  they  had  given  up 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  137 

the  station;  Kurtz  was  dead,  and  the  station  had 
been  burnt — and  so  on — and  so  on.  The  red-haired 
pilgrim  was  beside  himself  with  the  thought  that  at 
least  this  poor  Kurtz  had  been  properly  revenged. 
1  Say  !  We  must  have  made  a  glorious  slaughter  of 
them  in  the  bush.  Eh  ?  What  do  you  think  ?  Say  ? ' 
He  positively  danced,  the  bloodthirsty  little  gingery 
beggar.  And  he  had  nearly  fainted  when  he  saw  the 
wounded  man  !  I  could  not  help  saying,  '  You  made 
a  glorious  lot  of  smoke,  anyhow.'  I  had  seen,  from 
the  way  the  tops  of  the  bushes  rustled  and  flew,  that 
almost  all  the  shots  had  gone  too  high.  You  can't 
hit  anything  unless  you  take  aim  and  fire  from  the 
shoulder;  but  these  chaps  fired  from  the  hip  with 
their  eyes  shut.  The  retreat,  I  maintained — and  I 
was  right  —  was  caused  by  the  screeching  of  the 
steam-whistle.  Upon  this  they  forgot  Kurtz,  and 
began  to  howl  at  me  with  indignant  protests. 

"  The  manager  stood  by  the  wheel  murmuring  con- 
fidentially about  the  necessity  of  getting  well  away 
down  the  river  before  dark  at  all  events,  when  I  saw 
in  the  distance  a  clearing  on  the  river-side  and  the 
outlines  of  some  sort  of  building.  '  What's  this  ? '  I 
asked.  He  clapped  his  hands  in  wonder.  'The 
station!'  he  cried.  I  edged  in  at  once,  still  going 
half -speed. 

"Through  my  glasses  I  saw  the  slope  of  a  hill 
interspersed  with  rare  trees  and  perfectly  free  from 
undergrowth.  A  long  decaying  building  on  the 
summit  was  half  buried  in  the  high  grass ;  the  large 
holes  in  the  peaked  roof  gaped  black  from  afar ;  the 
jungle  and  the  woods  made  a  background.  There 
was  no  enclosure  or  fence  of  any  kind ;  but  there  had 


138  HEART  OF   DARKNESS. 

been  one  apparently,  for  near  the  house  half-a-dozen 
slim  posts  remained  in  a  row,  roughly  trimmed,  and 
with  their  upper  ends  ornamented  with  round  carved 
balls.  The  rails,  or  whatever  there  had  been  between, 
had  disappeared.  Of  course  the  forest  surrounded 
all  that.  The  river-bank  was  clear,  and  on  the 
water-side  I  saw  a  white  man  under  a  hat  like  a 
cart-wheel  beckoning  persistently  with  his  whole 
arm.  Examining  the  edge  of  the  forest  above  and 
below,  I  was  almost  certain  I  could  see  movements — 
human  forms  gliding  here  and  there.  I  steamed 
past  prudently,  then  stopped  the  engines  and  let  her 
drift  down.  The  man  on  the  shore  began  to  shout, 
urging  us  to  land.  'We  have  been  attacked,' 
screamed  the  manager.  '  I  know — I  know.  It's  all 
right,'  yelled  back  the  other,  as  cheerful  as  you 
please.  'Come  along.  It's  all  right.  I  am  glad.' 
"  His  aspect  reminded  me  of  something  I  had  seen 
— something  funny  I  had  seen  somewhere.  As  I 
manoeuvred  to  get  alongside,  I  was  asking  myself, 
'  What  does  this  fellow  look  like  ?  '  Suddenly  I  got 
it.  He  looked  like  a  harlequin.  His  clothes  had 
been  made  of  some  stuff  that  was  brown  holland  pro- 
bably, but  it  was  covered  with  patches  all  over,  with 
bright  patches,  blue,  red,  and  yellow, — patches  on 
the  back,  patches  on  front,  patches  on  elbows,  on 
knees ;  coloured  binding  round  his  jacket,  scarlet 
edging  at  the  bottom  of  his  trousers ;  and  the  sun- 
shine made  him  look  extremely  gay  and  wonderfully 
neat  withal,  because  you  could  see  how  beautifully 
all  this  patching  had  been  done.  A  beardless,  boyish 
face,  very  fair,  no  features  to  speak  of,  nose  peeling, 
little  blue  eyes,  smiles  and  frowns  chasing  each  other 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  139 

over  that  open  countenance  like  sunshine  and  shadow 
on  a  wind-swept  plain.  '  Look  out,  captain  ! '  he 
cried ;  ■  there's  a  snag  lodged  in  here  last  night.' 
What !  Another  snag  ?  I  confess  I  swore  shamefully. 
I  had  nearly  holed  my  cripple,  to  finish  off  that  charm- 
ing trip.  The  harlequin  on  the  bank  turned  his 
little  pug  nose  up  to  me.  '  You  English  ? '  he  asked, 
all  smiles.  '  Are  you  ? '  I  shouted  from  the  wheel. 
The  smiles  vanished,  and  he  shook  his  head  as  if 
sorry  for  my  disappointment.  Then  he  brightened 
up.  ■  Never  mind  ! '  he  cried  encouragingly.  '  Are 
we  in  time  ? '  I  asked.  '  He  is  up  there,'  he  replied, 
with  a  toss  of  the  head  up  the  hill,  and  becoming 
gloomy  all  of  a  sudden.  His  face  was  like  the 
autumn  sky,  overcast  one  moment  and  bright  the 
next. 

"  When  the  manager,  escorted  by  the  pilgrims,  all 
of  them  armed  to  the  teeth,  had  gone  to  the  house, 
this  chap  came  on  board.  '  I  say,  I  don't  like  this. 
These  natives  are  in  the  bush,'  I  said.  He  assured 
me  earnestly  it  was  all  right.  'They  are  simple 
people,'  he  added;  'well,  I  am  glad  you  came.  It 
took  me  all  my  time  to  keep  them  off.'  'But  you 
said  it  was  all  right,'  I  cried.  '  Oh,  they  meant  no 
harm,'  he  said;  and  as  I  stared  he  corrected  him- 
self, 'Not  exactly.'  Then  vivaciously,  'My  faith, 
your  pilot-house  wants  a  clean  up ! '  In  the  next 
breath  he  advised  me  to  keep  enough  steam  on 
the  boiler  to  blow  the  whistle  in  case  of  any  trouble. 
'  One  good  screech  will  do  more  for  you  than  all  your 
rifles.  They  are  simple  people,'  he  repeated.  He 
rattled  away  at  such  a  rate  he  quite  overwhelmed 
me.     He  seemed  to  be  trying  to  make  up  for  lots  of 


140  HEART   OP  DARKNESS. 

silence,  and  actually  hinted,  laughing,  that  such  was 
the  case.  '  Don't  you  talk  with  Mr  Kurtz  ?  '  I  said. 
1  You  don't  talk  with  that  man — you  listen  to  him,' 

he  exclaimed  with  severe  exaltation.     *  But  now ' 

He  waved  his  arm,  and  in  the  twinkling  of  an  eye 
was  in  the  uttermost  depths  of  despondency.  In  a 
moment  he  came  up  again  with  a  jump,  possessed 
himself  of  both  my  hands,  shook  them  continuously, 
while  he  gabbled  :  '  Brother  sailor  .  .  .  honour  .  .  . 
pleasure  .  .  .  delight  .  .  .  introduce  myself  .  .  . 
Russian  .  .  .  son  of  an  arch-priest  .  .  .  Goverment 
of  Tambov  .  .  .What?  Tobacco!  English  tobacco; 
the  excellent  English  tobacco !  Now,  that's  brotherly. 
Smoke  ?     Where's  a  sailor  that  does  not  smoke  ? ' 

"  The  pipe  soothed  him,  and  gradually  I  made  out 
he  had  run  away  from  school,  had  gone  to  sea  in  a 
Russian  ship ;  ran  away  again ;  served  some  time  in 
English  ships  ;  was  now  reconciled  with  the  arch- 
priest.  He  made  a  point  of  that.  '  But  when  one  is 
young  one  must  see  things,  gather  experience,  ideas ; 
enlarge  the  mind.'  '  Here  ! '  I  interrupted.  *  You 
can  never  tell !  Here  I  have  met  Mr  Kurtz,'  he 
said,  youthfully  solemn  and  reproachful.  I  held  my 
tongue  after  that.  It  appears  he  had  persuaded  a 
Dutch  trading-house  on  the  coast  to  fit  him  out  with 
stores  and  goods,  and  had  started  for  the  interior 
with  a  light  heart,  and  no  more  idea  of  what  would 
happen  to  him  than  a  baby.  He  had  been  wander- 
ing about  that  river  for  nearly  two  years  alone,  cut 
off  from  everybody  and  everything.  '  I  am  not  so 
young  as  I  look.  I  am  twenty-five,'  he  said.  'At 
first  old  Van  Shuyten  would  tell  me  to  go  to  the 
devil,'  he   narrated  with   keen   enjoyment;    'but  I 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  141 

stuck  to  him,  and  talked  and  talked,  till  at  last  he 
got  afraid  I  would  talk  the  hind-leg  off  his  favourite 
dog,  so  he  gave  me  some  cheap  things  and  a  few 
guns,  and  told  me  he  hoped  he  would  never  see  my 
face  again.  Good  old  Dutchman,  Van  Shuyten. 
I've  sent  him  one  small  lot  of  ivory  a  year  ago,  so 
that  he  can't  call  me  a  little  thief  when  I  get  back. 
I  hope  he  got  it.  And  for  the  rest  I  don't  care.  I 
had  some  wood  stacked  for  you.  That  was  my  old 
house.     Did  you  see  ? ' 

"  I  gave  him  Towson's  book.  He  made  as  though 
he  would  kiss  me,  but  restrained  himself.  '  The  only 
book  I  had  left,  and  I  thought  I  had  lost  it,'  he 
said,  looking  at  it  ecstatically.  '  So  many  accidents 
happen  to  a  man  going  about  alone,  you  know. 
Canoes  get  upset  sometimes — and  sometimes  you've 
got  to  clear  out  so  quick  when  the  people  get 
angry.'  He  thumbed  the  pages.  'You  made  notes 
in  Russian  ? '  I  asked.  He  nodded.  '  I  thought  they 
were  written  in  cipher,'  I  said.  He  laughed,  then 
became  serious.  '  I  had  lots  of  trouble  to  keep  these 
people  off,'  he  said.  '  Did  they  want  to  kill  you  ?  '  I 
asked.  '  Oh  no ! '  he  cried,  and  checked  himself. 
1  Why  did  they  attack  us  ? '  I  pursued.  He  hesi- 
tated, then  said  shamefacedly,  'They  don't  want 
him  to  go.'  'Don't  they?'  I  said,  curiously.  He 
nodded  a  nod  full  of  mystery  and  wisdom.  '  I  tell 
you,'  he  cried,  'this  man  has  enlarged  my  mind.' 
He  opened  his  arms  wide,  staring  at  me  with  his 
little  blue  eyes  that  were  perfectly  round." 


142  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 


III. 


"  I  looked  at  him,  lost  in  astonishment.  There  he 
was  before  me,  in  motley,  as  though  he  had  absconded 
from  a  troupe  of  mimes,  enthusiastic,  fabulous.  His 
very  existence  was  improbable,  inexplicable,  and  al- 
together bewildering.  He  was  an  insoluble  problem. 
It  was  inconceivable  how  he  had  existed,  how  he  had 
succeeded  in  getting  so  far,  how  he  had  managed  to 
remain — why  he  did  not  instantly  disappear.  'I 
went  a  little  farther,'  he  said,  'then  still  a  little 
farther — till  I  had  gone  so  far  that  I  don't  know 
how  I'll  ever  get  back.  Never  mind.  Plenty  time. 
I  can  manage.  You  take  Kurtz  away  quick — quick 
— I  tell  you.'  The  glamour  of  youth  enveloped  his 
particoloured  rags,  his  destitution,  his  loneliness,  the 
essential  desolation  of  his  futile  wanderings.  For 
months — for  years — his  life  hadn't  been  worth  a 
day's  purchase ;  and  there  he  was  gallantly,  thought- 
lessly alive,  to  all  appearance  indestructible  solely  by 
the  virtue  of  his  few  years  and  of  his  unreflecting 
audacity.  I  was  seduced  into  something  like  admir- 
ation— like  envy.  Glamour  urged  him  on,  glamour 
kept  him  unscathed.  He  surely  wanted  nothing 
from  the  wilderness  but  space  to  breathe  in  and  to 
push  on  through.  His  need  was  to  exist,  and  to 
move  onwards  at  the  greatest  possible  risk,  and  with 
a  maximum  of  privation.  If  the  absolutely  pure, 
uncalculating,  unpractical  spirit  of  adventure  had 
ever  ruled  a  human  being,  it  ruled  this  be-patched 
youth.     I  almost  envied  him  the  possession  of  this 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  143 

modest  and  clear  flame.  It  seemed  to  have  con- 
sumed all  thought  of  self  so  completely,  that,  even 
while  he  was  talking  to  you,  you  forgot  that  it 
was  he — the  man  before  your  eyes — who  had  gone 
through  these  things.  I  did  not  envy  him  his  de- 
votion to  Kurtz,  though.  He  had  not  meditated  over 
it.  It  came  to  him,  and  he  accepted  it  with  a  sort 
of  eager  fatalism.  I  must  say  that  to  me  it  appeared 
about  the  most  dangerous  thing  in  every  way  he  had 
come  upon  so  far. 

"They  had  come  together  unavoidably,  like  two 
ships  becalmed  near  each  other,  and  lay  rubbing 
sides  at  last.  I  suppose  Kurtz  wanted  an  audience, 
because  on  a  certain  occasion,  when  encamped  in  the 
forest,  they  had  talked  all  night,  or  more  probably 
Kurtz  had  talked.  'We  talked  of  everything,'  he 
said,  quite  transported  at  the  recollection.  *  I  forgot 
there  was  such  a  thing  as  sleep.  The  night  did  not 
seem  to  last  an  hour.  Everything !  Everything ! 
.  .  .  Of  love  too.'  'Ah,  he  talked  to  you  of  love!' 
I  said,  much  amused.  '  It  isn't  what  you  think,'  he 
cried,  almost  passionately.  '  It  was  in  general.  He 
made  me  see  things — things.' 

"  He  threw  his  arms  up.  We  were  on  deck  at  the 
time,  and  the  headman  of  my  wood-cutters,  loung- 
ing near  by,  turned  upon  him  his  heavy  and  glitter- 
ing eyes.  I  looked  around,  and  I  don't  know  why, 
but  I  assure  you  that  never,  never  before,  did  this 
land,  this  river,  this  jungle,  the  very  arch  of  this 
blazing  sky,  appear  to  me  so  hopeless  and  so  dark, 
so  impenetrable  to  human  thought,  so  pitiless  to 
human  weakness.  'And,  ever  since,  you  have  been 
with  him,  of  course?'  I  said. 


144  HEART   OP  DARKNESS. 

"On  the  contrary.  It  appears  their  intercourse 
had  been  very  much  broken  by  various  causes.  He 
had,  as  he  informed  me  proudly,  managed  to  nurse 
Kurtz  through  two  illnesses  (he  alluded  to  it  as 
you  would  to  some  risky  feat),  but  as  a  rule  Kurtz 
wandered  alone,  far  in  the  depths  of  the  forest. 
'Very  often  coming  to  this  station,  I  had  to  wait 
days  and  days  before  he  would  turn  up,'  he  said. 
'  Ah,  it  was  worth  waiting  for  ! — sometimes.'  '  What 
was  he  doing  ?  exploring  or  what  ?  '  I  asked.  '  Oh 
yes,  of  course ' ;  he  had  discovered  lots  of  villages, 
a  lake  too — he  did  not  know  exactly  in  what  direc- 
tion; it  was  dangerous  to  inquire  too  much — but 
mostly  his  expeditions  had  been  for  ivory.  'But 
he  had  no  goods  to  trade  with  by  that  time,'  I 
objected.  'There's  a  good  lot  of  cartridges  left  even 
yet,'  he  answered,  looking  away.  'To  speak  plainly, 
he  raided  the  country,'  I  said.  He  nodded.  'Not 
alone,  surely ! '  He  muttered  something  about  the 
villages  round  that  lake.  'Kurtz  got  the  tribe  to 
follow  him,  did  he  ? '  I  suggested.  He  fidgeted  a 
little.  'They  adored  him,'  he  said.  The  tone  of 
these  words  was  so  extraordinary  that  I  looked  at 
him  searchingly.  It  was  curious  to  see  his  mingled 
eagerness  and  reluctance  to  speak  of  Kurtz.  The 
man  filled  his  life,  occupied  his  thoughts,  swayed 
his  emotions.  'What  can  you  expect?'  he  burst 
out ;  '  he  came  to  them  with  thunder  and  lightning, 
you  know — and  they  had  never  seen  anything  like 
it  —  and  very  terrible.  He  could  be  very  terrible. 
You  can't  judge  Mr  Kurtz  as  you  would  an  ordin- 
ary man.  No,  no,  no !  Now — just  to  give  you 
an  idea — I  don't  mind  telling  you,   he  wanted  to 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  145 

shoot  me  too  one  day  —  but  I  don't  judge  him.' 
4 Shoot  you!'  I  cried.  'What  for?'  'Well,  I  had 
a  small  lot  of  ivory  the  chief  of  that  village  near 
my  house  gave  me.  You  see  I  used  to  shoot  game 
for  them.  Well,  he  wanted  it,  and  wouldn't  hear 
reason.  He  declared  he  would  shoot  me  unless  I 
gave  him  the  ivory  and  then  cleared  out  of  the 
country,  because  he  could  do  so,  and  had  a  fancy 
for  it,  and  there  was  nothing  on  earth  to  prevent 
him  killing  whom  he  jolly  well  pleased.  And  it 
was  true  too.  I  gave  him  the  ivory.  What  did  I 
care !  But  I  didn't  clear  out.  No,  no.  I  couldn't 
leave  him.  I  had  to  be  careful,  of  course,  till  we 
got  friendly  again  for  a  time.  He  had  his  second 
illness  then.  Afterwards  I  had  to  keep  out  of  the 
way;  but  I  didn't  mind.  He  was  living  for  the 
most  part  in  those  villages  on  the  lake.  When  he 
came  down  to  the  river,  sometimes  he  would  take 
to  me,  and  sometimes  it  was  better  for  me  to  be 
careful.  This  man  suffered  too  much.  He  hated 
all  this,  and  somehow  he  couldn't  get  away.  When 
I  had  a  chance  I  begged  him  to  try  and  leave 
while  there  was  time;  I  offered  to  go  back  with 
him.  And  he  would  say  yes,  and  then  he  would 
remain ;  go  off  on  another  ivory  hunt ;  disappear 
for  weeks;  forget  himself  amongst  these  people — 
forget  himself  —  you  know.'  'Why!  he's  mad,'  I 
said.  He  protested  indignantly.  Mr  Kurtz  couldn't 
be  mad.  If  I  had  heard  him  talk,  only  two  days 
ago,  I  wouldn't  dare  hint  at  such  a  thing.  ...  I 
had  taken  up  my  binoculars  while  we  talked,  and 
was  looking  at  the  shore,  sweeping  the  limit  of 
the   forest   at   each    side   and   at   the   back   of   the 

K 


146  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

house.  The  consciousness  of  there  being  people  in 
that  bush,  so  silent,  so  quiet — as  silent  and  quiet 
as  the  ruined  house  on  the  hill — made  me  uneasy. 
There  was  no  sign  on  the  face  of  nature  of  this 
amazing  tale  that  was  not  so  much  told  as  sug- 
gested to  me  in  desolate  exclamations,  completed 
by  shrugs,  in  interrupted  phrases,  in  hints  ending 
in  deep  sighs.  The  woods  were  unmoved,  like  a 
mask — heavy,  like  the  closed  door  of  a  prison — they 
looked  with  their  air  of  hidden  knowledge,  of  patient 
expectation,  of  unapproachable  silence.  The  Russian 
was  explaining  to  me  that  it  was  only  lately  that 
Mr  Kurtz  had  come  down  to  the  river,  bringing 
along  with  him  all  the  fighting  men  of  that  lake 
tribe.  He  had  been  absent  for  several  months — 
getting  himself  adored,  I  suppose — and  had  come 
down  unexpectedly,  with  the  intention  to  all  ap- 
pearance of  making  a  raid  either  across  the  river 
or  down  stream.  Evidently  the  appetite  for  more 
ivory  had  got  the  better  of  the — what  shall  I  say  ? 
— less  material  aspirations.  However  he  had  got 
much  worse  suddenly.  '  I  heard  he  was  lying  help- 
less, and  so  I  came  up — took  my  chance,'  said  the 
Russian.  'Oh,  he  is  bad,  very  bad.'  I  directed 
my  glass  to  the  house.  There  were  no  signs  of 
life,  but  there  was  the  ruined  roof,  the  long  mud 
wall  peeping  above  the  grass,  with  three  little 
square  window-holes,  no  two  of  the  same  size ;  all 
this  brought  within  reach  of  my  hand,  as  it  were. 
And  then  I  made  a  brusque  movement,  and  one 
of  the  remaining  posts  of  that  vanished  fence  leaped 
up  in  the  field  of  my  glass.  You  remember  I  told 
you  I  had  been  struck  at  the  distance  by  certain 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  147 

attempts  at  ornamentation,  rather  remarkable  in  the 
ruinous  aspect  of  the  place.  Now  I  had  suddenly 
a  nearer  view,  and  its  first  result  was  to  make  me 
throw  my  head  back  as  if  before  a  blow.  Then  I 
went  carefully  from  post  to  post  with  my  glass, 
and  I  saw  my  mistake.  These  round  knobs  were 
not  ornamental  but  symbolic;  they  were  expres- 
sive and  puzzling,  striking  and  disturbing  —  food 
for  thought  and  also  for  the  vultures  if  there  had 
been  any  looking  down  from  the  sky;  but  at  all 
events  for  such  ants  as  were  industrious  enough 
to  ascend  the  pole.  They  would  have  been  even 
more  impressive,  those  heads  on  the  stakes,  if  their 
faces  had  not  been  turned  to  the  house.  Only  one, 
the  first  I  had  made  out,  was  facing  my  way.  I 
was  not  so  shocked  as  you  may  think.  The  start 
back  I  had  given  was  really  nothing  but  a  move- 
ment of  surprise.  I  had  expected  to  see  a  knob  of 
wood  there,  you  know.  I  returned  deliberately  to 
the  first  I  had  seen — and  there  it  was,  black,  dried, 
sunken,  with  closed  eyelids, — a  head  that  seemed  to 
sleep  at  the  top  of  that  pole,  and,  with  the  shrunken 
dry  lips  showing  a  narrow  white  line  of  the  teeth, 
was  smiling  too,  smiling  continuously  at  some  end- 
less and  jocose  dream  of  that  eternal  slumber. 

"I  am  not  disclosing  any  trade  secrets.  In  fact 
the  manager  said  afterwards  that  Mr  Kurtz's 
methods  had  ruined  the  district.  I  have  no 
opinion  on  that  point,  but  I  want  you  clearly 
to  understand  that  there  was  nothing  exactly 
profitable  in  these  heads  being  there.  They  only 
showed  that  Mr  Kurtz  lacked  restraint  in  the 
gratification    of  his   various   lusts,    that   there   was 


148  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

something  wanting  in  him  —  some  small  matter 
which,  when  the  pressing  need  arose,  could  not  be 
found  under  his  magnificent  eloquence.  Whether 
he  knew  of  this  deficiency  himself  I  can't  say.  I 
think  the  knowledge  came  to  him  at  last  —  only 
at  the  very  last.  But  the  wilderness  had  found 
him  out  early,  and  had  taken  on  him  a  terrible 
vengeance  for  the  fantastic  invasion.  I  think  it 
had  whispered  to  him  things  about  himself  which 
he  did  not  know,  things  of  which  he  had  no 
conception  till  he  took  counsel  with  this  great 
solitude  —  and  the  whisper  had  proved  irresistibly 
fascinating.  It  echoed  loudly  within  him  because 
he  was  hollow  at  the  core.  ...  I  put  down  the 
glass,  and  the  head  that  had  appeared  near  enough 
to  be  spoken  to  seemed  at  once  to  have  leaped 
away  from  me  into  inaccessible  distance. 

"The  admirer  of  Mr  Kurtz  was  a  bit  crestfallen. 
In  a  hurried,  indistinct  voice  he  began  to  assure 
me  he  had  not  dared  to  take  these — say,  symbols 
— down.  He  was  not  afraid  of  the  natives ;  they 
would  not  stir  till  Mr  Kurtz  gave  the  word. 
His  ascendancy  was  extraordinary.  The  camps 
of  these  people  surrounded  the  place,  and  the 
chiefs  came  every  day  to  see  him.  They  would 
crawl.  ...  'I  don't  want  to  know  anything  of 
the  ceremonies  used  when  approaching  Mr  Kurtz,' 
I  shouted.  Curious,  this  feeling  that  came  over 
me  that  such  details  would  be  more  intoler- 
able than  those  heads  drying  on  the  stakes 
under  Mr  Kurtz's  windows.  After  all,  that 
was  only  a  savage  sight,  while  I  seemed  at  one 
bound  to  have  been   transported   into   some   light- 


HEART  OP  DARKNESS.  149 

less  region  of  subtle  horrors,  where  pure,  uncom- 
plicated savagery  was  a  positive  relief,  being 
something  that  had  a  right  to  exist — obviously — 
in  the  sunshine.  The  young  man  looked  at  me 
with  surprise.  I  suppose  it  did  not  occur  to  him 
Mr  Kurtz  was  no  idol  of  mine.  He  forgot  I 
hadn't  heard  any  of  these  splendid  monologues 
on,  what  was  it?  on  love,  justice,  conduct  of  life 
— or  what  not.  If  it  had  come  to  crawling  before 
Mr  Kurtz,  he  crawled  as  much  as  the  veriest 
savage  of  them  all.  I  had  no  idea  of  the  con- 
ditions, he  said :  these  heads  were  the  heads  of 
rebels.  I  shocked  him  excessively  by  laughing. 
Rebels !  What  would  be  the  next  definition  I 
was  to  hear?  There  had  been  enemies,  criminals, 
workers — and  these  were  rebels.  Those  rebellious 
heads  looked  very  subdued  to  me  on  their  sticks. 
'You  don't  know  how  such  a  life  tries  a  man 
like  Kurtz,'  cried  Kurtz's  last  disciple.  'Well,  and 
you  ? '  I  said.  '  I !  I !  I  am  a  simple  man.  I 
have  no  great  thoughts.  I  want  nothing  from 
anybody.  How  can  you  compare  me  to  .  .  .  ? ' 
His  feelings  were  too  much  for  speech,  and  sud- 
denly he  broke  down.  '  I  don't  understand,'  he 
groaned.  '  I've  been  doing  my  best  to  keep  him 
alive,  and  that's  enough.  I  had  no  hand  in  all 
this.  I  have  no  abilities.  There  hasn't  been  a 
drop  of  medicine  or  a  mouthful  of  invalid  food 
for  months  here.  He  was  shamefully  abandoned. 
A  man  like  this,  with  such  ideas.  Shamefully ! 
Shamefully!  I — I — haven't  slept  for  the  last  ten 
nights.  .  .  .' 

"His  voice  lost  itself  in  the  calm  of  the  evening. 


150  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

The  long  shadows  of  the  forest  had  slipped  down 
hill  while  we  talked,  had  gone  far  beyond  the 
ruined  hovel,  beyond  the  symbolic  row  of  stakes. 
All  this  was  in  the  gloom,  while  we  down  there 
were  yet  in  the  sunshine,  and  the  stretch  of  the 
river  abreast  of  the  clearing  glittered  in  a  still 
and  dazzling  splendour,  with  a  murky  and  over- 
shadowed bend  above  and  below.  Not  a  living 
soul  was  seen  on  the  shore.  The  bushes  did  not 
rustle. 

"Suddenly  round  the  corner  of  the  house  a 
group  of  men  appeared,  as  though  they  had  come 
up  from  the  ground.  They  waded  waist-deep  in 
the  grass,  in  a  compact  body,  bearing  an  impro- 
vised stretcher  in  their  midst.  Instantly,  in  the 
emptiness  of  the  landscape,  a  cry  arose  whose 
shrillness  pierced  the  still  air  like  a  sharp  arrow 
flying  straight  to  the  very  heart  of  the  land;  and, 
as  if  by  enchantment,  streams  of  human  beings — 
of  naked  human  beings — with  spears  in  their  hands, 
with  bows,  with  shields,  with  wild  glances  and 
savage  movements,  were  poured  into  the  clearing 
by  the  dark -faced  and  pensive  forest.  The  bushes 
shook,  the  grass  swayed  for  a  time,  and  then 
everything  stood  still  in  attentive  immobility. 

" '  JSTow,  if  he  does  not  say  the  right  thing  to  them 
we  are  all  done  for,'  said  the  Russian  at  my  elbow. 
The  knot  of  men  with  the  stretcher  had  stopped  too, 
half-way  to  the  steamer,  as  if  petrified.  I  saw  the 
man  on  the  stretcher  sit  up,  lank  and  with  an  up- 
lifted arm,  above  the  shoulders  of  the  bearers.  *  Let 
us  hope  that  the  man  who  can  talk  so  well  of  love 
in  general  will  find  some  particular  reason  to  spare 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  151 

us  this  time,'  I  said.  I  resented  bitterly  the  absurd 
danger  of  our  situation,  as  if  to  be  at  the  mercy  of 
that  atrocious  phantom  had  been  a  dishonouring 
necessity.  I  could  not  hear  a  sound,  but  through 
my  glasses  I  saw  the  thin  arm  extended  command- 
ingly,  the  lower  jaw  moving,  the  eyes  of  that  ap- 
parition shining  darkly  far  in  its  bony  head  that 
nodded  with  grotesque  jerks.  Kurtz — Kurtz — that 
means  short  in  German — don't  it  ?  Well,  the  name 
was  as  true  as  everything  else  in  his  life — and  death. 
He  looked  at  least  seven  feet  long.  His  covering 
had  fallen  off,  and  his  body  emerged  from  it  pitiful 
and  appalling  as  from  a  winding-sheet.  I  could  see 
the  cage  of  his  ribs  all  astir,  the  bones  of  his  arm 
waving.  It  was  as  though  an  animated  image  of 
death  carved  out  of  old  ivory  had  been  shaking  its 
hand  with  menaces  at  a  motionless  crowd  of  men 
made  of  dark  and  glittering  bronze.  I  saw  him 
open  his  mouth  wide — it  gave  him  a  weirdly  vor- 
acious aspect,  as  though  he  had  wanted  to  swallow 
all  the  air,  all  the  earth,  all  the  men  before  him. 
A  deep  voice  reached  me  faintly.  He  must  have 
been  shouting.  He  fell  back  suddenly.  The  stretcher 
shook  as  the  bearers  staggered  forward  again,  and 
almost  at  the  same  time  I  noticed  that  the  crowd 
of  savages  was  vanishing  without  any  perceptible 
movement  of  retreat,  as  if  the  forest  that  had 
ejected  these  beings  so  suddenly  had  drawn  them 
in  again  as  the  breath  is  drawn  in  a  long  aspiration. 
11  Some  of  the  pilgrims  behind  the  stretcher  carried 
his  arms — two  shot-guns,  a  heavy  rifle,  and  a  light 
revolver -carbine  —  the  thunderbolts  of  that  pitiful 
Jupiter.      The  manager  bent  over  him  murmuring 


152  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

as  he  walked  beside  his  head.  They  laid  him  down 
in  one  of  the  little  cabins — just  a  room  for  a  bed- 
place  and  a  camp-stool  or  two,  you  know.  We 
had  brought  his  belated  correspondence,  and  a  lot 
of  torn  envelopes  and  open  letters  littered  his  bed. 
His  hand  roamed  feebly  amongst  these  papers.  I 
was  struck  by  the  fire  of  his  eyes  and  the  composed 
languor  of  his  expression.  It  was  not  so  much  the 
exhaustion  of  disease.  He  did  not  seem  in  pain. 
This  shadow  looked  satiated  and  calm,  as  though 
for  the  moment  it  had  had  its  fill  of  all  the  emotions. 

"  He  rustled  one  of  the  letters,  and  looking  straight 
in  my  face  said,  'I  am  glad.'  Somebody  had  been 
writing  to  him  about  me.  These  special  recommen- 
dations were  turning  up  again.  The  volume  of  tone 
he  emitted  without  effort,  almost  without  the  trouble 
of  moving  his  lips,  amazed  me.  A  voice !  a  voice ! 
It  was  grave,  profound,  vibrating,  while  the  man 
did  not  seem  capable  of  a  whisper.  However,  he 
had  enough  strength  in  him — factitious  no  doubt — 
to  very  nearly  make  an  end  of  us,  as  you  shall  hear 
directly. 

"  The  manager  appeared  silently  in  the  doorway ; 
I  stepped  out  at  once  and  he  drew  the  curtain  after 
me.  The  Russian,  eyed  curiously  by  the  pilgrims, 
was  staring  at  the  shore.  I  followed  the  direction 
of  his  glance. 

"Dark  human  shapes  could  be  made  out  in  the 
distance,  flitting  indistinctly  against  the  gloomy 
border  of  the  forest,  and  near  the  river  two  bronze 
figures,  leaning  on  tall  spears,  stood  in  the  sunlight 
under  fantastic  head-dresses  of  spotted  skins,  war- 
like and  still  in  statuesque  repose.     And  from  right 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  153 

to  left  along  the  lighted  shore  moved  a  wild  and 
gorgeous  apparition  of  a  woman. 

"She  walked  with  measured  steps,  draped  in 
striped  and  fringed  cloths,  treading  the  earth 
proudly,  with  a  slight  jingle  and  flash  of  barbar- 
ous ornaments.  She  carried  her  head  high;  her 
hair  was  done  in  the  shape  of  a  helmet ;  she  had 
brass  leggings  to  the  knee,  brass  wire  gauntlets  to 
the  elbow,  a  crimson  spot  on  her  tawny  cheek,  in- 
numerable necklaces  of  glass  beads  on  her  neck; 
bizarre  things,  charms,  gifts  of  witch -men,  that 
hung  about  her,  glittered  and  trembled  at  every 
step.  She  must  have  had  the  value  of  several 
elephant  tusks  upon  her.  She  was  savage  and 
superb,  wild-eyed  and  magnificent ;  there  was  some- 
thing ominous  and  stately  in  her  deliberate  progress. 
And  in  the  hush  that  had  fallen  suddenly  upon  the 
whole  sorrowful  land,  the  immense  wilderness,  the 
colossal  body  of  the  fecund  and  mysterious  life 
seemed  to  look  at  her,  pensive,  as  though  it  had 
been  looking  at  the  image  of  its  own  tenebrous  and 
passionate  soul. 

"  She  came  abreast  of  the  steamer,  stood  still,  and 
faced  us.  Her  long  shadow  fell  to  the  water's  edge. 
Her  face  had  a  tragic  and  fierce  aspect  of  wild 
sorrow  and  of  dumb  pain  mingled  with  the  fear 
of  some  struggling,  half-shaped  resolve.  She  stood 
looking  at  us  without  a  stir,  and  like  the  wilderness 
itself,  with  an  air  of  brooding  over  an  inscrutable 
purpose.  A  whole  minute  passed,  and  then  she 
made  a  step  forward.  There  was  a  low  jingle,  a 
glint  of  yellow  metal,  a  sway  of  fringed  draperies, 
and  she  stopped  as  if  her  heart  had  failed  her.     The 


154  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

young  fellow  by  my  side  growled.  The  pilgrims 
murmured  at  my  back.  She  looked  at  us  all  as  if 
her  life  had  depended  upon  the  unswerving  steadi- 
ness of  her  glance.  Suddenly  she  opened  her  bared 
arms  and  threw  them  up  rigid  above  her  head,  as 
though  in  an  uncontrollable  desire  to  touch  the  sky, 
and  at  the  same  time  the  swift  shadows  darted  out 
on  the  earth,  swept  around  on  the  river,  gathering 
the  steamer  into  a  shadowy  embrace.  A  formidable 
silence  hung  over  the  scene. 

"  She  turned  away  slowly,  walked  on,  following 
the  bank,  and  passed  into  the  bushes  to  the  left. 
Once  only  her  eyes  gleamed  back  at  us  in  the 
dusk  of  the  thickets  before  she  disappeared. 

" '  If  she  had  offered  to  come  aboard  I  really 
think  I  would  have  tried  to  shoot  her,'  said  the 
man  of  patches,  nervously.  '  I  had  been  risking  my 
life  every  day  for  the  last  fortnight  to  keep  her 
out  of  the  house.  She  got  in  one  day  and  kicked 
up  a  row  about  those  miserable  rags  I  picked  up 
in  the  storeroom  to  mend  my  clothes  with.  I 
wasn't  decent.  At  least  it  must  have  been  that, 
for  she  talked  like  a  fury  to  Kurtz  for  an  hour, 
pointing  at  me  now  and  then.  I  don't  understand 
the  dialect  of  this  tribe.  Luckily  for  me,  I  fancy 
Kurtz  felt  too  ill  that  day  to  care,  or  there  would 
have  been  mischief.  I  don't  understand.  .  .  .  No 
— it's  too  much  for  me.  Ah,  well,  it's  all  over 
now.' 

"At  this  moment  I  heard  Kurtz's  deep  voice 
behind  the  curtain,  '  Save  me  ! — save  the  ivory,  you 
mean.  Don't  tell  me.  Save  me  t  Why,  I've  had 
to  save  you.     You  are  interrupting  my  plans  now. 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  155 

Sick !  Sick !  Not  so  sick  as  you  would  like  to 
believe.  Never  mind.  I'll  carry  my  ideas  out  yet 
— I  will  return.  I'll  show  you  what  can  be  done. 
You  with  your  little  peddling  notions  —  you  are 
interfering  with  me.     I  will  return.     I  .  .  .' 

"  The  manager  came  out.  He  did  me  the  honour 
to  take  me  under  the  arm  and  lead  me  aside.  '  He 
is  very  low,  very  low,'  he  said.  He  considered  it 
necessary  to  sigh,  but  neglected  to  be  consistently 
sorrowful.  '  We  have  done  all  we  could  for  him — 
haven't  we?  But  there  is  no  disguising  the  fact, 
Mr  Kurtz  has  done  more  harm  than  good  to  the 
Company.  He  did  not  see  the  time  was  not  ripe 
for  vigorous  action.  Cautiously,  cautiously — that's 
my  principle.  We  must  be  cautious  yet.  The  dis- 
trict is  closed  to  us  for  a  time.  Deplorable  !  Upon 
the  whole,  the  trade  will  suffer.  I  don't  deny  there 
is  a  remarkable  quantity  of  ivory — mostly  fossil. 
We  must  save  it,  at  all  events — but  look  how  pre- 
carious the  position  is — and  why?  Because  the 
method  is  unsound.'  'Do  you,'  said  I,  looking  at 
the  shore,  'call  it  "unsound  method"?'  'Without 
doubt,'  he  exclaimed,  hotly.  'Don't  you?'  .  .  . 
'No  method  at  all,'  I  murmured  after  a  while. 
'Exactly,' he  exulted.  'I  anticipated  this.  Shows 
a  complete  want  of  judgment.  It  is  my  duty  to 
point  it  out  in  the  proper  quarter.'  'Oh,'  said  I, 
'that  fellow — what's  his  name? — the  brickmaker, 
will  make  a  readable  report  for  you.'  He  appeared 
confounded  for  a  moment.  It  seemed  to  me  I  had 
never  breathed  an  atmosphere  so  vile,  and  I  turned 
mentally  to  Kurtz  for  relief — positively  for  relief. 
'Nevertheless   I   think  Mr   Kurtz  is   a  remarkable 


156  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

man,'  I  said  with  emphasis.  He  started,  dropped 
on  me  a  cold  heavy  glance,  said  very  quietly,  '  He 
was,''  and  turned  his  back  on  me.  My  hour  of 
favour  was  over;  I  found  myself  lumped  along 
with  Kurtz  as  a  partisan  of  methods  for  which 
the  time  was  not  ripe :  I  was  unsound !  Ah !  but 
it  was  something  to  have  at  least  a  choice  of  night- 
mares. 

"I  had  turned  to  the  wilderness  really,  not  to 
Mr  Kurtz,  who,  I  was  ready  to  admit,  was  as  good 
as  buried.  And  for  a  moment  it  seemed  to  me  as 
if  I  also  were  buried  in  a  vast  grave  full  of  un- 
speakable secrets.  I  felt  an  intolerable  weight 
oppressing  my  breast,  the  smell  of  the  damp  earth, 
the  unseen  presence  of  victorious  corruption,  the 
darkness  of  an  impenetrable  night.  .  .  .  The 
Russian  tapped  me  on  the  shoulder.  I  heard  him 
mumbling  and  stammering  something  about  'brother 
seaman — couldn't  conceal — knowledge  of  matters 
that  would  affect  Mr  Kurtz's  reputation.'  I  waited. 
For  him  evidently  Mr  Kurtz  was  not  in  his  grave  ; 
I  suspect  that  for  him  Mr  Kurtz  was  one  of  the 
immortals.  '  Well ! '  said  I  at  last,  '  speak  out. 
As  it  happens,  I  am  Mr  Kurtz's  friend — in  a  way.' 

"He  stated  with  a  good  deal  of  formality  that 
had  we  not  been  'of  the  same  profession,'  he  would 
have  kept  the  matter  to  himself  without  regard  to 
consequences.  '  He  suspected  there  was  an  active  ill- 
will  towards  him  on  the  part  of   these  white  men 

that '     'You  are  right,'   I  said,   remembering  a 

certain  conversation  I  had  overheard.  '  The  manager 
thinks  you  ought  to  be  hanged.'  He  showed  a  con- 
cern at  this  intelligence  which  amused  me  at  first. 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  157 

'I  had  better  get  out  of  the  way  quietly,'  he  said, 
earnestly.  'I  can  do  no  more  for  Kurtz  now,  and 
they  would  soon  find  some  excuse.  What's  to  stop 
them  ?  There's  a  military  post  three  hundred  miles 
from  here.'  'Well,  upon  my  word,'  said  I,  'perhaps 
you  had  better  go  if  you  have  any  friends  amongst 
the  savages  near  by.'  'Plenty,'  he  said.  'They  are 
simple  people — and  I  want  nothing,  you  know.'  He 
stood  biting  his  lip,  then :  '  I  don't  want  any  harm 
to  happen  to  these  whites  here,  but  of  course  I  was 
thinking  of  Mr  Kurtz's  reputation — but  you  are  a 

brother  seaman  and '     '  All  right,'  said  I,  after  a 

time.  'Mr  Kurtz's  reputation  is  safe  with  me.'  I 
did  not  know  how  truly  I  spoke. 

"  He  informed  me,  lowering  his  voice,  that  it 
was  Kurtz  who  had  ordered  the  attack  to  be  made 
on  the  steamer.  'He  hated  sometimes  the  idea  of 
being  taken  away  —  and  then  again.  .  .  .  But  I 
don't  understand  these  matters.  I  am  a  simple 
man.  He  thought  it  would  scare  you  away — that 
you  would  give  it  up,  thinking  him  dead.  I  could 
not  stop  him.  Oh,  I  had  an  awful  time  of  it  this 
last  month.'  '  Yery  well,'  I  said.  'He  is  all  right 
now.'  'Ye-e-es,'  he  muttered,  not  very  convinced 
apparently.  'Thanks,'  said  I;  'I  shall  keep  my 
eyes  open.'  'But  quiet — eh?'  he  urged,  anxiously. 
'It  would  be   awful  for  his  reputation  if  anybody 

here '      I  promised  a  complete  discretion  with 

great  gravity.  '  I  have  a  canoe  and  three  black 
fellows  waiting  not  very  far.  I  am  off.  Could  you 
give  me  a  few  Martini-Henry  cartridges  ? '  I  could, 
and  did,  with  proper  secrecy.  He  helped  himself, 
with  a  wink  at  me,  to  a  handful  of  my  tobacco.     '  Be- 


158  HEART  OP  DARKNESS. 

tween  sailors — you  know — good  English  tobacco.' 
At  the  door  of  the  pilot-house  he  turned  round — 
'  I  say,  haven't  you  a  pair  of  shoes  you  could  spare  ? ' 
He  raised  one  leg.  'Look.'  The  soles  were  tied 
with  knotted  strings  sandal-wise  under  his  bare  feet. 
I  rooted  out  an  old  pair,  at  which  he  looked  with 
admiration  before  tucking  it  under  his  left  arm. 
One  of  his  pockets  (bright  red)  was  bulging  with 
cartridges,  from  the  other  (dark  blue)  peeped  '  Tow- 
son's  Inquiry,'  &c,  &c.  He  seemed  to  think  himself 
excellently  well  equipped  for  a  renewed  encounter 
with  the  wilderness.  '  Ah !  I'll  never,  never  meet 
such  a  man  again.  You  ought  to  have  heard  him 
recite  poetry  —  his  own  too  it  was,  he  told  me. 
Poetry ! '  He  rolled  his  eyes  at  the  recollection  of 
these  delights.  '  Oh,  he  enlarged  my  mind  ! '  '  Good- 
bye,' said  I.  He  shook  hands  and  vanished  in  the 
night.  Sometimes  I  ask  myself  whether  I  had  ever 
really  seen  him — whether  it  was  possible  to  meet 
such  a  phenomenon !     .     .     . 

"  When  I  woke  up  shortly  after  midnight  his 
warning  came  to  my  mind  with  its  hint  of  danger 
that  seemed,  in  the  starred  darkness,  real  enough 
to  make  me  get  up  for  the  purpose  of  having  a  look 
round.  On  the  hill  a  big  fire  burned,  illuminating 
fitfully  a  crooked  corner  of  the  station-house.  One 
of  the  agents  with  a  picket  of  a  few  of  our  blacks, 
armed  for  the  purpose,  was  keeping  guard  over  the 
ivory;  but  deep  within  the  forest,  red  gleams  that 
wavered,  that  seemed  to  sink  and  rise  from  the 
ground  amongst  confused  columnar  shapes  of  in- 
tense blackness,  showed  the  exact  position  of  the 
camp  where  Mr  Kurtz's  adorers  were  keeping  their 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  159 

uneasy  vigil.  The  monotonous  beating  of  a  big 
drum  filled  the  air  with  muffled  shocks  and  a  linger- 
ing vibration.  A  steady  droning  sound  of  many 
men  chanting  each  to  himself  some  weird  incantation 
came  out  from  the  black,  flat  wall  of  the  woods  as 
the  humming  of  bees  comes  out  of  a  hive,  and  had 
a  strange  narcotic  effect  upon  my  half-awake  senses. 
I  believe  I  dozed  off  leaning  over  the  rail,  till  an 
abrupt  burst  of  yells,  an  overwhelming  outbreak  of 
a  pent-up  and  mysterious  frenzy,  woke  me  up  in  a 
bewildered  wonder.  It  was  cut  short  all  at  once,  and 
the  low  droning  went  on  with  an  effect  of  audible 
and  soothing  silence.  I  glanced  casually  into  the 
little  cabin.  A  light  was  burning  within,  but  Mr 
Kurtz  was  not  there. 

"I  think  I  would  have  raised  an  outcry  if  I  had 
believed  my  eyes.  But  I  didn't  believe  them  at  first 
— the  thing  seemed  so  impossible.  The  fact  is  I  was 
completely  unnerved  by  a  sheer  blank  fright,  pure 
abstract  terror,  unconnected  with  any  distinct  shape 
of  physical  danger.  What  made  this  emotion  so 
overpowering  was — how  shall  I  define  it  ? — the  moral 
shock  I  received,  as  if  something  altogether  mon- 
strous, intolerable  to  thought  and  odious  to  the  soul, 
had  been  thrust  upon  me  unexpectedly.  This  lasted 
of  course  the  merest  fraction  of  a  second,  and  then 
the  usual  sense  of  commonplace,  deadly  danger,  the 
possibility  of  a  sudden  onslaught  and  massacre,  or 
something  of  the  kind,  which  I  saw  impending,  was 
positively  welcome  and  composing.  It  pacified  me, 
in  fact,  so  much,  that  I  did  not  raise  an  alarm. 

"There  was  an  agent  buttoned  up  inside  an  ulster 
and  sleeping  on  a  chair  on  deck  within  three  feet  of 


160  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

me.  The  yells  had  not  awakened  him ;  he  snored 
very  slightly ;  I  left  him  to  his  slumbers  and  leaped 
ashore.  I  did  not  betray  Mr  Kurtz — it  was  ordered 
I  should  never  betray  him — it  was  written  I  should 
be  loyal  to  the  nightmare  of  my  choice.  I  was 
anxious  to  deal  with  this  shadow  by  myself  alone, 
— and  to  this  day  I  don't  know  why  I  was  so  jealous 
of  sharing  with  any  one  the  peculiar  blackness  of 
that  experience. 

"As  soon  as  I  got  on  the  bank  I  saw  a  trail — a 
broad  trail  through  the  grass.  I  remember  the 
exultation  with  which  I  said  to  myself,  'He  can't 
walk — he  is  crawling  on  all-fours — I've  got  him.' 
The  grass  was  wet  with  dew.  I  strode  rapidly  with 
clenched  fists.  I  fancy  I  had  some  vague  notion  of 
falling  upon  him  and  giving  him  a  drubbing.  I 
don't  know.  I  had  some  imbecile  thoughts.  The 
knitting  old  woman  with  the  cat  obtruded  herself 
upon  my  memory  as  a  most  improper  person  to  be 
sitting  at  the  other  end  of  such  an  affair.  I  saw  a 
row  of  pilgrims  squirting  lead  in  the  air  out  of 
Winchesters  held  to  the  hip.  I  thought  I  would 
never  get  back  to  the  steamer,  and  imagined  myself 
living  alone  and  unarmed  in  the  woods  to  an  ad- 
vanced age.  Such  silly  things — you  know.  And 
I  remember  I  confounded  the  beat  of  the  drum  with 
the  beating  of  my  heart,  and  was  pleased  at  its 
calm  regularity. 

"  I  kept  to  the  track  though  —  then  stopped  to 
listen.  The  night  was  very  clear  :  a  dark  blue  space, 
sparkling  with  dew  and  starlight,  in  which  black 
things  stood  very  still.  I  thought  I  could  see  a  kind 
of  motion  ahead  of  me.     I  was  strangely  cocksure 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  161 

of  everything  that  night.  I  actually  left  the  track 
and  ran  in  a  wide  semicircle  (I  verily  believe  chuck- 
ling to  myself)  so  as  to  get  in  front  of  that  stir, 
of  that  motion  I  had  seen — if  indeed  I  had  seen 
anything.  I  was  circumventing  Kurtz  as  though 
it  had  been  a  boyish  game. 

"I  came  upon  him,  and,  if  he  had  not  heard  me 
coming,  I  would  have  fallen  over  him  too,  but  he  got 
up  in  time.  He  rose,  unsteady,  long,  pale,  indistinct, 
like  a  vapour  exhaled  by  the  earth,  and  swayed 
slightly,  misty  and  silent  before  me;  while  at  my 
back  the  fires  loomed  between  the  trees,  and  the 
murmur  of  many  voices  issued  from  the  forest.  I 
had  cut  him  off  cleverly;  but  when  actually  con- 
fronting him  I  seemed  to  come  to  my  senses,  I  saw 
the  danger  in  its  right  proportion.  It  was  by  no 
means  over  yet.  Suppose  he  began  to  shout? 
Though  he  could  hardly  stand,  there  was  still  plenty 
of  vigour  in  his  voice.  'Go  away — hide  yourself,' 
he  said,  in  that  profound  tone.  It  was  very  awful. 
I  glanced  back.  We  were  within  thirty  yards  from 
the  nearest  fire.  A  black  figure  stood  up,  strode  on 
long  black  legs,  waving  long  black  arms,  across  the 
glow.  It  had  horns — antelope  horns,  I  think — on 
its  head.  Some  sorcerer,  some  witch-man,  no  doubt : 
it  looked  fiend-like  enough.  'Do  you  know  what 
you  are  doing?'  I  whispered.  'Perfectly,'  he 
answered,  raising  his  voice  for  that  single  word  : 
it  sounded  to  me  far  off  and  yet  loud,  like  a  hail 
through  a  speaking-trumpet.  If  he  makes  a  row 
we  are  lost,  I  thought  to  myself.  This  clearly  was 
not  a  case  for  fisticuffs,  even  apart  from  the  very 
natural  aversion  I  had  to  beat  that  Shadow — this 


162  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

wandering  and  tormented  thing.  '  You  will  be  lost/ 
I  said — 'utterly  lost.'  One  gets  sometimes  such  a 
flash  of  inspiration,  you  know.  I  did  say  the  right 
thing,  though  indeed  he  could  not  have  been  more 
irretrievably  lost  than  he  was  at  this  very  moment, 
when  the  foundations  of  our  intimacy  were  being 
laid — to  endure — to  endure — even  to  the  end — even 
beyond. 

"'I  had  immense  plans,'  he  muttered  irresolutely. 
'Yes,'  said  I;  'but  if  you  try  to  shout  I'll  smash 

your  head  with '  there  was  not  a  stick  or  a  stone 

near.  '  I  will  throttle  you  for  good,'  I  corrected 
myself.  '  I  was  on  the  threshold  of  great  things,' 
he  pleaded,  in  a  voice  of  longing,  with  a  wistfulness 
of  tone  that  made  my  blood  run  cold.     'And  now 

for   this   stupid    scoundrel '       'Your  success  in 

Europe  is  assured  in  any  case,'  I  affirmed,  steadily. 
I  did  not  want  to  have  the  throttling  of  him,  you 
understand — and  indeed  it  would  have  been  very 
little  use  for  any  practical  purpose.  I  tried  to  break 
the  spell — the  heavy,  mute  spell  of  the  wilderness — 
that  seemed  to  draw  him  to  its  pitiless  breast  by  the 
awakening  of  forgotten  and  brutal  instincts,  by  the 
memory  of  gratified  and  monstrous  passions.  This 
alone,  I  was  convinced,  had  driven  him  out  to  the 
edge  of  the  forest,  to  the  bush,  towards  the  gleam  of 
fires,  the  throb  of  drums,  the  drone  of  weird  incanta- 
tions; this  alone  had  beguiled  his  unlawful  soul 
beyond  the  bounds  of  permitted  aspirations.  And, 
don't  you  see,  the  terror  of  the  position  was  not  in 
being  knocked  on  the  head — though  I  had  a  very 
lively  sense  of  that  danger  too — but  in  this,  that  I 
had  to  deal  with  a  being  to  whom  I  could  not  appeal 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  163 

in  the  name  of  anything  high  or  low.  I  had,  even  like 
the  niggers,  to  invoke  him — himself — his  own  exalted 
and  incredible  degradation.  There  was  nothing  either 
above  or  below  him,  and  I  knew  it.  He  had  kicked 
himself  loose  of  the  earth.  Confound  the  man !  he 
had  kicked  the  very  earth  to  pieces.  He  was  alone, 
and  I  before  him  did  not  know  whether  I  stood  on 
the  ground  or  floated  in  the  air.  I've  been  telling 
you  what  we  said — repeating  the  phrases  we  pro- 
nounced,— but  what's  the  good  ?  They  were  common 
everyday  words,  —  the  familiar,  vague  sounds  ex- 
changed on  every  waking  day  of  life.  But  what  of 
that?  They  had  behind  them,  to  my  mind,  the 
terrific  suggestiveness  of  words  heard  in  dreams,  of 
phrases  spoken  in  nightmares.  Soul !  If  anybody 
had  ever  struggled  with  a  soul,  I  am  the  man,  And 
I  wasn't  arguing  with  a  lunatic  either.  Believe  me 
or  not,  his  intelligence  was  perfectly  clear — con- 
centrated, it  is  true,  upon  himself  with  horrible  in- 
tensity, yet  clear ;  and  therein  was  my  only  chance 
— barring,  of  course,  the  killing  him  there  and  then, 
which  wasn't  so  good,  on  account  of  unavoidable 
noise.  But  his  soul  was  mad.  Being  alone  in  the 
wilderness,  it  had  looked  within  itself,  and,  by 
heavens !  I  tell  you,  it  had  gone  mad.  I  had — for 
my  sins,  I  suppose — to  go  through  the  ordeal  of 
looking  into  it  myself.  No  eloquence  could  have 
been  so  withering  to  one's  belief  in  mankind  as  his 
final  burst  of  sincerity.  He  struggled  with  himself, 
too.  I  saw  it, — I  heard  it.  I  saw  the  inconceivable 
mystery  of  a  soul  that  knew  no  restraint,  no  faith, 
and  no  fear,  yet  struggling  blindly  with  itself.  I 
kept  my  head  pretty  well ;  but  when  I  had  him  at 


164  HEART   OF   DARKNESS. 

last  stretched  on  the  couch,  I  wiped  my  forehead, 
while  my  legs  shook  under  me  as  though  I  had 
carried  half  a  ton  on  my  back  down  that  hill.  And 
yet  I  had  only  supported  him,  his  bony  arm  clasped 
round  my  neck — and  he  was  not  much  heavier  than 
a  child. 

"  When  next  day  we  left  at  noon,  the  crowd,  of 
whose  presence  behind  the  curtain  of  trees  I  had 
been  acutely  conscious  all  the  time,  flowed  out  of  the 
woods  again,  filled  the  clearing,  covered  the  slope 
with  a  mass  of  naked,  breathing,  quivering,  bronze 
bodies.  I  steamed  up  a  bit,  then  swung  down- 
stream, and  two  thousand  eyes  followed  the  evolu- 
tions of  the  splashing,  thumping,  fierce  river-demon 
beating  the  water  with  its  terrible  tail  and  breathing 
black  smoke  into  the  air.  In  front  of  the  first  rank, 
along  the  river,  three  men,  plastered  with  bright 
red  earth  from  head  to  foot,  strutted  to  and  fro  rest- 
lessly. "When  we  came  abreast  again,  they  faced 
the  river,  stamped  their  feet,  nodded  their  horned 
heads,  swayed  their  scarlet  bodies ;  they  shook 
towards  the  fierce  river -demon  a  bunch  of  black 
feathers,  a  mangy  skin  with  a  pendent  tail — some- 
thing that  looked  like  a  dried  gourd ;  they  shouted 
periodically  together  strings  of  amazing  words  that 
resembled  no  sounds  of  human  language;  and  the 
deep  murmurs  of  the  crowd,  interrupted  suddenly, 
were  like  the  responses  of  some  satanic  litany. 

"  We  had  carried  Kurtz  into  the  pilot-house :  there 
was  more  air  there.  Lying  on  the  couch,  he  stared 
through  the  open  shutter.  There  was  an  eddy  in 
the  mass  of  human  bodies,  and  the  woman  with 
helmeted  head  and  tawny  cheeks  rushed  out  to  the 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  165 

very  brink  of  the  stream.  She  put  out  her  hands, 
shouted  something,  and  all  that  wild  mob  took  up 
the  shout  in  a  roaring  chorus  of  articulated,  rapid, 
breathless  utterance. 

"  '  Do  you  understand  this  ? '  I  asked. 

"  He  kept  on  looking  out  past  me  with  fiery,  long- 
ing eyes,  with  a  mingled  expression  of  wistf  ulness  and 
hate.  He  made  no  answer,  but  I  saw  a  smile,  a  smile 
of  indefinable  meaning,  appear  on  his  colourless  lips 
that  a  moment  after  twitched  convulsively.  '  Do  I 
not  ?  '  he  said  slowly,  gasping,  as  if  the  words  had 
been  torn  out  of  him  by  a  supernatural  power. 

"  I  pulled  the  string  of  the  whistle,  and  I  did  this 
because  I  saw  the  pilgrims  on  deck  getting  out  their 
rifles  with  an  air  of  anticipating  a  jolly  lark.  At  the 
sudden  screech  there  was  a  movement  of  abject  terror 
through  that  wedged  mass  of  bodies.  '  Don't !  don't ! 
you  frighten  them  away,'  cried  some  one  on  deck 
disconsolately.  I  pulled  the  string  time  after  time. 
They  broke  and  ran,  they  leaped,  they  crouched,  they 
swerved,  they  dodged  the  flying  terror  of  the  sound. 
The  three  red  chaps  had  fallen  flat,  face  down  on  the 
shore,  as  though  they  had  been  shot  dead.  Only  the 
barbarous  and  superb  woman  did  not  so  much  as 
flinch,  and  stretched  tragically  her  bare  arms  after 
us  over  the  sombre  and  glittering  river. 

"  And  then  that  imbecile  crowd  down  on  the  deck 
started  their  little  fun,  and  I  could  see  nothing  more 
for  smoke. 

"  The  brown  current  ran  swiftly  out  of  the  heart 
of  darkness,  bearing  us  down  towards  the  sea  with 
twice  the  speed  of  our  upward  progress  ;  and  Kurtz's 


166  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

life  was  running  swiftly  too,  ebbing,  ebbing  out  of 
his  heart  into  the  sea  of  inexorable  time.  The 
manager  was  very  placid,  he  had  no  vital  anxieties 
now,  he  took  us  both  in  with  a  comprehensive  and 
satisfied  glance  :  the  '  affair '  had  come  off  as  well  as 
could  be  wished.  I  saw  the  time  approaching  when 
I  would  be  left  alone  of  the  party  of  '  unsound 
method.'  The  pilgrims  looked  upon  me  with  dis- 
favour. I  was,  so  to  speak,  numbered  with  the  dead. 
It  is  strange  how  I  accepted  this  unforeseen  partner- 
ship, this  choice  of  nightmares  forced  upon  me  in  the 
tenebrous  land  invaded  by  these  mean  and  greedy 
phantoms. 

"  Kurtz  discoursed.  A  voice  !  a  voice !  It  rang 
deep  to  the  very  last.  It  survived  his  strength  to 
hide  in  the  magnificent  folds  of  eloquence  the  barren 
darkness  of  his  heart.  Oh,  he  struggled !  he  struggled ! 
The  wastes  of  his  weary  brain  were  haunted  by 
shadowy  images  now — images  of  wealth  and  fame 
revolving  obsequiously  round  his  unextinguishable 
gift  of  noble  and  lofty  expression.  My  Intended, 
my  station,  my  career,  my  ideas — these  were  the 
subjects  for  the  occasional  utterances  of  elevated 
sentiments.  The  shade  of  the  original  Kurtz  fre- 
quented the  bedside  of  the  hollow  sham,  whose  fate 
it  was  to  be  buried  presently  in  the  mould  of  primeval 
earth.  But  both  the  diabolic  love  and  the  unearthly 
hate  of  the  mysteries  it  had  penetrated  fought  for 
the  possession  of  that  soul  satiated  with  primitive 
emotions,  avid  of  lying  fame,  of  sham  distinction,  of 
all  the  appearances  of  success  and  power. 

"  Sometimes  he  was  contemptibly  childish.  He 
desired  to  have  kings  meet  him  at  railway-stations 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  167 

on  his  return  from  some  ghastly  Nowhere,  where  he 
intended  to  accomplish  great  things.  ■  You  show 
them  you  have  in  you  something  that  is  really  pro- 
fitable, and  then  there  will  be  no  limits  to  the  recog- 
nition of  your  ability,'  he  would  say.  '  Of  course  you 
must  take  care  of  the  motives — right  motives — 
always.'  The  long  reaches  that  were  like  one  and 
the  same  reach,  monotonous  bends  that  were  exactly 
alike,  slipped  past  the  steamer  with  their  multitude 
of  secular  trees  looking  'patiently  after  this  grimy 
fragment  of  another  world,  the  forerunner  of  change, 
of  conquest,  of  trade,  of  massacres,  of  blessings.  I 
looked  ahead — piloting.  '  Close  the  shutter,'  said 
Kurtz  suddenly  one  day ;  '  I  can't  bear  to  look  at 
this.'  I  did  so.  There  was  a  silence.  '  Oh,  but  I 
will  wring  your  heart  yet ! '  he  cried  at  the  invisible 
wilderness. 

"We  broke  down — as  I  had  expected — and  had  to 
lie  up  for  repairs  at  the  head  of  an  island.  This 
delay  was  the  first  thing  that  shook  Kurtz's  con- 
fidence. One  morning  he  gave  me  a  packet  of  papers 
and  a  photograph, — the  lot  tied  together  with  a  shoe- 
string. '  Keep  this  for  me,'  he  said.  ■  This  noxious 
fool'  (meaning  the  manager)  'is  capable  of  prying  into 
my  boxes  when  I  am  not  looking.'  In  the  afternoon 
I  saw  him.  He  was  lying  on  his  back  with  closed 
eyes,  and  I  withdrew  quietly,  but  I  heard  him  mutter, 
1  Live  rightly,  die,  die  .  .  .  '  I  listened.  There  was 
nothing  more.  Was  he  rehearsing  some  speech  in 
his  sleep,  or  was  it  a  fragment  of  a  phrase  from  some 
newspaper  article  ?  He  had  been  writing  for  the 
papers  and  meant  to  do  so  again,  '  for  the  furthering 
of  my  ideas.     It's  a  duty.' 


168  HEART   OP  DARKNESS. 

"  His  was  an  impenetrable  darkness.  I  looked  at 
him  as  you  peer  down  at  a  man  who  is  lying  at  the 
bottom  of  a  precipice  where  the  sun  never  shines. 
But  I  had  not  much  time  to  give  him,  because  I  was 
helping  the  engine-driver  to  take  to  pieces  the  leaky 
cylinders,  to  straighten  a  bent  connecting-rod,  and 
in  other  such  matters.  I  lived  in  an  infernal 
mess  of  rust,  filings,  nuts,  bolts,  spanners,  hammers, 
ratchet-drills — things  I  abominate,  because  I  don't 
get  on  with  them.  I  tended  the  little  forge  we 
fortunately  had  aboard ;  I  toiled  wearily  in  a 
wretched  scrap-heap  —  unless  I  had  the  shakes 
too  bad  to  stand. 

"One  evening  coming  in  with  a  candle  I  was 
startled  to  hear  him  say  a  little  tremulously,  'I  am 
lying  here  in  the  dark  waiting  for  death.'  The  light 
was  within  a  foot  of  his  eyes.  I  forced  myself  to 
murmur,  '  Oh,  nonsense ! '  and  stood  over  him  as  if 
transfixed. 

"Anything  approaching  the  change  that  came 
over  his  features  I  have  never  seen  before,  and  hope 
never  to  see  again.  Oh,  I  wasn't  touched.  I  was 
fascinated.  It  was  as  though  a  veil  had  been  rent. 
I  saw  on  that  ivory  face  the  expression  of  sombre 
pride,  of  ruthless  power,  of  craven  terror — of  an 
intense  and  hopeless  despair.  Did  he  live  his  life 
again  in  every  detail  of  desire,  temptation,  and  sur- 
render during  that  supreme  moment  of  complete 
knowledge?  He  cried  in  a  whisper  at  some  image, 
at  some  vision, — he  cried  out  twice,  a  cry  that  was 
no  more  than  a  breath — 

" '  The  horror  !     The  horror ! ' 

"I  blew  the  candle  out  and  left  the  cabin.     The 


HEA.RT  OF  DARKNESS.  169 

pilgrims  were  dining  in  the  mess-room,  and  I  took 
my  place  opposite  the  manager,  who  lifted  his  eyes 
to  give  me  a  questioning  glance,  which  I  successfully 
ignored.  He  leaned  back,  serene,  with  that  peculiar 
smile  of  his  sealing  the  unexpressed  depths  of  his 
meanness.  A  continuous  shower  of  small  flies 
streamed  upon  the  lamp,  upon  the  cloth,  upon  our 
hands  and  faces.  Suddenly  the  manager's  boy  put 
his  insolent  black  head  in  the  doorway,  and  said  in  a 
tone  of  scathing  contempt — 

"  '  Mist  ah  Kurtz — he  dead.' 

"  All  the  pilgrims  rushed  out  to  see.  I  remained, 
and  went  on  with  my  dinner.  I  believe  I  was  con- 
sidered brutally  callous.  However,  I  did  not  eat 
much.  There  was  a  lamp  in  there — light,  don't  you 
know — and  outside  it  was  so  beastly,  beastly  dark. 
I  went  no  more  near  the  remarkable  man  who  had 
pronounced  a  judgment  upon  the  adventures  of  his 
soul  on  this  earth.  The  voice  was  gone.  What  else 
had  been  there?  But  I  am  of  course  aware  that 
next  day  the  pilgrims  buried  something  in  a  muddy 
hole. 

"  And  then  they  very  nearly  buried  me. 

"  However,  as  you  see,  I  did  not  go  to  join  Kurtz 
there  and  then.  I  did  not.  I  remained  to  dream 
the  nightmare  out  to  the  end,  and  to  show  my 
loyalty  to  Kurtz  once  more.  Destiny.  My  destiny ! 
Droll  thing  life  is — that  mysterious  arrangement  of 
merciless  logic  for  a  futile  purpose.  The  most  you 
can  hope  from  it  is  some  knowledge  of  yourself — 
that  comes  too  late — a  crop  of  unextinguishable 
regrets.  I  have  wrestled  with  death.  It  is  the 
most  unexciting  contest  you  can  imagine.     It  takes 


170  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

place  in  an  impalpable  greyness,  with  nothing  under- 
foot, with  nothing  around,  without  spectators,  with- 
out clamour,  without  glory,  without  the  great  desire 
of  victory,  without  the  great  fear  of  defeat,  in  a 
sickly  atmosphere  of  tepid  scepticism,  without  much 
belief  in  your  own  right,  and  still  less  in  that  of  your 
adversary.  If  such  is  the  form  of  ultimate  wisdom, 
then  life  is  a  greater  riddle  than  some  of  us  think 
it  to  be.  I  was  within  a  hair's-breadth  of  the  last 
opportunity  for  pronouncement,  and  I  found  with 
humiliation  that  probably  I  would  have  nothing  to 
say.  This  is  the  reason  why  I  affirm  that  Kurtz 
was  a  remarkable  man.  He  had  something  to  say. 
He  said  it.  Since  I  had  peeped  over  the  edge  my- 
self, I  understand  better  the  meaning  of  his  stare, 
that  could  not  see  the  flame  of  the  candle,  but  was 
wide  enough  to  embrace  the  whole  universe,  piercing 
enough  to  penetrate  all  the  hearts  that  beat  in  the 
darkness.  He  had  summed  up — he  had  judged. 
'The  horror!'  He  was  a  remarkable  man.  After 
all,  this  was  the  expression  of  some  sort  of  belief; 
it  had  candour,  it  had  conviction,  it  had  a  vibrating 
note  of  revolt  in  its  whisper,  it  had  the  appalling 
face  of  a  glimpsed  truth — the  strange  commingling 
of  desire  and  hate.  And  it  is  not  my  own  extremity 
I  remember  best — a  vision  of  greyness  without  form 
filled  with  physical  pain,  and  a  careless  contempt  for 
the  evanescence  of  all  things — even  of  this  pain  it- 
self. No !  It  is  his  extremity  that  I  seem  to  have 
lived  through.  True,  he  had  made  that  last  stride, 
he  had  stepped  over  the  edge,  while  I  had  been  per- 
mitted to  draw  back  my  hesitating  foot.  And  per- 
haps in  this  is  the  whole  difference ;  perhaps  all  the 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  171 

wisdom,  and  all  truth,  and  all  sincerity,  are  just 
compressed  into  that  inappreciable  moment  of  time 
in  which  we  step  over  the  threshold  of  the  invisible. 
Perhaps  !  I  like  to  think  my  summing-up  would  not 
have  been  a  word  of  careless  contempt.  Better  his 
cry — much  better.  It  was  an  affirmation,  a  moral 
victory  paid  for  by  innumerable  defeats,  by  abomin- 
able terrors,  by  abominable  satisfactions.  But  it  was 
a  victory !  That  is  why  I  have  remained  loyal  to 
Kurtz  to  the  last,  and  even  beyond,  when  a  long  time 
after  I  heard  once  more,  not  his  own  voice,  but  the 
echo  of  his  magnificent  eloquence  thrown  to  me  from 
a  soul  as  translucently  pure  as  a  cliff  of  crystal. 

"No,  they  did  not  bury  me,  though  there  is  a 
period  of  time  which  I  remember  mistily,  with  a 
shuddering  wonder,  like  a  passage  through  some 
inconceivable  world  that  had  no  hope  in  it  and  no 
desire.  I  found  myself  back  in  the  sepulchral  city 
resenting  the  sight  of  people  hurrying  through  the 
streets  to  filch  a  little  money  from  each  other,  to 
devour  their  infamous  cookery,  to  gulp  their  un- 
wholesome beer,  to  dream  their  insignificant  and 
silly  dreams.  They  trespassed  upon  my  thoughts. 
They  were  intruders  whose  knowledge  of  life  was 
to  me  an  irritating  pretence,  because  I  felt  so  sure 
they  could  not  possibly  know  the  things  I  knew. 
Their  bearing,  which  was  simply  the  bearing  of 
commonplace  individuals  going  about  their  business 
in  the  assurance  of  perfect  safety,  was  offensive  to 
me  like  the  outrageous  flauntings  of  folly  in  the  face 
of  a  danger  it  is  unable  to  comprehend.  I  had  no 
particular  desire  to  enlighten  them,  but  I  had  some 
difficulty  in   restraining   myself    from   laughing    in 


172  HEART   OF  DARKNESS. 

their  faces,  so  full  of  stupid  importance.  I  daresay 
I  was  not  very  well  at  that  time.  I  tottered  about 
the  streets — there  were  various  affairs  to  settle — 
grinning  bitterly  at  perfectly  respectable  persons.  I 
admit  my  behaviour  was  inexcusable,  but  then  my 
temperature  was  seldom  normal  in  these  days.  My 
dear  aunt's  endeavours  to  ' nurse  up  my  strength' 
seemed  altogether  beside  the  mark.  It  was  not  my 
strength  that  wanted  nursing,  it  was  my  imagination 
that  wanted  soothing.  I  kept  the  bundle  of  papers 
given  me  by  Kurtz,  not  knowing  exactly  what  to  do 
with  it.  His  mother  had  died  lately,  watched  over, 
as  I  was  told,  by  his  Intended.  A  clean-shaved  man, 
with  an  official  manner  and  wearing  gold-rimmed 
spectacles,  called  on  me  one  day  and  made  inquiries, 
at  first  circuitous,  afterwards  suavely  pressing,  about 
what  he  was  pleased  to  denominate  certain  'docu- 
ments.' I  was  not  surprised,  because  I  had  had  two 
rows  with  the  manager  on  the  subject  out  there.  I 
had  refused  to  give  up  the  smallest  scrap  out  of  that 
package,  and  I  took  the  same  attitude  with  the 
spectacled  man.  He  became  darkly  menacing  at 
last,  and  with  much  heat  argued  that  the  Company 
had  the  right  to  every  bit  of  information  about  its 
1 territories.'  And,  said  he,  'Mr  Kurtz's  knowledge 
of  unexplored  regions  must  have  been  necessarily  ex- 
tensive and  peculiar — owing  to  his  great  abilities 
and  to  the  deplorable  circumstances  in  which  he  had 

been   placed :    therefore '       I   assured   him   Mr 

Kurtz's  knowledge,  however  extensive,  did  not  bear 
upon  the  problems  of  commerce  or  administration. 
He  invoked  then  the  name  of  science.  *  It  would  be 
an  incalculable  loss  if,'  &c,  &c.      I  offered  him  the 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  173 

report  on  the  '  Suppression  of  Savage  Customs,'  with 
the  postscriptum  torn  off.  He  took  it  up  eagerly, 
but  ended  by  sniffing  at  it  with  an  air  of  contempt. 
'This  is  not  what  we  had  a  right  to  expect,'  he 
remarked.  '  Expect  nothing  else,'  I  said.  '  There 
are  only  private  letters.'  He  withdrew  upon  some 
threat  of  legal  proceedings,  and  I  saw  him  no  more ; 
but  another  fellow,  calling  himself  Kurtz's  cousin, 
appeared  two  days  later,  and  was  anxious  to  hear 
all  the  details  about  his  dear  relative's  last  moments. 
Incidentally  he  gave  me  to  understand  that  Kurtz 
had  been  essentially  a  great  musician.  '  There  was 
the  making  of  an  immense  success,'  said  the  man, 
who  was  an  organist,  I  believe,  with  lank  grey  hair 
flowing  over  a  greasy  coat-collar.  I  had  no  reason 
to  doubt  his  statement ;  and  to  this  day  I  am  unable 
to  say  what  was  Kurtz's  profession,  whether  he  ever 
had  any — which  was  the  greatest  of  his  talents.  I 
had  taken  him  for  a  painter  who  wrote  for  the  papers, 
or  else  for  a  journalist  who  could  paint — but  even 
the  cousin  (who  took  snuff  during  the  interview) 
could  not  tell  me  what  he  had  been — exactly.  He 
was  a  universal  genius — on  that  point  I  agreed  with 
the  old  chap,  who  thereupon  blew  his  nose  noisily 
into  a  large  cotton  handkerchief  and  withdrew  in 
senile  agitation,  bearing  off  some  family  letters  and 
memoranda  without  importance.  Ultimately  a  jour- 
nalist anxious  to  know  something  of  the  fate  of  his 
'dear  colleague'  turned  up.  This  visitor  informed 
me  Kurtz's  proper  sphere  ought  to  have  been  politics 
'on  the  popular  side.'  He  had  furry  straight  eye- 
brows, bristly  hair  cropped  short,  an  eye-glass  on 
a  broad  ribbon,  and,  becoming  expansive,  confessed 


174  HEART   OF   DAEKNESS. 

his  opinion  that  Kurtz  really  couldn't  write  a  bit — 
'  but  heavens !  how  that  man  could  talk !  He  elec- 
trified large  meetings.  He  had  faith — don't  you  see  ? — 
he  had  the  faith.  He  could  get  himself  to  believe  any- 
thing—  anything.  He  would  have  been  a  splendid 
leader  of  an  extreme  party.'  'What  party?'  I 
asked.  '  Any  party,'  answered  the  other.  '  He  was  an 
— an — extremist.'  Did  I  not  think  so  ?  I  assented. 
Did  I  know,  he  asked,  with  a  sudden  flash  of  curiosity, 
1  what  it  was  that  had  induced  him  to  go  out  there  ? ' 
1  Yes,'  said  I,  and  forthwith  handed  him  the  famous 
Report  for  publication,  if  he  thought  fit.  He  glanced 
through  it  hurriedly,  mumbling  all  the  time,  judged 
'  it  would  do,'  and  took  himself  off  with  this  plunder. 
"Thus  I  was  left  at  last  with  a  slim  packet  of 
letters  and  the  girl's  portrait.  She  struck  me  as 
beautiful — I  mean  she  had  a  beautiful  expression.  I 
know  that  the  sunlight  can  be  made  to  lie  too,  yet  one 
felt  that  no  manipulation  of  light  and  pose  could 
have  conveyed  the  delicate  shade  of  truthfulness 
upon  those  features.  She  seemed  ready  to  listen 
without  mental  reservation,  without  suspicion,  with- 
out a  thought  for  herself.  I  concluded  I  would  go 
and  give  her  back  her  portrait  and  those  letters 
myself.  Curiosity  ?  Yes  ;  and  also  some  other  feel- 
ing perhaps.  All  that  had  been  Kurtz's  had  passed 
out  of  my  hands :  his  soul,  his  body,  his  station,  his 
plans,  his  ivory,  his  career.  There  remained  only 
his  memory  and  his  Intended — and  I  wanted  to  give 
that  up  too  to  the  past,  in  a  way, — to  surrender  per- 
sonally all  that  remained  of  him  with  me  to  that 
oblivion  which  is  the  last  word  of  our  common  fate. 
I  don't  defend  myself.     I  had  no  clear  perception  of 


HEART   OF  DARKNESS.  175 

what  it  was  I  really  wanted.  Perhaps  it  was  an 
impulse  of  unconscious  loyalty,  or  the  fulfilment  of 
one  of  these  ironic  necessities  that  lurk  in  the  facts 
of  human  existence.  I  don't  know.  I  can't  tell. 
But  I  went. 

"  I  thought  his  memory  was  like  the  other  memories 
of  the  dead  that  accumulate  in  every  man's  life, — 
a  vague  impress  on  the  brain  of  shadows  that  had 
fallen  on  it  in  their  swift  and  final  passage ;  but 
before  the  high  and  ponderous  door,  between  the 
tall  houses  of  a  street  as  still  and  decorous  as  a 
well-kept  alley  in  a  cemetery,  I  had  a  vision  of  him 
on  the  stretcher,  opening  his  mouth  voraciously,  as 
if  to  devour  all  the  earth  with  all  its  mankind.  He 
lived  then  before  me ;  he  lived  as  much  as  he  had 
ever  lived — a  shadow  insatiable  of  splendid  appear- 
ances, of  frightful  realities;  a  shadow  darker  than 
the  shadow  of  the  night,  and  draped  nobly  in  the 
folds  of  a  gorgeous  eloquence.  The  vision  seemed 
to  enter  the  house  with  me  —  the  stretcher,  the 
phantom-bearers,  the  wild  crowd  of  obedient  wor- 
shippers, the  gloom  of  the  forests,  the  glitter  of  the 
reach  between  the  murky  bends,  the  beat  of  the 
drum,  regular  and  muffled  like  the  beating  of  a 
heart — the  heart  of  a  conquering  darkness.  It  was 
a  moment  of  triumph  for  the  wilderness,  an  invading 
and  vengeful  rush  which,  it  seemed  to  me,  I  would 
have  to  keep  back  alone  for  the  salvation  of  another 
soul.  And  the  memory  of  what  I  had  heard  him 
say  afar  there,  with  the  horned  shapes  stirring  at 
my  back,  in  the  glow  of  fires,  within  the  patient 
woods,  those  broken  phrases  came  back  to  me,  were 
heard  again  in  their  ominous  and  terrifying  simplic. 


176  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

ity.  I  remembered  his  abject  pleading,  his  abject 
threats,  the  colossal  scale  of  his  vile  desires,  the 
meanness,  the  torment,  the  tempestuous  anguish  of 
his  soul.  And  later  on  I  seemed  to  see  his  collected 
languid  manner,  when  he  said  one  day,  'This  lot  of 
ivory  now  is  really  mine.  The  Company  did  not 
pay  for  it.  I  collected  it  myself  at  a  very  great 
personal  risk.  I  am  afraid  they  will  try  to  claim 
it  as  theirs  though.  H'm.  It  is  a  difficult  case. 
What  do  you  think  I  ought  to  do — resist?  Eh? 
I  want  no  more  than  justice.'  .  .  .  He  wanted  no 
more  than  justice — no  more  than  justice.  I  rang 
the  bell  before  a  mahogany  door  on  the  first  floor, 
and  while  I  waited  he  seemed  to  stare  at  me  out  of 
the  glassy  panel — stare  with  that  wide  and  immense 
stare  embracing,  condemning,  loathing  all  the  uni- 
verse. I  seemed  to  hear  the  whispered  cry,  'The 
horror !     The  horror  ! ' 

"  The  dusk  was  falling.  I  had  to  wait  in  a  lofty 
drawing-room  with  three  long  windows  from  floor  to 
ceiling  that  were  like  three  luminous  and  bedraped 
columns.  The  bent  gilt  legs  and  backs  of  the  furni- 
ture shone  in  indistinct  curves.  The  tall  marble 
fireplace  had  a  cold  and  monumental  whiteness.  A 
grand  piano  stood  massively  in  a  corner,  with  dark 
gleams  on  the  flat  surfaces  like  a  sombre  and  polished 
sarcophagus.     A  high  door  opened — closed.     I  rose. 

"  She  came  forward,  all  in  black,  with  a  pale 
head,  floating  towards  me  in  the  dusk.  She  was 
in  mourning.  It  was  more  than  a  year  since  his 
death,  more  than  a  year  since  the  news  came ;  she 
seemed  as  though  she  would  remember  and  mourn 
for  ever.      She  took   both   my  hands  in   hers  and 


HEART  OF  DARKNESS.  177 

murmured,  'I  had  heard  you  were  coming.'  I 
noticed  she  was  not  very  young  —  I  mean  not 
girlish.  She  had  a  mature  capacity  for  fidelity, 
for  belief,  for  suffering.  The  room  seemed  to  have 
grown  darker,  as  if  all  the  sad  light  of  the  cloudy 
evening  had  taken  refuge  on  her  forehead.  This 
fair  hair,  this  pale  visage,  this  pure  brow,  seemed 
surrounded  by  an  ashy  halo  from  which  the  dark 
eyes  looked  out  at  me.  Their  glance  was  guileless, 
profound,  confident,  and  trustful.  She  carried  her 
sorrowful  head  as  though  she  were  proud  of  that 
sorrow,  as  though  she  would  say,  I — I  alone  know 
how  to  mourn  for  him  as  he  deserves.  But  while 
we  were  still  shaking  hands,  such  a  look  of  awful 
desolation  came  upon  her  face  that  I  perceived  she 
was  one  of  those  creatures  that  are  not  the  play- 
things of  Time.  For  her  he  had  died  only  yesterday. 
And,  by  Jove !  the  impression  was  so  powerful  that 
for  me  too  he  seemed  to  have  died  only  yesterday — 
nay,  this  very  minute.  I  saw  her  and  him  in  the 
same  instant  of  time — his  death  and  her  sorrow — 
I  saw  her  sorrow  in  the  very  moment  of  his  death. 
Do  you  understand  ?  I  saw  them  together — I  heard 
them  together.  She  had  said,  with  a  deep  catch  of 
the  breath,  '  I  have  survived ' ;  while  my  strained 
ears  seemed  to  hear  distinctly,  mingled  with  her 
tone  of  despairing  regret,  the  summing-up  whisper 
of  his  eternal  condemnation.  I  asked  myself  what 
I  was  doing  there,  with  a  sensation  of  panic  in  my 
heart  as  though  I  had  blundered  into  a  place  of  cruel 
and  absurd  mysteries  not  fit  for  a  human  being  to 
behold.  She  motioned  me  to  a  chair.  We  sat  down. 
I  laid  the  packet  gently  on  the  little  table,  and  she 

M 


178  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

put  her  hand  over  it.  ...  '  You  knew  him  well,'  she 
murmured,  after  a  moment  of  mourning  silence. 

"'Intimacy  grows  quick  out  there,'  I  said.  'I 
knew  him  as  well  as  it  is  possible  for  one  man  to 
know  another.' 

"'And  you  admired  him,'  she  said.  'It  was 
impossible  to  know  him  and  not  to  admire  him. 
Was  it?' 

" '  He  was  a  remarkable  man,'  I  said,  unsteadily. 
Then  before  the  appealing  fixity  of  her  gaze,  that 
seemed  to  watch  for  more  words  on  my  lips,  I  went 
on,  '  It  was  impossible  not  to ' 

'"Love  him,'  she  finished  eagerly,  silencing  me  into 
an  appalled  dumbness.  '  How  true !  how  true !  But 
when  you  think  that  no  one  knew  him  so  well  as  I ! 
I  had  all  his  noble  confidence.     I  knew  him  best.' 

"  '  You  knew  him  best,'  I  repeated.  And  perhaps 
she  did.  But  with  every  word  spoken  the  room  was 
growing  darker,  and  only  her  forehead,  smooth  and 
white,  remained  illumined  by  the  unextinguishable 
light  of  belief  and  love. 

"  '  You  were  his  friend,'  she  went  on.  '  His  friend,' 
she  repeated,  a  little  louder.  '  You  must  have  been, 
if  he  had  given  you  this,  and  sent  you  to  me.  I  feel 
I  can  speak  to  you — and  oh  !  I  must  speak.  I  want 
you — you  who  have  heard  his  last  words — to  know  I 
have  been  worthy  of  him.  ...  It  is  not  pride.  .  .  . 
Yes !  I  am  proud  to  know  I  understood  him  better 
than  any  one  on  earth — he  told  me  so  himself.  And 
since  his  mother  died  I  have  had  no  one — no  one — to 
—to ' 

"I  listened.  The  darkness  deepened.  I  was  not 
even  sure  whether  he  had  given  me  the  right  bundle. 


HEART  OP  DARKNESS.  179 

I  rather  suspect  he  wanted  me  to  take  care  of  another 
batch  of  his  papers  which,  after  his  death,  I  saw  the 
manager  examining  under  the  lamp.  And  the  girl 
talked,  easing  her  pain  in  the  certitude  of  my 
sympathy ;  she  talked  as  thirsty  men  drink.  I  had 
heard  that  her  engagement  with  Kurtz  had  been 
disapproved  by  her  people.  He  wasn't  rich  enough 
or  something.  And  indeed  I  don't  know  whether  he 
had  not  been  a  pauper  all  his  life.  He  had  given  me 
some  reason  to  infer  that  it  was  his  impatience  of 
comparative  poverty  that  drove  him  out  there. 

"  * .  .  .  Who  was  not  his  friend  who  had  heard 
him  speak  once  ? '  she  was  saying.  '  He  drew  men 
towards  him  by  what  was  best  in  them.'  She  looked 
at  me  with  intensity.  '  It  is  the  gift  of  the  great,' 
she  went  on,  and  the  sound  of  her  low  voice  seemed 
to  have  the  accompaniment  of  all  the  other  sounds, 
full  of  mystery,  desolation,  and  sorrow,  I  had  ever 
heard — the  ripple  of  the  river,  the  soughing  of  the 
trees  swayed  by  the  wind,  the  murmurs  of  wild 
crowds,  the  faint  ring  of  incomprehensible  words 
cried  from  afar,  the  whisper  of  a  voice  speaking  from 
beyond  the  threshold  of  an  eternal  darkness.  '  But 
you  have  heard  him  !     You  know  ! '  she  cried. 

"  '  Yes,  I  know,'  I  said  with  something  like  despair 
in  my  heart,  but  bowing  my  head  before  the  faith 
that  was  in  her,  before  that  great  and  saving  illusion 
that  shone  with  an  unearthly  glow  in  the  darkness, 
in  the  triumphant  darkness  from  which  I  could  not 
have  defended  her — from  which  I  could  not  even 
defend  myself. 

"  '  What  a  loss  to  me — to  us  ! ' — she  corrected  her- 
self  with    beautiful    generosity ;    then   added   in    a 


180  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

murmur,  'To  the  world.'  By  the  last  gleams  of 
twilight  I  could  see  the  glitter  of  her  eyes,  full  of 
tears — of  tears  that  would  not  fall. 

" '  I  have  been  very  happy  —  very  fortunate  — 
very  proud,'  she  went  on.  'Too  fortunate.  Too 
happy  for  a  little  while.  And  now  I  am  unhappy 
for — for  life.' 

"  She  stood  up  her  fair  hair  seemed  to  catch  all 
the  remaining  light  in  a  glimmer  of  gold.  I  rose 
too. 

" '  And  of  all  this,'  she  went  on,  mournfully,  'of  all 
his  promise,  and  of  all  his  greatness,  of  his  generous 
mind,  of  his  noble  heart,  nothing  remains — nothing 
but  a  memory.     You  and  I ' 

" '  We  shall  always  remember  him,'  I  said,  hastily. 

"  '  No  ! '  she  cried.  '  It  is  impossible  that  all  this 
should  be  lost — that  such  a  life  should  be  sacrificed  to 
leave  nothing — but  sorrow.  You  know  what  vast 
plans  he  had.  I  knew  of  them  too — I  could  not 
perhaps  understand, — but  others  knew  of  them. 
Something  must  remain.  His  words,  at  least,  have 
not  died.' 

'"His  words  will  remain,'  I  said. 

"'And  his  example,'  she  whispered  to  herself. 
'  Men  looked  up  to  him, — his  goodness  shone  in  every 
act.     His  example ' 

"'True,'  I  said;  'his  example  too.  Yes,  his 
example.     I  forgot  that.' 

"  '  But  I  do  not.  I  cannot — I  cannot  believe — not 
yet.  I  cannot  believe  that  I  shall  never  see  him 
again,  that  nobody  will  see  him  again,  never,  never, 
never.' 

"She  put  out  her  arms  as  if  after  a  retreating 


HEART   OF   DARKNESS.  181 

figure,  stretching  them  black  and  with  clasped  pale 
hands  across  the  fading  and  narrow  sheen  of  the 
window.  Never  see  him  !  I  saw  him  clearly  enough 
then.  I  shall  see  this  eloquent  phantom  as  long  as  I 
live,  and  I  shall  see  her  too,  a  tragic  and  familiar 
Shade,  resembling  in  this  gesture  another  one,  tragic 
also,  and  bedecked  with  powerless  charms,  stretching 
bare  brown  arms  over  the  glitter  of  the  infernal 
stream,  the  stream  of  darkness.  She  said  suddenly 
very  low,  'He  died  as  he  lived.' 

"  'His  end,'  said  I,  with  dull  anger  stirring  in  me, 
'  was  in  every  way  worthy  of  his  life.' 

"'And  I  was  not  with  him,'  she  murmured.  My 
anger  subsided  before  a  feeling  of  infinite  pity. 

"  '  Everything  that  could  be  done '  I  mumbled. 

" '  Ah,  but  I  believed  in  him  more  than  any  one  on 
sarth — more  than  his  own  mother,  more  than — him- 
self. He  needed  me  !  Me  !  I  would  have  treasured 
every  sigh,  every  word,  every  sign,  every  glance.' 

"I  felt  like  a  chill  grip  on  my  chest.  'Don't,'  I 
said,  in  a  muffled  voice. 

"  '  Forgive  me.  I — I — have  mourned  so  long  in 
silence — in  silence.  .  .  .  You  were  with  him — to 
the  last?  I  think  of  his  loneliness.  Nobody  near 
to  understand  him  as  I  would  have  understood. 
Perhaps  no  one  to  hear   .    .    .  ' 

"'To  the  very  end,'  I  said,  shakily.  'I  heard  his 
very  last  words.  .  .  .'     I  stopped  in  a  fright. 

'"Repeat  them,'  she  said  in  a  heart-broken  tone. 
'I  want — I  want — something — something — to — to 
live  with.' 

"  I  was  on  the  point  of  crying  at  her,  '  Don't  you 
hear  them?'     The  dusk  was  repeating  them  in  a 


182  HEART  OF  DARKNESS. 

persistent  whisper  all  around  us,  in  a  whisper  that 
seemed  to  swell  menacingly  like  the  first  whisper  of  a 
rising  wind.     '  The  horror !  the  horror ! ' 

" '  His  last  word — to  live  with/  she  murmured. 
'  Don't  you  understand  I  loved  him — I  loved  him — I 
loved  him ! ' 

"  I  pulled  myself  together  and  spoke  slowly. 

"  'The  last  word  he  pronounced  was — your  name.' 

"I  heard  a  light  sigh,  and  then  my  heart  stood 
still,  stopped  dead  short  by  an  exulting  and  terrible 
cry,  by  the  cry  of  inconceivable  triumph  and  of  un- 
speakable pain.  '  I  knew  it — I  was  sure  ! '  .  .  .  She 
knew.  She  was  sure.  I  heard  her  weeping;  she 
had  hidden  her  face  in  her  hands.  It  seemed  to  me 
that  the  house  would  collapse  before  I  could  escape, 
that  the  heavens  would  fall  upon  my  head.  But 
nothing  happened.  The  heavens  do  not  fall  for 
such  a  trifle.  Would  they  have  fallen,  I  wonder, 
if  I  had  rendered  Kurtz  that  justice  which  was  his 
due?  Hadn't  he  said  he  wanted  only  justice?  But 
I  couldn't.  I  could  not  tell  her.  It  would  have  been 
too  dark — too  dark  altogether.  ..." 

Marlow  ceased,  and  sat  apart,  indistinct  and  silent, 
in  the  pose  of  a  meditating  Buddha.  Nobody  moved 
for  a  time.  "We  have  lost  the  first  of  the  ebb,"  said 
the  Director,  suddenly.  I  raised  my  head.  The 
offing  was  barred  by  a  black  bank  of  clouds,  and 
the  tranquil  waterway  leading  to  the  uttermost 
ends  of  the  earth  flowed  sombre  under  an  overcast 
sky — seemed  to  lead  into  the  heart  of  an  immense 
darkness. 


THE   END  OF  THE  TETHER 


THE  END  OF  THE  TETHER. 


FOR  a  long  time  after  the  course  of  the  steamer 
Sofala  had  been  altered  for  the  land,  the  low- 
swampy  coast  had  retained  its  appearance  of  a 
mere  smudge  of  darkness  beyond  a  belt  of  glitter. 
The  sunrays  seemed  to  fall  violently  upon  the  calm 
sea  —  seemed  to  shatter  themselves  upon  an  ada- 
mantine surface  into  sparkling  dust,  into  a  dazzling 
vapour  of  light  that  blinded  the  eye  and  wearied 
the  brain  with  its  unsteady  brightness. 

Captain  Whalley  did  not  look  at  it.  "When  his 
Serang,  approaching  the  roomy  cane  arm-chair 
which  he  filled  capably,  had  informed  him  in  a  low 
voice  that  the  course  was  to  be  altered,  he  had 
risen  at  once  and  had  remained  on  his  feet,  face 
forward,  while  the  head  of  his  ship  swung  through 
a  quarter  of  a  circle.  He  had  not  uttered  a  single 
word,  not  even  the  word  to  steady  the  helm.  It 
was  the  Serang,  an  elderly,  alert,  little  Malay,  with 
a  very  dark  skin,  who  murmured  the  order  to  the 


186  THE   END    OF  THE   TETHER. 

helmsman.  And  then  slowly  Captain  Whalley  sat 
down  again  in  the  arm-chair  on  the  bridge  and 
fixed  his  eyes  on  the  deck  between  his  feet. 

He  could  not  hope  to  see  anything  new  upon  this 
lane  of  the  sea.  He  had  been  on  these  coasts  for 
the  last  three  years.  From  Low  Cape  to  Malantan 
the  distance  was  fifty  miles,  six  hours'  steaming  for 
the  old  ship  with  the  tide,  or  seven  against.  Then 
you  steered  straight  for  the  land,  and  by-and-by 
three  palms  would  appear  on  the  sky,  tall  and  slim, 
and  with  their  dishevelled  heads  in  a  bunch,  as  if 
in  confidential  criticism  of  the  dark  mangroves. 
The  Sofala  would  be  headed  towards  the  sombre 
strip  of  the  coast,  which  at  a  given  moment,  as  the 
ship  closed  with  it  obliquely,  would  show  several 
clean  shining  fractures — the  brimful  estuary  of  a 
river.  Then  on  through  a  brown  liquid,  three 
parts  water  and  one  part  black  earth,  on  and  on 
between  the  low  shores,  three  parts  black  earth  and 
one  part  brackish  water,  the  Sofala  would  plough 
her  way  up-stream,  as  she  had  done  once  every 
month  for  these  seven  years  or  more,  long  before  he 
was  aware  of  her  existence,  long  before  he  had  ever 
thought  of  having  anything  to  do  with  her  and  her 
invariable  voyages.  The  old  ship  ought  to  have 
known  the  road  better  than  her  men,  who  had  not 
been  kept  so  long  at  it  without  a  change ;  better 
than  the  faithful  Serang,  whom  he  had  brought 
over  from  his  last  ship  to  keep  the  captain's  watch ; 
better  than  he  himself,  who  had  been  her  captain 
for  the  last  three  years  only.  She  could  always  be 
depended  upon  to  make  her  courses.  Her  com- 
passes were  never  out.     She  was  no  trouble  at  all 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  187 

to  take  about,  as  if  her  great  age  had  given  her 
knowledge,  wisdom,  and  steadiness.  She  made  her 
landfalls  to  a  degree  of  the  bearing,  and  almost  to 
a  minute  of  her  allowed  time.  At  any  moment,  as 
he  sat  on  the  bridge  without  looking  up,  or  lay- 
sleepless  in  his  bed,  simply  by  reckoning  the  days 
and  the  hours  he  could  tell  where  he  was — the  pre- 
cise spot  of  the  beat.  He  knew  it  well  too,  this 
monotonous  huckster's  round,  up  and  down  the 
Straits;  he  knew  its  order  and  its  sights  and  its 
people.  Malacca  to  begin  with,  in  at  daylight  and 
out  at  dusk,  to  cross  over  with  a  rigid  phosphor- 
escent wake  this  highway  of  the  Far  East.  Dark- 
ness and  gleams  on  the  water,  clear  stars  on  a  black 
sky,  perhaps  the  lights  of  a  home  steamer  keeping 
her  unswerving  course  in  the  middle,  or  maybe  the 
elusive  shadow  of  a  native  craft  with  her  mat  sails 
flitting  by  silently — and  the  low  land  on  the  other 
side  in  sight  at  daylight.  At  noon  the  three 
palms  of  the  next  place  of  call,  up  a  sluggish  river. 
The  only  white  man  residing  there  was  a  retired 
young  sailor,  with  whom  he  had  become  friendly 
in  the  course  of  many  voyages.  Sixty  miles  farther 
on  there  was  another  place  of  call,  a  deep  bay 
with  only  a  couple  of  houses  on  the  beach.  And 
so  on,  in  and  out,  picking  up  coastwise  cargo 
here  and  there,  and  finishing  with  a  hundred  miles' 
steady  steaming  through  the  maze  of  an  archipelago 
of  small  islands  up  to  a  large  native  town  at  the 
end  of  the  beat.  There  was  a  three  days'  rest  for 
the  old  ship  before  he  started  her  again  in  inverse 
order,  seeing  the  same  shores  from  another  bearing, 
hearing  the  same  voices  in  the  same  places,   back 


188  THE   END   OP   THE   TETHER. 

again  to  the  So/aid's  port  of  registry  on  the  great 
highway  to  the  East,  where  he  would  take  up  a 
berth  nearly  opposite  the  big  stone  pile  of  the 
harbour  office  till  it  was  time  to  start  again  on  the 
old  round  of  1600  miles  and  thirty  days.  Not  a 
very  enterprising  life,  this,  for  Captain  Whalley, 
Henry  Whalley,  otherwise  Dare-devil  Harry — 
Whalley  of  the  Condor,  a  famous  clipper  in  her 
day.  No.  Not  a  very  enterprising  life  for  a  man 
who  had  served  famous  firms,  who  had  sailed  famous 
ships  (more  than  one  or  two  of  them  his  own) ;  who 
had  made  famous  passages,  had  been  the  pioneer  of 
new  routes  and  new  trades ;  who  had  steered  across 
the  unsurveyed  tracts  of  the  South  Seas,  and  had 
seen  the  sun  rise  on  uncharted  islands.  Fifty  years 
at  sea,  and  forty  out  in  the  East  ("a  pretty  thorough 
apprenticeship,"  he  used  to  remark  smilingly),  had 
made  him  honourably  known  to  a  generation  of 
shipowners  and  merchants  in  all  the  ports  from 
Bombay  clear  over  to  where  the  East  merges  into 
the  West  upon  the  coast  of  the  two  Americas.  His 
fame  remained  writ,  not  very  large  but  plain 
enough,  on  the  Admiralty  charts.  Was  there  not 
somewhere  between  Australia  and  China  a  Whalley 
Island  and  a  Condor  Reef  ?  On  that  dangerous 
coral  formation  the  celebrated  clipper  had  hung 
stranded  for  three  days,  her  captain  and  crew 
throwing  her  cargo  overboard  with  one  hand  and 
with  the  other,  as  it  were,  keeping  off  her  a  flotilla 
of  savage  war-canoes.  At  that  time  neither  the 
island  nor  the  reef  had  any  official  existence.  Later 
the  officers  of  her  Majesty's  steam- vessel  Fusilier, 
despatched  to  make  a  survey  of  the  route,  recognised 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  189 

in  the  adoption  of  these  two  names  the  enterprise  of 
the  man  and  the  solidity  of  the  ship.  Besides,  as 
any  one  who  cares  may  see,  the  '  General  Directory,' 
vol.  ii.  p.  410,  begins  the  description  of  the  "  Malotu 
or  Whalley  Passage  "  with  the  words  :  "  This  advan- 
tageous route,  first  discovered  in  1850  by  Captain 
Whalley  in  the  ship  Condor"  &c,  and  ends  by 
recommending  it  warmly  to  sailing  vessels  leaving 
the  China  ports  for  the  south  in  the  months  from 
December  to  April  inclusive. 

This  was  the  clearest  gain  he  had  out  of  life. 
Nothing  could  rob  him  of  this  kind  of  fame.  The 
piercing  of  the  Isthmus  of  Suez,  like  the  breaking 
of  a  dam,  had  let  in  upon  the  East  a  flood  of  new 
ships,  new  men,  new  methods  of  trade.  It  had 
changed  the  face  of  the  Eastern  seas  and  the  very 
spirit  of  their  life  ;  so  that  his  early  experiences  meant 
nothing  whatever  to  the  new  generation  of  seamen. 

In  those  bygone  days  he  had  handled  many 
thousands  of  pounds  of  his  employers'  money  and 
of  his  own ;  he  had  attended  faithfully,  as  by  law 
a  shipmaster  is  expected  to  do,  to  the  conflicting 
interests  of  owners,  charterers,  and  underwriters. 
He  had  never  lost  a  ship  or  consented  to  a  shady 
transaction  ;  and  he  had  lasted  well,  outlasting  in 
the  end  the  conditions  that  had  gone  to  the  making 
of  his  name.  He  had  buried  his  wife  (in  the  Gulf 
of  Petchili),  had  married  off  his  daughter  to  the  man 
of  her  unlucky  choice,  and  had  lost  more  than  an 
ample  competence  in  the  crash  of  the  notorious 
Travancore  and  Deccan  Banking  Corporation,  whose 
downfall  had  shaken  the  East  like  an  earthquake. 
And  he  was  sixty-five  years  old. 


190  THE  END   OF  THE   TETHER 


II. 


His  age  sat  lightly  enough  on  him;  and  of  his 
ruin  he  was  not  ashamed.  He  had  not  been  alone 
to  believe  in  the  stability  of  the  Banking  Corpora- 
tion. Men  whose  judgment  in  matters  of  finance 
was  as  expert  as  his  seamanship  had  commended 
the  prudence  of  his  investments,  and  had  themselves 
lost  much  money  in  the  great  failure.  The  only 
difference  between  him  and  them  was  that  he  had 
lost  his  all.  And  yet  not  his  all.  There  had  re- 
mained to  him  from  his  lost  fortune  a  very  pretty 
little  barque,  Fair  Maid,  which  he  had  bought  to 
occupy  his  leisure  of  a  retired  sailor — "to  play 
with,"  as  he  expressed  it  himself. 

He  had  formally  declared  himself  tired  of  the  sea 
the  year  preceding  his  daughter's  marriage.  But  after 
the  young  couple  had  gone  to  settle  in  Melbourne  he 
found  out  that  he  could  not  make  himself  happy  on 
shore.  He  was  too  much  of  a  merchant  sea-captain 
for  mere  yachting  to  satisfy  him.  He  wanted  the 
illusion  of  affairs;  and  his  acquisition  of  the  Fair 
Maid  preserved  the  continuity  of  his  life.  He  in- 
troduced her  to  his  acquaintances  in  various  ports 
as  "my  last  command."  When  he  grew  too  old  to 
be  trusted  with  a  ship,  he  would  lay  her  up  and  go 
ashore  to  be  buried,  leaving  directions  in  his  will  to 
have  the  barque  towed  out  and  scuttled  decently  in 
deep  water  on  the  day  of  the  funeral.  His  daughter 
would  not  grudge  him  the  satisfaction  of  knowing 
that  no  stranger  would  handle  his  last  command 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHEE.  191 

after  him.  With  the  fortune  he  was  able  to  leave 
her,  the  value  of  a  500-ton  barque  was  neither  here 
nor  there.  All  this  would  be  said  with  a  jocular 
twinkle  in  his  eye :  the  vigorous  old  man  had  too 
much  vitality  for  the  sentimentalism  of  regret ;  and 
a  little  wistfully  withal,  because  he  was  at  home  in 
life,  taking  a  genuine  pleasure  in  its  feelings  and  its 
possessions ;  in  the  dignity  of  his  reputation  and  his 
wealth,  in  his  love  for  his  daughter,  and  in  his 
satisfaction  with  the  ship — the  plaything  of  his 
lonely  leisure. 

He  had  the  cabin  arranged  in  accordance  with  his 
simple  ideal  of  comfort  at  sea.  A  big  bookcase  (he 
was  a  great  reader)  occupied  one  side  of  his  state- 
room ;  the  portrait  of  his  late  wife,  a  flat  bituminous 
oil-painting  representing  the  profile  and  one  long 
black  ringlet  of  a  young- woman,  faced  his  bedplace. 
Three  chronometers  ticked  him  to  sleep  and  greeted 
him  on  waking  with  the  tiny  competition  of  their 
beats.  He  rose  at  five  every  day.  The  officer  of  the 
morning  watch,  drinking  his  early  cup  of  coffee  aft  by 
the  wheel,  would  hear  through  the  wide  orifice  of  the 
copper  ventilators  all  the  splashings,  blowings,  and 
splutterings  of  his  captain's  toilet.  These  noises 
would  be  followed  by  a  sustained  deep  murmur  of  the 
Lord's  Prayer  recited  in  a  loud  earnest  voice.  Five 
minutes  afterwards  the  head  and  shoulders  of  Cap- 
tain Whalley  emerged  out  of  the  companion-hatch- 
way. Invariably  he  paused  for  a  while  on  the  stairs, 
looking  all  round  at  the  horizon;  upwards  at  the 
trim  of  the  sails;  inhaling  deep  draughts  of  the 
fresh  air.  Only  then  he  would  step  out  on  the 
poop,  acknowledging  the  hand  raised  to  the  peak  of 


192  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

the  cap  with  a  majestic  and  benign  "Good  morning 
to  you."  He  walked  the  deck  till  eight  scrupulously. 
Sometimes,  not  above  twice  a-year,  he  had  to  use  a 
thick  cudgel-like  stick  on  account  of  a  stiffness  in 
the  hip — a  slight  touch  of  rheumatism,  he  supposed. 
Otherwise  he  knew  nothing  of  the  ills  of  the  flesh. 
At  the  ringing  of  the  breakfast  bell  he  went  below 
to  feed  his  canaries,  wind  up  the  chronometers,  and 
take  the  head  of  the  table.  From  there  he  had 
before  his  eyes  the  big  carbon  photographs  of  his 
daughter,  her  husband,  and  two  fat-legged  babies — 
his  grandchildren  —  set  in  black  frames  into  the 
maple- wood  bulkheads  of  the  cuddy.  After  break- 
fast he  dusted  the  glass  over  these  portraits  himself 
with  a  cloth,  and  brushed  the  oil  painting  of  his 
wife  with  a  plummet  kept  suspended  from  a  small 
brass  hook  by  the  side  of  the  heavy  gold  frame. 
Then  with  the  door  of  his  state-room  shut,  he  would 
sit  down  on  the  couch  under  the  portrait  to  read  a 
chapter  out  of  a  thick  pocket  Bible — her  Bible.  But 
on  some  days  he  only  sat  there  for  half  an  hour  with 
his  finger  between  the  leaves  and  the  closed  book 
resting  on  his  knees.  Perhaps  he  had  remembered 
suddenly  how  fond  of  boat-sailing  she  used  to  be. 

She  had  been  a  real  shipmate  and  a  true  woman 
too.  It  was  like  an  article  of  faith  with  him  that 
there  never  had  been,  and  never  could  be,  a  brighter, 
cheerier  home  anywhere  afloat  or  ashore  than  his 
home  under  the  poop -deck  of  the  Condor,  with  the 
big  main  cabin  all  white  and  gold,  garlanded  as  if 
for  a  perpetual  festival  with  an  unfading  wreath. 
She  had  decorated  the  centre  of  every  panel  with  a 
cluster  of  home  flowers.     It  took  her  a  twelvemonth 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  193 

to  go  round  the  cuddy  with  this  labour  of  love. 
To  him  it  had  remained  a  marvel  of  painting,  the 
highest  achievement  of  taste  and  skill ;  and  as  to  old 
Swinburne,  his  mate,  every  time  he  came  down  to 
his  meals  he  stood  transfixed  with  admiration  before 
the  progress  of  the  work.  You  could  almost  smell 
these  roses,  he  declared,  sniffing  the  faint  flavour  of 
turpentine  which  at  that  time  pervaded  the  saloon, 
and  (as  he  confessed  afterwards)  made  him  some- 
what less  hearty  than  usual  in  tackling  his  food. 
But  there  was  nothing  of  the  sort  to  interfere  with 
his  enjoyment  of  her  singing.  "  Mrs  Whalley  is  a 
regular  out-and-out  nightingale,  sir,"  he  would  pro- 
nounce with  a  judicial  air  after  listening  profoundly 
over  the  skylight  to  the  very  end  of  the  piece.  In 
fine  weather,  in  the  second  dog-watch,  the  two  men 
could  hear  her  trills  and  roulades  going  on  to  the 
accompaniment  of  the  piano  in  the  cabin.  On  the 
very  day  they  got  engaged  he  had  written  to  London 
for  the  instrument ;  but  they  had  been  married  for 
over  a  year  before  it  reached  them,  coming  out 
round  the  Cape.  The  big  case  made  part  of  the  first 
direct  general  cargo  landed  in  Hongkong  harbour — 
an  event  that  to  the  men  who  walked  the  busy 
quays  of  to-day  seemed  as  hazily  remote  as  the  dark 
ages  of  history.  But  Captain  Whalley  could  in  a 
half  hour  of  solitude  live  again  all  his  life,  with  its 
romance,  its  idyl,  and  its  sorrow.  He  had  to  close 
her  eyes  himself.  She  went  away  from  under  the 
ensign  like  a  sailor's  wife,  a  sailor  herself  at  heart. 
He  had  read  the  service  over  her,  out  of  her  own 
prayer-book,  without  a  break  in  his  voice.  When  he 
raised  his  eyes  he  could  swe  old  Swinburne  facing  him 

H 


194  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

with  his  cap  pressed  to  his  breast,  and  his  rugged, 
weather-beaten,  impassive  face  streaming  with  drops 
of  water  like  a  lump  of  chipped  red  granite  in  a 
shower.  It  was  all  very  well  for  that  old  sea-dog  to 
cry.  He  had  to  read  on  to  the  end ;  but  after  the 
splash  he  did  not  remember  much  of  what  happened 
for  the  next  few  days.  An  elderly  sailor  of  the 
crew,  deft  at  needlework,  put  together  a  mourning 
frock  for  the  child  out  of  one  of  her  black  skirts. 

He  was  not  likely  to  forget ;  but  you  cannot  dam 
up  life  like  a  sluggish  stream.  It  will  break  out  and 
flow  over  a  man's  troubles,  it  will  close  upon  a 
sorrow  like  the  sea  upon  a  dead  body,  no  matter 
how  much  love  has  gone  to  the  bottom.  And  the 
world  is  not  bad.  People  had  been  very  kind  to 
him ;  especially  Mrs  Gardner,  the  wife  of  the  senior 
partner  in  Gardner,  Patteson,  &  Co.,  the  owners  of 
the  Condor.  It  was  she  who  volunteered  to  look 
after  the  little  one,  and  in  due  course  took  her  to 
England  (something  of  a  journey  in  those  days, 
even  by  the  overland  mail  route)  with  her  own  girls 
to  finish  her  education.  It  was  ten  years  before  he 
saw  her  again. 

As  a  little  child  she  had  never  been  frightened  of 
bad  weather ;  she  would  beg  to  be  taken  up  on  deck 
in  the  bosom  of  his  oilskin  coat  to  watch  the  big 
seas  hurling  themselves  upon  the  Condor.  The  swirl 
and  crash  of  the  waves  seemed  to  fill  her  small  soul 
with  a  breathless  delight.  "A  good  boy  spoiled," 
he  used  to  say  of  her  in  joke.  He  had  named  her 
Ivy  because  of  the  sound  of  the  word,  and  obscurely 
fascinated  by  a  vague  association  of  ideas.  She 
had  twined  herself  tightly  round  his  heart,  and  he 


THE   END    OF  THE   TETHER.  195 

intended  her  to  cling  close  to  her  father  as  to  a 
tower  of  strength;  forgetting,  while  she  was  little, 
that  in  the  nature  of  things  she  would  probably 
elect  to  cling  to  some  one  else.  But  he  loved  life 
well  enough  for  even  that  event  to  give  him  a 
certain  satisfaction,  apart  from  his  more  intimate 
feeling  of  loss. 

After  he  had  purchased  the  Fair  Maid  to  occupy 
his  loneliness,  he  hastened  to  accept  a  rather  un- 
profitable freight  to  Australia  simply  for  the  oppor- 
tunity of  seeing  his  daughter  in  her  own  home. 
What  made  him  dissatisfied  there  was  not  to  see 
that  she  clung  now  to  somebody  else,  but  that  the 
prop  she  had  selected  seemed  on  closer  examination 
"  a  rather  poor  stick  " — even  in  the  matter  of  health. 
He  disliked  his  son-in-law's  studied  civility  perhaps 
more  than  his  method  of  handling  the  sum  of  money 
he  had  given  Ivy  at  her  marriage.  But  of  his 
apprehensions  he  said  nothing.  Only  on  the  day 
of  his  departure,  with  the  hall -door  open  already, 
holding  her  hands  and  looking  steadily  into  her 
eyes,  he  had  said,  "  You  know,  my  dear,  all  I  have 
is  for  you  and  the  chicks.  Mind  you  write  to 
me  openly."  She  had  answered  him  by  an  almost 
imperceptible  movement  of  her  head.  She  re- 
sembled her  mother  in  the  colour  of  her  eyes,  and 
in  character — and  also  in  this,  that  she  understood 
him  without  many  words. 

Sure  enough  she  had  to  write ;  and  some  of  these 
letters  made  Captain  Whalley  lift  his  white  eye- 
brows. For  the  rest  he  considered  he  was  reaping 
the  true  reward  of  his  life  by  being  thus  able  to 
produce  on  demand  whatever  was  needed.     He  had 


196  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHEE. 

not  enjoyed  himself  so  much  in  a  way  since  his  wife 
had  died.  Characteristically  enough  his  son-in-law's 
punctuality  in  failure  caused  him  at  a  distance  to 
feel  a  sort  of  kindness  towards  the  man.  The  fellow 
was  so  perpetually  being  jammed  on  a  lee  shore  that 
to  charge  it  all  to  his  reckless  navigation  would  be 
manifestly  unfair.  No,  no !  He  knew  well  what 
that  meant.  It  was  bad  luck.  His  own  had  been 
simply  marvellous,  but  he  had  seen  in  his  life  too 
many  good  men — seamen  and  others — go  under  with 
the  sheer  weight  of  bad  luck  not  to  recognise  the 
fatal  signs.  For  all  that,  he  was  cogitating  on  the 
best  way  of  tying  up  very  strictly  every  penny  he 
had  to  leave,  when,  with  a  preliminary  rumble  of 
rumours  (whose  first  sound  reached  him  in  Shanghai 
as  it  happened),  the  shock  of  the  big  failure  came ; 
and,  after  passing  through  the  phases  of  stupor,  of 
incredulity,  of  indignation,  he  had  to  accept  the  fact 
that  he  had  nothing  to  speak  of  to  leave. 

Upon  that,  as  if  he  had  only  waited  for  this 
catastrophe,  the  unlucky  man,  away  there  in 
Melbourne,  gave  up  his  unprofitable  game,  and 
sat  down — in  an  invalid's  bath -chair  at  that  too. 
"He  will  never  walk  again,"  wrote  the  wife.  For 
the  first  time  in  his  life  Captain  Whalley  was  a 
bit  staggered. 

The  Fair  Maid  had  to  go  to  work  in  bitter  earnest 
now.  It  was  no  longer  a  matter  of  preserving  alive 
the  memory  of  Dare-devil  Harry  Whalley  in  the 
Eastern  Seas,  or  of  keeping  an  old  man  in  pocket- 
money  and  clothes,  with,  perhaps,  a  bill  for  a  few 
hundred  first-class  cigars  thrown  in  at  the  end  of 
the  year.     He  would  have  to  buckle-to,  and  keep  her 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  197 

going  hard  on  a  scant  allowance  of-  gilt  for  the 
ginger-bread  scrolls  at  her  stem  and  stern. 

This  necessity  opened  his  eyes  to  the  fundamental 
changes  of  the  world.  Of  his  past  only  the  familiar 
names  remained,  here  and  there,  but  the  things  and 
the  men,  as  he  had  known  them,  were  gone.  The 
name  of  Gardner,  Patteson,  &  Co.  was  still  dis- 
played on  the  walls  of  warehouses  by  the  waterside, 
on  the  brass  plates  and  window-panes  in  the  busi- 
ness quarters  of  more  than  one  Eastern  port,  but 
there  was  no  longer  a  Gardner  or  a  Patteson  in  the 
firm.  There  was  no  longer  for  Captain  Whalley  an 
arm-chair  and  a  welcome  in  the  private  office,  with 
a  bit  of  business  ready  to  be  put  in  the  way  of  an 
old  friend,  for  the  sake  of  bygone  services.  The 
husbands  of  the  Gardner  girls  sat  behind  the  desks 
in  that  room  where,  long  after  he  had  left  the 
employ,  he  had  kept  his  right  of  entrance  in  the 
old  man's  time.  Their  ships  now  had  yellow  funnels 
with  black  tops,  and  a  time-table  of  appointed  routes 
like  a  confounded  service  of  tramways.  The  winds 
of  December  and  June  were  all  one  to  them ;  their 
captains  (excellent  young  men  he  doubted  not) 
were,  to  be  sure,  familiar  with  Whalley  Island,  be- 
cause of  late  years  the  Government  had  established 
a  white  fixed  light  on  the  north  end  (with  a  red 
danger  sector  over  the  Condor  Reef),  but  most  of 
them  would  have  been  extremely  surprised  to  hear 
that  a  flesh-and-blood  Whalley  still  existed — an  old 
man  going  about  the  world  trying  to  pick  up  a  cargo 
here  and  there  for  his  little  barque. 

And  everywhere  it  was  the  same.  Departed  the 
men  who  would  have  nodded  appreciatively  at  the 


198  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

mention  of  his  name,  and  would  have  thought  them- 
selves bound  in  honour  to  do  something  for  Dare- 
devil Harry  Whalley.  Departed  the  opportunities 
which  he  would  have  known  how  to  seize ;  and  gone 
with  them  the  white-winged  flock  of  clippers  that 
lived  in  the  boisterous  uncertain  life  of  the  winds, 
skimming  big  fortunes  out  of  the  foam  of  the  sea. 
In  a  world  that  pared  down  the  profits  to  an  irre- 
ducible minimum,  in  a  world  that  was  able  to  count 
its  disengaged  tonnage  twice  over  every  day,  and  in 
which  lean  charters  were  snapped  up  by  cable 
three  months  in  advance,  there  were  no  chances  of 
fortune  for  an  individual  wandering  haphazard  with 
a  little  barque — hardly  indeed  any  room  to  exist. 

He  found  it  more  difficult  from  year  to  year.  He 
suffered  greatly  from  the  smallness  of  remittances 
he  was  able  to  send  his  daughter.  Meantime  he  had 
given  up  good  cigars,  and  even  in  the  matter  of 
inferior  cheroots  limited  himself  to  six  a  day.  He 
never  told  her  of  his  difficulties,  and  she  never  en- 
larged upon  her  struggle  to  live.  Their  confidence 
in  each  other  needed  no  explanations,  and  their  per- 
fect understanding  endured  without  protestations  of 
gratitude  or  regret.  He  would  have  been  shocked  if 
she  had  taken  it  into  her  head  to  thank  him  in  so 
many  words,  but  he  found  it  perfectly  natural  that 
she  should  tell  him  she  needed  two  hundred  pounds. 

He  had  come  in  with  the  Fair  Maid  in  ballast  to 
look  for  a  freight  in  the  Sofala's  port  of  registry, 
and  her  letter  met  him  there.  Its  tenor  was  that  it 
was  no  use  mincing  matters.  Her  only  resource 
was  in  opening  a  boarding-house,  for  whioh  the 
prospects,   she  judged,  were  good.      Good  enough, 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  199 

at  any  rate,  to  make  her  tell  him  frankly  that  with 
two  hundred  pounds  she  could  make  a  start.  He 
had  torn  the  envelope  open,  hastily,  on  deck,  where 
it  was  handed  to  him  by  the  ship-chandler's  runner, 
who  had  brought  his  mail  at  the  moment  of  anchor- 
ing. For  the  second  time  in  his  life  he  was  appalled, 
and  remained  stock-still  at  the  cabin  door  with  the 
paper  trembling  between  his  fingers.  Open  a  board- 
ing-house !  Two  hundred  pounds  for  a  start !  The 
only  resource !  And  he  did  not  know  where  to  lay 
his  hands  on  two  hundred  pence. 

All  that  night  Captain  Whalley  walked  the  poop 
of  his  anchored  ship,  as  though  he  had  been  about 
to  close  with  the  land  in  thick  weather,  and  un- 
certain of  his  position  after  a  run  of  many  grey 
days  without  a  sight  of  sun,  moon,  or  stars.  The 
black  night  twinkled  with  the  guiding  lights  of 
seamen  and  the  steady  straight  lines  of  lights  on 
shore;  and  all  around  the  Fair  Maid  the  riding 
lights  of  ships  cast  trembling  trails  upon  the  water 
of  the  roadstead.  Captain  Whalley  saw  not  a 
gleam  anywhere  till  the  dawn  broke  and  he  found 
out  that  his  clothing  was  soaked  through  with  the 
heavy  dew. 

His  ship  was  awake.  He  stopped  short,  stroked 
his  wet  beard,  and  descended  the  poop  ladder  back- 
wards, with  tired  feet.  At  the  sight  of  him  the 
chief  officer,  lounging  about  sleepily  on  the  quarter- 
deck, remained  open-mouthed  in  the  middle  of  a 
great  early-morning  yawn. 

"Good  morning  to  you,"  pronounced  Captain 
Whalley  solemnly,  passing  into  the  cabin.  But  he 
checked  himself  in  the  doorway,  and  without  looking 


200  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

back,  "By  the  bye,"  he  said,  "there  should  be  an 
empty  wooden  case  put  away  in  the  lazarette.  It 
has  not  been  broken  up — has  it?" 

The  mate  shut  his  mouth,  and  then  asked  as  if 
dazed,  "  What  empty  case,  sir  ?  " 

"  A  big  flat  packing-case  belonging  to  that  paint- 
ing in  my  room.  Let  it  be  taken  up  on  deck  and 
tell  the  carpenter  to  look  it  over.  I  may  want  to 
use  it  before  long." 

The  chief  officer  did  not  stir  a  limb  till  he  had 
heard  the  door  of  the  captain's  state-room  slam 
within  the  cuddy.  Then  he  beckoned  aft  the  second 
mate  with  his  forefinger  to  tell  him  that  there  was 
something  "in  the  wind." 

When  the  bell  rang  Captain  Whalley's  authorita- 
tive voice  boomed  out  through  a  closed  door,  "  Sit 
down  and  don't  wait  for  me."  And  his  impressed 
officers  took  their  places,  exchanging  looks  and 
whispers  across  the  table.  What !  No  breakfast  ? 
And  after  apparently  knocking  about  all  night  on 
deck,  too!  Clearly,  there  was  something  in  the 
wind.  In  the  skylight  above  their  heads,  bowed 
earnestly  over  the  plates,  three  wire  cages  rocked 
and  rattled  to  the  restless  jumping  of  the  hungry 
canaries ;  and  they  could  detect  the  sounds  of  their 
"  old  man's  "  deliberate  movements  within  his  state- 
room. Captain  Whalley  was  methodically  winding 
up  the  chronometers,  dusting  the  portrait  of  his  late 
wife,  getting  a  clean  white  shirt  out  of  the  drawers, 
making  himself  ready  in  his  punctilious  unhurried 
manner  to  go  ashore.  He  could  not  have  swallowed 
a  single  mouthful  of  food  that  morning.  He  had 
made  up  his  mind  to  sell  the  Fair  Maid, 


THE  END  OF  THE  TETHER.         201 


III 


Just  at  that  time  the  Japanese  were  casting  far 
and  wide  for  ships  of  European  build,  and  he  had 
no  difficulty  in  finding  a  purchaser,  a  speculator  who 
drove  a  hard  bargain,  but  paid  cash  down  for 
the  Fair  Maid,  with  a  view  to  a  profitable  resale. 
Thus  it  came  about  that  Captain  Whalley  found 
himself  on  a  certain  afternoon  descending  the  steps 
of  one  of  the  most  important  post-offices  of  the 
East  with  a  slip  of  bluish  paper  in  his  hand.  This 
was  the  receipt  of  a  registered  letter  enclosing  a 
draft  for  two  hundred  pounds,  and  addressed  to 
Melbourne.  Captain  Whalley  pushed  the  paper 
into  his  waistcoat-pocket,  took  his  stick  from  under 
his  arm,  and  walked  down  the  street. 

It  was  a  recently  opened  and  untidy  thoroughfare 
with  rudimentary  side-walks  and  a  soft  layer  of  dust 
cushioning  the  whole  width  of  the  road.  One  end 
touched  the  slummy  street  of  Chinese  shops  near 
the  harbour,  the  other  drove  straight  on,  without 
houses,  for  a  couple  of  miles,  through  patches  of 
jungle-like  vegetation,  to  the  yard  gates  of  the  new 
Consolidated  Docks  Company.  The  crude  frontages 
of  the  new  Government  buildings  alternated  with 
the  blank  fencing  of  vacant  plots,  and  the  view  of 
the  sky  seemed  to  give  an  added  spaciousness  to  the 
broad  vista.  It  was  empty  and  shunned  by  natives 
after  business  hours,  as  though  they  had  expected 
to  see  one  of  the  tigers  from  the  neighbourhood  of 
the  New  Waterworks  on  the  hill  coming  at  a  loping 


202  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

canter  down  the  middle  to  get  a  Chinese  shopkeeper 
for  supper.  Captain  Whalley  was  not  dwarfed  by 
the  solitude  of  the  grandly  planned  street.  He  had 
too  fine  a  presence  for  that.  He  was  only  a  lonely 
figure  walking  purposefully,  with  a  great  white  beard 
like  a  pilgrim,  and  with  a  thick  stick  that  resembled 
a  weapon.  On  one  side  the  new  Courts  of  Justice 
had  a  low  and  unadorned  portico  of  squat  columns 
half  concealed  by  a  few  old  trees  left  in  the  ap- 
proach. On  the  other  the  pavilion  wings  of  the 
new  Colonial  Treasury  came  out  to  the  line  of  the 
street.  But  Captain  Whalley,  who  had  now  no 
ship  and  no  home,  remembered  in  passing  that 
on  that  very  site  when  he  first  came  out  from 
England  there  had  stood  a  fishing  village,  a  few 
mat  huts  erected  on  piles  between  a  muddy  tidal 
creek  and  a  miry  pathway  that  went  writhing 
into  a  tangled  wilderness  without  any  docks  or 
waterworks. 

No  ship  —  no  home.  And  his  poor  Ivy  away 
there  had  no  home  either.  A  boarding-house  is 
no  sort  of  home  though  it  may  get  you  a  living. 
His  feelings  were  horribly  rasped  by  the  idea  of 
the  boarding-house.  In  his  rank  of  life  he  had 
that  truly  aristocratic  temperament  characterised 
by  a  scorn  of  vulgar  gentility  and  by  prejudiced 
views  as  to  the  derogatory  nature  of  certain  occu- 
pations. For  his  own  part  he  had  always  pre- 
ferred sailing  merchant  ships  (which  is  a  straight- 
forward occupation)  to  buying  and  selling  mer- 
chandise, of  which  the  essence  is  to  get  the  better 
of  somebody  in  a  bargain  —  an  undignified  trial 
of    wits    at    best.      His   father    had   been    Colonel 


THE   END   OP  THE  TETHER.  203 

Whalley  (retired)  of  the  H.E.I.  Company's  service, 
with  very  slender  means  besides  his  pension,  but 
with  distinguished  connections.  He  could  remember 
as  a  boy  how  frequently  waiters  at  the  inns,  country 
tradesmen  and  small  people  of  that  sort,  used  to 
"My  lord"  the  old  warrior  on  the  strength  of  his 
appearance. 

Captain  Whalley  himself  (he  would  have  entered 
the  Navy  if  his  father  had  not  died  before  he  was 
fourteen)  had  something  of  a  grand  air  which  would 
have  suited  an  old  and  glorious  admiral;  but  he 
became  lost  like  a  straw  in  the  eddy  of  a  brook 
amongst  the  swarm  of  brown  and  yellow  humanity 
filling  a  thoroughfare,  that  by  contrast  with  the 
vast  and  empty  avenue  he  had  left  seemed  as 
narrow  as  a  lane  and  absolutely  riotous  with  life. 
The  walls  of  the  houses  were  blue;  the  shops  of 
the  Chinamen  yawned  like  cavernous  lairs;  heaps 
of  nondescript  merchandise  overflowed  the  gloom 
of  the  long  range  of  arcades,  and  the  fiery  serenity 
of  sunset  took  the  middle  of  the  street  from  end 
to  end  with  a  glow  like  the  reflection  of  a  fire. 
It  fell  on  the  bright  colours  and  the  dark  faces 
of  the  bare-footed  crowd,  on  the  pallid  yellow  backs 
of  the  half -naked  jostling  coolies,  on  the  accoutre- 
ments of  a  tall  Sikh  trooper  with  a  parted  beard 
and  fierce  moustaches  on  sentry  before  the  gate 
of  the  police  compound.  Looming  very  big  above 
the  heads  in  a  red  haze  of  dust,  the  tightly  packed 
car  of  the  cable  tramway  navigated  cautiously 
up  the  human  stream,  with  the  incessant  blare  of 
its  horn,  in  the  manner  of  a  steamer  groping  in 
a  fog. 


204  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

Captain  Whalley  emerged  like  a  diver  on  the 
other  side,  and  in  the  desert  shade  between  the 
walls  of  closed  warehouses  removed  his  hat  to  cool 
his  brow.  A  certain  disrepute  attached  to  the  call- 
ing of  a  landlady  of  a  boarding-house.  These 
women  were  said  to  be  rapacious,  unscrupulous, 
untruthful;  and  though  he  contemned  no  class  of 
his  fellow-creatures — God  forbid  ! — these  were  sus- 
picions to  which  it  was  unseemly  that  a  Whalley 
should  lay  herself  open.  He  had  not  expostulated 
with  her,  however.  He  was  confident  she  shared 
his  feelings;  he  was  sorry  for  her;  he  trusted  her 
judgment ;  he  considered  it  a  merciful  dispensation 
that  he  could  help  her  once  more, — but  in  his  aris- 
tocratic heart  of  hearts  he  would  have  found  it 
more  easy  to  reconcile  himself  to  the  idea  of  her 
turning  seamstress.  Vaguely  he  remembered  read- 
ing years  ago  a  touching  piece  called  the  "Song 
of  the  Shirt."  It  was  all  very  well  making  songs 
about  poor  women.  The  granddaughter  of  Colonel 
Whalley,  the  landlady  of  a  boarding-house !  Pooh  ! 
He  replaced  his  hat,  dived  into  two  pockets,  and 
stopping  a  moment  to  apply  a  flaring  match  to 
the  end  of  a  cheap  cheroot,  blew  an  embittered 
cloud  of  smoke  at  a  world  that  could  hold  such 
surprises. 

Of  one  thing  he  was  certain- that  she  was  the 
own  child  of  a  clever  mother.  Now  he  had  got 
over  the  wrench  of  parting  with  his  ship,  he  per- 
ceived clearly  that  such  a  step  had  been  unavoid- 
able. Perhaps  he  had  been  growing  aware  of  it 
all  along  with  an  unconfessed  knowledge.  But  she, 
far  away  there,  must  have  had  an  intuitive  percep- 


THE   END    OF  THE   TETHEB.  205 

tion  of  it,  with  the  pluck  to  face  that  truth  and 
the  courage  to  speak  out — all  the  qualities  which 
had  made  her  mother  a  woman  of  such  excellent 
counsel. 

It  would  have  had  to  come  to  that  in  the  end ! 
It  was  fortunate  she  had  forced  his  hand.  In 
another  year  or  two  it  would  have  been  an  utterly- 
barren  sale.  To  keep  the  ship  going  he  had  been 
involving  himself  deeper  every  year.  He  was  de- 
fenceless before  the  insidious  work  of  adversity,  to 
whose  more  open  assaults  he  could  present  a  firm 
front ;  like  a  cliff  that  stands  unmoved  the  open 
battering  of  the  sea,  with  a  lofty  ignorance  of  the 
treacherous  backwash  undermining  its  base.  As 
it  was,  every  liability  satisfied,  her  request  an- 
swered, and  owing  no  man  a  penny,  there  remained 
to  him  from  the  proceeds  a  sum  of  five  hundred 
pounds  put  away  safely.  In  addition  he  had  upon 
his  person  some  forty  odd  dollars — enough  to  pay 
his  hotel  bill,  providing  he  did  not  linger  too  long 
in  the  modest  bedroom  where  he  had  taken  refuge. 

Scantily  furnished,  and  with  a  waxed  floor,  it 
opened  into  one  of  the  side-verandahs.  The  strag- 
gling building  of  bricks,  as  airy  as  a  bird-cage, 
resounded  with  the  incessant  flapping  of  rattan 
screens  worried  by  the  wind  between  the  white- 
washed square  pillars  of  the  sea-front.  The  rooms 
were  lofty,  a  ripple  of  sunshine  flowed  over  the 
ceilings ;  and  the  periodical  invasions  of  tourists 
from  some  passenger  steamer  in  the  harbour  flitted 
through  the  wind-swept  dusk  of  the  apartments 
with  the  tumult  of  their  unfamiliar  voices  and  im- 
permanent presences,  like  relays  of  migratory  shades 


206  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

condemned  to  speed  headlong  round  the  earth  with- 
out leaving  a  trace.  The  babble  of  their  irrup- 
tions ebbed  out  as  suddenly  as  it  had  arisen;  the 
draughty  corridors  and  the  long  chairs  of  the  ver- 
andahs knew  their  sight-seeing  hurry  or  their  pros- 
trate repose  no  more;  and  Captain  Whalley,  sub- 
stantial and  dignified,  left  wellnigh  alone  in  the  vast 
hotel  by  each  light-hearted  skurry,  felt  more  and 
more  like  a  stranded  tourist  with  no  aim  in  view, 
like  a  forlorn  traveller  without  a  home.  In  the 
solitude  of  his  room  he  smoked  thoughtfully,  gazing 
at  the  two  sea-chests  which  held  all  that  he  could 
call  his  own  in  this  world.  A  thick  roll  of  charts 
in  a  sheath  of  sailcloth  leaned  in  a  corner ;  the  flat 
packing-case  containing  the  portrait  in  oils  and  the 
three  carbon  photographs  had  been  pushed  under 
the  bed.  He  was  tired  of  discussing  terms,  of 
assisting  at  surveys,  of  all  the  routine  of  the  busi- 
ness. What  to  the  other  parties  was  merely  the 
sale  of  a  ship  was  to  him  a  momentous  event  in- 
volving a  radically  new  view  of  existence.  He 
knew  that  after  this  ship  there  would  be  no  other ; 
and  the  hopes  of  his  youth,  the  exercise  of  his  abili- 
ties, every  feeling  and  achievement  of  his  manhood, 
had  been  indissolubly  connected  with  ships.  He 
had  served  ships ;  he  had  owned  ships ;  and  even 
the  years  of  his  actual  retirement  from  the  sea 
had  been  made  bearable  by  the  idea  that  he  had 
only  to  stretch  out  his  hand  full  of  money  to  get  a 
ship.  He  had  been  at  liberty  to  feel  as  though  he 
were  the  owner  of  all  the  ships  in  the  world.  The 
selling  of  this  one  was  weary  work ;  but  when  she 
passed  from  him  at  last,  when  he  signed  the  last 


THE  END   OF  THE  TETHER.  207 

receipt,  it  was  as  though  all  the  ships  had  gone  out 
of  the  world  together,  leaving  him  on  the  shore  of 
inaccessible  oceans  with  seven  hundred  pounds  in 
his  hands. 

Striding  firmly,  without  haste,  along  the  quay, 
Captain  Whalley  averted  his  glances  from  the 
familiar  roadstead.  Two  generations  of  seamen 
born  since  his  first  day  at  sea  stood  between  him  and 
all  these  ships  at  the  anchorage.  His  own  was  sold, 
and  he  had  been  asking  himself,  What  next  ? 

From  the  feeling  of  loneliness,  of  inward  empti- 
ness,— and  of  loss  too,  as  if  his  very  soul  had  been 
taken  out  of  him  forcibly, — there  had  sprung  at  first 
a  desire  to  start  right  off  and  join  his  daughter. 
"Here  are  the  last  pence,"  he  would  say  to  her; 
"  take  them,  my  dear.  And  here's  your  old  father : 
you  must  take  him  too." 

His  soul  recoiled,  as  if  afraid  of  what  lay  hidden 
at  the  bottom  of  this  impulse.  Give  up !  Never ! 
When  one  is  thoroughly  weary  all  sorts  of  nonsense 
come  into  one's  head.  A  pretty  gift  it  would  have 
been  for  a  poor  woman — this  seven  hundred  pounds 
with  the  incumbrance  of  a  hale  old  fellow  more  than 
likely  to  last  for  years  and  years  to  come.  Was  he 
not  as  fit  to  die  in  harness  as  any  of  the  youngsters 
in  charge  of  these  anchored  ships  out  yonder  ?  He 
was  as  solid  now  as  ever  he  had  been.  But  as  to 
who  would  give  him  work  to  do,  that  was  another 
matter.  Were  he,  with  his  appearance  and  an- 
tecedents, to  go  about  looking  for  a  junior's  berth, 
people,  he  was  afraid,  would  not  take  him  seriously ; 
or  else  if  he  succeeded  in  impressing  them,  he  would 
maybe  obtain  their  pity,  which  would  be  like  strip- 


208  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

ping  yourself  naked  to  be  kicked.  He  was  not 
anxious  to  give  himself  away  for  less  than  nothing. 
He  had  no  use  for  anybody's  pity.  On  the  other  hand, 
a  eommand — the  only  thing  he  could  try  for  with  due 
regard  for  common  decency — was  not  likely  to  be 
lying  in  wait  for  him  at  the  corner  of  the  next 
street.  Commands  don't  go  a-begging  nowadays. 
Ever  since  he  had  come  ashore  to  carry  out  the 
business  of  the  sale  he  had  kept  his  ears  open,  but 
had  heard  no  hint  of  one  being  vacant  in  the  port. 
And  even  if  there  had  been  one,  his  successful  past 
itself  stood  in  his  way.  He  had  been  his  own  em- 
ployer too  long.  The  only  credential  he  could  pro- 
duce was  the  testimony  of  his  whole  life.  What 
better  recommendation  could  any  one  require  ?  But 
vaguely  he  felt  that  the  unique  document  would  be 
looked  upon  as  an  archaic  curiosity  of  the  Eastern 
waters,  a  screed  traced  in  obsolete  words — in  a  half- 
forgotten  language. 


IV. 


Revolving  these  thoughts,  he  strolled  on  near  the 
railings  of  the  quay,  broad-chested,  without  a  stoop, 
as  though  his  big  shoulders  had  never  felt  the 
burden  of  the  loads  that  must  be  carried  between 
the  cradle  and  the  grave.  No  single  betraying  fold 
or  line  of  care  disfigured  the  reposeful  modelling  of 
his  face.  It  was  full  and  untanned  ;  and  the  upper 
part  emerged,  massively  quiet,  out  of  the  downward 
flow  of  silvery  hair,  with  the  striking  delicacy  of 
its  clear  complexion  and  the  powerful  width  of  the 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  209 

forehead.  The  first  cast  of  his  glance  fell  on  you 
candid  and  swift,  like  a  boy's ;  but  because  of  the 
ragged  snowy  thatch  of  the  eyebrows  the  affability 
of  his  attention  acquired  the  character  of  a  dark 
and  searching  scrutiny.  With  age  he  had  put  on 
flesh  a  little,  had  increased  his  girth  like  an  old 
tree  presenting  no  symptoms  of  decay ;  and  even 
the  opulent,  lustrous  ripple  of  white  hairs  upon  his 
chest  seemed  an  attribute  of  unquenchable  vitality 
and  vigour. 

Once  rather  proud  of  his  great  bodily  strength, 
and  even  of  his  personal  appearance,  conscious  of 
his  worth,  and  firm  in  his  rectitude,  there  had  re- 
mained to  him,  like  the  heritage  of  departed  pros- 
perity, the  tranquil  bearing  of  a  man  who  had 
proved  himself  fit  in  every  sort  of  way  for  the  life 
of  his  choice.  He  strode  on  squarely  under  the 
projecting  brim  of  an  ancient  Panama  hat.  It  had 
a  low  crown,  a  crease  through  its  whole  diameter,  a 
narrow  black  ribbon.  Imperishable  and  a  little  dis- 
coloured, this  headgear  made  it  easy  to  pick  him  out 
from  afar  on  thronged  wharves  and  in  the  busy 
streets.  He  had  never  adopted  the  comparatively 
modern  fashion  of  pipeclayed  cork  helmets.  He 
disliked  the  form ;  and  he  hoped  he  could  manage 
to  keep  a  cool  head  to  the  end  of  his  life  without  all 
these  contrivances  for  hygienic  ventilation.  His 
hair  was  cropped  close,  his  linen  always  of  immac- 
ulate whiteness ;  a  suit  of  thin  grey  flannel,  worn 
threadbare  but  scrupulously  brushed,  floated  about 
his  burly  limbs,  adding  to  his  bulk  by  the  looseness 
of  its  cut.  The  years  had  mellowed  the  good- 
humoured,  imperturbable  audacity  of  his  prime  into 

O 


210  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE. 

a  temper  carelessly  serene ;  and  the  leisurely  tapping 
of  his  iron-shod  stick  accompanied  his  footfalls  with 
a  self-confident  sound  on  the  flagstones.  It  was 
impossible  to  connect  such  a  fine  presence  and 
this  unruffled  aspect  with  the  belittling  troubles 
of  poverty ;  the  man's  whole  existence  appeared 
to  pass  before  you,  facile  and  large,  in  the 
freedom  of  means  as  ample  as  the  clothing  of  his 
body. 

The  irrational  dread  of  having  to  break  into  his 
five  hundred  pounds  for  personal  expenses  in  the 
hotel  disturbed  the  steady  poise  of  his  mind.  There 
was  no  time  to  lose.  The  bill  was  running  up.  He 
nourished  the  hope  that  this  five  hundred  would 
perhaps  be  the  means,  if  everything  else  failed, 
of  obtaining  some  work  which,  keeping  his  body 
and  soul  together  (not  a  matter  of  great  outlay), 
would  enable  him  to  be  of  use  to  his  daughter.  To 
his  mind  it  was  her  own  money  which  he  employed, 
as  it  were,  in  backing  her  father  and  solely  for  her 
benefit.  Once  at  work,  he  would  help  her  with  the 
greater  part  of  his  earnings ;  he  was  good  for  many 
years  yet,  and  this  boarding-house  business,  he 
argued  to  himself,  whatever  the  prospects,  could 
not  be  much  of  a  gold-mine  from  the  first  start. 
But  what  work  ?  He  was  ready  to  lay  hold  of  any- 
thing in  an  honest  way  so  that  it  came  quickly  to 
his  hand ;  because  the  five  hundred  pounds  must  be 
preserved  intact  for  eventual  use.  That  was  the 
great  point.  With  the  entire  five  hundred  one  felt 
a  substance  at  one's  back;  but  it  seemed  to  him 
that  should  he  let  it  dwindle  to  four-fifty  or  even 
four-eighty,  all  the  efficiency  would  be  gone  out  of 


THE   END   OP   THE   TETHER.  211 

the  money,  as  though  there  were  some  magic 
power  in  the  round  figure.  But  what  sort  of 
work? 

Confronted  by  that  haunting  question  as  by  an 
uneasy  ghost,  for  whom  he  had  no  exorcising  for- 
mula, Captain  Whalley  stopped  short  on  the  apex 
of  a  small  bridge  spanning  steeply  the  bed  of  a 
canalised  creek  with  granite  shores.  Moored  be- 
tween the  square  blocks  a  sea -going  Malay  prau 
floated  half  hidden  under  the  arch  of  masonry,  with 
her  spars  lowered  down,  without  a  sound  of  life  on 
board,  and  covered  from  stem  to  stern  with  a  ridge 
of  palm-leaf  mats.  He  had  left  behind  him  the 
overheated  pavements  bordered  by  the  stone  front- 
ages that,  like  the  sheer  face  of  cliffs,  followed  the 
sweep  of  the  quays ;  and  an  unconfined  spaciousness 
of  orderly  and  sylvan  aspect  opened  before  him  its 
wide  plots  of  rolled  grass,  like  pieces  of  green  carpet 
smoothly  pegged  out,  its  long  ranges  of  trees  lined 
up  in  colossal  porticos  of  dark  shafts  roofed  with  a 
vault  of  branches. 

Some  of  these  avenues  ended  at  the  sea.  It  was 
a  terraced  shore;  and  beyond,  upon  the  level  ex- 
panse, profound  and  glistening  like  the  gaze  of  a 
dark-blue  eye,  an  oblique  band  of  stippled  purple 
lengthened  itself  indefinitely  through  the  gap  be- 
tween a  couple  of  verdant  twin  islets.  The  masts 
and  spars  of  a  few  ships  far  away,  hull  down  in  the 
outer  roads,  sprang  straight  from  the  water  in  a 
fine  maze  of  rosy  lines  pencilled  on  the  clear  shadow 
of  the  eastern  board.  Captain  Whalley  gave  them 
a  long  glance.  The  ship,  once  his  own,  was  anchored 
out  there.     It  was  staggering  to  think  that  it  was 


212  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

open  to  him  no  longer  to  take  a  boat  at  the  jetty 
and  get  himself  pulled  off  to  her  when  the  evening 
came.  To  no  ship.  Perhaps  never  more.  Before 
the  sale  was  concluded,  and  till  the  purchase-money 
had  been  paid,  he  had  spent  daily  some  time  on 
board  the  Fair  Maid.  The  money  had  been  paid 
this  very  morning,  and  now,  all  at  once,  there  was 
positively  no  ship  that  he  could  go  on  board  of  when 
he  liked ;  no  ship  that  would  need  his  presence  in 
order  to  do  her  work  —  to  live.  It  seemed  an 
incredible  state  of  affairs,  something  too  bizarre  to 
last.  And  the  sea  was  full  of  craft  of  all  sorts. 
There  was  that  prau  lying  so  still  swathed  in  her 
shroud  of  sewn  palm-leaves — she  too  had  her  indis- 
pensable man.  They  lived  through  each  other,  this 
Malay  he  bad  never  seen,  and  this  high-sterned 
thing  of  no  size  that  seemed  to  be  resting  after  a 
long  journey.  And  of  all  the  ships  in  sight,  near 
and  far,  each  was  provided  with  a  man,  the  man 
without  whom  the  finest  ship  is  a  dead  thing,  a 
floating  and  purposeless  log. 

After  his  one  glance  at  the  roadstead  he  went  on, 
since  there  was  nothing  to  turn  back  for,  and  the 
time  must  be  got  through  somehow.  The  avenues 
of  big  trees  ran  straight  over  the  Esplanade,  outting 
each  other  at  diverse  angles,  columnar  below  and 
luxuriant  above.  The  interlaced  boughs  high  up 
there  seemed  to  slumber;  not  a  leaf  stirred  over- 
head :  and  the  reedy  cast-iron  lamp-posts  in  the 
middle  of  the  road,  gilt  like  sceptres,  diminished  in 
a  long  perspective,  with  their  globes  of  white  por- 
celain atop,  resembling  a  barbarous  decoration  of 
ostriches'  eggs  displayed  in  a  row.     The  flaming  sky 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  213 

kindled  a  tiny  crimson  spark  upon  the  glistening 
surface  of  each  glassy  shell. 

With  his  chin  sunk  a  little,  his  hands  behind  his 
back,  and  the  end  of  his  stick  marking  the  gravel 
with  a  faint  wavering  line  at  his  heels,  Captain 
Whalley  reflected  that  if  a  ship  without  a  man 
was  like  a  body  without  a  soul,  a  sailor  without 
a  ship  was  of  not  much  more  account  in  this  world 
than  an  aimless  log  adrift  upon  the  sea.  The  log 
might  be  sound  enough  by  itself,  tough  of  fibre,  and 
hard  to  destroy — but  what  of  that !  And  a  sudden 
sense  of  irremediable  idleness  weighted  his  feet  like 
a  great  fatigue. 

A  succession  of  open  carriages  came  bowling 
along  the  newly  opened  sea-road.  You  could  see 
across  the  wide  grass-plots  the  discs  of  vibration 
made  by  the  spokes.  The  bright  domes  of  the 
parasols  swayed  lightly  outwards  like  full-blown 
blossoms  on  the  rim  of  a  vase ;  and  the  quiet  sheet 
of  dark-blue  water,  crossed  by  a  bar  of  purple,  made 
a  background  for  the  spinning  wheels  and  the  high 
action  of  the  horses,  whilst  the  turbaned  heads  of 
the  Indian  servants  elevated  above  the  line  of  the 
sea  horizon  glided  rapidly  on  the  paler  blue  of  the 
sky.  In  an  open  space  near  the  little  bridge  each 
turn-out  trotted  smartly  in  a  wide  curve  away  from 
the  sunset ;  then  pulling  up  sharp,  entered  the  main 
alley  in  a  long  slow -moving  file  with  the  great 
red  stillness  of  the  sky  at  the  back.  The  trunks 
of  mighty  trees  stood  all  touched  with  red  on  the 
same  side,  the  air  seemed  aflame  under  the  high 
foliage,  the  very  ground  under  the  hoofs  of  the 
horses  was  red.     The  wheels  turned  solemnly;  one 


214  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEB. 

after  another  the  sunshades  drooped,  folding  their 
colours  like  gorgeous  flowers  shutting  their  petals 
at  the  end  of  the  day.  In  the  whole  half-mile  of 
human  beings  no  voice  uttered  a  distinct  word, 
only  a  faint  thudding  noise  went  on  mingled  with 
slight  jingling  sounds,  and  the  motionless  heads  and 
shoulders  of  men  and  women  sitting  in  couples 
emerged  stolidly  above  the  lowered  hoods — as  if 
wooden.  But  one  carriage  and  pair  coming  late 
did  not  join  the  line. 

It  fled  along  in  a  noiseless  roll ;  but  on  entering 
the  avenue  one  of  the  dark  bays  snorted,  arching 
his  neck  and  shying  against  the  steel-tipped  pole; 
a  flake  of  foam  fell  from  the  bit  upon  the  point 
of  a  satiny  shoulder,  and  the  dusky  face  of  the  coach- 
man leaned  forward  at  once  over  the  hands  taking 
a  fresh  grip  of  the  reins.  It  was  a  long  dark-green 
landau,  having  a  dignified  and  buoyant  motion 
between  the  sharply  curved  C-springs,  and  a  sort 
of  strictly  official  majesty  in  its  supreme  elegance. 
It  seemed  more  roomy  than  is  usual,  its  horses 
seemed  slightly  bigger,  the  appointments  a  shade 
more  perfect,  the  servants  perched  somewhat  higher 
on  the  box.  The  dresses  of  three  women — two 
young  and  pretty,  and  one,  handsome,  large,  of 
mature  age — seemed  to  fill  completely  the  shallow 
body  of  the  carriage.  The  fourth  face  was  that 
of  a  man,  heavy  lidded,  distinguished  and  sallow, 
with  a  sombre,  thick,  iron-grey  imperial  and  mous- 
taches, which  somehow  had  the  air  of  solid  appen- 
dages.    His  Excellency 

The  rapid  motion  of  that  one  equipage  made  all 
the   others   appear   utterly   inferior,    blighted,  and 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHEE.  215 

reduced  to  erawl  painfully  at  a  snail's  pace.  The 
landau  distanced  the  whole  file  in  a  sort  of  sustained 
rush;  the  features  of  the  occupants  whirling  out 
of  sight  left  behind  an  impression  of  fixed  stares 
and  impassive  vacancy;  and  after  it  had  vanished 
in  full  flight  as  it  were,  notwithstanding  the  long 
line  of  vehicles  hugging  the  curb  at  a  walk,  the 
whole  lofty  vista  of  the  avenue  seemed  to  lie  open 
and  emptied  of  life  in  the  enlarged  impression  of  an 
august  solitude. 

Captain  Whalley  had  lifted  his  head  to  look, 
and  his  mind,  disturbed  in  its  meditation,  turned 
with  wonder  (as  men's  minds  will  do)  to  matters 
of  no  importance.  It  struck  him  that  it  was  to 
this  port,  where  he  had  just  sold  his  last  ship,  that 
he  had  come  with  the  very  first  he  had  ever  owned, 
and  with  his  head  full  of  a  plan  for  opening  a  new 
trade  with  a  distant  part  of  the  Archipelago.  The 
then  governor  had  given  him  no  end  of  encourage- 
ment. No  Excellency  he — this  Mr  Denham — this 
governor  with  his  jacket  off;  a  man  who  tended 
night  and  day,  so  to  speak,  the  growing  prosperity 
of  the  settlement  with  the  self -forgetful  devotion 
of  a  nurse  for  a  child  she  loves;  a  lone  bachelor 
who  lived  as  in  a  camp  with  the  few  servants  and 
his  three  dogs  in  what  was  called  then  the  Govern- 
ment Bungalow  :  a  low-roofed  structure  on  the  half- 
cleared  slope  of  a  hill,  with  a  new  flagstaff  in 
front  and  a  police  orderly  on  the  verandah.  He 
remembered  toiling  up  that  hill  under  a  heavy  sun 
for  his  audience ;  the  unfurnished  aspect  of  the  cool 
shaded  room;  the  long  table  covered  at  one  end 
with  piles  of  papers,  and  with  two  guns,  a  brass 


216  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

telescope,  a  small  bottle  of  oil  with  a  feather  stuck 
in  the  neck  at  the  other — and  the  flattering  atten- 
tion given  to  him  by  the  man  in  power.  It  was  an 
undertaking  full  of  risk  he  had  come  to  expound, 
but  a  twenty  minutes'  talk  in  the  Government 
Bungalow  on  the  hill  had  made  it  go  smoothly 
from  the  start.  And  as  he  was  retiring  Mr  Denham, 
already  seated  before  the  papers,  called  out  after 
him,  "  Next  month  the  Dido  starts  for  a  cruise  that 
way,  and  I  shall  request  her  captain  officially  to 
give  you  a  look  in  and  see  how  you  get  on."  The 
Dido  was  one  of  the  smart  frigates  on  the  China 
station — and  five-and-thirty  years  make  a  big  slice 
of  time.  Five-and-thirty  years  ago  an  enterprise 
like  his  had  for  the  colony  enough  importance  to  be 
looked  after  by  a  Queen's  ship.  A  big  slice  of  time. 
Individuals  were  of  some  account  then.  Men  like 
himself ;  men,  too,  like  poor  Evans,  for  instance,  with 
his  red  face,  his  coal-black  whiskers,  and  his  restless 
eyes,  who  had  set  up  the  first  patent  slip  for  repair- 
ing small  ships,  on  the  edge  of  the  forest,  in  a  lonely 
bay  three  miles  up  the  coast.  Mr  Denham  had 
encouraged  that  enterprise  too,  and  yet  somehow 
poor  Evans  had  ended  by  dying  at  home  deucedly 
hard  up.  His  son,  they  said,  was  squeezing  oil  out 
of  cocoa-nuts  for  a  living  on  some  God-forsaken  islet 
of  the  Indian  Ocean;  but  it  was  from  that  patent 
slip  in  a  lonely  wooded  bay  that  had  sprung  the 
workshops  of  the  Consolidated  Docks  Company,  with 
its  three  graving  basins  carved  out  of  solid  rock,  its 
wharves,  its  jetties,  its  electric-light  plant,  its  steam- 
power  houses — with  its  gigantic  sheer-legs,  fit  to  lift 
the  heaviest  weight  ever  carried  afloat,  and  whose 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  21 7 

head  could  be  seen  like  the  top  of  a  queer  white 
monument  peeping  over  bushy  points  of  land  and 
sandy  promontories,  as  you  approached  the  New 
Harbour  from  the  west. 

There  had  been  a  time  when  men  counted :  there 
were  not  so  many  carriages  in  the  colony  then, 
though  Mr  Denham,  he  fancied,  had  a  buggy.  And 
Captain  Whalley  seemed  to  be  swept  out  of  the  great 
avenue  by  the  swirl  of  a  mental  backwash.  He 
remembered  muddy  shores,  a  harbour  without  quays, 
the  one  solitary  wooden  pier  (but  that  was  a  public 
work)  jutting  out  crookedly,  the  first  coal -sheds 
erected  on  Monkey  Point,  that  caught  fire  mysteri- 
ously and  smouldered  for  days,  so  that  amazed 
ships  came  into  a  roadstead  full  of  sulphurous 
smoke,  and  the  sun  hung  blood -red  at  midday. 
He  remembered  the  things,  the  faces,  and  some- 
thing more  besidos — like  the  faint  flavour  of  a 
cup  quaffed  to  the  bottom,  like  a  subtle  sparkle 
of  the  air  that  was  not  to  be  found  in  the  atmos- 
phere of  to-day. 

In  this  evocation,  swift  and  full  of  detail  like  a 
flash  of  magnesium  light  into  the  niches  of  a  dark 
memorial  hall,  Captain  Whalley  contemplated  things 
once  important,  the  efforts  of  small  men,  the  growth 
of  a  great  place,  but  now  robbed  of  all  consequence 
by  the  greatness  of  accomplished  facts,  by  hopes 
greater  still ;  and  they  gave  him  for  a  moment  such 
an  almost  physical  grip  upon  time,  such  a  compre- 
hension of  our  unchangeable  feelings,  that  he  stopped 
short,  struck  the  ground  with  his  stick,  and  ejacu- 
lated mentally,  "  What  the  devil  am  I  doing  here  ! " 
He  seemed  lost  in  a  sort  of  surprise ;  but  he  heard 


218  THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

his  name  called  out  in  wheezy  tones  once,  twice — and 
turned  on  his  heels  slowly. 

He  beheld  then,  waddling  towards  him  auto- 
cratically, a  man  of  an  old-fashioned  and  gouty 
aspect,  with  hair  as  white,  as  his  own,  but  with 
shaved,  florid  cheeks,  wearing  a  necktie — almost  a 
neckcloth — whose  stiff  ends  projected  far  beyond  his 
chin;  with  round  legs,  round  arms,  a  round  body, 
a  round  face — generally  producing  the  effect  of  his 
short  figure  having  been  distended  by  means  of  an 
air-pump  as  much  as  the  seams  of  his  clothing  would 
stand.  This  was  the  Master- Attendant  of  the  port. 
A  master -attendant  is  a  superior  sort  of  harbour- 
master; a  person,  out  in  the  East,  of  some  con- 
sequence in  his  sphere ;  a  Government  official,  a 
magistrate  for  the  waters  of  the  port,  and  possessed 
of  vast  but  ill-defined  disciplinary  authority  over 
seamen  of  all  classes.  This  particular  Master- 
Attendant  was  reported  to  consider  it  miserably 
inadequate,  on  the  ground  that  it  did  not  include  the 
power  of  life  and  death.  This  was  a  jocular  ex- 
aggeration. Captain  Eliott  was  fairly  satisfied  with 
his  position,  and  nursed  no  inconsiderable  sense  of 
such  power  as  he  had.  His  conceited  and  tyrannical 
disposition  did  not  allow  him  to  let  it  dwindle  in  his 
hands  for  want  of  use.  The  uproarious,  choleric 
frankness  of  his  comments  on  people's  character  and 
conduct  caused  him  to  be  feared  at  bottom ;  though 
in  conversation  many  pretended  not  to  mind  him  in 
the  least,  others  would  only  smile  sourly  at  the 
mention  of  his  name,  and  there  were  even  some  who 
dared  to  pronounce  him  "a  meddlesome  old  ruffian." 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  219 

But  for  almost  all  of  them  one  of  Captain  Eliott's 
outbreaks  was  nearly  as  distasteful  to  face  as  a 
chance  of  annihilation. 


As  soon  as  he  had  come  up  quite  close  he  said, 
mouthing  in  a  growl, — 

"  What's  this  I  hear,  Whalley  ?  Is  it  true  you're 
selling  the  Fair  Maid  ?  " 

Captain  Whalley,  looking  away,  said  the  thing 
was  done — money  had  been  paid  that  morning ;  and 
the  other  expressed  at  once  his  approbation  of  such 
an  extremely  sensible  proceeding.  He  had  got  out 
of  his  trap  to  stretch  his  legs,  he  explained,  on  his 
way  home  to  dinner.  Sir  Frederick  looked  well  at 
the  end  of  his  time.     Didn't  he  ? 

Captain  Whalley  could  not  say ;  had  only  noticed 
the  carriage  going  past. 

The  Master -Attend  ant,  plunging  his  hands  into 
the  pockets  of  an  alpaca  jacket  inappropriately  short 
and  tight  for  a  man  of  his  age  and  appearance, 
strutted  with  a  slight  limp,  and  with  his  head 
reaching  only  to  the  shoulder  of  Captain  Whalley, 
who  walked  easily,  staring  straight  before  him. 
They  had  been  good  comrades  years  ago,  almost 
intimates.  At  the  time  when  Whalley  commanded 
the  renowned  Condor,  Eliott  had  charge  of  the 
nearly  as  famous  Ringdove  for  the  same  owners ; 
and  when  the  appointment  of  Master -Attendant 
was   created,  Whalley  would   have   been   the   only 


220  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

other  serious  candidate.  But  Captain  Whalley, 
then  in  the  prime  of  life,  was  resolved  to  serve  no 
one  but  his  own  auspicious  Fortune.  Far  away, 
tending  his  hot  irons,  he  was  glad  to  hear  the 
other  had  been  successful.  There  was  a  worldly 
suppleness  in  bluff  Ned  Eliott  that  would  serve  him 
well  in  that  sort  of  official  appointment.  And  they 
were  so  dissimilar  at  bottom  that  as  they  came 
slowly  to  the  end  of  the  avenue  before  the  Cathedral, 
it  had  never  come  into  Whalley's  head  that  he  might 
have  been  in  that  man's  place — provided  for  to  the 
end  of  his  days. 

The  sacred  edifice,  standing  in  solemn  isolation 
amongst  the  converging  avenues  of  enormous  trees, 
as  if  to  put  grave  thoughts  of  heaven  into  the  hours 
of  ease,  presented  a  closed  Gothic  portal  to  the  light 
and  glory  of  the  west.  The  glass  of  the  rosace  above 
the  ogive  glowed  like  fiery  coal  in  the  deep  carvings 
of  a  wheel  of  stone.     The  two  men  faced  about. 

"  I'll  tell  you  what  they  ought  to  do  next, 
Whalley,"  growled  Captain  Eliott  suddenly. 

"Well?" 

"They  ought  to  send  a  real  live  lord  out  here 
when  Sir  Frederick's  time  is  up.     Eh?" 

Captain  Whalley  perfunctorily  did  not  see  why  a 
lord  of  the  right  sort  should  not  do  as  well  as  any 
one  else.     But  this  was  not  the  other's  point  of  view. 

"  No,  no.  Place  runs  itself.  Nothing  can  stop  it 
now.  Good  enough  for  a  lord,"  he  growled  in  short 
sentences.  "  Look  at  the  changes  in  our  own  time. 
We  need  a  lord  here  now.  They  have  got  a  lord 
in  Bombay." 

He  dined  once  or  twice  every  year  at  the  Govern- 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  221 

ment  House  —  a  many -windowed,  arcaded  palace 
upon  a  hill  laid  out  in  roads  and  gardens.  And 
lately  he  had  been  taking  about  a  duke  in  his 
Master-Attendant's  steam-launch  to  visit  the  har- 
bour improvements.  Before  that  he  had  "most 
obligingly  "  gone  out  in  person  to  pick  out  a  good 
berth  for  the  ducal  yacht.  Afterwards  he  had  an 
invitation  to  lunch  on  board.  The  duchess  herself 
lunched  with  them.  A  big  woman  with  a  red  face. 
Complexion  quite  sunburnt.  He  should  think  ruined. 
Very  gracious  manners.  They  were  going  on  to 
Japan.  .  .  . 

He  ejaculated  these  details  for  Captain  Whalley's 
edification,  pausing  to  blow  out  his  cheeks  as  if  with 
a  pent-up  sense  of  importance,  and  repeatedly  pro- 
truding his  thick  lips  till  the  blunt  crimson  end  of 
his  nose  seemed  to  dip  into  the  milk  of  his  moustache. 
The  place  ran  itself  ;  it  was  fit  for  any  lord ;  it  gave 
no  trouble  except  in  its  Marine  department — in  its 
Marine  department  he  repeated  twice,  and  after  a 
heavy  snort  began  to  relate  how  the  other  day  her 
Majesty's  Consul- General  in  French  Cochin-China 
had  cabled  to  him — in  his  official  capacity — asking 
for  a  qualified  man  to  be  sent  over  to  take  charge  of 
a  Glasgow  ship  whose  master  had  died  in  Saigon. 

"  I  sent  word  of  it  to  the  officers'  quarters  in  the 
Sailors'  Home,"  he  continued,  while  the  limp  in  his 
gait  seemed  to  grow  more  accentuated  with  the 
increasing  irritation  of  his  voice.  "Place's  full  of 
them.  Twice  as  many  men  as  there  are  berths 
going  in  the  local  trade.  All  hungry  for  an  easy 
job.  Twice  as  many  —  and  —  What  d'you  think, 
Whalley?  .  .  ." 


222  THE  END   OF  THE  TETHEB. 

He  stopped  short ;  his  hands  clenched  and  thrust 
deeply  downwards,  seemed  ready  to  burst  the  pockets 
of  his  jacket.  A  slight  sigh  escaped  Captain 
Whalley. 

"  Hey  ?  You  would  think  they  would  be  falling 
over  each  other.  Not  a  bit  of  it.  Frightened  to 
go  home.  Nice  and  warm  out  here  to  lie  about  a 
verandah  waiting  for  a  job.  I  sit  and  wait  in  my 
office.  Nobody.  What  did  they  suppose  ?  That  I 
was  going  to  sit  there  like  a  dummy  with  the 
Consul-General's  cable  before  me?  Not  likely.  So 
I  looked  up  a  list  of  them  I  keep  by  me  and  sent 
word  for  Hamilton — the  worst  loafer  of  them  all — 
and  just  made  him  go.  Threatened  to  instruct  the 
steward  of  the  Sailors'  Home  to  have  him  turned 
out  neck  and  crop.  He  did  not  think  the  berth  was 
good  enough — if — you — please.  'I've  your  little 
records  by  me,'  said  I.  ■  You  came  ashore  here 
eighteen  months  ago,  and  you  haven't  done  six 
months'  work  since.  You  are  in  debt  for  your 
board  now  at  the  Home,  and  I  suppose  you  reckon 
the  Marine  Office  will  pay  in  the  end.  Eh  ?  So  it 
shall;  but  if  you  don't  take  this  chance,  away  you 
go  to  England,  assisted  passage,  by  the  first  home- 
ward steamer  that  comes  along.  You  are  no  better 
than  a  pauper.  We  don't  want  any  white  paupers 
here.'  I  scared  him.  But  look  at  the  trouble  all 
this  gave  me." 

"You  would  not  have  had  any  trouble,"  Captain 
Whalley  said  almost  involuntarily,  "if  you  had  sent 
for  me." 

Captain  Eliott  was  immensely  amused;  he  shook 
with    laughter    as   he   walked.      But   suddenly   he 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  223 

stopped  laughing.  A  vague  recollection  had  crossed 
his  mind.  Hadn't  he  heard  it  said  at  the  time  of 
the  Travancore  and  Deccan  smash  that  poor  Whalley 
had  been  cleaned  out  completely.  "Fellow's  hard 
up,  by  heavens ! "  he  thought ;  and  at  once  he  cast 
a  sidelong  upward  glance  at  his  companion.  But 
Captain  Whalley  was  smiling  austerely  straight 
before  him,  with  a  carriage  of  the  head  inconceiv- 
able in  a  penniless  man — and  he  became  reassured. 
Impossible.  Could  not  have  lost  everything.  That 
ship  had  been  only  a  hobby  of  his.  And  the  reflec- 
tion that  a  man  who  had  confessed  to  receiving  that 
very  morning  a  presumably  large  sum  of  money  was 
not  likely  to  spring  upon  him  a  demand  for  a  small 
loan  put  him  entirely  at  his  ease  again.  There  had 
come  a  long  pause  in  their  talk,  however,  and  not 
knowing  how  to  begin  again,  he  growled  out  soberly, 
"  We  old  fellows  ought  to  take  a  rest  now." 

"  The  best  thing  for  some  of  us  would  be  to  die 
at  the  oar,"  Captain  Whalley  said  negligently. 

"Come,  now.  Aren't  you  a  bit  tired  by  this  time 
of  the  whole  show  ?  "  muttered  the  other  sullenly. 

"Are  you?" 

Captain  Bliott  was.  Infernally  tired.  He  only 
hung  on  to  his  berth  so  long  in  order  to  get  his 
pension  on  the  highest  scale  before  he  went  home. 
It  would  be  no  better  than  poverty,  anyhow ;  still, 
it  was  the  only  thing  between  him  and  the  work- 
house. And  he  had  a  family.  Three  girls,  as 
Whalley  knew.  He  gave  "Harry,  old  boy,"  to 
understand  that  these  three  girls  were  a  source  of 
the  greatest  anxiety  and  worry  to  him.  Enough 
to  drive  a  man  distracted. 


224  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

"  Why  ?  What  have  they  been  doing  now  ? " 
asked  Captain  Whalley  with  a  sort  of  amused 
absent-mindedness. 

"  Doing !  Doing  nothing.  That's  just  it.  Lawn- 
tennis  and  silly  novels  from  morning  to  night.  .  .  ." 

If  one  of  them  at  least  had  been  a  boy.  But  all 
three  !  And,  as  ill-luck  would  have  it,  there  did  not 
seem  to  be  any  decent  young  fellows  left  in  the 
world.  When  he  looked  around  in  the  club  he  saw 
only  a  lot  of  conceited  popinjays  too  selfish  to  think 
of  making  a  good  woman  happy.  Extreme  indig- 
ence stared  him  in  the  face  with  all  that  crowd  to 
keep  at  home.  He  had  cherished  the  idea  of  build- 
ing himself  a  little  house  in  the  country — in  Surrey 
— to  end  his  days  in,  but  he  was  afraid  it  was  out 
of  the  question,  .  .  .  and  his  staring  eyes  rolled 
upwards  with  such  a  pathetic  anxiety  that  Captain 
Whalley  charitably  nodded  down  at  him,  restraining 
a  sort  of  sickening  desire  to  laugh. 

"  You  must  know  what  it  is  yourself,  Harry. 
Girls  are  the  very  devil  for  worry  and   anxiety." 

"  Ay  !  But  mine  is  doing  well,"  Captain  Whalley 
pronounced  slowly,  staring  to  the  end  of  the  avenue. 

The  Master -Attendant  was  glad  to  hear  this. 
Uncommonly  glad.  He  remembered  her  well.  A 
pretty  girl  she  was. 

Captain  Whalley,  stepping  out  carelessly,  assented 
as  if  in  a  dream. 

"  She  was  pretty." 

The  procession  of  carriages  was  breaking  up. 

One  after  another  they  left  the  file  to  go  off  at  a 
trot,  animating  the  vast  avenue  with  their  scattered 
life  and  movement ;  but  soon  the  aspect  of  dignified 


THE   END   OP   THE   TETHEK.  225 

solitude  returned  and  took  possession  of  the  straight 
wide  road.  A  syce  in  white  stood  at  the  head  of  a 
Burmah  pony  harnessed  to  a  varnished  two-wheel 
cart;  and  the  whole  thing  waiting  by  the  curb 
seemed  no  bigger  than  a  child's  toy  forgotten  under 
the  soaring  trees.  Captain  Eliott  waddled  up  to  it 
and  made  as  if  to  clamber  in,  but  refrained ;  and 
keeping  one  hand  resting  easily  on  the  shaft,  he 
changed  the  conversation  from  his  pension,  his 
daughters,  and  his  poverty  back  again  to  the  only 
other  topic  in  the  world — the  Marine  Office,  the  men 
and  the  ships  of  the  port. 

He  proceeded  to  give  instances  of  what  was  ex- 
pected of  him  ;  and  his  thick  voice  drowsed  in  the 
still  air  like  the  obstinate  droning  of  an  enormous 
bumble-bee.  Captain  Whalley  did  not  know  what 
was  the  force  or  the  weakness  that  prevented  him 
from  saying  good-night  and  walking  away.  It  was 
as  though  he  had  been  too  tired  to  make  the  effort. 
How  queer.  More  queer  than  any  of  Ned's  instances. 
Or  was  it  that  overpowering  sense  of  idleness  alone 
that  made  him  stand  there  and  listen  to  these  stories. 
Nothing  very  real  had  ever  troubled  Ned  Eliott ;  and 
gradually  he  seemed  to  detect  deep  in,  as  if  wrapped 
up  in  the  gross  wheezy  rumble,  something  of  the 
clear  hearty  voice  of  the  young  captain  of  the  Ring- 
dove. He  wondered  if  he  too  had  changed  to  the 
same  extent ;  and  it  seemed  to  him  that  the  voice 
of  his  old  chum  had  not  changed  so  very  much — 
that  the  man  was  the  same.  Not  a  bad  fellow 
the  pleasant,  jolly  Ned  Eliott,  friendly,  well  up  to 
his  business — and  always  a  bit  of  a  humbug.  He 
remembered  how  he  used  to  amuse  his  poor  wife. 

P 


226  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

She  could  read  him  like  an  open  book.  "When  the 
Condor  and  the  Ringdove  happened  to  be  in  port 
together,  she  would  frequently  ask  him  to  bring 
Captain  Eliott  to  dinner.  They  had  not  met  often 
since  those  old  days.  Not  once  in  five  years,  per- 
haps. He  regarded  from  under  his  white  eyebrows 
this  man  he  could  not  bring  himself  to  take  into 
his  confidence  at  this  juncture;  and  the  other  went 
on  with  his  intimate  outpourings,  and  as  remote 
from  his  hearer  as  though  he  had  been  talking  on 
a  hill-top  a  mile  away. 

He  was  in  a  bit  of  a  quandary  now  as  to  the 
steamer  Sofala.  Ultimately  every  hitch  in  the  port 
came  into  his  hands  to  undo.  They  would  miss  him 
when  he  was  gone  in  another  eighteen  months,  and 
most  likely  some  retired  naval  officer  had  been  pitch- 
forked into  the  appointment — a  man  that  would 
understand  nothing  and  care  less.  That  steamer 
was  a  coasting  craft  having  a  steady  trade  con- 
nection as  far  north  as  Tenasserim ;  but  the  trouble 
was  she  could  get  no  captain  to  take  her  on  her 
regular  trip.  Nobody  would  go  in  her.  He  really 
had  no  power,  of  course,  to  order  a  man  to  take  a 
job.  It  was  all  very  well  to  stretch  a  point  on  the 
demand  of  a  consul-general,  but  .  .  . 

"  What's  the  matter  with  the  ship  ? "  Captain 
Whalley  interrupted  in  measured  tones. 

"Nothing's  the  matter.  Sound  old  steamer.  Her 
owner  has  been  in  my  office  this  afternoon  tearing 
his  hair." 

".Is  he  a  white  man?"  asked  Whalley  in  an 
interested  voice. 

"He  calls  himself  a  white  man,"  answered  the 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  227 

Master- Attendant  scornfully;  "but  if  so,  it's  just 
skin-deep  and  no  more.  I  told  him  that  to  his 
face  too." 

"  But  who  is  he,  then  ?  " 

"  He's  the  chief  engineer  of  her.    See  that,  Harry?" 

"  I  see,"  Captain  Whalley  said  thoughtfully.  "  The 
engineer.      I  see." 

How  the  fellow  came  to  be  a  shipowner  at  the 
same  time  was  quite  a  tale.  He  came  out  third  in 
a  home  ship  nearly  fifteen  years  ago,  Captain  Eliott 
remembered,  and  got  paid  off  after  a  bad  sort  of  row 
both  with  his  skipper  and  his  chief.  Anyway,  they 
seemed  jolly  glad  to  get  rid  of  him  at  all  costs. 
Clearly  a  mutinous  sort  of  chap.  Well,  he  remained 
out  here,  a  perfect  nuisance,  everlastingly  shipped 
and  unshipped,  unable  to  keep  a  berth  very  long ; 
pretty  nigh  went  through  every  engine-room  afloat 
belonging  to  the  colony.  Then  suddenly,  "  What  do 
you  think  happened,  Harry  ?  " 

Captain  Whalley,  who  seemed  lost  in  a  mental 
effort  as  of  doing  a  sum  in  his  head,  gave  a  slight 
start.  He  really  couldn't  imagine.  The  Master- 
Attendant's  voice  vibrated  dully  with  hoarse  em- 
phasis. The  man  actually  had  the  luck  to  win  the 
second  great  prize  in  the  Manilla  lottery.  All  these 
engineers  and  officers  of  ships  took  tickets  in  that 
gamble.  It  seemed  to  be  a  perfect  mania  with 
them  all. 

Everybody  expected  now  that  he  would  take  him- 
self off  home  with  his  money,  and  go  to  the  devil 
in  his  own  way.  Not  at  all.  The  Sofala,  judged  too 
small  and  not  quite  modern  enough  for  the  sort  of 
trade  she  was  in,  could  be  got  for  a  moderate  price 


228  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

from  her  owners,  who  had  ordered  a  new  steamer 
from  Europe.  He  rushed  in  and  bought  her.  This 
man  had  never  given  any  signs  of  that  sort  of  mental 
intoxication  the  mere  fact  of  getting  hold  of  a  large 
sum  of  money  may  produce — not  till  he  got  a  ship 
of  his  own;  but  then  he  went  off  his  balance  all  at 
once  :  came  bouncing  into  the  Marine  Office  on  some 
transfer  business,  with  his  hat  hanging  over  his  left 
eye  and  switching  a  little  cane  in  his  hand,  and 
told  each  one  of  the  clerks  separately  that  "  Nobody 
could  put  him  out  now.  It  was  his  turn.  There 
was  no  one  over  him  on  earth,  and  there  never 
would  be  either."  He  swaggered  and  strutted 
between  the  desks,  talking  at  the  top  of  his  voice, 
and  trembling  like  a  leaf  all  the  while,  so  that  the 
current  business  of  the  office  was  suspended  for  the 
time  he  was  in  there,  and  everybody  in  the  big  room 
stood  open-mouthed  looking  at  his  antics.  After- 
wards he  could  be  seen  during  the  hottest  hours  of 
the  day  with  his  face  as  red  as  fire  rushing  along  up 
and  down  the  quays  to  look  at  his  ship  from  different 
points  of  view:  he  seemed  inclined  to  stop  every 
stranger  he  came  across  just  to  let  them  know  "that 
there  would  be  no  longer  any  one  over  him ;  he  had 
bought  a  ship ;  nobody  on  earth  could  put  him  out 
of  his  engine-room  now." 

Good  bargain  as  she  was,  the  price  of  the  Sofala 
took  up  pretty  near  all  the  lottery-money.  He  had 
left  himself  no  capital  to  work  with.  That  did  not 
matter  so  much,  for  these  were  the  halcyon  days  of 
steam  coasting  trade,  before  some  of  the  home  ship- 
ping firms  had  thought  of  establishing  local  fleets  to 
feed  their  main  lines.     These,  when  once  organised, 


THE  END   OP  THE  TETHER.  229 

took  the  biggest  slices  out  of  that  cake,  of  course; 
and  by -and -by  a  squad  of  confounded  German 
tramps  turned  up  east  of  Suez  Canal  and  swept 
up  all  the  crumbs.  They  prowled  on  the  cheap  to 
and  fro  along  the  coast  and  between  the  islands, 
like  a  lot  of  sharks  in  the  water  ready  to  snap 
up  anything  you  let  drop.  And  then  the  high 
old  times  were  over  for  good ;  for  years  the  Sofala 
had  made  no  more,  he  judged,  than  a  fair  living. 
Captain  Eliott  looked  upon  it  as  his  duty  in  every 
way  to  assist  an  English  ship  to  hold  her  own ;  and 
it  stood  to  reason  that  if  for  want  of  a  captain  the 
Sofala  began  to  miss  her  trips  she  would  very  soon 
lose  her  trade.  There  was  the  quandary.  The  man 
was  too  impracticable.  "  Too  much  of  a  beggar  on 
horseback  from  the  first,"  he  explained.  "Seemed 
to  grow  worse  as  the  time  went  on.  In  the  last 
three  years  he's  run  through  eleven  skippers ;  he  had 
tried  every  single  man  here,  outside  of  the  regular 
lines.  I  had  warned  him  before  that  this  would 
not  do.  And  now,  of  course,  no  one  will  look  at 
the  Sofala.  I  had  one  or  two  men  up  at  my  office 
and  talked  to  them ;  but,  as  they  said  to  me,  what 
was  the  good  of  taking  the  berth  to  lead  a  regular 
dog's  life  for  a  month  and  then  get  the  sack  at  the 
end  of  the  first  trip  ?  The  fellow,  of  course,  told  me 
it  was  all  nonsense;  there  has  been  a  plot  hatch- 
ing for  years  against  him.  And  now  it  had  come. 
All  the  horrid  sailors  in  the  port  had  conspired  to 
bring  him  to  his  knees,  because  he  was  an  engineer." 

Captain  Eliott  emitted  a  throaty  chuckle. 

"  And  the  fact  is,  that  if  he  misses  a  couple  more 
trips  he  need  never  trouble  himself  to  start  again. 


230  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

He  won't  find  any  cargo  in  his  old  trade.  There's 
too  much  competition  nowadays  for  people  to  keep 
their  stuff  lying  about  for  a  ship  that  does  not  turn 
up  when  she's  expected.  It's  a  bad  look-out  for  him. 
He  swears  he  will  shut  himself  on  board  and  starve 
to  death  in  his  cabin  rather  than  sell  her — even  if  he 
could  find  a  buyer.  And  that's  not  likely  in  the 
least.  Not  even  the  Japs  would  give  her  insured 
value  for  her.  It  isn't  like  selling  sailing-ships. 
Steamers  do  get  out  of  date,  besides  getting  old." 

"  He  must  have  laid  by  a  good  bit  of  money 
though,"  observed  Captain  Whalley  quietly. 

The  Harbour-master  puffed  out  his  purple  cheeks 
to  an  amazing  size. 

"Not  a  stiver,  Harry.     Not — a — single  sti-ver." 

He  waited ;  but  as  Captain  Whalley,  stroking  his 
beard  slowly,  looked  down  on  the  ground  without  a 
word,  he  tapped  him  on  the  forearm,  tiptoed,  and 
said  in  a  hoarse  whisper — 

"  The  Manilla  lottery  has  been  eating  him  up." 

He  frowned  a  little,  nodding  in  tiny  affirmative 
jerks.  They  all  were  going  in  for  it ;  a  third  of  the 
wages  paid  to  ships'  officers  ( "  in  my  port,"  he 
snorted)  went  to  Manilla.  It  was  a  mania.  That 
fellow  Massy  had  been  bitten  by  it  like  the  rest  of 
them  from  the  first;  but  after  winning  once  he 
seemed  to  have  persuaded  himself  he  had  only  to 
try  again  to  get  another  big  prize.  He  had  taken 
dozens  and  scores  of  tickets  for  every  drawing  since. 
What  with  this  vice  and  his  ignorance  of  affairs, 
ever  since  he  had  improvidently  bought  that  steamer 
he  had  been  more  or  less  short  of  money. 

This,  in  Captain  Eliott's  opinion,  gave  an  opening 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  231 

for  a  sensible  sailor-man  with  a  few  pounds  to  step 
in  and  save  that  fool  from  the  consequences  of  his 
folly.  It  was  his  craze  to  quarrel  with  his  captains. 
He  had  had  some  really  good  men  too,  who  would 
have  been  too  glad  to  stay  if  he  would  only  let 
them.  But  no.  He  seemed  to  think  he  was  no 
owner  unless  he  was  kicking  somebody  out  in  the 
morning  and  having  a  row  with  the  new  man  in  the 
evening.  What  was  wanted  for  him  was  a  master 
with  a  couple  of  hundred  or  so  to  take  an  interest 
in  the  ship  on  proper  conditions.  You  don't  dis- 
charge a  man  for  no  fault,  only  because  of  the  fun 
of  telling  him  to  pack  up  his  traps  and  go  ashore, 
when  you  know  that  in  that  case  you  are  bound  to 
buy  back  his  share.  On  the  other  hand,  a  fellow 
with  an  interest  in  the  ship  is  not  likely  to  throw  up 
his  job  in  a  huff  about  a  trifle.  He  had  told  Massy 
that.  He  had  said:  "'This  won't  do,  Mr  Massy. 
We  are  getting  very  sick  of  you  here  in  the  Marine 
Office.  What  you  must  do  now  is  to  try  whether 
you  could  get  a  sailor  to  join  you  as  partner.  That 
seems  to  be  the  only  way.'  And  that  was  sound 
advice,  Harry." 

Captain  Whalley,  leaning  on  his  stick,  was  per- 
fectly still  all  over,  and  his  hand,  arrested  in  the  act 
of  Stroking,  grasped  his  whole  beard.  And  what 
did  the  fellow  say  to  that? 

The  fellow  had  the  audacity  to  fly  out  at  the 
Master- Attendant.  He  had  received  the  advice  in 
a  most  impudent  manner.  "I  didn't  come  here  to 
be  laughed  at,"  he  had  shrieked.  "  I  appeal  to  you 
as  an  Englishman  and  a  shipowner  brought  to  the 
verge   of    ruin    by   an    illegal   conspiracy   of    your 


232  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

beggarly  sailors,  and  all  you  condescend  to  do  for 
me  is  to  tell  me  to  go  and  get  a  partner ! "  .  .  . 
The  fellow  had  presumed  to  stamp  with  rage  on 
the  floor  of  the  private  office.  Where  was  he  going 
to  get  a  partner?  Was  he  being  taken  for  a  fool? 
Not  a  single  one  of  that  contemptible  lot  ashore  at 
the  "Home"  had  twopence  in  his  pocket  to  bless 
himself  with.  The  very  native  curs  in  the  bazaar 
knew  that  much.  .  .  .  "And  it's  true  enough, 
Harry,"  rumbled  Captain  Eliott  judicially.  "They 
are  much  more  likely  one  and  all  to  owe  money  to 
the  Chinamen  in  Denham  Koad  for  the  clothes  on 
their  backs.  'Well,'  said  I,  'you  make  too  much 
noise  over  it  for  my  taste,  Mr  Massy.  Good  morn- 
ing.' He  banged  the  door  after  him;  he  dared  to 
bang  my  door,  confound  his  cheek ! " 

The  head  of  the  Marine  department  was  out  of 
breath  with  indignation;  then  recollecting  himself 
as  it  were,  "  I'll  end  by  being  late  to  dinner — yarn- 
ing with  you  here  .  .  .  wife  doesn't  like  it." 

He  clambered  ponderously  into  the  trap  ;  leaned 
out  side-ways,  and  only  then  wondered  wheezily 
what  on  earth  Captain  Whalley  could  have  been 
doing  with  himself  of  late.  They  had  had  no  sight 
of  each  other  for  years  and  years  till  the  other  day 
when  he  had  seen  him  unexpectedly  in  the  office. 

What  on  earth  .  .  . 

Captain  Whalley  seemed  to  be  smiling  to  himself 
in  his  white  beard. 

"  The  earth  is  big,"  he  said  vaguely. 

The  other,  as  if  to  test  the  statement,  stared  all 
round  from  his  driving-seat.  The  Esplanade  was 
very  quiet ;  only  from  afar,  from  very  far,  a  long 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  233 

way  from  the  sea-shore,  across  the  stretches  of  grass, 
through  the  long  ranges  of  trees,  came  faintly  the 
toot — toot — toot  of  the  cable  car  beginning  to  roll 
before  the  empty  peristyle  of  the  Public  Library  on 
its  three-mile  journey  to  the  New  Harbour  Docks. 

"Doesn't  seem  to  be  so  much  room  on  it,"  growled 
the  Master- Attendant,  "since  these  Germans  came 
along  shouldering  us  at  every  turn.  It  was  not  so 
in  our  time." 

He  fell  into  deep  thought,  breathing  stertorously, 
as  though  he  had  been  taking  a  nap  open-eyed. 
Perhaps  he  too,  on  his  side,  had  detected  in  the 
silent  pilgrim -like  figure,  standing  there  by  the 
wheel,  like  an  arrested  wayfarer,  the  buried  linea- 
ments of  the  features  belonging  to  the  young  cap- 
tain of  the  Condor.  Good  fellow — Harry  Whalley 
— never  very  talkative.  You  never  knew  what  he 
was  up  to — a  bit  too  off-hand  with  people  of  con- 
sequence, and  apt  to  take  a  wrong  view  of  a  fellow's 
actions.  Fact  was  he  had  a  too  good  opinion  of 
himself.  He  would  have  liked  to  tell  him  to  get  in 
and  drive  him  home  to  dinner.  But  one  never  knew. 
Wife  would  not  like  it. 

"  And  it's  funny  to  think,  Harry,"  he  went  on  in 
a  big,  subdued  drone,  "that  of  all  the  people  on  it 
there  seems  only  you  and  I  left  to  remember  this 
part  of  the  world  as  it  used  to  be  .  .  ." 

He  was  ready  to  indulge  in  the  sweetness  of  a 
sentimental  mood  had  it  not  struck  him  suddenly 
that  Captain  Whalley,  unstirring  and  without  a 
word,  seemed  to  be  awaiting  something — perhaps 
expecting  .  .  .  He  gathered  the  reins  at  once  and 
burst  out  in  bluff  hearty  growls — 


234  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

"  Ha !  My  dear  boy.  The  men  we  have  known 
— the  ships  we've  sailed — ay  !  and  the  things  we've 
done  ..." 

The  pony  plunged — the  syce  skipped  out  of  the 
way.     Captain  Whalley  raised  his  arm. 

"Good-bye." 


VT 


The  sun  had  set.  And  when,  after  drilling  a  deep 
hole  with  his  stick,  he  moved  from  that  spot  the 
night  had  massed  its  army  of  shadows  under  the 
trees.  They  filled  the  eastern  ends  of  the  avenues 
as  if  only  waiting  the  signal  for  a  general  advance 
upon  the  open  spaces  of  the  world  ;  they  were  gath- 
ering low  between  the  deep  stone-faced  banks  of  the 
canal.  The  Malay  prau,  half-concealed  under  the 
arch  of  the  bridge,  had  not  altered  its  position  a 
quarter  of  an  inch.  For  a  long  time  Captain  Whalley 
stared  down  over  the  parapet,  till  at  last  the  float- 
ing immobility  of  that  beshrouded  thing  seemed  to 
grow  upon  him  into  something  inexplicable  and 
alarming.  The  twilight  abandoned  the  zenith;  its 
reflected  gleams  left  the  world  below,  and  the  water 
of  the  canal  seemed  to  turn  into  pitch.  Captain 
Whalley  crossed  it. 

The  turning  to  the  right,  which  was  his  way  to 
his  hotel,  was  only  a  very  few  steps  farther.  He 
stopped  again  (all  the  houses  of  the  sea-front  were 
shut  up,  the  quayside  was  deserted,  but  for  one  or 
two  figures  of  natives  walking  in  the  distance)  and 
began  to  reckon  the  amount  of  his  bill.     So  many 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  235 

days  in  the  hotel  at  so  many  dollars  a-day.  To 
count  the  days  he  used  his  fingers :  plunging  one 
hand  into  his  pocket,  he  jingled  a  few  silver  coins. 
All  right  for  three  days  more;  and  then,  unless 
something  turned  up,  he  must  break  into  the  five 
hundred — Ivy's  money — invested  in  her  father.  It 
seemed  to  him  that  the  first  meal  coming  out  of 
that  reserve  would  choke  him — for  certain.  Reason 
was  of  no  use.  It  was  a  matter  of  feeling.  His 
feelings  had  never  played  him  false. 

He  did  not  turn  to  the  right.  He  walked  on,  as 
if  there  still  had  been  a  ship  in  the  roadstead  to 
which  he  could  get  himself  pulled  off  in  the  even- 
ing. Far  away,  beyond  the  houses,  on  the  slope  of 
an  indigo  promontory  closing  the  view  of  the  quays, 
the  slim  column  of  a  factory-chimney  smoked  quietly 
straight  up  into  the  clear  air.  A  Chinaman,  curled 
down  in  the  stern  of  one  of  the  half-dozen  sampans 
floating  off  the  end  of  the  jetty,  caught  sight 
of  a  beckoning  hand.  He  jumped  up,  rolled  his 
pigtail  round  his  head  swiftly,  tucked  in  two  rapid 
movements  his  wide  dark  trousers  high  up  his  yellow 
thighs,  and  by  a  single,  noiseless,  finlike  stir  of  the 
oars,  sheered  the  sampan  alongside  the  steps  with 
the  ease  and  precision  of  a  swimming  fish. 

"  Sofala"  articulated  Captain Wh alley  from  above ; 
and  the  Chinaman,  a  new  emigrant  probably,  stared 
upwards  with  a  tense  attention  as  if  waiting  to  see 
the  queer  word  fall  visibly  from  the  white  man's 
lips.  " Sofala"  Captain  Whalley  repeated ;  and 
suddenly  his  heart  failed  him.  He  paused.  The 
shores,  the  islets,  the  high  ground,  the  low  points, 
were  dark :   the   horizon   had   grown  sombre ;   and 


236  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

across  the  eastern  sweep  of  the  shore  the  white 
obelisk,  marking  the  landing-place  of  the  telegraph- 
cable,  stood  like  a  pale  ghost  on  the  beach  before  the 
dark  spread  of  uneven  roofs,  intermingled  with  palms, 
of  the  native  town.     Captain  Whalley  began  again. 

"  Sofala.     Savee  So-fa-la,  John  ?  " 

This  time  the  Chinaman  made  out  that  bizarre 
sound,  and  grunted  his  assent  uncouthly,  low  down 
in  his  bare  throat.  With  the  first  yellow  twinkle  of 
a  star  that  appeared  like  the  head  of  a  pin  stabbed 
deep  into  the  smooth,  pale,  shimmering  fabric  of  the 
sky,  the  edge  of  a  keen  chill  seemed  to  cleave  through 
the  warm  air  of  the  earth.  At  the  moment  of  step- 
ping into  the  sampan  to  go  and  try  for  the  com- 
mand of  the  Sofala  Captain  Whalley  shivered  a  little. 

When  on  his  return  he  landed  on  the  quay  again, 
Venus,  like  a  choice  jewel  set  low  on  the  hem  of  the 
sky,  cast  a  faint  gold  trail  behind  him  upon  the 
roadstead,  as  level  as  a  floor  made  of  one  dark  and 
polished  stone.  The  lofty  vaults  of  the  avenues 
were  black — all  black  overhead — and  the  porcelain 
globes  on  the  lamp  -  posts  resembled  egg  -  shaped 
pearls,  gigantic  and  luminous,  displayed  in  a  row 
whose  farther  end  seemed  to  sink  in  the  distance, 
down  to  the  level  of  his  knees.  He  put  his  hands 
behind  his  back.  He  would  now  consider  calmly 
the  discretion  of  it  before  saying  the  final  word 
to-morrow.  His  feet  scrunched  the  gravel  loudly 
— the  discretion  of  it.  It  would  have  been  easier 
to  appraise  had  there  been  a  workable  alternative. 
The  honesty  of  it  was  indubitable:  he  meant  well 
by  the  fellow;  and  periodically  his  shadow  leaped 
up  intense  by  his  side  on  the  trunks  of  the  trees, 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEK.  237 

to  lengthen  itself,  oblique  and  dim,  far  over  the 
grass — repeating  his  stride. 

The  discretion  of  it.  Was  there  a  choice?  He 
seemed  already  to  have  lost  something  of  himself; 
to  have  given  up  to  a  hungry  spectre  something  of 
his  truth  and  dignity  in  order  to  live.  But  his  life 
was  necessary.  Let  poverty  do  its  worst  in  exact- 
ing its  toll  of  humiliation.  It  was  certain  that  Ned 
Eliott  had  rendered  him,  without  knowing  it,  a  ser- 
vice for  which  it  would  have  been  impossible  to  ask. 
He  hoped  Ned  would  not  think  there  had  been  some- 
thing underhand  in  his  action.  He  supposed  that 
now  when  he  heard  of  it  he  would  understand — or 
perhaps  he  would  only  think  Whalley  an  eccentric 
old  fool.  What  would  have  been  the  good  of  telling 
him — any  more  than  of  blurting  the  whole  tale  to 
that  man  Massy?  Five  hundred  pounds  ready  to 
invest.  Let  him  make  the  best  of  that.  Let  him 
wonder.  You  want  a  captain  —  I  want  a  ship. 
That's  enough.  B-r-r-r-r.  What  a  disagreeable 
impression  that  empty,  dark,  echoing  steamer  had 
made  upon  him.    .    .    . 

A  laid-up  steamer  was  a  dead  thing  and  no  mis- 
take ;  a  sailing-ship  somehow  seems  always  ready  to 
spring  into  life  with  the  breath  of  the  incorruptible 
heaven;  but  a  steamer,  thought  Captain  Whalley, 
with  her  fires  out,  without  the  warm  whiffs  from 
below  meeting  you  on  her  decks,  without  the  hiss 
of  steam,  the  clangs  of  iron  in  her  breast  —  lies 
there  as  cold  and  still  and  pulseless  as  a  corpse. 

In  the  solitude  of  the  avenue,  all  black  above  and 
lighted  below,  Captain  Whalley,  considering  the  dis- 
cretion of  his  course,  met,  as  it  were  incidentally,  the 
thought  of  death.     He  pushed  it  aside  with  dislike 


238  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

and  contempt.  He  almost  laughed  at  it;  and  in 
the  unquenchable  vitality  of  his  age  only  thought 
with  a  kind  of  exultation  how  little  he  needed  to 
keep  body  and  soul  together.  Not  a  bad  invest- 
ment for  the  poor  woman  this  solid  carcass  of  her 
father.  And  for  the  rest — in  case  of  anything — 
the  agreement  should  be  clear :  the  whole  five  hun- 
dred to  be  paid  back  to  her  integrally  within  three 
months.  Integrally.  Every  penny.  He  was  not 
to  lose  any  of  her  money  whatever  else  had  to  go 
— a  little  dignity — some  of  his  self-respect.  He 
had  never  before  allowed  anybody  to  remain  under 
any  sort  of  false  impression  as  to  himself.  Well, 
let  that  go — for  her  sake.  After  all,  he  had  never 
said  anything  misleading  —  and  Captain  Whalley 
felt  himself  corrupt  to  the  marrow  of  his  bones. 
He  laughed  a  little  with  the  intimate  scorn  of 
his  worldly  prudence.  Clearly,  with  a  fellow  of 
that  sort,  and  in  the  peculiar  relation  they  were 
to  stand  to  each  other,  it  would  not  have  done  to 
blurt  out  everything.  He  did  not  like  the  fellow. 
He  did  not  like  his  spells  of  fawning  loquacity  and 
bursts  of  resentfulness.  In  the  end — a  poor  devil. 
He  would  not  have  liked  to  stand  in  his  shoes.  Men 
were  not  evil,  after  all.  He  did  not  like  his  sleek 
hair,  his  queer  way  of  standing  at  right  angles, 
with  his  nose  in  the  air,  and  glancing  along  his 
shoulder  at  you.  No.  On  the  whole,  men  were 
not  bad — they  were  only  silly  or  unhappy. 

Captain  Whalley  had  finished  considering  the  dis- 
cretion of  that  step — and  there  was  the  whole  long 
night  before  him.  In  the  full  light  his  long  beard 
would  glisten  like  a  silver  breastplate  covering  his 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  239 

heart;  in  the  spaces  between  the  lamps  his  burly 
figure  passed  less  distinct,  loomed  very  big,  wander- 
ing, and  mysterious.  No ;  there  was  not  much  real 
harm  in  men  :  and  all  the  time  a  shadow  marched 
with  him,  slanting  on  his  left  hand — which  in  the 
East  is  a  presage  of  evil. 

"  Can  you  make  out  the  clump  of  palms  yet, 
Serang?"  asked  Captain  Whalley  from  his  chair 
on  the  bridge  of  the  Sofala  approaching  the  bar 
of  Batu  Beru. 

"No,  Tuan.  By-and-by  see."  The  old  Malay,  in 
a  blue  dungaree  suit,  planted  on  his  bony  dark  feet 
under  the  bridge  awning,  put  his  hands  behind  his 
back  and  stared  ahead  out  of  the  innumerable 
wrinkles  at  the  corners  of  his  eyes. 

Captain  Whalley  sat  still,  without  lifting  his  head 
to  look  for  himself.  Three  years — thirty-six  times. 
He  had  made  these  palms  thirty-six  times  from  the 
southward.  They  would  come  into  view  at  the 
proper  time.  Thank  God,  the  old  ship  made  her 
courses  and  distances  trip  after  trip,  as  correct  as 
clockwork.     At  last  he  murmured  again — 

"Insight  yet?" 

"  The  sun  makes  a  very  great  glare,  Tuan." 

"Watch  well,  Serang." 

"Ya,  Tuan." 

A  white  man  had  ascended  the  ladder  from  the 
deck  noiselessly,  and  had  listened  quietly  to  this 
short  colloquy.  Then  he  stepped  out  on  the  bridge 
and  began  to  walk  from  end  to  end,  holding  up  the 
long  cherrywood  stem  of  a  pipe.  His  black  hair 
lay  plastered  in  long  lanky  wisps  across  the  bald 


240  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

summit  of  his  head;  he  had  a  furrowed  brow,  a 
yellow  complexion,  and  a  thick  shapeless  nose.  A 
scanty  growth  of  whisker  did  not  conceal  the  con- 
tour of  his  jaw.  His  aspect  was  of  brooding  care; 
and  sucking  at  a  curved  black  mouthpiece,  he 
presented  such  a  heavy  overhanging  profile  that 
even  the  Serang  could  not  help  reflecting  sometimes 
upon  the  extreme  unloveliness  of  some  white  men. 

Captain  Whalley  seemed  to  brace  himself  up  in 
his  chair,  but  gave  no  recognition  whatever  to  his 
presence.  The  other  puffed  jets  of  smoke;  then 
suddenly — 

"I  could  never  understand  that  new  mania  of 
yours  of  having  this  Malay  here  for  your  shadow, 
partner." 

Captain  Whalley  got  up  from  the  chair  in  all 
his  imposing  stature  and  walked  across  to  the 
binnacle,  holding  such  an  unswerving  course  that 
the  other  had  to  back  away  hurriedly,  and  remained 
as  if  intimidated,  with  the  pipe  trembling  in  his 
hand.  "Walk  over  me  now,"  he  muttered  in  a 
sort  of  astounded  and  discomfited  whisper.  Then 
slowly  and  distinctly  he  said — 

"I — am — not — dirt."  And  then  added  defiantly, 
"As  you  seem  to  think." 

The  Serang  jerked  out — 

"  See  the  palms  now,  Tuan." 

Captain  Whalley  strode  forward  to  the  rail ;  but 
his  eyes,  instead  of  going  straight  to  the  point,  with 
the  assured  keen  glance  of  a  sailor,  wandered  irres- 
olutely in  space,  as  though  he,  the  discoverer  of 
new  routes,  had  lost  his  way  upon  this  narrow  sea. 

Another  white  man,  the  mate,  came  up  on  the 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  241 

bridge.  He  was  tall,  young,  lean,  with  a  moustache 
like  a  trooper,  and  something  malicious  in  the  eye. 
He  took  up  a  position  beside  the  engineer.  Captain 
Whalley,  with  his  back  to  them,  inquired — 

"What's  on  the  log?" 

"Eighty-five,"  answered  the  mate  quickly,  and 
nudged  the  engineer  with  his  elbow. 

Captain  Whalley's  muscular  hands  squeezed  the 
iron  rail  with  an  extraordinary  force;  his  eyes 
glared  with  an  enormous  effort ;  he  knitted  his 
eyebrows,  the  perspiration  fell  from  under  his 
hat, — and  in  a  faint  voice  he  murmured,  "  Steady 
her,  Serang — when  she  is  on  the  proper  bearing." 

The  silent  Malay  stepped  back,  waited  a  little, 
and  lifted  his  arm  warningly  to  the  helmsman.  The 
wheel  revolved  rapidly  to  meet  the  swing  of  the 
ship.  Again  the  mate  nudged  the  engineer.  But 
Massy  turned  upon  him. 

"Mr  Sterne,"  he  said  violently,  "let  me  tell  you 
— as  a  shipowner — that  you  are  no  better  than  a 
confounded  fool." 


VII. 


Sterne  went  down  smirking  and  apparently  not 
at  all  disconcerted,  but  the  engineer  Massy  remained 
on  the  bridge,  moving  about  with  uneasy  self-asser- 
tion. Everybody  on  board  was  his  inferior — every- 
one without  exception.  He  paid  their  wages  and 
found  them  in  their  food.  They  ate  more  of  his 
bread  and  pocketed  more  of  his  money  than  they 
were  worth ;   and  they  had  no  care  in  the  world, 

Q 


242  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

while  he  alone  had  to  meet  all  the  difficulties  of 
shipowning.  When  he  contemplated  his  position 
in  all  its  menacing  entirety,  it  seemed  to  him 
that  he  had  been  for  years  the  prey  of  a  band  of 
parasites;  and  for  years  he  had  scowled  at  every- 
body connected  with  the  Sofala  except,  perhaps, 
at  the  Chinese  firemen  who  served  to  get  her 
along.  Their  use  was  manifest :  they  were  an 
indispensable  part  of  the  machinery  of  which  he 
was  the  master. 

When  he  passed  along  his  decks  he  shouldered 
those  he  came  across  brutally ;  but  the  Malay  deck 
hands  had  learned  to  dodge  out  of  his  way.  He 
had  to  bring  himself  to  tolerate  them  because  of  the 
necessary  manual  labour  of  the  ship  which  must  be 
done.  He  had  to  struggle  and  plan  and  scheme 
to  keep  the  Sofala  afloat — and  what  did  he  get  for 
it?  Not  even  enough  respect.  They  could  not 
have  given  him  enough  of  that  if  all  their  thoughts 
and  all  their  actions  had  been  directed  to  that  end. 
The  vanity  of  possession,  the  vainglory  of  power, 
had  passed  away  by  this  time,  and  there  remained 
only  the  material  embarrassments,  the  fear  of  losing 
that  position  which  had  turned  out  not  worth 
having,  and  an  anxiety  of  thought  which  no  abject 
subservience  of  men  could  repay. 

He  walked  up  and  down.  The  bridge  was  his 
own  after  all.  He  had  paid  for  it ;  and  with  the 
stem  of  the  pipe  in  his  hand  he  would  stop  short  at 
times  as  if  to  listen  with  a  profound  and  concen- 
trated attention  to  the  deadened  beat  of  the  engines 
(his  own  engines)  and  the  slight  grinding  of  the 
steering  chains  upon  the  continuous   low   wash  of 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  243 

water  alongside.  But  for  these  sounds,  the  ship 
might  have  been  lying  as  still  as  if  moored  to  a 
bank,  and  as  silent  as  if  abandoned  by  every  living 
soul ;  only  the  coast,  the  low  coast  of  mud  and  man- 
groves with  the  three  palms  in  a  bunch  at  the  back, 
grew  slowly  more  distinct  in  its  long  straight  line, 
without  a  single  feature  to  arrest  attention.  The 
native  passengers  of  the  Sofala  lay  about  on  mats 
under  the  awnings ;  the  smoke  of  her  funnel  seemed 
the  only  sign  of  her  life  and  connected  with  her 
gliding  motion  in  a  mysterious  manner. 

Captain  Whalley  on  his  feet,  with  a  pair  of  binoc- 
ulars in  his  hand  and  the  little  Malay  Serang  at 
his  elbow,  like  an  old  giant  attended  by  a  wizened 
pigmy,  was  taking  her  over  the  shallow  water  of 
the  bar. 

This  submarine  ridge  of  mud,  scoured  by  the 
stream  out  of  the  soft  bottom  of  the  river  and 
heaped  up  far  out  on  the  hard  bottom  of  the  sea, 
was  difficult  to  get  over.  The  alluvial  coast  having 
no  distinguishing  marks,  the  bearings  of  the  cross- 
ing-place had  to  be  taken  from  the  shape  of  the 
mountains  inland.  The  guidance  of  a  form  flattened 
and  uneven  at  the  top  like  a  grinder  tooth,  and  of 
another  smooth,  saddle-backed  summit,  had  to  be 
searched  for  within  the  great  unclouded  glare  that 
seemed  to  shift  and  float  like  a  dry  fiery  mist,  filling 
the  air,  ascending  from  the  water,  shrouding  the 
distances,  scorching  to  the  eye.  In  this  veil  of  light 
the  near  edge  of  the  shore  alone  stood  out  almost 
coal-black  with  an  opaque  and  motionless  solidity. 
Thirty  miles  away  the  serrated  range  of  the  interior 
stretched  across  the  horizon,  its  outlines  and  shades 


244  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

of  blue,  faint  and  tremulous  like  a  background 
painted  on  airy  gossamer  on  the  quivering  fabric 
of  an  impalpable  curtain  let  down  to  the  plain  of 
alluvial  soil ;  and  the  openings  of  the  estuary- 
appeared,  shining  white,  like  bits  of  silver  let  into 
the  square  pieces  snipped  clean  and  sharp  out  of  the 
body  of  the  land  bordered  with  mangroves. 

On  the  forepart  of  the  bridge  the  giant  and  the 
pigmy  muttered  to  each  other  frequently  in  quiet 
tones.  Behind  them  Massy  stood  sideways  with  an 
expression  of  disdain  and  suspense  on  his  face.  His 
globular  eyes  were  perfectly  motionless,  and  he 
seemed  to  have  forgotten  the  long  pipe  he  held  in 
his  hand. 

On  the  fore-deck  below  the  bridge,  steeply  roofed 
with  the  white  slopes  of  the  awnings,  a  young  lascar 
seaman  had  clambered  outside  the  rail.  He  adjusted 
quickly  a  broad  band  of  sail  canvas  under  his  arm- 
pits, and  throwing  his  chest  against  it,  leaned  out 
far  over  the  water.  The  sleeves  of  his  thin  cotton 
shirt,  cut  off  close  to  the  shoulder,  bared  his  brown 
arm  of  full  rounded  form  and  with  a  satiny  skin  like 
a  woman's.  He  swung  it  rigidly  with  the  rotary 
and  menacing  action  of  a  slinger  :  the  14-lb.  weight 
hurtled  circling  in  the  air,  then  suddenly  flew  ahead 
as  far  as  the  curve  of  the  bow.  The  wet  thin  line 
swished  like  scratched  silk  running  through  the  dark 
fingers  of  the  man,  and  the  plunge  of  the  lead  close 
to  the  ship's  side  made  a  vanishing  silvery  scar 
upon  the  golden  glitter ;  then  after  an  interval 
the  voice  of  the  young  Malay  uplifted  and  long- 
drawn  declared  the  depth  of  the  water  in  his  own 
language. 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE.  245 

"  Tiga  stengah,"  he  cried  after  each  splash  and 
pause,  gathering  the  line  busily  for  another  cast. 
"Tiga  stengah,"  which  means  three  fathom  and  a 
half.  For  a  mile  or  so  from  seaward  there  was  a 
uniform  depth  of  water  right  up  to  the  bar.  "  Half- 
three.  Half -three.  Half -three," — and  his  modul- 
ated cry,  returned  leisurely  and  monotonous,  like  the 
repeated  call  of  a  bird,  seemed  to  float  away  in 
sunshine  and  disappear  in  the  spacious  silence  of  the 
empty  sea  and  of  a  lifeless  shore  lying  open,  north 
and  south,  east  and  west,  without  the  stir  of  a 
single  cloud -shadow  or  the  whisper  of  any  other 
voice. 

The  owner -engineer  of  the  Sofala  remained  very 
still  behind  the  two  seamen  of  different  race,  creed, 
and  colour ;  the  European  with  the  time  -  defying 
vigour  of  his  old  frame,  the  little  Malay,  old  too, 
but  slight  and  shrunken  like  a  withered  brown  leaf 
blown  by  a  chance  wind  under  the  mighty  shadow 
of  the  other.  Very  busy  looking  forward  at  the 
land,  they  had  not  a  glance  to  spare  ;  and  Massy, 
glaring  at  them  from  behind,  seemed  to  resent  their 
attention  to  their  duty  like  a  personal  slight  upon 
himself. 

This  was  unreasonable;  but  he  had  lived  in  his 
own  world  of  unreasonable  resentments  for  many 
years.  At  last,  passing  his  moist  palm  over  the  rare 
lanky  wisps  of  coarse  hair  on  the  top  of  his  yellow 
head,  he  began  to  talk  slowly. 

"A  leadsman,  you  want!  I  suppose  that's  your 
correct  mail-boat  style.  Haven't  you  enough  judg- 
ment to  tell  where  you  are  by  looking  at  the  land  ? 
Why,  before  I  had  been  a  twelvemonth  in  the  trade 


246  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

I  was  up  to  that  trick — and  I  am  only  an  engineer. 
I  can  point  to  you  from  here  where  the  bar  is,  and 
I  could  tell  you  besides  that  you  are  as  likely  as  not 
to  stick  her  in  the  mud  in  about  five  minutes  from 
now  ;  only  you  would  call  it  interfering,  I  suppose. 
And  there's  that  written  agreement  of  ours,  that 
says  I  mustn't  interfere." 

His  voice  stopped.  Captain  Whalley,  without 
relaxing  the  set  severity  of  his  features,  moved 
his  lips  to  ask  in  a  quick  mumble — 

"How  near,   Serang?" 

"Very  near  now,  Tuan,"  the  Malay  muttered 
rapidly. 

"Dead  slow,"  said  the  Captain  aloud  in  a  firm 
tone. 

The  Serang  snatched  at  the  handle  of  the  tele- 
graph. A  gong  clanged  down  below.  Massy  with 
a  scornful  snigger  walked  off  and  put  his  head 
down  the  engine-room  skylight. 

"You  may  expect  some  rare  fooling  with  the 
engines,  Jack,"  he  bellowed.  The  space  into  which 
he  stared  was  deep  and  full  of  gloom;  and  the 
grey  gleams  of  steel  down  there  seemed  cool  after 
the  intense  glare  of  the  sea  around  the  ship.  The 
air,  however,  came  up  clammy  and  hot  on  his 
face.  A  short  hoot  on  which  it  would  have  been 
impossible  to  put  any  sort  of  interpretation  came 
from  the  bottom  cavernously.  This  was  the  way 
in  which  the  second  engineer  answered  his  chief. 

He  was  a  middle-aged  man  with  an  inattentive 
manner,  and  apparently  wrapped  up  in  such  a 
taciturn  concern  for  his  engines  that  he  seemed  to 
have  lost    the    use    of    speech.      When    addressed 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  247 

directly  his  only  answer  would  be  a  grunt  or  a 
hoot,  according  to  the  distance.  For  all  the  years 
he  had  been  in  the  Sofala  he  had  never  been 
known  to  exchange  as  much  as  a  frank  Good 
morning  with  any  of  his  shipmates.  He  did  not 
seem  aware  that  men  came  and  went  in  the  world ; 
he  did  not  seem  to  see  them  at  all.  Indeed  he 
never  recognised  his  shipmates  on  shore.  At  table 
(the  four  white  men  of  the  Sofala  messed  together) 
he  sat  looking  into  his  plate  dispassionately,  but 
at  the  end  of  the  meal  would  jump  up  and  bolt 
down  below  as  if  a  sudden  thought  had  impelled 
him  to  rush  and  see  whether  somebody  had  not 
stolen  the  engines  while  he  dined.  In  port  at  the 
end  of  the  trip  he  went  ashore  regularly,  but  no 
one  knew  where  he  spent  his  evenings  or  in  what 
manner.  The  local  coasting  fleet  had  preserved  a 
wild  and  incoherent  tale  of  his  infatuation  for  the 
wife  of  a  sergeant  in  an  Irish  infantry  regiment. 
The  regiment,  however,  had  done  its  turn  of  garri- 
son duty  there  ages  before,  and  was  gone  some- 
where to  the  other  side  of  the  earth,  out  of  men's 
knowledge.  Twice  or  perhaps  three  times  in  the 
course  of  the  year  he  would  take  too  much  to 
drink.  On  these  occasions  he  returned  on  board 
at  an  earlier  hour  than  usual;  ran  across  the  deck 
balancing  himself  with  his  spread  arms  like  a 
tight-rope  walker ;  and  locking  the  door  of  his 
cabin,  he  would  converse  and  argue  with  himself 
the  livelong  night  in  an  amazing  variety  of  tones; 
storm,  sneer  and  whine  with  an  inexhaustible  per- 
sistence. Massy  in  his  berth  next  door,  raising 
himself    on    his    elbow,    would    discover    that    his 


248  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

second  had  remembered  the  name  of  every  white 
man  that  had  passed  through  the  Sofala  for  years 
and  years  back.  He  remembered  the  names  of 
men  that  had  died,  that  had  gone  home,  that  had 
gone  to  America :  he  remembered  in  his  cups  the 
names  of  men  whose  connection  with  the  ship 
had  been  so  short  that  Massy  had  almost  for- 
gotten its  circumstances  and  could  barely  recall 
their  faces.  The  inebriated  voice  on  the  other 
side  of  the  bulkhead  commented  upon  them  all 
with  an  extraordinary  and  ingenious  venom  of 
scandalous  inventions.  It  seems  they  had  all 
offended  him  in  some  way,  and  in  return  he  had 
found  them  all  out.  He  muttered  darkly ;  he 
laughed  sardonically;  he  crushed  them  one  after 
another;  but  of  his  chief,  Massy,  he  babbled  with 
an  envious  and  naive  admiration.  Clever  scoundrel ! 
Don't  meet  the  likes  of  him  every  day.  Just  look 
at  him.  Ha !  Great !  Ship  of  his  own.  "Wouldn't 
catch  him  going  wrong.  No  fear — the  beast !  And 
Massy,  after  listening  with  a  gratified  smile  to 
these  artless  tributes  to  his  greatness,  would  begin 
to  shout,  thumping  at  the  bulkhead  with  both 
fists — 

"Shut  up,  you  lunatic!  Won't  you  let  me  go 
to  sleep,  you  fool ! " 

But  a  half  smile  of  pride  lingered  on  his  lips; 
outside  the  solitary  lascar  told  off  for  night  duty 
in  harbour,  perhaps  a  youth  fresh  from  a  forest 
village,  would  stand  motionless  in  the  shadows  of 
the  deck  listening  to  the  endless  drunken  gabble. 
His  heart  would  be  thumping  with  breathless  awe 
of   white   men :    the   arbitrary   and   obstinate   men 


THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER.  249 

who  pursue  inflexibly  their  incomprehensible  pur- 
poses,— beings  with  weird  intonations  in  the  voice, 
moved  by  unaccountable  feelings,  actuated  by  in- 
scrutable motives. 


VIII. 

For  a  while  after  his  second's  answering  hoot 
Massy  hung  over  the  engine-room  gloomily.  Cap- 
tain Whalley,  who,  by  the  power  of  five  hundred 
pounds,  had  kept  his  command  for  three  years, 
might  have  been  suspected  of  never  having  seen 
that  coast  before.  He  seemed  unable  to  put  down 
his  glasses,  as  though  they  had  been  glued  under 
his  contracted  eyebrows.  This  settled  frown  gave 
to  his  face  an  air  of  invincible  and  just  severity ; 
but  his  raised  elbow  trembled  slightly,  and  the 
perspiration  poured  from  under  his  hat  as  if  a 
second  sun  had  suddenly  blazed  up  at  the  zenith 
by  the  side  of  the  ardent  still  globe  already  there, 
in  whose  blinding  white  heat  the  earth  whirled 
and  shone  like  a  mote  of  dust. 

From  time  to  time,  still  holding  up  his  glasses,  he 
raised  his  other  hand  to  wipe  his  streaming  face. 
The  drops  rolled  down  his  cheeks,  fell  like  rain  upon 
the  white  hairs  of  his  beard,  and  brusquely,  as  if 
guided  by  an  uncontrollable  and  anxious  impulse, 
his  arm  reached  out  to  the  stand  of  the  engine- 
room  telegraph. 

The  gong  clanged  down  below.  The  balanced 
vibration  of  the  dead -slow  speed  ceased  together 
with  every  sound  and  tremor  in  the  ship,  as  if  the 


250  THE   END   OE  THE  TETHEK. 

great  stillness  that  reigned  upon  the  coast  had 
stolen  in  through  her  sides  of  iron  and  taken  pos- 
session of  her  innermost  recesses.  The  illusion  of 
perfect  immobility  seemed  to  fall  upon  her  from  the 
luminous  blue  dome  without  a  stain  arching  over 
a  flat  sea  without  a  stir.  The  faint  breeze  she 
had  made  for  herself  expired,  as  if  all  at  once  the 
air  had  become  too  thick  to  budge;  even  the  slight 
hiss  of  the  water  on  her  stem  died  out.  The 
narrow,  long  hull,  carrying  its  way  without  a 
ripple,  seemed  to  approach  the  shoal  water  of  the 
bar  by  stealth.  The  plunge  of  the  lead  with  the 
mournful,  mechanical  cry  of  the  lascar  came  at 
longer  and  longer  intervals;  and  the  men  on  her 
bridge  seemed  to  hold  their  breath.  The  Malay 
at  the  helm  looked  fixedly  at  the  compass  card, 
the  Captain  and  the  Serang  stared  at  the  coast. 

Massy  had  left  the  skylight,  and,  walking  flat- 
footed,  had  returned  softly  to  the  very  spot  on 
the  bridge  he  had  occupied  before.  A  slow,  linger- 
ing grin  exposed  his  set  of  big  white  teeth :  they 
gleamed  evenly  in  the  shade  of  the  awning  like 
the  keyboard  of  a  piano  in  a  dusky  room. 

At  last,  pretending  to  talk  to  himself  in  excessive 
astonishment,  he  said  not  very  loud — 

"Stop  the  engines  now.     What  next,  I  wonder?" 

He  waited,  stooping  from  the  shoulders,  his  head 
bowed,  his  glance  oblique.  Then  raising  his  voice 
a  shade — 

"  If  I  dared  make  an  absurd  remark  I  would  say 
that  you  haven't  the  stomach  to  ..." 

But  a  yelling  spirit  of  excitement,  like  some 
frantic  soul  wandering  unsuspected  in  the  vast  still- 


THE  END   OF  THE  TETHER.  251 

ness  of  the  coast,  had  seized  upon  the  body  of  the 
lascar  at  the  lead.  The  languid  monotony  of  his 
sing-song  changed  to  a  swift,  sharp  clamour.  The 
weight  flew  after  a  single  whirr,  the  line  whistled, 
splash  followed  splash  in  haste.  The  water  had 
shoaled,  and  the  man,  instead  of  the  drowsy  tale 
of  fathoms,  was  calling  out  the  soundings  in  feet. 

"Fifteen  feet.  Fifteen,  fifteen!  Fourteen,  four- 
teen .  .  ." 

Captain  Whalley  lowered  the  arm  holding  the 
glasses.  It  descended  slowly  as  if  by  its  own 
weight ;  no  other  part  of  his  towering  body  stirred ; 
and  the  swift  cries  with  their  eager  warning  note 
passed  him  by  as  though  he  had  been  deaf. 

Massy,  very  still,  and  turning  an  attentive  ear, 
had  fastened  his  eyes  upon  the  silvery,  close-cropped 
back  of  the  steady  old  head.  The  ship  herself 
seemed  to  be  arrested  but  for  the  gradual  decrease 
of  depth  under  her  keel. 

"Thirteen  feet  .  .  .  Thirteen!  Twelve!"  cried 
the  leadsman  anxiously  below  the  bridge.  And 
suddenly  the  barefooted  Serang  stepped  away  noise- 
lessly to  steal  a  glance  over  the  side. 

Narrow  of  shoulder,  in  a  suit  of  faded  blue  cotton, 
an  old  grey  felt  hat  rammed  down  on  his  head, 
with  a  hollow  in  the  nape  of  his  dark  neck,  and 
with  his  slender  limbs,  he  appeared  from  the  back 
no  bigger  than  a  boy  of  fourteen.  There  was  a 
childlike  impulsiveness  in  the  curiosity  with  which 
he  watched  the  spread  of  the  voluminous,  yellowish 
convolutions  rolling  up  from  below  to  the  surface 
of  the  blue  water  like  massive  clouds  driving  slowly 
upwards   on   the  unfathomable   sky.     He  was  not 


252  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

startled  at  the  sight  in  the  least.  It  was  not  doubt, 
but  the  certitude  that  the  keel  of  the  Sofala  must 
be  stirring  the  mud  now,  which  made  him  peep  over 
the  side. 

His  peering  eyes,  set  aslant  in  a  face  of  the 
Chinese  type,  a  little  old  face,  immovable,  as  if 
carved  in  old  brown  oak,  had  informed  him  long 
before  that  the  ship  was  not  headed  at  the  bar 
properly.  Paid  off  from  the  Fair  Maid,  together 
with  the  rest  of  the  crew,  after  the  completion  of 
the  sale,  he  had  hung,  in  his  faded  blue  suit  and 
floppy  grey  hat,  about  the  doors  of  the  Harbour 
Office,  till  one  day,  seeing  Captain  Whalley  coming 
along  to  get  a  crew  for  the  Sofala,  he  had  put 
himself  quietly  in  the  way,  with  his  bare  feet  in 
the  dust  and  an  upward  mute  glance.  The  eyes 
of  his  old  commander  had  fallen  on  him  favourably 
— it  must  have  been  an  auspicious  day — and  in  less 
than  half  an  hour  the  white  men  in  the  "  Ofiss " 
had  written  his  name  on  a  document  as  Serang  of 
the  fire-ship  Sofala.  Since  that  time  he  had  re- 
peatedly looked  at  that  estuary,  upon  that  coast, 
from  this  bridge  and  from  this  side  of  the  bar. 
The  record  of  the  visual  world  fell  through  his 
eyes  upon  his  unspeculating  mind  as  on  a  sensitised 
plate  through  the  lens  of  a  camera.  His  knowledge 
was  absolute  and  precise ;  nevertheless,  had  he  been 
asked  his  opinion,  and  especially  if  questioned  in  the 
downright,  alarming  manner  of  white  men,  he  would 
have  displayed  the  hesitation  of  ignorance.  He  was 
certain  of  his  facts — but  such  a  certitude  counted 
for  little  against  the  doubt  what  answer  would  be 
pleasing.     Fifty  years  ago,  in  a  jungle  village,  and 


THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER.  253 

before  he  was  a  day  old,  his  father  (who  died  with- 
out ever  seeing  a  white  face)  had  had  his  nativity 
cast  by  a  man  of  skill  and  wisdom  in  astrology, 
because  in  the  arrangement  of  the  stars  may  be 
read  the  last  word  of  human  destiny.  His  destiny 
had  been  to  thrive  by  the  favour  of  various  white 
men  on  the  sea.  He  had  swept  the  decks  of  ships, 
had  tended  their  helms,  had  minded  their  stores,  had 
risen  at  last  to  be  a  Serang;  and  his  placid  mind 
had  remained  as  incapable  of  penetrating  the 
simplest  motives  of  those  he  served  as  they  them- 
selves were  incapable  of  detecting  through  the  crust 
of  the  earth  the  secret  nature  of  its  heart,  which 
may  be  fire  or  may  be  stone.  But  he  had  no 
doubt  whatever  that  the  Sofala  was  out  of  the 
proper  track  for  crossing  the  bar  at  Batu  Beru. 

It  was  a  slight  error.  The  ship  could  not  have 
been  more  than  twice  her  own  length  too  far  to  the 
northward ;  and  a  white  man  at  a  loss  for  a  cause 
(since  it  was  impossible  to  suspect  Captain  Whalley 
of  blundering  ignorance,  of  want  of  skill,  or  of  neglect) 
would  have  been  inclined  to  doubt  the  testimony 
of  his  senses.  It  was  some  such  feeling  that  kept 
Massy  motionless,  with  his  teeth  laid  bare  by  an 
anxious  grin.  Not  so  the  Serang.  He  was  not 
troubled  by  any  intellectual  mistrust  of  his  senses. 
If  his  captain  choose  to  stir  the  mud  it  was  well. 
He  had  known  in  his  life  white  men  indulge  in 
outbreaks  equally  strange.  He  was  only  genuinely 
interested  to  see  what  would  come  of  it.  At  last, 
apparently  satisfied,  he  stepped  back  from  the  rail. 

He  had  made  no  sound :  Captain  Whalley,  how- 
ever, seemed   to   have   observed  the   movements  of 


254  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

his  Serang.  Holding  his  head  rigidly,  he  asked 
with  a  mere  stir  of  his  lips — 

"  Going  ahead  still,  Serang  ?  " 

"Still  going  a  little,  Tuan,"  answered  the  Malay. 
Then  added  casually,  "  She  is  over." 

The  lead  confirmed  his  words ;  the  depth  of  water 
increased  at  every  cast,  and  the  soul  of  excitement 
departed  suddenly  from  the  lascar  swung  in  the 
canvas  belt  over  the  SofalcCs  side.  Captain  Whalley 
ordered  the  lead  in,  set  the  engines  ahead  without 
haste,  and  averting  his  eyes  from  the  coast  directed 
the  Serang  to  keep  a  course  for  the  middle  of  the 
entrance. 

Massy  brought  the  palm  of  his  hand  with  a 
loud  smack  against  his  thigh. 

"  You  grazed  on  the  bar.  Just  look  astern  and  see 
if  you  didn't.  Look  at  the  track  she  left.  You  can 
see  it  plainly.  Upon  my  soul,  I  thought  you  would  ! 
What  made  you  do  that  ?  What  on  earth  made  you 
do  that  ?     I  believe  you  are  trying  to  scare  me." 

He  talked  slowly,  as  it  were  circumspectly,  keep- 
ing his  prominent  black  eyes  on  his  captain.  There 
was  also  a  slight  plaintive  note  in  his  rising  choler, 
for,  primarily,  it  was  the  clear  sense  of  a  wrong 
suffered  undeservedly  that  made  him  hate  the  man 
who,  for  a  beggarly  five  hundred  pounds,  claimed 
a  sixth  part  of  the  profits  under  the  three  years' 
agreement.  Whenever  his  resentment  got  the 
better  of  the  awe  the  person  of  Captain  Whalley 
inspired  he   would   positively   whimper   with   fury. 

"You  don't  know  what  to  invent  to  plague  my 
life  out  of  me.  I  would  not  have  thought  that 
a  man  of  your  sort  would  condescend     .     .     ." 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  255 

He  paused,  half  hopefully,  half  timidly,  whenever 
Captain  "Whalley  made  the  slightest  movement  in 
the  deck-chair,  as  though  expecting  to  be  con- 
ciliated by  a  soft  speech  or  else  rushed  upon  and 
hunted  off  the  bridge. 

"  I  am  puzzled,"  he  went  on  again,  with  the 
watchful  unsmiling  baring  of  his  big  teeth.  "I 
don't  know  what  to  think.  I  do  believe  you  are 
trying  to  frighten  me.  You  very  nearly  planted 
her  on  the  bar  for  at  least  twelve  hours,  besides 
getting  the  engines  choked  with  mud.  Ships  can't 
afford  to  lose  twelve  hours  on  a  trip  nowadays — 
as  you  ought  to  know  very  well,  and  do  know 
very  well  to  be  sure,  only    .    .    ." 

His  slow  volubility,  the  sideways  cranings  of  his 
neck,  the  black  glances  out  of  the  very  corners  of 
his  eyes,  left  Captain  Whalley  unmoved.  He  looked 
at  the  deck  with  a  severe  frown.  Massy  waited  for 
some  little  time,  then  began  to  threaten  plaintively. 

"  You  think  you've  got  me  bound  hand  and  foot 
in  that  agreement.  You  think  you  can  torment  me 
in  any  way  you  please.  Ah !  But  remember  it  has 
another  six  weeks  to  run  yet.  There's  time  for  me 
to  dismiss  you  before  the  three  years  are  out.  You 
will  do  yet  something  that  will  give  me  the  chance 
to  dismiss  you,  and  make  you  wait  a  twelvemonth 
for  your  money  before  you  can  take  yourself  off  and 
pull  out  your  five  hundred,  and  leave  me  without 
a  penny  to  get  the  new  boilers  for  her.  You  gloat 
over  that  idea — don't  you?  I  do  believe  you  sit 
here  gloating.  It's  as  if  I  had  sold  my  soul  for 
five  hundred  pounds  to  be  everlastingly  damned  in 
the  end.    .    .    ." 


256  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

He  paused,  without  apparent  exasperation,  then 
continued  evenly, — 

"...  With  the  boilers  worn  out  and  the  survey- 
hanging  over  my  head,  Captain  Whalley Cap- 
tain Whalley,  I  say,  what  do  you  do  with  your 
money  ?  You  must  have  stacks  of  money  some- 
where— a  man  like  you  must.  It  stands  to  reason. 
I  am  not  a  fool,  you  know,  Captain  Whalley — 
partner." 

Again  he  paused,  as  though  he  had  done  for  good. 
He  passed  his  tongue  over  his  lips,  gave  a  backward 
glance  at  the  Serang  conning  the  ship  with  quiet 
whispers  and  slight  signs  of  the  hand.  The  wash 
of  the  propeller  sent  a  swift  ripple,  crested  with 
dark  froth,  upon  a  long  flat  spit  of  black  slime. 
The  Sofala  had  entered  the  river;  the  trail  she 
had  stirred  up  over  the  bar  was  a  mile  astern  of  her 
now,  out  of  sight,  had  disappeared  utterly ;  and  the 
smooth,  empty  sea  along  the  coast  was  left  behind 
in  the  glittering  desolation  of  sunshine.  On  each 
side  of  her,  low  down,  the  growth  of  sombre 
twisted  mangroves  covered  the  semi-liquid  banks; 
and  Massy  continued  in  his  old  tone,  with  an  abrupt 
start,  as  if  his  speech  had  been  ground  out  of  him, 
like  the  tune  of  a  music-box,  by  turning  a  handle. 

"  Though  if  anybody  ever  got  the  best  of  me,  it  is 
you.  I  don't  mind  saying  this.  I've  said  it — there ! 
What  more  can  you  want?  Isn't  that  enough  for 
your  pride,  Captain  Whalley.  You  got  over  me 
from  the  first.  It's  all  of  a  piece,  when  I  look  back 
at  it.  You  allowed  me  to  insert  that  clause  about 
intemperance  without  saying  anything,  only  looking 
very  sick  when  I  made  a  point  of  it  going  in  black 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  257 

on  white.  How  could  I  tell  what  was  wrong  about 
you.  There's  generally  something  wrong  somewhere. 
And,  lo  and  behold !  when  you  come  on  board  it 
turns  out  that  you've  been  in  the  habit  of  drinking 
nothing  but  water  for  years  and  years." 

His  dogmatic  reproachful  whine  stopped.  He 
brooded  profoundly,  after  the  manner  of  crafty  and 
unintelligent  men.  It  seemed  inconceivable  that 
Captain  Whalley  should  not  laugh  at  the  expres- 
sion of  disgust  that  overspread  the  heavy,  yellow 
countenance.  But  Captain  Whalley  never  raised 
his  eyes — sitting  in  his  arm-chair,  outraged,  digni- 
fied, and  motionless. 

"Much  good  it  was  to  me,"  Massy  remonstrated 
monotonously,  "  to  insert  a  clause  of  dismissal  for 
intemperance  against  a  man  who  drinks  nothing 
but  water.  And  you  looked  so  upset,  too,  when  I 
read  my  draft  in  the  lawyer's  office  that  morning, 
Captain  Whalley, — you  looked  so  crestfallen,  that  I 
made  sure  I  had  gone  home  on  your  weak  spot. 
A  shipowner  can't  be  too  careful  as  to  the  sort  of 
skipper  he  gets.  You  must  have  been  laughing  at 
me  in  your  sleeve  all  the  blessed  time.  .  .  .  Eh? 
What  are  you  going  to  say  ? " 

Captain  Whalley  had  only  shuffled  his  feet  slight- 
ly. A  dull  animosity  became  apparent  in  Massy's 
sideways  stare. 

"But  recollect  that  there  are  other  grounds  of 
dismissal.  There's  habitual  carelessness,  amounting 
to  incompetence — there's  gross  and  persistent  neg- 
lect of  duty.  I  am  not  quite  as  big  a  fool  as  you 
try  to  make  me  out  to  be.  You  have  been  careless 
of  late — leaving  everything  to  that  Serang.     Why ! 


258  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

I've  seen  you  letting  that  old  fool  of  a  Malay  take 
bearings  for  you,  as  if  you  were  too  big  to  attend 
to  your  work  yourself.  And  what  do  you  call  that 
silly  touch-and-go  manner  in  which  you  took  the 
ship  over  the  bar  just  now?  You  expect  me  to 
put  up  with  that?" 

Leaning  on  his  elbow  against  the  ladder  abaft  the 
bridge,  Sterne,  the  mate,  tried  to  hear,  blinking  the 
while  from  the  distance  at  the  second  engineer,  who 
had  come  up  for  a  moment,  and  stood  in  the  engine- 
room  companion.  Wiping  his  hands  on  a  bunch  of 
cotton  waste,  he  looked  about  with  indifference  to 
the  right  and  left  at  the  river  banks  slipping  astern 
of  the  Sofala  steadily. 

Massy  turned  full  at  the  chair.  The  character 
of  his  whine  became  again  threatening. 

"  Take  care.  I  may  yet  dismiss  you  and  freeze  to 
your  money  for  a  year.     I  may  ..." 

But  before  the  silent,  rigid  immobility  of  the 
man  whose  money  had  come  in  the  nick  of  time 
to  save  him  from  utter  ruin,  his  voice  died  out  in 
his  throat. 

"  Not  that  I  want  you  to  go,"  he  resumed  after  a 
silence,  and  in  an  absurdly  insinuating  tone.  "I 
want  nothing  better  than  to  be  friends  and  renew 
the  agreement,  if  you  will  consent  to  find  another 
couple  of  hundred  to  help  with  the  new  boilers, 
Captain  Whalley.  I've  told  you  before.  She  must 
have  new  boilers ;  you  know  it  as  well  as  I  do. 
Have  you  thought  this  over?" 

He  waited.  The  slender  stem  of  the  pipe  with  its 
bulky  lump  of  a  bowl  at  the  end  hung  down  from 
his  thick  lips.     It  had  gone  out.     Suddenly  he  took 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  259 

it  from  between  his  teeth  and  wrung  his  hands 
slightly. 

"Don't  you  believe  me?"  He  thrust  the  pipe 
bowl   into    the   pocket   of    his   shiny  black   jacket. 

"It's  like  dealing  with  the  devil,"  he  said.  "Why 
don't  you  speak?  At  first  you  were  so  high  and 
mighty  with  me  I  hardly  dared  to  creep  about  my 
own  deck.  Now  I  can't  get  a  word  from  you. 
You  don't  seem  to  see  me  at  all.  What  does  it 
mean?  Upon  my  soul,  you  terrify  me  with  this 
deaf  and  dumb  trick.  What's  going  on  in  that 
head  of  yours?  What  are  you  plotting  against 
me  there  so  hard  that  you  can't  say  a  word? 
You  will  never  make  me  believe  that  you — you — 
don't  know  where  to  lay  your  hands  on  a  couple  of 
hundred.  You  have  made  me  curse  the  day  I  was 
born.  .  .  ." 

"Mr  Massy,"  said  Captain  Whalley  suddenly, 
without  stirring. 

The  engineer  started  violently. 

"  If  that  is  so  I  can  only  beg  you  to  forgive  me." 

"  Starboard,"  muttered  the  Serang  to  the  helms- 
man; and  the  Sofala  began  to  swing  round  the 
bend  into  the  second  reach. 

"Ough!"  Massy  shuddered.  "You  make  my 
blood  run  cold.  What  made  you  come  here? 
What  made  you  come  aboard  that  evening  all  of 
a  sudden,  with  your  high  talk  and  your  money — 
tempting  me  ?  I  always  wondered  what  was  your 
motive  ?  You  fastened  yourself  on  me  to  have  easy 
times  and  grow  fat  on  my  life  blood,  I  tell  you. 
Was  that  it  ?  I  believe  you  are  the  greatest  miser 
in  the  world,  or  else  why  ..." 


260  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

"No.  I  am  only  poor,"  interrupted  Captain 
Whalley,  stonily. 

"Steady,"  murmured  the  Serang.  Massy  turned 
away  with  his  chin  on  his  shoulder. 

"  I  don't  believe  it,"  he  said  in  his  dogmatic  tone. 
Captain  Whalley  made  no  movement.  "There  you 
sit  like  a  gorged  vulture — exactly  like  a  vulture." 

He  embraced  the  middle  of  the  reach  and  both  the 
banks  in  one  blank  unseeing  circular  glance,  and  left 
the  bridge  slowly. 


IX. 


On  turning  to  descend  Massy  perceived  the  head 
of  Sterne  the  mate  loitering,  with  his  sly  confident 
smile,  his  red  moustaches  and  blinking  eyes,  at  the 
foot  of  the  ladder. 

Sterne  had  been  a  junior  in  one  of  the  larger  ship- 
ping concerns  before  joining  the  Sofala.  He  had 
thrown  up  his  berth,  he  said,  "on  general  prin- 
ciples." The  promotion  in  the  employ  was  very  slow, 
he  complained,  and  he  thought  it  was  time  for  him 
to  try  and  get  on  a  bit  in  the  world.  It  seemed  as 
though  nobody  would  ever  die  or  leave  the  firm ; 
they  all  stuck  fast  in  their  berths  till  they  got 
mildewed  ;  he  was  tired  of  waiting ;  and  he  feared 
that  when  a  vacancy  did  occur  the  best  servants 
were  by  no  means  sure  of  being  treated  fairly. 
Besides,  the  captain  he  had  to  serve  under — Captain 
Provost — was  an  unaccountable  sort  of  man,  and,  he 
fancied,  had  taken  a  dislike  to  him  for  some  reason 
or  other.     For  doing  rather  more  than  his  bare  duty 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  261 

as  likely  as  not.  When  he  had  done  anything 
wrong  he  could  take  a  talking  to,  like  a  man ;  but 
he  expected  to  be  treated  like  a  man  too,  and  not  to 
be  addressed  invariably  as  though  he  were  a  dog. 
He  had  asked  Captain  Provost  plump  and  plain  to 
tell  him  where  he  was  at  fault,  and  Captain  Provost, 
in  a  most  scornful  way,  had  told  him  that  he  was 
a  perfect  officer,  and  that  if  he  disliked  the  way  he 
was  being  spoken  to  there  was  the  gangway — he 
could  take  himself  off  ashore  at  once.  But  every- 
body knew  what  sort  of  man  Captain  Provost 
was.  It  was  no  use  appealing  to  the  office. 
Captain  Provost  had  too  much  influence  in  the 
employ.  All  the  same,  they  had  to  give  him  a  good 
character.  He  made  bold  to  say  there  was  nothing 
in  the  world  against  him,  and,  as  he  had  happened 
to  hear  that  the  mate  of  the  Sofala  had  been  taken 
to  the  hospital  that  morning  with  a  sunstroke,  he 
thought  there  would  be  no  harm  in  seeing  whether 
he  would  not  do.  .  .  . 

He  had  come  to  Captain  Wh alley  freshly  shaved, 
red-faced,  thin- flanked,  throwing  out  his  lean  chest ; 
and  had  recited  his  little  tale  with  an  open  and 
manly  assurance.  Now  and  then  his  eyelids 
quivered  slightly,  his  hand  would  steal  up  to  the 
end  of  the  flaming  moustache;  his  eyebrows  were 
straight,  furry,  of  a  chestnut  colour,  and  the 
directness  of  his  frank  gaze  seemed  to  tremble  on 
the  verge  of  impudence.  Captain  Whalley  had  en- 
gaged him  temporarily ;  then,  the  other  man  having 
been  ordered  home  by  the  doctors,  he  had  remained 
for  the  next  trip,  and  then  the  next.  He  had  now 
attained   permanency,   and  the  performance  of  his 


262  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

duties  was  marked  by  an  air  of  serious,  single- 
minded  application.  Directly  he  was  spoken  to,  he 
began  to  smile  attentively,  with  a  great  deference 
expressed  in  his  whole  attitude;  but  there  was  in 
the  rapid  winking  which  went  on  all  the  time  some- 
thing quizzical,  as  though  he  had  possessed  the 
secret  of  some  universal  joke  cheating  all  creation 
and  impenetrable  to  other  mortals. 

Grave  and  smiling  he  watched  Massy  come  down 
step  by  step ;  when  the  chief  engineer  had  reached 
the  deck  he  swung  about,  and  they  found  them- 
selves face  to  face.  Matched  as  to  height  and 
utterly  dissimilar,  they  confronted  each  other  as 
if  there  had  been  something  between  them — some- 
thing else  than  the  bright  strip  of  sunlight  that, 
falling  through  the  wide  lacing  of  two  awnings, 
cut  crosswise  the  narrow  planking  of  the  deck  and 
separated  their  feet  as  it  were  a  stream ;  something 
profound  and  subtle  and  incalculable,  like  an  un- 
expressed understanding,  a  secret  mistrust,  or  some 
sort  of  fear. 

At  last  Sterne,  blinking  his  deep-set  eyes  and 
sticking  forward  his  scraped,  clean  -  cut  chin,  as 
crimson  as  the  rest  of  his  face,  murmured — 

"  You've  seen  ?     He  grazed !     You've  seen  ?  " 

Massy,  contemptuous,  and  without  raising  his  yel- 
low, fleshy  countenance,  replied  in  the  same  pitch — 

"  Maybe.  But  if  it  had  been  you  we  would  have 
been  stuck  fast  in  the  mud." 

"Pardon  me,  Mr  Massy.  I  beg  to  deny  it.  Of 
course  a  shipowner  may  say  what  he  jolly  well 
pleases  on  his  own  deck.  That's  all  right;  but  I 
beg  to  .  .  ." 


THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER.  263 

"  Get  out  of  my  way  ! " 

The  other  had  a  slight  start,  the  impulse  of  sup- 
pressed indignation  perhaps,  but  held  his  ground. 
Massy's  downward  glance  wandered  right  and  left, 
as  though  the  deck  all  round  Sterne  had  been  be- 
strewn with  eggs  that  must  not  be  broken,  and 
he  had  looked  irritably  for  places  where  he  could 
set  his  feet  in  flight.  In  the  end  he  too  did  not 
move,  though  there  was  plenty  of  room  to  pass  on. 

"  I  heard  you  say  up  there,"  went  on  the  mate — 
"  and  a  very  just  remark  it  was  too — that  there's 
always  something  wrong.  .  .  ." 

"Eavesdropping  is  what's  wrong  with  you,  Mr 
Sterne." 

"Now,  if  you  would  only  listen  to  me  for  a 
moment,  Mr  Massy,  sir,  I  could   .    .    ." 

"You  are  a  sneak,"  interrupted  Massy  in  a  great 
hurry,  and  even  managed  to  get  so  far  as  to  repeat, 
"a  common  sneak,"  before  the  mate  had  broken  in 
argumentatively — 

"  Now,  sir,  what  is  it  you  want  ?     You  want  ..." 

"I  want — I  want,"  stammered  Massy,  infuriated 
and  astonished — "  I  want.  How  do  you  know  that 
I  want  anything  ?  How  dare  you  ?  .  .  .  What  do 
you  mean?  .  .  .  What  are  you  after — you  .  .  ." 

"Promotion."  Sterne  silenced  him  with  a  sort 
of  candid  bravado.  The  engineer's  round  soft  cheeks 
quivered  still,  but  he  said  quietly  enough — 

"  You  are  only  worrying  my  head  off,"  and  Sterne 
met  him  with  a  confident  little  smile. 

"  A  chap  in  business  I  know  (well  up  in  the  world 
he  is  now)  used  to  tell  me  that  this  was  the  proper 
way.     'Always  push  on  to  the  front,'  he  would  say. 


264  THE   END    OP  THE   TETHER. 

*  Keep  yourself  well  before  your  boss.  Interfere 
whenever  you  get  a  chance.  Show  him  what  you 
know.  Worry  him  into  seeing  you.'  That  was  his 
advice.  Now  I  know  no  other  boss  than  you  here. 
You  are  the  owner,  and  no  one  else  counts  for  that 
much  in  my  eyes.  See,  Mr  Massy  ?  I  want  to  get 
on.  I  make  no  secret  of  it  that  I  am  one  of  the 
sort  that  means  to  get  on.  These  are  the  men  to 
make  use  of,  sir.  You  haven't  arrived  at  the  top  of 
the  tree,  sir,  without  finding  that  out — I  daresay." 

"Worry  your  boss  in  order  to  get  on,"  mumbled 
Massy,  as  if  awestruck  by  the  irreverent  originality 
of  the  idea.  "I  shouldn't  wonder  if  this  was  just 
what  the  Blue  Anchor  people  kicked  you  out  of 
the  employ  for.  Is  that  what  you  call  getting  on  ? 
You  shall  get  on  in  the  same  way  here  if  you  aren't 
careful — I  can  promise  you." 

At  this  Sterne  hung  his  head,  thoughtful,  per- 
plexed, winking  hard  at  the  deck.  All  his  attempts 
to  enter  into  confidential  relations  with  his  owner 
had  led  of  late  to  nothing  better  than  these  dark 
threats  of  dismissal ;  and  a  threat  of  dismissal  would 
check  him  at  once  into  a  hesitating  silence  as 
though  he  were  not  sure  that  the  proper  time  for 
defying  it  had  come.  On  this  occasion  he  seemed 
to  have  lost  his  tongue  for  a  moment,  and  Massy, 
getting  in  motion  heavily  passed  him  by  with  an 
abortive  attempt  at  shouldering.  Sterne  defeated  it 
by  stepping  aside.  He  turned  then  swiftly,  opening 
his  mouth  very  wide  as  if  to  shout  something  after 
the  engineer,  but  seemed  to  think  better  of  it. 

Always — as  he  was  ready  to  confess — on  the  look- 
out  for  an  opening  to  get  on,  it  had  become  an 


THE   END    OP  THE   TETHER.  265 

instinct  with  him  to  watch  the  conduct  of  his 
immediate  superiors  for  something  "that  one  could 
lay  hold  of."  It  was  his  belief  that  no  skipper  in 
the  world  would  keep  his  command  for  a  day  if 
only  the  owners  could  be  "made  to  know."  This 
romantic  and  naive  theory  had  led  him  into  trouble 
more  than  once,  but  he  remained  incorrigible;  and 
his  character  was  so  instinctively  disloyal  that 
whenever  he  joined  a  ship  the  intention  of  ousting 
his  commander  out  of  the  berth  and  taking  his 
place  was  always  present  at  the  back  of  his  head, 
as  a  matter  of  course.  It  filled  the  leisure  of  his 
waking  hours  with  the  reveries  of  careful  plans  and 
compromising  discoveries — the  dreams  of  his  sleep 
with  images  of  lucky  turns  and  favourable  accidents. 
Skippers  had  been  known  to  sicken  and  die  at  sea, 
than  which  nothing  could  be  better  to  give  a  smart 
mate  a  chance  of  showing  what  he's  made  of.  They 
also  would  tumble  overboard  sometimes :  he  had 
heard  of  one  or  two  such  cases.  Others  again  .  .  . 
But,  as  it  were  constitutionally,  he  was  faithful  to 
the  belief  that  the  conduct  of  no  single  one  of  them 
would  stand  the  test  of  careful  watching  by  a  man 
who  "  knew  what's  what "  and  who  kept  his  eyes 
"  skinned  pretty  well "  all  the  time. 

After  he  had  gained  a  permanent  footing  on 
board  the  Sofala  he  allowed  his  perennial  hope  to 
rise  high.  To  begin  with,  it  was  a  great  advantage 
to  have  an  old  man  for  captain :  the  sort  of  man 
besides  who  in  the  nature  of  things  was  likely  to 
give  up  the  job  before  long  from  one  cause  or 
another.  Sterne  was  greatly  chagrined,  however, 
to  notice  that  he  did  not  seem  anyway  near  being 


266  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

past  his  work  yet.  Still,  these  old  men  go  to  pieces 
all  at  once  sometimes.  Then  there  was  the  owner- 
engineer  close  at  hand  to  be  impressed  by  his  zeal 
and  steadiness.  Sterne  never  for  a  moment  doubted 
the  obvious  nature  of  his  own  merits  (he  was  really 
an  excellent  officer);  only,  nowadays,  professional 
merit  alone  does  not  take  a  man  along  fast  enough. 
A  chap  must  have  some  push  in  him,  and  must 
keep  his  wits  at  work  too  to  help  him  forward. 
He  made  up  his  mind  to  inherit  the  charge  of  this 
steamer  if  it  was  to  be  done  at  all;  not  indeed 
estimating  the  command  of  the  Sofala  as  a  very 
great  catch,  but  for  the  reason  that,  out  East 
especially,  to  make  a  start  is  everything,  and  one 
command  leads  to  another. 

He  began  by  promising  himself  to  behave  with 
great  circumspection ;  Massy 's  sombre  and  fantastic 
humours  intimidated  him  as  being  outside  one's 
usual  sea  experience;  but  he  was  quite  intelligent 
enough  to  realise  almost  from  the  first  that  he 
was  there  in  the  presence  of  an  exceptional  situa- 
tion. His  peculiar  prying  imagination  penetrated 
it  quickly;  the  feeling  that  there  was  in  it  an 
element  which  eluded  his  grasp  exasperated  his 
impatience  to  get  on.  And  so  one  trip  came  to  an 
end,  then  another,  and  he  had  begun  his  third 
before  he  saw  an  opening  by  which  he  could  step 
in  with  any  sort  of  effect.  It  had  all  been  very 
queer  and  very  obscure ;  something  had  been  going 
on  near  him,  as  if  separated  by  a  chasm  from  the 
common  life  and  the  working  routine  of  the  ship, 
which  was  exactly  like  the  life  and  the  routine  of 
any  other  coasting  steamer  of  that  class. 


THE   END   OP  THE  TETHER.  267 

Then  one  day  he  made  his  discovery. 

It  came  to  him  after  all  these  weeks  of  watchful 
observation  and  puzzled  surmises,  suddenly,  like  the 
long-sought  solution  of  a  riddle  that  suggests  itself 
to  the  mind  in  a  flash.  Not  with  the  same  author- 
ity, however.  Great  heavens !  Could  it  be  that  ? 
And  after  remaining  thunderstruck  for  a  few  sec- 
onds he  tried  to  shake  it  off  with  self- contumely, 
as  though  it  had  been  the  product  of  an  unhealthy 
bias  towards  the  Incredible,  the  Inexplicable,  the 
Unheard-of — the  Mad! 

This — the  illuminating  moment — had  occurred  the 
trip  before,  on  the  return  passage.  They  had  just 
left  a  place  of  call  on  the  mainland  called  Pangu; 
they  were  steaming  straight  out  of  a  bay.  To  the 
east  a  massive  headland  closed  the  view,  with  the 
tilted  edges  of  the  rocky  strata  showing  through 
its  ragged  clothing  of  rank  bushes  and  thorny 
creepers.  The  wind  had  begun  to  sing  in  the 
rigging ;  the  sea  along  the  coast,  green  and  as  if 
swollen  a  little  above  the  line  of  the  horizon,  seemed 
to  pour  itself  over,  time  after  time,  with  a  slow  and 
thundering  fall,  into  the  shadow  of  the  leeward 
cape;  and  across  the  wide  opening  the  nearest  of 
a  group  of  small  islands  stood  enveloped  in  the 
hazy  yellow  light  of  a  breezy  sunrise;  still  farther 
out  the  hummocky  tops  of  other  islets  peeped  out 
motionless  above  the  water  of  the  channels  be- 
tween, scoured  tumultuously  by  the  breeze. 

The  usual  track  of  the  Sofala  both  going  and 
returning  on  every  trip  led  her  for  a  few  miles 
along  this  reef  -  infested  region.  She  followed  a 
broad    lane   of  water,    dropping   astern,    one   after 


268  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

another,  these  crumbs  of  the  earth's  crust  resem- 
bling a  squadron  of  dismasted  hulks  run  in  dis- 
order upon  a  foul  ground  of  rocks  and  shoals. 
Some  of  these  fragments  of  land  appeared,  indeed, 
no  bigger  than  a  stranded  ship ;  others,  quite  flat, 
lay  awash  like  anchored  rafts,  like  ponderous,  black 
rafts  of  stone;  several,  heavily  timbered  and  round 
at  the  base,  emerged  in  squat  domes  of  deep  green 
foliage  that  shuddered  darkly  all  over  to  the  flying 
touch  of  cloud  shadows  driven  by  the  sudden  gusts 
of  the  squally  season.  The  thunderstorms  of  the 
coast  broke  frequently  over  that  cluster;  it  turned 
then  shadowy  in  its  whole  extent ;  it  turned  more 
dark,  and  as  if  more  still  in  the  play  of  fire;  as 
if  more  impenetrably  silent  in  the  peals  of  thunder; 
its  blurred  shapes  vanished — dissolving  utterly  at 
times  in  the  thick  rain — to  reappear  clear-cut  and 
black  in  the  stormy  light  against  the  grey  sheet 
of  the  cloud — scattered  on  the  slaty  round  table 
of  the  sea.  Unscathed  by  storms,  resisting  the 
work  of  years,  unfretted  by  the  strife  of  the 
world,  there  it  lay  unchanged  as  on  that  day, 
four  hundred  years  ago,  when  first  beheld  by 
Western  eyes  from  the  deck  of  a  high  -  pooped 
caravel. 

It  was  one  of  these  secluded  spots  that  may  be 
found  on  the  busy  sea,  as  on  land  you  come  some- 
times upon  the  clustered  houses  of  a  hamlet  un- 
touched by  men's  restlessness,  untouched  by  their 
need,  by  their  thought,  and  as  if  forgotten  by  time 
itself.  The  lives  of  uncounted  generations  had 
passed  it  by,  and  the  multitudes  of  seafowl,  urg- 
ing their  way  from  all  the  points  of   the  horizon 


THE  END   OF  THE   TETHEE.  269 

to  sleep  on  the  outer  rocks  of  the  group,  un- 
rolled the  converging  evolutions  of  their  flight  in 
long  sombre  streamers  upon  the  glow  of  the  sky. 
The  palpitating  cloud  of  their  wings  soared  and 
stooped  over  the  pinnacles  of  the  rocks,  over  the 
rocks  slender  like  spires,  squat  like  martello  towers ; 
over  the  pyramidal  heaps  like  fallen  ruins,  over 
the  lines  of  bald  boulders  showing  like  a  wall  of 
stones  battered  to  pieces  and  scorched  by  lightning 
— with  the  sleepy,  clear  glimmer  of  water  in  every 
breach.  The  noise  of  their  continuous  and  violent 
screaming  filled  the  air. 

This  great  noise  would  meet  the  Sofala  coming 
up  from  Batu  Beru ;  it  would  meet  her  on  quiet 
evenings,  a  pitiless  and  savage  clamour  enfeebled 
by  distance,  the  clamour  of  seabirds  settling  to  rest, 
and  struggling  for  a  footing  at  the  end  of  the  day. 
No  one  noticed  it  especially  on  board ;  it  was  the 
voice  of  their  ship's  unerring  landfall,  ending  the 
steady  stretch  of  a  hundred  miles.  She  had  made 
good  her  course,  she  had  run  her  distance  till  the 
punctual  islets  began  to  emerge  one  by  one,  the 
points  of  rocks,  the  hummocks  of  earth  .  .  .  and 
the  cloud  of  birds  hovered  —  the  restless  cloud 
emitting  a  strident  and  cruel  uproar,  the  sound 
of  the  familiar  scene,  the  living  part  of  the  broken 
land  beneath,  of  the  outspread  sea,  and  of  the 
high  sky  without  a  flaw. 

But  when  the  Sofala  happened  to  close  with  the 
land  after  sunset  she  would  find  everything  very 
still  there  under  the  mantle  of  the  night.  All  would 
be  still,  dumb,  almost  invisible — but  for  the  blotting 
out  of  the  low  constellations  occulted  in  turns  behind 


270  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

the  vague  masses  of  the  islets  whose  true  outlines 
eluded  the  eye  amongst  the  dark  spaces  of  the 
heaven :  and  the  ship's  three  lights,  resembling 
three  stars — the  red  and  the  green  with  the  white 
above — her  three  lights,  like  three  companion  stars 
wandering  on  the  earth,  held  their  unswerving 
course  for  the  passage  at  the  southern  end  of  the 
group.  Sometimes  there  were  human  eyes  open 
to  watch  them  come  nearer,  travelling  smoothly 
in  the  sombre  void ;  the  eyes  of  a  naked  fisher- 
man in  his  canoe  floating  over  a  reef.  He  thought 
drowsily :  "  Ha !  The  fire-ship  that  once  in  every 
moon  goes  in  and  comes  out  of  Pangu  bay."  More 
he  did  not  know  of  her.  And  just  as  he  had 
detected  the  faint  rhythm  of  the  propeller  beating 
the  calm  water  a  mile  and  a  half  away,  the  time 
would  come  for  the  Sofala  to  alter  her  course,  the 
lights  would  swing  off  him  their  triple  beam — and 
disappear. 

A  few  miserable,  half-naked  families,  a  sort  of 
outoast  tribe  of  long-haired,  lean,  and  wild -eyed 
people,  strove  for  their  living  in  this  lonely  wilder- 
ness of  islets,  lying  like  an  abandoned  outwork  of 
the  land  at  the  gates  of  the  bay.  "Within  the 
knots  and  loops  of  the  rocks  the  water  rested  more 
transparent  than  crystal  under  their  crooked  and 
leaky  canoes,  scooped  out  of  the  trunk  of  a  tree: 
the  forms  of  the  bottom  undulated  slightly  to  the 
dip  of  a  paddle;  and  the  men  seemed  to  hang  in 
the  air,  they  seemed  to  hang  enclosed  within  the 
fibres  of  a  dark,  sodden  log,  fishing  patiently  in  a 
strange,  unsteady,  pellucid,  green  air  above  the 
shoals. 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  271 

Their  bodies  stalked  brown  and  emaciated  as  if 
dried  up  in  the  sunshine ;  their  lives  ran  out  silently ; 
the  homes  where  they  were  born,  went  to  rest,  and 
died — flimsy  sheds  of  rushes  and  coarse  grass  eked 
out  with  a  few  ragged  mats  —  were  hidden  out  of 
sight  from  the  open  sea.  No  glow  of  their  house- 
hold fires  ever  kindled  for  a  seaman  a  red  spark 
upon  the  blind  night  of  the  group :  and  the  calms 
of  the  coast,  the  flaming  long  calms  of  the  equator, 
the  unbreathing,  concentrated  calms  like  the  deep 
introspection  of  a  passionate  nature,  brooded  awfully 
for  days  and  weeks  together  over  the  unchangeable 
inheritance  of  their  children ;  till  at  last  the  stones, 
hot  like  live  embers,  scorched  the  naked  sole,  till  the 
water  clung  warm,  and  sickly,  and  as  if  thickened, 
about  the  legs  of  lean  men  with  girded  loins,  wading 
thigh-deep  in  the  pale  blaze  of  the  shallows.  And 
it  would  happen  now  and  then  that  the  Sofala, 
through  some  delay  in  one  of  the  ports  of  call, 
would  heave  in  sight  making  for  Pangu  bay  as 
late  as  noonday. 

Only  a  blurring  cloud  at  first,  the  thin  mist  of 
her  smoke  would  arise  mysteriously  from  an  empty 
point  on  the  clear  line  of  sea  and  sky.  The  taciturn 
fishermen  within  the  reefs  would  extend  their  lean 
arms  towards  the  offing;  and  the  brown  figures 
stooping  on  the  tiny  beaches,  the  brown  figures 
of  men,  women,  and  children  grubbing  in  the  sand 
in  search  of  turtles'  eggs,  would  rise  up,  crooked 
elbow  aloft  and  hand  over  the  eyes,  to  watch 
this  monthly  apparition  glide  straight  on,  swerve 
off — and  go  by.  Their  ears  caught  the  panting 
of  that  ship ;  their  eyes  followed  her  till  she  passed 


272  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

between  the  two  capes  of  the  mainland  going  at  full 
speed  as  though  she  hoped  to  make  her  way  un- 
checked into  the  very  bosom  of  the  earth. 

On  such  days  the  luminous  sea  would  give  no 
sign  of  the  dangers  lurking  on  both  sides  of  her 
path.  Everything  remained  still,  crushed  by  the 
overwhelming  power  of  the  light ;  and  the  whole 
group,  opaque  in  the  sunshine,  —  the  rocks  resem- 
bling pinnacles,  the  rocks  resembling  spires,  the 
rocks  resembling  ruins  ;  the  forms  of  islets  re- 
sembling beehives,  resembling  mole-hills ;  the  islets 
recalling  the  shapes  of  haystacks,  the  contours  of 
ivy -clad  towers,  —  would  stand  reflected  together 
upside  down  in  the  unwrinkled  water,  like  carved 
toys  of  ebony  disposed  on  the  silvered  plate -glass 
of  a  mirror. 

The  first  touch  of  blowing  weather  would  envelop 
the  whole  at  once  in  the  spume  of  the  windward 
breakers,  as  if  m  a  sudden  cloudlike  burst  of  steam ; 
and  the  clear  water  seemed  fairly  to  boil  in  all  the 
passages.  The  provoked  sea  outlined  exactly  in 
a  design  of  angry  foam  the  wide  base  of  the 
group ;  the  submerged  level  of  broken  waste  and 
refuse  left  over  from  the  building  of  the  coast 
near  by,  projecting  its  dangerous  spurs,  all  awash, 
far  into  the  channel,  and  bristling  with  wicked 
long  spits  often  a  mile  long :  with  deadly  spits 
made  of  froth  and  stones. 

And  even  nothing  more  than  a  brisk  breeze — as 
on  that  morning,  the  voyage  before,  when  the  Sofala 
left  Pangu  bay  early,  and  Mr  Sterne's  discovery  was 
to  blossom  out  like  a  flower  of  incredible  and  evil 
aspect  from  the  tiny  seed  of  instinctive  suspicion, — 


THE  END   OF  THE   TETHER.  273 

even  such  a  breeze  had  enough  strength  to  tear  the 
placid  mask  from  the  face  of  the  sea.  To  Sterne, 
gazing  with  indifference,  it  had  been  like  a  revela- 
tion to  behold  for  the  first  time  the  dangers  marked 
by  the  hissing  livid  patches  on  the  water  as  dis- 
tinctly as  on  the  engraved  paper  of  a  chart.  It 
came  into  his  mind  that  this  was  the  sort  of  day 
most  favourable  for  a  stranger  attempting  the  pas- 
sage :  a  clear  day,  just  windy  enough  for  the  sea  to 
break  on  every  ledge,  buoying,  as  it  were,  the  chan- 
nel plainly  to  the  sight ;  whereas  during  a  calm  you 
had  nothing  to  depend  on  but  the  compass  and  the 
practised  judgment  of  your  eye.  And  yet  the  suc- 
cessive captains  of  the  Sofala  had  had  to  take  her 
through  at  night  more  than  once.  Nowadays  you 
could  not  afford  to  throw  away  six  or  seven  hours 
of  a  steamer's  time.  That  you  couldn't.  But  then 
use  is  everything,  and  with  proper  care  .  .  .  The 
channel  was  broad  and  safe  enough ;  the  main  point 
was  to  hit  upon  the  entrance  correctly  in  the  dark — 
for  if  a  man  got  himself  involved  in  that  stretch  of 
broken  water  over  yonder  he  would  never  get  out 
with  a  whole  ship — if  he  ever  got  out  at  all. 

This  was  Sterne's  last  train  of  thought  independ- 
ent of  the  great  discovery.  He  had  just  seen  to  the 
securing  of  the  anchor,  and  had  remained  forward 
idling  away  a  moment  or  two.  The  captain  was  in 
charge  on  the  bridge.  With  a  slight  yawn  he  had 
turned  away  from  his  survey  of  the  sea  and  had 
leaned  his  shoulders  against  the  fish  davit. 

These,  properly  speaking,  were  the  very  last  mo- 
ments of  ease  he  was  to  know  on  board  the  Sofala, 
All  the  instants  that  came  after  were  to  be  pregnant 

S 


274  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

with  purpose  and  intolerable  with  perplexity.  No 
more  idle,  random  thoughts;  the  discovery  would 
put  them  on  the  rack,  till  sometimes  he  wished  to 
goodness  he  had  been  fool  enough  not  to  make  it  at 
all.  And  yet,  if  his  chance  to  get  on  rested  on  the 
discovery  of  "  something  wrong,"  he  could  not  have 
hoped  for  a  greater  stroke  of  luck. 


The  knowledge  was  too  disturbing,  really.  There 
was  "  something  wrong  "  with  a  vengeance,  and  the 
moral  certitude  of  it  was  at  first  simply  frightful 
to  contemplate.  Sterne  had  been  looking  aft  in  a 
mood  so  idle,  that  for  once  he  was  thinking  no  harm 
of  any  one.  His  captain  on  the  bridge  presented 
himself  naturally  to  his  sight.  How  insignificant, 
how  casual  was  the  thought  that  had  started  the 
train  of  discovery  —  like  an  accidental  spark  that 
suffices  to  ignite  the  charge  of  a  tremendous  mine! 

Caught  under  by  the  breeze,  the  awnings  of  the 
foredeck  bellied  upwards  and  collapsed  slowly,  and 
above  their  heavy  flapping  the  grey  stuff  of  Captain 
Whalley's  roomy  coat  fluttered  incessantly  around 
his  arms  and  trunk.  He  faced  the  wind  in  full 
light,  with  his  great  silvery  beard  blown  forcibly 
against  his  chest;  the  eyebrows  overhung  heavily 
the  shadows  whence  his  glance  appeared  to  be  star- 
ing ahead  piercingly.  Sterne  could  just  detect  the 
twin  gleam  of  the  whites  shifting  under  the  shaggy 
arches  of  the  brow.     At  short  range  these  eyes,  for 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  275 

all  the  man's  affable  manner,  seemed  to  look  you 
through  and  through.  Sterne  never  could  defend 
himself  from  that  feeling  when  he  had  occasion  to 
speak  with  his  captain.  He  did  not  like  it.  What 
a  big  heavy  man  he  appeared  up  there,  with  that 
little  shrimp  of  a  Serang  in  close  attendance  —  as 
was  usual  in  this  extraordinary  steamer !  Con- 
founded absurd  custom  that.  He  resented  it. 
Surely  the  old  fellow  could  have  looked  after  his 
ship  without  that  loafing  native  at  his  elbow. 
Sterne  wriggled  his  shoulders  with  disgust.  What 
was  it  ?     Indolence  or  what  ? 

That  old  skipper  must  have  been  growing  lazy 
for  years.  They  all  grew  lazy  out  East  here  (Sterne 
was  very  conscious  of  his  own  unimpaired  activity) ; 
they  got  slack  all  over.  But  he  towered  very  erect 
on  the  bridge ;  and  quite  low  by  his  side,  as  you  see 
a  small  child  looking  over  the  edge  of  a  table,  the 
battered  soft  hat  and  the  brown  face  of  the  Serang 
peeped  over  the  white  canvas  screen  of  the  rail. 

No  doubt  the  Malay  was  standing  back,  nearer 
to  the  wheel ;  but  the  great  disparity  of  size  in  close 
association  amused  Sterne  like  the  observation  of  a 
bizarre  fact  in  nature.  There  were  as  queer  fish  out 
of  the  sea  as  any  in  it. 

He  saw  Captain  Whalley  turn  his  head  quickly  to 
speak  to  his  Serang ;  the  wind  whipped  the  whole 
white  mass  of  the  beard  sideways.  He  would  be 
directing  the  chap  to  look  at  the  compass  for  him, 
or  what  not.  Of  course.  Too  much  trouble  to  step 
over  and  see  for  himself.  Sterne's  scorn  for  that 
bodily  indolence  which  overtakes  white  men  in  the 
East  increased  on  reflection.     Some  of  them  would 


276  THE  END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

be  utterly  lost  if  they  hadn't  all  these  natives  at 
their  beck  and  call;  they  grew  perfectly  shameless 
about  it  too.  He  was  not  of  that  sort,  thank  God ! 
It  wasn't  in  him  to  make  himself  dependent  for  his 
work  on  any  shrivelled  -  up  little  Malay  like  that. 
As  if  one  could  ever  trust  a  silly  native  for  anything 
in  the  world !  But  that  fine  old  man  thought 
differently,  it  seems.  There  they  were  together, 
never  far  apart;  a  pair  of  them,  recalling  to  the 
mind  an  old  whale  attended  by  a  little  pilot-fish. 

The  fancifulness  of  the  comparison  made  him 
smile.  A  whale  with  an  inseparable  pilot-fish! 
That's  what  the  old  man  looked  like;  for  it  could 
not  be  said  he  looked  like  a  shark,  though  Mr  Massy 
had  called  him  that  very  name.  But  Mr  Massy  did 
not  mind  what  he  said  in  his  savage  fits.  Sterne 
smiled  to  himself — and  gradually  the  ideas  evoked 
by  the  sound,  by  the  imagined  shape  of  the  word 
pilot-fish ;  the  ideas  of  aid,  of  guidance  needed  and 
received,  came  uppermost  in  his  mind :  the  word 
pilot  awakened  the  idea  of  trust,  of  dependence,  the 
idea  of  the  welcome,  clear-eyed  help  brought  to  the 
seaman  groping  for  the  land  in  the  dark :  groping 
blindly  in  fogs :  feeling  their  way  in  the  thick 
weather  of  the  gales  that,  filling  the  air  with  a  salt 
mist  blown  up  from  the  sea,  contract  the  range  of 
sight  on  all  sides  to  a  shrunken  horizon  that  seems 
within  reach  of  the  hand. 

A  pilot  sees  better  than  a  stranger,  because  his 
local  knowledge,  like  a  sharper  vision,  completes  the 
shapes  of  things  hurriedly  glimpsed ;  penetrates  the 
veils  of  mist  spread  over  the  land  by  the  storms  of 
the  sea;   defines  with  certitude   the   outlines  of   a 


THE   END   OP  THE  TETHER.  277 

ooast  lying  under  the  pall  fog,  the  forms  of  land- 
marks half  buried  in  a  starless  night  as  in  a  shallow 
grave.  He  recognises  because  he  already  knows. 
It  is  not  to  his  far-reaching  eye  but  to  his  more 
extensive  knowledge  that  the  pilot  looks  for  certi- 
tude; for  this  certitude  of  the  ship's  position  on 
which  may  depend  a  man's  good  fame  and  the  peace 
of  his  conscience,  the  justification  of  the  trust  de- 
posited in  his  hands,  with  his  own  life  too,  which 
is  seldom  wholly  his  to  throw  away,  and  the  humble 
lives  of  others  rooted  in  distant  affections,  perhaps, 
and  made  as  weighty  as  the  lives  of  kings  by  the 
burden  of  the  awaiting  mystery.  The  pilot's  know- 
ledge brings  relief  and  certitude  to  the  commander 
of  a  ship ;  the  Serang,  however,  in  his  fanciful  sug- 
gestion of  a  pilot-fish  attending  a  whale,  could  not 
in  any  way  be  credited  with  a  superior  knowledge. 
Why  should  he  have  it  ?  These  two  men  had  come 
on  that  run  together — the  white  and  the  brown — on 
the  same  day :  and  of  course  a  white  man  would 
learn  more  in  a  week  than  the  best  native  would  in 
a  month.  He  was  made  to  stick  to  the  skipper  as 
though  he  were  of  some  use — as  the  pilot-fish,  they 
say,  is  to  the  whale.  But  how — it  was  very  marked 
— how  ?  A  pilot-fish — a  pilot  —  a  .  .  .  But  if  not 
superior  knowledge  then  .  .  . 

Sterne's  discovery  was  made.  It  was  repugnant 
to  his  imagination,  shocking  to  his  ideas  of  honesty, 
shocking  to  his  conception  of  mankind.  This  enor- 
mity affected  one's  outlook  on  what  was  possible  in 
this  world:  it  was  as  if  for  instance  the  sun  had 
turned  blue,  throwing  a  new  and  sinister  light  on 
men  and  nature.     Really  in  the  first  moment  he  had 


278  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

felt  sickish,  as  though  he  had  got  a  blow  below  the 
belt :  for  a  second  the  very  colour  of  the  sea  seemed 
changed  —  appeared  queer  to  his  wandering  eye; 
and  he  had  a  passing,  unsteady  sensation  in  all  his 
limbs  as  though  the  earth  had  started  turning  the 
other  way. 

A  very  natural  incredulity  succeeding  this  sense 
of  upheaval  brought  a  measure  of  relief.  He  had 
gasped;  it  was  over.  But  afterwards  during  all 
that  day  sudden  paroxysms  of  wonder  would  come 
over  him  in  the  midst  of  his  occupations.  He  would 
stop  and  shake  his  head.  The  revolt  of  his  in- 
credulity had  passed  away  almost  as  quick  as  the 
first  emotion  of  discovery,  and  for  the  next  twenty- 
four  hours  he  had  no  sleep.  That  would  never  do. 
At  meal-times  (he  took  the  foot  of  the  table  set  up 
for  the  white  men  on  the  bridge)  he  could  not  help 
losing  himself  in  a  fascinated  contemplation  of 
Captain  Whalley  opposite.  He  watched  the  delib- 
erate upward  movements  of  the  arm;  the  old  man 
put  his  food  to  his  lips  as  though  he  never  expected 
to  find  any  taste  in  his  daily  bread,  as  though  he 
did  not  know  anything  about  it.  He  fed  himself 
like  a  somnambulist.  "  It's  an  awful  sight,"  thought 
Sterne ;  and  he  watched  the  long  period  of  mourn- 
ful, silent  immobility,  with  a  big  brown  hand  lying 
loosely  closed  by  the  side  of  the  plate,  till  he  noticed 
the  two  engineers  to  the  right  and  left  looking  at 
him  in  astonishment.  He  would  close  his  mouth  in 
a  hurry  then,  and  lowering  his  eyes,  wink  rapidly  at 
his  plate.  It  was  awful  to  see  the  old  chap  sitting 
there;  it  was  even  awful  to  think  that  with  three 
words  he  could  blow  him  up  sky-high.     All  he  had 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  279 

to  do  was  to  raise  his  voice  and  pronounce  a  single 
short  sentence,  and  yet  that  simple  act  seemed  as 
impossible  to  attempt  as  moving  the  sun  out  of  its 
place  in  the  sky.  The  old  chap  could  eat  in  his 
terrific  mechanical  way  ;  but  Sterne,  from  mental 
excitement,  could  not  —  not  that  evening,  at  any 
rate. 

He  had  had  ample  time  since  to  get  accustomed 
to  the  strain  of  the  meal -hours.  He  would  never 
have  believed  it.  But  then  use  is  everything ;  only 
the  very  potency  of  his  success  prevented  anything 
resembling  elation.  He  felt  like  a  man  who,  in  his 
legitimate  search  for  a  loaded  gun  to  help  him  on 
his  way  through  the  world,  chances  to  come  upon 
a  torpedo — upon  a  live  torpedo  with  a  shattering 
charge  in  its  head  and  a  pressure  of  many  atmos- 
pheres in  its  tail.  It  is  the  sort  of  weapon  to  make 
its  possessor  careworn  and  nervous.  He  had  no 
mind  to  be  blown  up  himself ;  and  he  could  not  get 
rid  of  the  notion  that  the  explosion  was  bound  to 
damage  him  too  in  some  way. 

This  vague  apprehension  had  restrained  him  at 
first.  He  was  able  now  to  eat  and  sleep  with  that 
fearful  weapon  by  his  side,  with  the  conviction  of  its 
power  always  in  his  mind.  It  had  not  been  arrived 
at  by  any  reflective  process;  but  once  the  idea  had 
entered  his  head,  the  conviction  had  followed  over- 
whelmingly in  a  multitude  of  observed  little  facts 
to  which  before  he  had  given  only  a  languid  atten- 
tion. The  abrupt  and  faltering  intonations  of  the 
deep  voice ;  the  taciturnity  put  on  like  an  armour ; 
the  deliberate,  as  if  guarded,  movements;  the  long 
immobilities,  as  if  the  man  he  watched  had  been 


280  THE   END   OP   THE   TETHER. 

afraid  to  disturb  the  very  air :  every  familiar  ges- 
ture, every  word  uttered  in  his  hearing,  every  sigh 
overheard,  had  acquired  a  special  significance,  a  con- 
firmatory import. 

Every  day  that  passed  over  the  Sofala  appeared 
to  Sterne  simply  crammed  full  with  proofs  —  with 
incontrovertible  proofs.  At  night,  when  off  duty, 
he  would  steal  out  of  his  cabin  in  pyjamas  (for  more 
proofs)  and  stand  a  full  hour,  perhaps,  on  his  bare 
feet  below  the  bridge,  as  absolutely  motionless  as  the 
awning  stanchion  in  its  deck  socket  near  by.  On 
the  stretches  of  easy  navigation  it  is  not  usual  for  a 
coasting  captain  to  remain  on  deck  all  the  time  of 
his  watch.  The  Serang  keeps  it  for  him  as  a  matter 
of  custom;  in  open  water,  on  a  straight  course,  he 
is  usually  trusted  to  look  after  the  ship  by  himself. 
But  this  old  man  seemed  incapable  of  remaining 
quietly  down  below.  No  doubt  he  could  not  sleep. 
And  no  wonder.  This  was  also  a  proof.  Suddenly 
in  the  silence  of  the  ship  panting  upon  the  still,  dark 
sea,  Sterne  would  hear  a  low  voice  above  him  ex- 
claiming nervously — 

"  Serang ! " 

"Tuan!" 

"  You  are  watching  the  compass  well  ?  " 

"Yes,  I  am  watching,  Tuan." 

"  The  ship  is  making  her  course  ?  " 

"  She  is,  Tuan.     Very  straight." 

"  It  is  well ;  and  remember,  Serang,  that  the  order 
is  that  you  are  to  mind  the  helmsmen  and  keep  a 
look-out  with  care,  the  same  as  if  I  were  not  on 
deck." 

Then,  when  the  Serang  had  made  his  answer,  the 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  281 

low  tones  on  the  bridge  would  cease,  and  everything 
round  Sterne  seemed  to  become  more  still  and  more 
profoundly  silent.  Slightly  chilled  and  with  his  back 
aching  a  little  from  long  immobility,  he  would  steal 
away  to  his  room  on  the  port  side  of  the  deck.  He 
had  long  since  parted  with  the  last  vestige  of  in- 
credulity ;  of  the  original  emotions,  set  into  a  tumult 
by  the  discovery,  some  trace  of  the  first  awe  alone 
remained.  Not  the  awe  of  the  man  himself — he 
could  blow  him  up  sky-high  with  six  words — rather 
it  was  an  awestruck  indignation  at  the  reckless  per- 
versity of  avarice  (what  else  could  it  be  ?),  at  the 
mad  and  sombre  resolution  that  for  the  sake  of  a 
few  dollars  more  seemed  to  set  at  nought  the  com- 
mon rule  of  conscience  and  pretended  to  struggle 
against  the  very  decree  of  Providence. 

You  could  not  find  another  man  like  this  one  in 
the  whole  round  world — thank  God.  There  was 
something  devilishly  dauntless  in  the  character  of 
such  a  deception  which  made  you  pause. 

Other  considerations  occurring  to  his  prudence 
had  kept  him  tongue-tied  from  day  to  day.  It 
seemed  to  him  now  that  it  would  yet  have  been 
easier  to  speak  out  in  the  first  hour  of  discovery. 
He  almost  regretted  not  having  made  a  row  at 
once.  But  then  the  very  monstrosity  of  the  dis- 
closure .  .  .  Why !  He  could  hardly  face  it  him- 
self, let  alone  pointing  it  out  to  somebody  else. 
Moreover,  with  a  desperado  of  that  sort  one  never 
knew.  The  object  was  not  to  get  him  out  (that 
was  as  well  as  done  already),  but  to  step  into  his 
place.  Bizarre  as  the  thought  seemed  he  might 
have  shown  fight.     A  fellow  up  to  working  such 


282  THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

a  fraud  would  have  enough  cheek  for  anything ; 
a  fellow  that,  as  it  were,  stood  up  against  God 
Almighty  Himself.  He  was  a  horrid  marvel — that's 
what  he  was :  he  was  perfectly  capable  of  brazening 
out  the  affair  scandalously  till  he  got  him  (Sterne) 
kicked  out  of  the  ship  and  everlastingly  damaged  his 
prospects  in  this  part  of  the  East.  Yet  if  you  want 
to  get  on  something  must  be  risked.  At  times 
Sterne  thought  he  had  been  unduly  timid  of  taking 
action  in  the  past;  and  what  was  worse,  it  had 
come  to  this,  that  in  the  present  he  did  not  seem 
to  know  what  action  to  take. 

Massy's  savage  moroseness  was  too  disconcerting. 
It  was  an  incalculable  factor  of  the  situation.  You 
could  not  tell  what  there  was  behind  that  insulting 
ferocity.  How  could  one  trust  such  a  temper ;  it 
did  not  put  Sterne  in  bodily  fear  for  himself,  but 
it  frightened  him  exceedingly  as  to  his  prospects. 

Though  of  course  inclined  to  credit  himself  with 
exceptional  powers  of  observation,  he  had  by  now 
lived  too  long  with  his  discovery.  He  had  gone 
on  looking  at  nothing  else,  till  at  last  one  day  it 
occurred  to  him  that  the  thing  was  so  obvious  that 
no  one  could  miss  seeing  it.  There  were  four  white 
men  in  all  on  board  the  Sofala.  Jack,  the  second 
engineer,  was  too  dull  to  notice  anything  that  took 
place  out  of  his  engine-room.  Remained  Massy — 
the  owner  —  the  interested  person  —  nearly  going 
mad  with  worry.  Sterne  had  heard  and  seen  more 
than  enough  on  board  to  know  what  ailed  him ; 
but  his  exasperation  seemed  to  make  him  deaf  to 
cautious  overtures.  If  he  had  only  known  it,  there 
was  the  very  thing  he  wanted.     But  how  could  you 


THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER.  283 

bargain  with  a  man  of  that  sort  ?  It  was  like  going 
into  a  tiger's  den  with  a  piece  of  raw  meat  in  your 
hand.  He  was  as  likely  as  not  to  rend  you  for  your 
pains.  In  fact,  he  was  always  threatening  to  do 
that  very  thing;  and  the  urgency  of  the  case,  com- 
bined with  the  impossibility  of  handling  it  with 
safety,  made  Sterne  in  his  watches  below  toss  and 
mutter  open-eyed  in  his  bunk,  for  hours,  as  though 
he  had  been  burning  with  fever. 

Occurrences  like  the  crossing  of  the  bar  just  now 
were  extremely  alarming  to  his  prospects.  He  did 
not  want  to  be  left  behind  by  some  swift  catas- 
trophe. Massy  being  on  the  bridge,  the  old  man 
had  to  brace  himself  up,  and  make  a  show,  he  sup- 
posed. But  it  was  getting  very  bad  with  him,  very 
bad  indeed,  now.  Even  Massy  had  been  emboldened 
to  find  fault  this  time ;  Sterne,  listening  at  the  foot 
of  the  ladder,  had  heard  the  other's  whimpering 
and  artless  denunciations.  Luckily  the  beast  was 
very  stupid  and  could  not  see  the  why  of  all  this. 
However,  small  blame  to  him ;  it  took  a  clever  man 
to  hit  upon  the  cause.  Nevertheless,  it  was  high 
time  to  do  something.  The  old  man's  game  could 
not  be  kept  up  for  many  days  more. 

"  I  may  yet  lose  my  life  at  this  fooling — let  alone 
my  chance,"  Sterne  mumbled  angrily  to  himself, 
after  the  stooping  back  of  the  chief  engineer  had 
disappeared  round  the  corner  of  the  skylight.  Yes, 
no  doubt — he  thought ;  but  to  blurt  out  his  know- 
ledge would  not  advance  his  prospects.  On  the 
contrary,  it  would  blast  them  utterly  as  likely  as 
not.  He  dreaded  another  failure.  He  had  a  vague 
consciousness  of  not  being  much  liked  by  his  fellows 


284:  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

in  this  part  of  the  world ;  inexplicably  enough,  for 
he  had  done  nothing  to  them.  Envy,  he  supposed. 
People  were  always  down  on  a  clever  chap  who 
made  no  bones  about  his  determination  to  get  on. 
To  do  your  duty  and  count  on  the  gratitude  of  that 
brute  Massy  would  be  sheer  folly.  He  was  a  bad 
lot.  Unmanly !  A  vicious  man  !  Bad  !  Bad  !  A 
brute !  A  brute  without  a  spark  of  anything 
human  about  him;  without  so  much  as  simple 
curiosity  even,  or  else  surely  he  would  have  re- 
sponded in  some  way  to  all  these  hints  he  had  been 
given.  .  .  .  Such  insensibility  was  almost  mys- 
terious. Massy's  state  of  exasperation  seemed  to 
Sterne  to  have  made  him  stupid  beyond  the 
ordinary  silliness  of  shipowners. 

Sterne,  meditating  on  the  embarrassments  of  that 
stupidity,  forgot  himself  completely.  His  stony,  un- 
winking stare  was  fixed  on  the  planks  of  the  deck. 

The  slight  quiver  agitating  the  whole  fabric  of 
the  ship  was  more  perceptible  in  the  silent  river, 
shaded  and  still  like  a  forest  path.  The  Sofala, 
gliding  with  an  even  motion,  had  passed  beyond  the 
coast-belt  of  mud  and  mangroves.  The  shores  rose 
higher,  in  firm  sloping  banks,  and  the  forest  of  big 
trees  came  down  to  the  brink.  "Where  the  earth 
had  been  crumbled  by  the  floods  it  showed  a  steep 
brown  cut,  denuding  a  mass  of  roots  intertwined 
as  if  wrestling  underground;  and  in  the  air,  the 
interlaced  boughs,  bound  and  loaded  with  creepers, 
carried  on  the  struggle  for  life,  mingled  their  foliage 
in  one  solid  wall  of  leaves,  with  here  and  there  the 
shape  of  an  enormous  dark  pillar  soaring,  or  a 
ragged  opening,  as  if  torn  by  the  flight  of  a  cannon- 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  285 

ball,  disclosing  the  impenetrable  gloom  within,  the 
secular  inviolable  shade  of  the  virgin  forest.  The 
thump  of  the  engines  reverberated  regularly  like  the 
strokes  of  a  metronome  beating  the  measure  of  the 
vast  silence,  the  shadow  of  the  western  wall  had 
fallen  across  the  river,  and  the  smoke  pouring  back- 
wards from  the  funnel  eddied  down  behind  the  ship, 
spread  a  thin  dusky  veil  over  the  sombre  water, 
which,  checked  by  the  flood  -  tide,  seemed  to  lie 
stagnant  in  the  whole  straight  length  of  the 
reaches. 

Sterne's  body,  as  if  rooted  on  the  spot,  trembled 
slightly  from  top  to  toe  with  the  internal  vibration 
of  the  ship;  from  under  his  feet  came  sometimes  a 
sudden  clang  of  iron,  the  noisy  burst  of  a  shout 
below ;  to  the  right  the  leaves  of  the  tree  -  tops 
caught  the  rays  of  the  low  sun,  and  seemed  to 
shine  with  a  golden  green  light  of  their  own  shim- 
mering around  the  highest  boughs  which  stood  out 
black  against  a  smooth  blue  sky  that  seemed  to 
droop  over  the  bed  of  the  river  like  the  roof  of  a 
tent.  The  passengers  for  Batu  Beru,  kneeling  on 
the  planks,  were  engaged  in  rolling  their  bedding  of 
mats  busily ;  they  tied  up  bundles,  they  snapped  the 
locks  of  wooden  chests.  A  pockmarked  pedlar  of 
small  wares  threw  his  head  back  to  drain  into  his 
throat  the  last  drops  out  of  an  earthenware  bottle 
before  putting  it  away  in  a  roll  of  blankets.  Knots 
of  travelling  traders  standing  about  the  deck  con- 
versed in  low  tones ;  the  followers  of  a  small  Rajah 
from  down  the  coast,  broad -faced  simple  young 
fellows  in  white  drawers  and  round  white  cotton 
caps   with   their   coloured    sarongs    twisted   across 


286  THE  END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

their  bronze  shoulders,  squatted  on  their  hams  on 
the  hatch,  chewing  betel  with  bright  red  mouths 
as  if  they  had  been  tasting  blood.  Their  spears, 
lying  piled  up  together  within  the  circle  of  their 
bare  toes,  resembled  a  casual  bundle  of  dry  bam- 
boos ;  a  thin,  livid  Chinaman,  with  a  bulky  package 
wrapped  up  in  leaves  already  thrust  under  his  arm, 
gazed  ahead  eagerly ;  a  wandering  Kling  rubbed  his 
teeth  with  a  bit  of  wood,  pouring  over  the  side  a 
bright  stream  of  water  out  of  his  lips ;  the  fat  Rajah 
dozed  in  a  shabby  deck-chair, — and  at  the  turn  of 
every  bend  the  two  walls  of  leaves  reappeared  run- 
ning parallel  along  the  banks,  with  their  impene- 
trable solidity  fading  at  the  top  to  a  vapourous 
mistiness  of  countless  slender  twigs  growing  free,  of 
young  delicate  branches  shooting  from  the  topmost 
limbs  of  hoary  trunks,  of  feathery  heads  of  climbers 
like  delicate  silver  sprays  standing  up  without  a 
quiver.  There  was  not  a  sign  of  a  clearing  any- 
where; not  a  trace  of  human  habitation,  except 
when  in  one  place,  on  the  bare  end  of  a  low  point 
under  an  isolated  group  of  slender  tree-ferns,  the 
jagged,  tangled  remnants  of  an  old  hut  on  piles 
appeared  with  that  peculiar  aspect  of  ruined  bam- 
boo walls  that  look  as  if  smashed  with  a  club. 
Farther  on,  half  hidden  under  the  drooping  bushes, 
a  canoe  containing  a  man  and  a  woman  together 
with  a  dozen  green  cocoanuts  in  a  heap,  rooked 
helplessly  after  the  Sofala  had  passed,  like  a  navi- 
gating contrivance  of  venturesome  insects,  of  travel- 
ling ants ;  while  two  glassy  folds  of  water  stream- 
ing away  from  each  bow  of  the  steamer  across  the 
whole  width  of  the  river  ran  with  her  up  stream 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  287 

smoothly,  fretting  their  outer  ends  into  a  brown 
whispering  tumble  of  froth  against  the  miry  foot 
of  each  bank. 

"I  must,"  thought  Sterne,  "bring  that  brute 
Massy  to  his  bearings.  It's  getting  too  absurd  in 
the  end.  Here's  the  old  man  up  there  buried  in  his 
chair — he  may  just  as  well  be  in  his  grave  for  all 
the  use  he'll  ever  be  in  the  world — and  the  Serang's 
in  charge.  Because  that's  what  he  is.  In  charge. 
In  the  place  that's  mine  by  rights.  I  must  bring 
that  savage  brute  to  his  bearings.  I'll  do  it  at 
once,  too  ..." 

When  the  mate  made  an  abrupt  start,  a  little 
brown  half-naked  boy,  with  large  black  eyes,  and 
the  string  of  a  written  charm  round  his  neck,  be- 
came panic-struck  at  once.  He  dropped  the  banana 
he  had  been  munching,  and  ran  to  the  knee  of  a 
grave  dark  Arab  in  flowing  robes,  sitting  like  a 
Biblical  figure,  incongruously,  on  a  yellow  tin  trunk 
corded  with  a  rope  of  twisted  rattan.  The  father, 
unmoved,  put  out  his  hand  to  pat  the  little  shaven 
poll  protectingly. 


XL 


Sterne  crossed  the  deck  upon  the  track  of  the 
chief  engineer.  Jack,  the  second,  retreating  back- 
wards down  the  engine-room  ladder,  and  still  wiping 
his  hands,  treated  him  to  an  incomprehensible  grin 
of  white  teeth  out  of  his  grimy  hard  face;  Massy 
was  nowhere  to  be  seen.  He  must  have  gone 
straight  into  his  berth.      Sterne  scratched  at  the 


288  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

door  softly,  then,  putting  his  lips  to  the  rose  of  the 
ventilator,  said — 

"  I  must  speak  to  you,  Mr  Massy.  Just  give  me 
a  minute  or  two." 

"  I  am  busy.     Go  away  from  my  door." 

"But  pray,  Mr  Massy  ..." 

"You  go  away.  D'you  hear?  Take  yourself  off 
altogether  —  to  the  other  end  of  the  ship  —  quite 
away  .  .  ."  The  voice  inside  dropped  low.  "To 
the  devil." 

Sterne  paused :  then  very  quietly — 

"It's  rather  pressing.  When  do  you  think  you 
will  be  at  liberty,  sir?" 

The  answer  to  this  was  an  exasperated  "  Never  " ; 
and  at  once  Sterne,  with  a  very  firm  expression  of 
face,  turned  the  handle. 

Mr  Massy 's  state-room  —  a  narrow,  one -berth 
cabin  —  smelt  strongly  of  soap,  and  presented  to 
view  a  swept,  dusted,  unadorned  neatness,  not  so 
much  bare  as  barren,  not  so  much  severe  as  starved 
and  lacking  in  humanity,  like  the  ward  of  a  public 
hospital,  or  rather  (owing  to  the  small  size)  like  the 
clean  retreat  of  a  desperately  poor  but  exemplary 
person.  Not  a  single  photograph  frame  ornamented 
the  bulkheads ;  not  a  single  article  of  clothing,  not 
as  much  as  a  spare  cap,  hung  from  the  brass  hooks. 
All  the  inside  was  painted  in  one  plain  tint  of  pale 
blue ;  two  big  sea-chests  in  sailcloth  covers  and  with 
iron  padlocks  fitted  exactly  in  the  space  under  the 
bunk.  One  glance  was  enough  to  embrace  all  the 
strip  of  scrubbed  planks  within  the  four  unconcealed 
corners.  The  absence  of  the  usual  settee  was  strik- 
ing ;  the  teak-wood  top  of  the  washing-stand  seemed 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE.  289 

hermetically  closed,  and  so  was  the  lid  of  the  writ- 
ing-desk, which  protruded  from  the  partition  at  the 
foot  of  the  bed-place,  containing  a  mattress  as  thin 
as  a  pancake  under  a  threadbare  blanket  with  a 
faded  red  stripe,  and  a  folded  mosquito-net  against 
the  nights  spent  in  harbour.  There  was  not  a  scrap 
of  paper  anywhere  in  sight,  no  boots  on  the  floor, 
no  litter  of  any  sort,  not  a  speck  of  dust  anywhere ; 
no  traces  of  pipe-ash  even,  which,  in  a  heavy  smoker, 
was  morally  revolting,  like  a  manifestation  of  ex- 
treme hypocrisy ;  and  the  bottom  of  the  old  wooden 
arm-chair  (the  only  seat  there),  polished  with  much 
use,  shone  as  if  its  shabbiness  had  been  waxed.  The 
screen  of  leaves  on  the  bank,  passing  as  if  unrolled 
endlessly  in  the  round  opening  of  the  port,  sent 
a  wavering  network  of  light  and  shade  into  the 
place. 

Sterne,  holding  the  door  open  with  one  hand,  had 
thrust  in  his  head  and  shoulders.  At  this  amazing 
intrusion  Massy,  who  was  doing  absolutely  nothing, 
jumped  up  speechless. 

"Don't  call  names,"  murmured  Sterne  hurriedly. 
"  I  won't  be  called  names.  I  think  of  nothing  but 
your  good,  Mr  Massy." 

A  pause  as  of  extreme  astonishment  followed. 
They  both  seemed  to  have  lost  their  tongues.  Then 
the  mate  went  on  with  a  discreet  glibness. 

"You  simply  couldn't  conceive  what's  going  on 
on  board  your  ship.  It  wouldn't  enter  your  head 
for  a  moment.  You  are  too  good — too — too  upright, 
Mr  Massy,  to  suspect  anybody  of  such  a  .  .  .  It's 
enough  to  make  your  hair  stand  on  end." 

He  watched  for  the  effect :  Massy  seemed  dazed, 


290  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE. 

uncomprehending.  He  only  passed  the  palm  of  his 
hand  on  the  coal-black  wisps  plastered  across  the 
top  of  his  head.  In  a  tone  suddenly  changed  to 
confidential  audacity  Sterne  hastened  on. 

"Remember  that  there's  only  six  weeks  left  to 
run  ..."  The  other  was  looking  at  him  stonily 
.  .  .  "so  anyhow  you  shall  require  a  captain  for 
the  ship  before  long." 

Then  only,  as  if  that  suggestion  had  scarified  his 
flesh  in  the  manner  of  red-hot  iron,  Massy  gave  a 
start  and  seemed  ready  to  shriek.  He  contained 
himself  by  a  great  effort. 

"Require — a — captain,"  he  repeated  with  scath- 
ing slowness.  "Who  requires  a  captain?  You  dare 
to  tell  me  that  I  need  any  of  you  humbugging 
sailors  to  run  my  ship.  You  and  your  likes  have 
been  fattening  on  me  for  years.  It  would  have 
hurt  me  less  to  throw  my  money  overboard.  Pam 
—  pe — red  us  —  e  —  less  fff frauds.  The  old  ship 
knows  as  much  as  the  best  of  you."  He  snapped 
his  teeth  audibly  and  growled  through  them.  "  The 
silly  law  requires  a  captain." 

Sterne  had  taken  heart  of  grace  meantime. 

"And  the  silly  insurance  people  too,  as  well,"  he 
said  lightly.  "  But  never  mind  that.  What  I  want 
to  ask  is  :  Why  shouldn't  /  do,  sir  ?  I  don't  say 
but  you  could  take  a  steamer  about  the  world  as 
well  as  any  of  us  sailors.  I  don't  pretend  to  tell 
you  that  it  is  a  very  great  trick  ..."  He  emitted 
a  short,  hollow  guffaw,  familiarly  ...  "I  didn't 
make  the  law — but  there  it  is  ;  and  I  am  an  active 
young  fellow  ;  I  quite  hold  with  your  ideas ;  I  know 
your  ways  by  this  time,  Mr  Massy.     I  wouldn't  try 


THE   END    OF  THE   TETHER.  291 

to  give  myself  airs  like  that — that — er — lazy  speci- 
men of  an  old  man  up  there." 

He  put  a  marked  emphasis  on  the  last  sentence, 
to  lead  Massy  away  from  the  track  in  case  .  .  . 
but  he  did  not  doubt  of  now  holding  his  success. 
The  chief  engineer  seemed  nonplussed,  like  a  slow 
man  invited  to  catch  hold  of  a  whirligig  of  some 
sort. 

"What  you  want,  sir,  is  a  chap  with  no  non- 
sense about  him,  who  would  be  content  to  be  your 
sailing-master.  Quite  right,  too.  Well,  I  am  fit  for 
the  work  as  much  as  that  Serang.  Because  that's 
what  it  amounts  to.  Do  you  know,  sir,  that  a  dam' 
Malay  like  a  monkey  is  in  charge  of  your  ship — 
and  no  one  else.  Just  listen  to  his  feet  pit-patting 
above  us  on  the  bridge — real  officer  in  charge.  He's 
taking  her  up  the  river  while  the  great  man  is 
wallowing  in  the  chair — perhaps  asleep;  and  if  he 
is,  that  would  not  make  it  much  worse  either — 
take  my  word  for  it." 

He  tried  to  thrust  himself  farther  in.  Massy,  with 
lowered  forehead,  one  hand  grasping  the  back  of  the 
arm-chair,  did  not  budge. 

"You  think,  sir,  that  the  man  has  got  you  tight 
in  his  agreement  ..."  Massy  raised  a  heavy  snar- 
ling face  at  this  ..."  Well,  sir,  one  can't  help 
hearing  of  it  on  board.  It's  no  secret.  And  it  has 
been  the  talk  on  shore  for  years ;  fellows  have  been 
making  bets  about  it.  No,  sir !  It's  you  who  have 
got  him  at  your  mercy.  You  will  say  that  you 
can't  dismiss  him  for  indolence.  Difficult  to  prove 
in  court,  and  so  on.  Why,  yes.  But  if  you  say 
the  word,  sir,  I  can  tell  you  something  about  his 


292  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

indolence  that  will  give  you  the  clear  right  to  fire 
him  out  on  the  spot  and  put  me  in  charge  for  the 
rest  of  this  very  trip — yes,  sir,  before  we  leave  Batu 
Beru — and  make  him  pay  a  dollar  a  day  for  his  keep 
till  we  get  back,  if  you  like.  Now,  what  do  you 
think  of  that?  Come,  sir.  Say  the  word.  It's 
really  well  worth  your  while,  and  I  am  quite  ready 
to  take  your  bare  word.  A  definite  statement  from 
you  would  be  as  good  as  a  bond." 

His  eyes  began  to  shine.  He  insisted.  A  simple 
statement, — and  he  thought  to  himself  that  he  would 
manage  somehow  to  stick  in  his  berth  as  long  as 
it  suited  him.  He  would  make  himself  indispens- 
able ;  the  ship  had  a  bad  name  in  her  port ;  it 
would  be  easy  to  scare  the  fellows  off.  Massy  would 
have  to  keep  him. 

"A  definite  statement  from  me  would  be  enough," 
Massy  repeated  slowly. 

"Yes,  sir.  It  would."  Sterne  stuck  out  his  chin 
cheerily  and  blinked  at  close  quarters  with  that  un- 
conscious impudence  which  had  the  power  to  enrage 
Massy  beyond  anything. 

The  engineer  spoke  very  distinctly. 

"Listen  well  to  me,  then,  Mr  Sterne:  I  wouldn't 
— d'ye  hear  ? — I  wouldn't  promise  you  the  value  of 
two  pence  for  anything  you  can  tell  me." 

He  struck  Sterne's  arm  away  with  a  smart  blow, 
and  catching  hold  of  the  handle  pulled  the  door  to. 
The  terrific  slam  darkened  the  cabin  instantaneously 
to  his  eyes  as  if  after  the  flash  of  an  explosion.  At 
once  he  dropped  into  the  chair.  "  Oh  no !  You 
don't !  "  he  whispered  faintly. 

The  ship  had  in  that  place  to  shave  the  bank  so 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  293 

close  that  the  gigantic  wall  of  leaves  came  gliding 
like  a  shutter  against  the  port  j  the  darkness  of  the 
primeval  forest  seemed  to  flow  into  that  bare  cabin 
with  the  odour  of  rotting  leaves  of  sodden  soil — 
the  strong  muddy  smell  of  the  living  earth  steam- 
ing uncovered  after  the  passing  of  a  deluge.  The 
bushes  swished  loudly  alongside;  above  there  was 
a  series  of  crackling  sounds,  with  a  sharp  rain  of 
small  broken  branches  falling  on  the  bridge ;  a 
creeper  with  a  great  rustle  snapped  on  the  head 
of  a  boat  davit,  and  a  long,  luxuriant  green  twig 
actually  whipped  in  and  out  of  the  open  port, 
leaving  behind  a  few  torn  leaves  that  remained 
suddenly  at  rest  on  Mr  Massy's  blanket.  Then, 
the  ship  sheering  out  in  the  stream,  the  light 
began  to  return  but  did  not  augment  beyond  a 
subdued  clearness :  for  the  sun  was  very  low 
already,  and  the  river,  wending  its  sinuous  course 
through  a  multitude  of  secular  trees  as  if  at  the 
bottom  of  a  precipitous  gorge,  had  been  already 
invaded  by  a  deepening  gloom  —  the  swift  pre- 
cursor of  the  night. 

"  Oh  no,  you  don't ! "  murmured  the  engineer 
again.  His  lips  trembled  almost  imperceptibly ; 
his  hands  too,  a  little :  and  to  calm  himself  he 
opened  the  writing-desk,  spread  out  a  sheet  of 
thin  greyish  paper  covered  with  a  mass  of  printed 
figures  and  began  to  scan  them  attentively  for  the 
twentieth  time  this  trip  at  least. 

With  his  elbows  propped,  his  head  between  his 
hands,  he  seemed  to  lose  himself  in  the  study  of  an 
abstruse  problem  in  mathematics.  It  was  the  list 
of  the  winning  numbers  from  the  last  drawing  of 


294  THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

the  great  lottery  which  had  been  the  one  inspiring 
fact  of  so  many  years  of  his  existence.  The  concep- 
tion of  a  life  deprived  of  that  periodical  sheet  of 
paper  had  slipped  away  from  him  entirely,  as  an- 
other man,  according  to  his  nature,  would  not  have 
been  able  to  conceive  a  world  without  fresh  air, 
without  activity,  or  without  affection.  A  great  pile 
of  flimsy  sheets  had  been  growing  for  years  in  his 
desk,  while  the  Sofala,  driven  by  the  faithful  Jack, 
wore  out  her  boilers  in  tramping  up  and  down  the 
Straits,  from  cape  to  cape,  from  river  to  river,  from 
bay  to  bay;  accumulating  by  that  hard  labour  of 
an  overworked,  starved  ship  the  blackened  mass  of 
these  documents.  Massy  kept  them  under  lock  and 
key  like  a  treasure.  There  was  in  them,  as  in  the 
experience  of  life,  the  fascination  of  hope,  the  excite- 
ment of  a  half-penetrated  mystery,  the  longing  of  a 
half-satisfied  desire. 

For  days  together,  on  a  trip,  he  would  shut  him- 
self up  in  his  berth  with  them :  the  thump  of  the 
toiling  engines  pulsated  in  his  ear;  and  he  would 
weary  his  brain  poring  over  the  rows  of  discon- 
nected figures,  bewildering  by  their  senseless  sequence, 
resembling  the  hazards  of  destiny  itself.  He  nour- 
ished a  conviction  that  there  must  be  some  logic 
lurking  somewhere  in  the  results  of  chance.  He 
thought  he  had  seen  its  very  form.  His  head  swam  ; 
his  limbs  ached  ;  he  puffed  at  his  pipe  mechanically  ; 
a  contemplative  stupor  would  soothe  the  fretfulness 
of  his  temper,  like  the  passive  bodily  quietude  pro- 
cured by  a  drug,  while  the  intellect  remains  tensely 
on  the  stretch.  Nine,  nine,  ought,  four,  two.  He 
made   a   note.     The    next   winning  number   of  the 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  295 

great  prize  was  forty  -  seven  thousand  and  five. 
These  numbers  of  course  would  have  to  be  avoided 
in  the  future  when  writing  to  Manilla  for  the 
tickets.  He  mumbled,  pencil  in  hand  .  .  .  "and 
five.  Hm  .  .  .  hm."  He  wetted  his  finger:  the 
papers  rustled.  Ha  !  But  what's  this  ?  Three  years 
ago,  in  the  September  drawing,  it  was  number 
nine,  ought,  four,  two  that  took  the  first  prize. 
Most  remarkable.  There  was  a  hint  there  of  a 
definite  rule !  He  was  afraid  of  missing  some  re- 
condite principle  in  the  overwhelming  wealth  of  his 
material.  What  could  it  be  ?  and  for  half  an  hour 
he  would  remain  dead  still,  bent  low  over  the  desk, 
without  twitching  a  muscle.  At  his  back  the  whole 
berth  would  be  thick  with  a  heavy  body  of  smoke, 
as  if  a  bomb  had  burst  in  there,  unnoticed,  unheard. 
At  last  he  would  lock  up  the  desk  with  the  de- 
cision of  unshaken  confidence,  jump  up  and  go  out. 
He  would  walk  swiftly  back  and  forth  on  that  part 
of  the  foredeck  which  was  kept  clear  of  the  lumber 
and  of  the  bodies  of  the  native  passengers.  They 
were  a  great  nuisance,  but  they  were  also  a  source  of 
profit  that  could  not  be  disdained.  He  needed  every 
penny  of  profit  the  Sofala  could  make.  Little  enough 
it  was,  in  all  conscience !  The  incertitude  of  chance 
gave  him  no  concern,  since  he  had  somehow  arrived 
at  the  conviction  that,  in  the  course  of  years,  every 
number  was  bound  to  have  his  winning  turn.  It 
was  simply  a  matter  of  time  and  of  taking  as  many 
tickets  as  he  could  afford  for  every  drawing.  He 
generally  took  rather  more ;  all  the  earnings  of  the 
ship  went  that  way,  and  also  the  wages  he  allowed 
himself  as  chief  engineer.     It  was  the  wages  he  paid 


296  THE   END   OF  THE  TETHER. 

to  others  that  he  begrudged  with  a  reasoned  and  at 
the  same  time  a  passionate  regret.  He  scowled  at 
the  lascars  with  their  deck  brooms,  at  the  quarter- 
masters rubbing  the  brass  rails  with  greasy  rags ; 
he  was  eager  to  shake  his  fist  and  roar  abuse  in  bad 
Malay  at  the  poor  carpenter — a  timid,  sickly,  opium- 
fuddled  Chinaman,  in  loose  blue  drawers  for  all  cos- 
tume, who  invariably  dropped  his  tools  and  fled 
below,  with  streaming  tail  and  shaking  all  over, 
before  the  fury  of  that  "devil."  But  it  was  when 
he  raised  up  his  eyes  to  the  bridge  where  one  of 
these  sailor  frauds  was  always  planted  by  law  in 
charge  of  his  ship  that  he  felt  almost  dizzy  with  rage. 
He  abominated  them  all ;  it  was  an  old  feud,  from 
the  time  he  first  went  to  sea,  an  unlicked  cub  with 
a  great  opinion  of  himself,  in  the  engine-room.  The 
slights  that  had  been  put  upon  him.  The  persecu- 
tions he  had  suffered  at  the  hands  of  skippers — of 
absolute  nobodies  in  a  steamship  after  all.  And 
now  that  he  had  risen  to  be  a  shipowner  they  were 
still  a  plague  to  him  :  he  had  absolutely  to  pay 
away  precious  money  to  the  conceited  useless  loaf- 
ers : — As  if  a  fully  qualified  engineer — who  was  the 
owner  as  well — were  not  fit  to  be  trusted  with  the 
whole  charge  of  a  ship.  Well !  he  made  it  pretty 
warm  for  them;  but  it  was  a  poor  consolation. 
He  had  come  in  time  to  hate  the  ship  too  for  the 
repairs  she  required,  for  the  coal-bills  he  had  to 
pay,  for  the  poor  beggarly  freights  she  earned.  He 
would  clench  his  hand  as  he  walked  and  hit  the 
rail  a  sudden  blow,  viciously,  as  though  she  could 
be  made  to  feel  pain.  And  yet  he  could  not  do 
without  her;  he  needed  her;   he  must  hang  on  to 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  297 

her  tooth  and  nail  to  keep  his  head  above  water  till 
the  expected  flood  of  fortune  came  sweeping  up  and 
landed  him  safely  on  the  high  shore  of  his  ambition. 
It  was  now  to  do  nothing,  nothing  whatever,  and 
have  plenty  of  money  to  do  it  on.  He  had  tasted 
of  power,  the  highest  form  of  it  his  limited  experi- 
ence was  aware  of — the  power  of  shipowning.  What 
a  deception  !  Vanity  of  vanities  !  He  wondered  at 
his  folly.  He  had  thrown  away  the  substance  for 
the  shadow.  Of  the  gratification  of  wealth  he  did 
not  know  enough  to  excite  his  imagination  with 
any  visions  of  luxury.  How  could  he — the  child 
of  a  drunken  boiler-maker — going  straight  from  the 
workshop  into  the  engine-room  of  a  north  country 
collier !  But  the  notion  of  the  absolute  idleness  of 
wealth  he  could  very  well  conceive.  He  revelled  in 
it,  to  forget  his  present  troubles ;  he  imagined  him- 
self walking  about  the  streets  of  Hull  (he  knew  their 
gutters  well  as  a  boy)  with  his  pockets  full  of  sov- 
ereigns. He  would  buy  himself  a  house ;  his  married 
sisters,  their  husbands,  his  old  workshop  chums, 
would  render  him  infinite  homage.  There  would 
be  nothing  to  think  of.  His  word  would  be  law. 
He  had  been  out  of  work  for  a  long  time  before  he 
won  his  prize,  and  he  remembered  how  Carlo  Mariani 
(commonly  known  as  Paunchy  Charley),  the  Maltese 
hotel-keeper  at  the  slummy  end  of  Denham  Street, 
had  cringed  joyfully  before  him  in  the  evening,  when 
the  news  had  come.  Poor  Charley,  though  he  made 
his  living  by  ministering  to  various  abject  vices, 
gave  credit  for  their  food  to  many  a  piece  of  white 
wreckage.  He  was  naively  overjoyed  at  the  idea  of 
his  old  bills  being  paid,  and  he  reckoned  confidently 


298  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHEE. 

on  a  spell  of  festivities  in  the  cavernous  grog-shop 
downstairs.  Massy  remembered  the  curious,  respect- 
ful looks  of  the  "trashy"  white  men  in  the  place. 
His  heart  had  swelled  within  him.  Massy  had  left 
Charley's  infamous  den  directly  he  had  realised  the 
possibilities  open  to  him,  and  with  his  nose  in  the 
air.  Afterwards  the  memory  of  these  adulations 
was  a  great  sadness. 

This  was  the  true  power  of  money,  —  and  no 
trouble  with  it,  nor  any  thinking  required  either. 
He  thought  with  difficulty  and  felt  vividly;  to  his 
blunt  brain  the  problems  offered  by  any  ordered 
scheme  of  life  seemed  in  their  cruel  toughness  to 
have  been  put  in  his  way  by  the  obvious  malevolence 
of  men.  As  a  shipowner  every  one  had  conspired 
to  make  him  a  nobody.  How  could  he  have  been 
such  a  fool  as  to  purchase  that  accursed  ship.  He 
had  been  abominably  swindled ;  there  was  no  end 
to  this  swindling ;  and  as  the  difficulties  of  his  im- 
provident ambition  gathered  thicker  round  him,  he 
really  came  to  hate  everybody  he  had  ever  come  in 
contact  with.  A  temper  naturally  irritable  and  an 
amazing  sensitiveness  to  the  claims  of  his  own  per- 
sonality had  ended  by  making  of  life  for  him  a  sort 
of  inferno — a  place  where  his  lost  soul  had  been 
given  up  to  the  torment  of  savage  brooding. 

But  he  had  never  hated  any  one  so  much  as  that 
old  man  who  had  turned  up  one  evening  to  save  him 
from  an  utter  disaster, — from  the  conspiracy  of  the 
wretched  sailors.  He  seemed  to  have  fallen  on  board 
from  the  sky.  His  footsteps  echoed  on  the  empty 
steamer,  and  the  strange  deep-toned  voice  on  deck 
repeating  interrogatively  the  words,  "  Mr  Massy,  Mr 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  299 

Massy  there?"  had  been  startling  like  a  wonder. 
And  coming  up  from  the  depths  of  the  cold  engine- 
room,  where  he  had  been  pottering  dismally  with  a 
candle  amongst  the  enormous  shadows,  thrown  on 
all  sides  by  the  skeleton  limbs  of  machinery,  Massy 
had  been  struck  dumb  by  astonishment  in  the  pres- 
ence of  that  imposing  old  man  with  a  beard  like  a 
silver  plate,  towering  in  the  dusk  rendered  lurid 
by  the  expiring  flames  of  sunset. 

"Want  to  see  me  on  business?  What  business? 
I  am  doing  no  business.  Can't  you  see  that  this 
ship  is  laid  up  ?  "  Massy  had  turned  at  bay  before 
the  pursuing  irony  of  his  disaster.  Afterwards  he 
could  not  believe  his  ears.  What  was  that  old 
fellow  getting  at?  Things  don't  happen  that  way. 
It  was  a  dream.  He  would  presently  wake  up  and 
find  the  man  vanished  like  a  shape  of  mist.  The 
gravity,  the  dignity,  the  firm  and  courteous  tone 
of  that  athletic  old  stranger  impressed  Massy.  He 
was  almost  afraid.  But  it  was  no  dream.  Five 
hundred  pounds  are  no  dream.  At  once  he  became 
suspicious.  What  did  it  mean?  Of  course  it  was 
an  offer  to  catch  hold  of  for  dear  life.  But  what 
could  there  be  behind  ?  " 

Before  they  had  parted,  after  appointing  a  meet- 
ing in  a  solicitor's  office  early  on  the  morrow,  Massy 
was  asking  himself,  What  is  his  motive  ?  He  spent 
the  night  in  hammering  out  the  clauses  of  the  agree- 
ment— a  unique  instrument  of  its  sort  whose  tenor 
got  bruited  abroad  somehow  and  became  the  talk 
and  wonder  of  the  port. 

Massy 's  object  had  been  to  secure  for  himself  as 
many  ways  as  possible  of  getting  rid  of  his  partner 


300  THE   END  OF  THE   TETHER. 

without  being  called  upon  at  once  to  pay  back  his 
share.  Captain  Whalley's  efforts  were  directed  to 
making  the  money  secure.  Was  it  not  Ivy's  money 
— a  part  of  her  fortune  whose  only  other  asset  was 
the  time-defying  body  of  her  old  father?  Sure  of 
his  forbearance  in  the  strength  of  his  love  for  her, 
he  accepted,  with  stately  serenity,  Massy's  stupidly 
cunning  paragraphs  against  his  incompetence,  his 
dishonesty,  his  drunkenness,  for  the  sake  of  other 
stringent  stipulations.  At  the  end  of  three  years 
he  was  at  liberty  to  withdraw  from  the  partnership, 
taking  his  money  with  him.  Provision  was  made 
for  forming  a  fund  to  pay  him  off.  But  if  he  left 
the  Sofala  before  the  term,  from  whatever  cause 
(barring  death),  Massy  was  to  have  a  whole  year 
for  paying.  "  Illness  ?  "  the  lawyer  had  suggested  : 
a  young  man  fresh  from  Europe  and  not  over- 
burdened with  business,  who  was  rather  amused. 
Massy  began  to  whine  unctuously,  "  How  could  he 
be  expected?  ..." 

"Let  that  go,"  Captain  Whalley  had  said  with  a 
superb  confidence  in  his  body.  "Acts  of  God,"  he 
added.  In  the  midst  of  life  we  are  in  death,  but 
he  trusted  his  Maker  with  a  still  greater  fearless- 
ness— his  Maker  who  knew  his  thoughts,  his  human 
affections,  and  his  motives.  His  Creator  knew  what 
use  he  was  making  of  his  health — how  much  he 
wanted  it  ...  "I  trust  my  first  illness  will  be  my 
last.  I've  never  been  ill  that  I  can  remember,"  he 
had  remarked.      "Let  it  go." 

But  at  this  early  stage  he  had  already  awakened 
Massy's  hostility  by  refusing  to  make  it  six  hundred 
instead  of  five.     "  I  cannot  do  that,"  was  all  he  had 


THE    END    OF   THE    TETHER.  301 

said,  simply,  but  with  so  much  decision  that  Massy- 
desisted  at  once  from  pressing  the  point,  but  had 
thought  to  himself,  "  Can't  !  Old  curmudgeon. 
Won't!  He  must  have  lots  of  money,  but  he 
would  like  to  get  hold  of  a  soft  berth  and  the 
sixth  part  of  my  profits  for  nothing  if  he  only 
could." 

And  during  these  years  Massy's  dislike  grew 
under  the  restraint  of  something  resembling  fear. 
The  simplicity  of  that  man  appeared  dangerous. 
Of  late  he  had  changed,  however,  had  appeared 
less  formidable  and  with  a  lessened  vigour  of  life, 
as  though  he  had  received  a  secret  wound.  But 
still  he  remained  incomprehensible  in  his  simplicity, 
fearlessness,  and  rectitude.  And  when  Massy  learned 
that  he  meant  to  leave  him  at  the  end  of  the  time,  to 
leave  him  confronted  with  the  problem  of  the  boilers, 
his  dislike  blazed  up  secretly  into  hate. 

It  had  made  him  so  clear-eyed  that  for  a  long 
time  now  Mr  Sterne  could  have  told  him  nothing 
he  did  not  know.  He  had  much  ado  in  trying  to 
terrorise  that  mean  sneak  into  silence;  he  wanted 
to  deal  alone  with  the  situation ;  and — incredible 
as  it  might  have  appeared  to  Mr  Sterne — he  had 
not  yet  given  up  the  desire  and  the  hope  of  in- 
ducing that  hated  old  man  to  stay.  Why !  there 
was  nothing  else  to  do,  unless  he  were  to  abandon 
his  chances  of  fortune.  But  now,  suddenly,  since 
the  crossing  of  the  bar  at  Batu  Beru  things  seemed 
to  be  coming  rapidly  to  a  point.  It  disquieted  him 
so  much  that  the  study  of  the  winning  numbers 
failed  to  soothe  his  agitation :  and  the  twilight  in 
the  cabin  deepened,  very  sombre. 


302  THE    END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

He  put  the  list  away,  muttering  once  more,  "Oh 
no,  my  boy,  you  don't.  Not  if  I  know  it."  He  did 
not  mean  the  blinking,  eavesdropping  humbug  to 
force  his  action.  He  took  his  head  again  into  his 
hands ;  his  immobility  confined  in  the  darkness  of 
this  shut -up  little  place  seemed  to  make  him  a 
thing  apart  infinitely  removed  from  the  stir  and 
the  sounds  of  the  deck. 

He  heard  them :  the  passengers  were  beginning 
to  jabber  excitedly;  somebody  dragged  a  heavy  box 
past  his  door.  He  heard  Captain  Whalley's  voice 
above — 

"Stations,  Mr  Sterne."  And  the  answer  from 
somewhere  on  deck  forward — 

"Ay,  ay,  sir." 

"We  shall  moor  head  up  stream  this  time;  the 
ebb  has  made." 

"  Head  up  stream,  sir." 

"  You  will  see  to  it,  Mr  Sterne." 

The  answer  was  covered  by  the  autocratic  clang 
of  the  engine-room  gong.  The  propeller  went  on 
beating  slowly :  one,  two,  three ;  one,  two,  three — 
with  pauses  as  if  hesitating  on  the  turn.  The  gong 
clanged  time  after  time,  and  the  water  churned  this 
way  and  that  by  the  blades  was  making  a  great 
noisy  commotion  alongside.  Mr  Massy  did  not 
move.  A  shore-light  on  the  other  bank,  a  quarter 
of  a  mile  across  the  river,  drifted,  no  bigger  than 
a  tiny  star,  passing  slowly  athwart  the  circle 
of  the  port.  Voices  from  Mr  Van  Wyk's  jetty 
answered  the  hails  from  the  ship ;  ropes  were 
thrown  and  missed  and  thrown  again;  the  sway- 
ing  flame   of   a   torch    carried   in    a  large  sampan 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  303 

coming  to  fetch  away  in  state  the  Rajah  from 
down  the  coast  cast  a  sudden  ruddy  glare  into  his 
cabin,  over  his  very  person.  Mr  Massy  did  not 
move.  After  a  few  last  ponderous  turns  the 
engines  stopped,  and  the  prolonged  clanging  of 
the  gong  signified  that  the  captain  had  done  with 
them.  A  great  number  of  boats  and  canoes  of 
all  sizes  boarded  the  off-side  of  the  Sofala.  Then 
after  a  time  the  tumult  of  splashing,  of  cries,  of 
shuffling  feet,  of  packages  dropped  with  a  thump, 
the  noise  of  the  native  passengers  going  away,  sub- 
sided slowly.  On  the  shore,  a  voice,  cultivated, 
slightly  authoritative,  spoke  very  close  alongside — 

"Brought  any  mail  for  me  this  time?" 

"Yes,  Mr  Van  Wyk."  This  was  from  Sterne, 
answering  over  the  rail  in  a  tone  of  respectful 
cordiality.     "Shall  I  bring  it  up  to  you?" 

But  the  voice  asked  again — 

"  Where's  the  captain  ?  " 

"Still  on  the  bridge,  I  believe.  He  hasn't  left 
his  chair.     Shall  I  .  .  ." 

The  voice  interrupted  negligently. 

"I  will  come  on  board." 

"Mr  Van  Wyk,"  Sterne  suddenly  broke  out  with 
an  eager  effort,  "will  you  do  me  the  favour  .  .  ." 

The  mate  walked  away  quickly  towards  the  gang- 
way. A  silence  fell.  Mr  Massy  in  the  dark  did  not 
move. 

He  did  not  move  even  when  he  heard  slow  shuf- 
fling footsteps  pass  his  cabin  lazily.  He  contented 
himself  to  bellow  out  through  the  closed  door — 

"You— Jack!" 

The  footsteps  came  back  without  haste ;  the  door- 


304  THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

handle  rattled,  and  the  second  engineer  appeared  in 
the  opening,  shadowy  in  the  sheen  of  the  skylight 
at  his  back,  with  his  face  apparently  as  black  as 
the  rest  of  his  figure. 

"We  have  been  very  long  coming  up  this  time," 
Mr  Massy  growled,  without  changing  his  attitude. 

"  What  do  you  expect  with  half  the  boiler  tubes 
plugged  up  for  leaks."  The  second  defended  him- 
self loquaciously. 

"None  of  your  lip,"  said  Massy. 

"None  of  your  rotten  boilers — I  say,"  retorted 
his  faithful  subordinate  without  animation,  huskily. 
"  Go  down  there  and  carry  a  head  of  steam  on  them 
yourself — if  you  dare.     I  don't." 

"You  aren't  worth  your  salt  then,"  Massy  said. 
The  other  made  a  faint  noise  which  resembled  a 
laugh  but  might  have  been  a  snarl. 

"Better  go  slow  than  stop  the  ship  altogether," 
he  admonished  his  admired  superior.  Mr  Massy 
moved  at  last.  He  turned  in  his  chair,  and  grind- 
ing his  teeth — 

"  Dam'  you  and  the  ship  !  I  wish  she  were  at  the 
bottom  of  the  sea.     Then  you  would  have  to  starve." 

The  trusty  second  engineer  closed  the  door  gently. 

Massy  listened.  Instead  of  passing  on  to  the 
bathroom  where  he  should  have  gone  to  clean  him- 
self, the  second  entered  his  cabin,  which  was  next 
door.  Mr  Massy  jumped  up  and  waited.  Suddenly 
he  heard  the  lock  snap  in  there.  He  rushed  out 
and  gave  a  violent  kick  to  the  door. 

"I  believe  you  are  locking  yourself  up  to  get 
drunk,"  he  shouted. 

A  muffled  answer  came  after  a  while. 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  305 

"My  own  time." 

"If  you  take  to  boozing  on  the  trip  I'll  fire  you 
out,"  Massy  cried. 

An  obstinate  silence  followed  that  threat.  Massy 
moved  away  perplexed.  On  the  bank  two  figures 
appeared,  approaching  the  gangway.  He  heard  a 
voice  tinged  with  contempt — 

"I  would  rather  doubt  your  word.  But  I  shall 
certainly  speak  to  him  of  this." 

The  other  voice,  Sterne's,  said  with  a  sort  of 
regretful  formality — 

"Thanks.  That's  all  I  want.  I  must  do  my 
duty." 

Mr  Massy  was  surprised.  A  short,  dapper  figure 
leaped  lightly  on  the  deck  and  nearly  bounded  into 
him  where  he  stood  beyond  the  circle  of  light  from 
the  gangway  lamp.  When  it  had  passed  towards 
the  bridge,  after  exchanging  a  hurried  "Good  eve- 
ning," Massy  said  surlily  to  Sterne  who  followed 
with  slow  steps — 

"What  is  it  you're  making  up  to  Mr  Van  Wyk 
for,  now?" 

"  Far  from  it,  Mr  Massy.  I  am  not  good  enough 
for  Mr  Van  Wyk.  Neither  are  you,  sir,  in  his 
opinion,  I  am  afraid.  Captain  Whalley  is,  it  seems. 
He's  gone  to  ask  him  to  dine  up  at  the  house  this 
evening." 

Then  he  murmured  to  himself  darkly — 

"I  hope  he  will  like  it." 


306  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 


XII. 


Mr  Van  Wyk,  the  white  man  of  Batu  Beru, 
an  ex-naval  officer  who,  for  reasons  best  known 
to  himself,  had  thrown  away  the  promise  of  a 
brilliant  career  to  become  the  pioneer  of  tobacco- 
planting  on  that  remote  part  of  the  coast,  had 
learned  to  like  Captain  Whalley.  The  appearance 
of  the  new  skipper  had  attracted  his  attention. 
Nothing  more  unlike  all  the  diverse  types  he  had 
seen  succeeding  each  other  on  the  bridge  of  the 
Sofala  could  be  imagined. 

At  that  time  Batu  Beru  was  not  what  it  has 
become  since  :  the  centre  of  a  prosperous  tobacco- 
growing  district,  a  tropically  suburban-looking  little 
settlement  of  bungalows  in  one  long  street  shaded 
with  two  rows  of  trees,  embowered  by  the  flower- 
ing and  trim  luxuriance  of  the  gardens,  with  a 
three  -  mile  -  long  carriage  -  road  for  the  afternoon 
drives  and  a  first-class  Resident  with  a  fat,  cheery 
wife  to  lead  the  society  of  married  estate-managers 
and  unmarried  young  fellows  in  the  service  of  the 
big  companies. 

All  this  prosperity  was  not  yet ;  and  Mr  Van 
Wyk  prospered  alone  on  the  left  bank  on  his  deep 
clearing  carved  out  of  the  forest,  which  came  down 
above  and  below  to  the  water's  edge.  His  lonely 
bungalow  faced  across  the  river  the  houses  of  the 
Sultan:  a  restless  and  melancholy  old  ruler  who 
had  done  with  love  and  war,  for  whom  life  no 
longer  held  any  savour  (except  of  evil  forebodings) 


THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER.  307 

and  time  never  had  any  value.  He  was  afraid  of 
death,  and  hoped  he  would  die  before  the  white 
men  were  ready  to  take  his  country  from  him. 
He  crossed  the  river  frequently  (with  never  less 
than  ten  boats  crammed  full  of  people),  in  the 
wistful  hope  of  extracting  some  information  on 
the  subject  from  his  own  white  man.  There  was 
a  certain  chair  on  the  verandah  he  always  took : 
the  dignitaries  of  the  court  squatted  on  the  rugs 
and  skins  between  the  furniture :  the  inferior  people 
remained  below  on  the  grass  plot  between  the  house 
and  the  river  in  rows  three  or  four  deep  all  along 
the  front.  Not  seldom  the  visit  began  at  daybreak. 
Mr  Van  Wyk  tolerated  these  inroads.  He  would 
nod  out  of  his  bedroom  window,  tooth-brush  or 
razor  in  hand,  or  pass  through  the  throng  of 
courtiers  in  his  bathing  robe.  He  appeared  and 
disappeared  humming  a  tune,  polished  his  nails 
with  attention,  rubbed  his  shaved  face  with  eau- 
de-Cologne,  drank  his  early  tea,  went  out  to  see 
his  coolies  at  work :  returned,  looked  through 
some  papers  on  his  desk,  read  a  page  or  two  in 
a  book  or  sat  before  his  cottage  piano  leaning 
back  on  the  stool,  his  arms  extended,  fingers  on 
the  keys,  his  body  swaying  slightly  from  side  to 
side.  When  absolutely  forced  to  speak  he  gave 
evasive  vaguely  soothing  answers  out  of  pure  com- 
passion :  the  same  feeling  perhaps  made  him  so 
lavishly  hospitable  with  the  aerated  drinks  that 
more  than  once  he  left  himself  without  soda-water 
for  a  whole  week.  That  old  man  had  granted 
him  as  much  land  as  he  cared  to  have  cleared :  it 
was  neither  more  nor  less  than  a  fortune. 


308  THE    END    OF  THE   TETHER. 

Whether  it  was  fortune  or  seclusion  from  his 
kind  that  Mr  Yan  Wyk  sought,  he  could  not  have 
pitched  upon  a  better  place.  Even  the  mail-boats 
of  the  subsidised  company  calling  on  the  veriest 
clusters  of  palm -thatched  hovels  along  the  coast 
steamed  past  the  mouth  of  Batu  Beru  river  far 
away  in  the  offing.  The  contract  was  old  :  perhaps 
in  a  few  years'  time,  when  it  had  expired,  Batu 
Beru  would  be  included  in  the  service ;  meantime 
all  Mr  Van  Wyk's  mail  was  addressed  to  Malacca, 
whence  his  agent  sent  it  across  once  a-month  by 
the  Sofala.  It  followed  that  whenever  Massy  had 
run  short  of  money  (through  taking  too  many 
lottery  tickets),  or  got  into  a  difficulty  about  a 
skipper,  Mr  Van  Wyk  was  deprived  of  his  letters 
and  newspapers.  In  so  far  he  had  a  personal  in- 
terest in  the  fortunes  of  the  Sofala.  Though  he 
considered  himself  a  hermit  (and  for  no  passing 
whim  evidently,  since  he  had  stood  eight  years  of 
it  already),  he  liked  to  know  what  went  on  in  the 
world. 

Handy  on  the  verandah  upon  a  walnut  Stagere 
(it  had  come  last  year  by  the  Sofala — everything 
came  by  the  Sofala)  there  lay,  piled  up  under 
bronze  weights,  a  pile  of  the  i  Times' '  weekly 
edition,  the  large  sheets  of  the  '  Rotterdam  Cour- 
ant,'  the  '  Graphic '  in  its  world-wide  green  wrap- 
pers, an  illustrated  Dutch  publication  without  a 
cover,  the  numbers  of  a  German  magazine  with 
covers  of  the  "  Bismark  malade "  colour.  There 
were  also  parcels  of  new  music — though  the  piano 
(it  had  come  years  ago  by  the  Sofala)  in  the  damp 
atmosphere   of   the   forests    was    generally    out    of 


THE   END    OF  THE   TETHER.  309 

tune.  It  was  vexing  to  be  cut  off  from  every- 
thing for  sixty  days  at  a  stretch  sometimes,  with- 
out any  means  of  knowing  what  was  the  matter. 
And  when  the  Sofala  reappeared  Mr  Yan  Wyk 
would  descend  the  steps  of  the  verandah  and  stroll 
over  the  grass  plot  in  front  of  his  house,  down 
to  the  water-side,  with  a  frown  on  his  white  brow. 

"  You've  been  laid  up  after  an  accident,  I 
presume." 

He  addressed  the  bridge,  but  before  anybody  could 
answer  Massy  was  sure  to  have  already  scrambled 
ashore  over  the  rail  and  pushed  in,  squeezing  the 
palms  of  his  hands  together,  bowing  his  sleek  head 
as  if  gummed  all  over  the  top  with  black  threads 
and  tapes.  And  he  would  be  so  enraged  at  the 
necessity  of  having  to  offer  such  an  explanation 
that  his  moaning  would  be  positively  pitiful,  while 
all  the  time  he  tried  to  compose  his  big  lips  into 
a  smile. 

"  No,  Mr  Yan  Wyk.  You  would  not  believe  it. 
I  couldn't  get  one  of  those  wretches  to  take  the 
ship  out.  Not  a  single  one  of  the  lazy  beasts 
could  be  induced,  and  the  law,  you  know,  Mr  Yan 
Wyk    .    .    ." 

He  moaned  at  great  length  apologetically;  the 
words  conspiracy,  plot,  envy,  came  out  prominently, 
whined  with  greater  energy.  Mr  Yan  Wyk,  ex- 
amining with  a  faint  grimace  his  polished  finger- 
nails, would  say,  "H'm.  Yery  unfortunate,"  and 
turn  his  back  on  him. 

Fastidious,  clever,  slightly  sceptical,  accustomed 
to  the  best  society  (he  had  held  a  much -envied 
shore  appointment  at  the  Ministry  of  Marine   for 


310  THE    END    OF  THE   TETHER. 

a  year  preceding  his  retreat  from  his  profession 
and  from  Europe),  he  possessed  a  latent  warmth 
of  feeling  and  a  capacity  for  sympathy  which  were 
concealed  by  a  sort  of  haughty,  arbitrary  indiffer- 
ence of  manner  arising  from  his  early  training; 
and  by  a  something  an  enemy  might  have  called 
foppish,  in  his  aspect  —  like  a  distorted  echo  of 
past  elegancies.  He  managed  to  keep  an  almost 
military  discipline  amongst  the  coolies  of  the  estate 
he  had  dragged  into  the  light  of  day  out  of  the 
tangle  and  shadows  of  the  jungle ;  and  the  white 
shirt  he  put  on  every  evening  with  its  stiff  glossy 
front  and  high  collar  looked  as  if  he  had  meant 
to  preserve  the  decent  ceremony  of  evening-dress, 
but  had  wound  a  thick  crimson  sash  above  his  hips 
as  a  concession  to  the  wilderness,  once  his  adversary, 
now  his  vanquished  companion.  Moreover,  it  was 
a  hygienic  precaution.  Worn  wide  open  in  front,  a 
short  jacket  of  some  airy  silken  stuff  floated  from 
his  shoulders.  His  fluffy,  fair  hair,  thin  at  the  top, 
curled  slightly  at  the  sides ;  a  carefully  arranged 
moustache,  an  ungarnished  forehead,  the  gleam  of 
low  patent  shoes  peeping  under  the  wide  bottom  of 
trousers  cut  straight  from  the  same  stuff  as  the 
gossamer  coat,  completed  a  figure  recalling,  with 
its  sash,  a  pirate  chief  of  romance,  and  at  the  same 
time  the  elegance  of  a  slightly  bald  dandy  indulg- 
ing, in  seclusion,  a  taste  for  unorthodox  costume. 

It  was  his  evening  get-up.  The  proper  time  for 
the  Sofala  to  arrive  at  Batu  Beru  was  an  hour 
before  sunset,  and  he  looked  picturesque,  and  some- 
how quite  correct  too,  walking  at  the  water's  edge 
on  the  background  of  grass  slope  crowned  with  a 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE.  311 

low  long  bungalow  with  an  immensely  steep  roof 
of  palm  thatch,  and  clad  to  the  eaves  in  flowering 
creepers.  While  the  Sofala  was  being  made  fast 
he  strolled  in  the  shade  of  the  few  trees  left  near 
the  landing-place,  waiting  till  he  could  go  on  board. 
Her  white  men  were  not  of  his  kind.  The  old 
Sultan  (though  his  wistful  invasions  were  a  nuis- 
ance) was  really  much  more  acceptable  to  his  fastidi- 
ous taste.  But  still  they  were  white ;  the  periodical 
visits  of  the  ship  made  a  break  in  the  well-filled 
sameness  of  the  days  without  disturbing  his  privacy. 
Moreover,  they  were  necessary  from  a  business  point 
of  view ;  and  through  a  strain  of  preciseness  in  his 
nature  he  was  irritated  when  she  failed  to  appear 
at  the  appointed  time. 

The  cause  of  the  irregularity  was  too  absurd,  and 
Massy,  in  his  opinion,  was  a  contemptible  idiot. 
The  first  time  the  Sofala  reappeared  under  the  new 
agreement  swinging  out  of  the  bend  below,  after 
he  had  almost  given  up  all  hope  of  ever  seeing  her 
again,  he  felt  so  angry  that  he  did  not  go  down 
at  once  to  the  landing-place.  His  servants  had 
come  running  to  him  with  the  news,  and  he  had 
dragged  a  chair  close  against  the  front  rail  of  the 
verandah,  spread  his  elbows  out,  rested  his  chin  on 
his  hands,  and  went  on  glaring  at  her  fixedly  while 
she  was  being  made  fast  opposite  his  house.  He 
could  make  out  easily  all  the  white  faces  on  board. 
Who  on  earth  was  that  kind  of  patriarch  they  had 
got  there  on  the  bridge  now  ? 

At  last  he  sprang  up  and  walked  down  the  gravel 
path.  It  was  a  fact  that  the  very  gravel  for  his 
paths  had  been  imported  by  the  Sofala.     Exasper- 


312  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

ated  out  of  his  quiet  superciliousness,  without  look- 
ing at  any  one  right  or  left,  he  accosted  Massy 
straightway  in  so  determined  a  manner  that  the 
engineer,  taken  aback,  began  to  stammer  unintel- 
ligibly. Nothing  could  be  heard  but  the  words  : 
"Mr  Van  Wyk  .  .  .  Indeed,  Mr  Van  Wyk  .  .  . 
For  the  future,  Mr  Van  Wyk" — and  by  the  suffu- 
sion of  blood  Massy's  vast  bilious  face  acquired  an 
unnatural  orange  tint,  out  of  which  the  discon- 
certed coal-black  eyes  shone  in  an  extraordinary 
manner. 

"Nonsense.  I  am  tired  of  this.  I  wonder  you 
have  the  impudence  to  come  alongside  my  jetty 
as  if  I  had  it  made  for  your  convenience  alone." 

Massy  tried  to  protest  earnestly.  Mr  Van  Wyk 
was  very  angry.  He  had  a  good  mind  to  ask 
that  German  firm — those  people  in  Malacca — what 
was  their  name? — boats  with  green  funnels.  They 
would  be  only  too  glad  of  the  opening  to  put  one 
of  their  small  steamers  on  the  run.  Yes ;  Schnitzler, 
Jacob  Schnitzler,  would  in  a  moment.  Yes.  He 
had  decided  to  write  without  delay. 

In  his  agitation  Massy  caught  up  his  falling 
pipe. 

"  You  don't  mean  it,  sir !  "  he  shrieked. 

"You  shouldn't  mismanage  your  business  in  this 
ridiculous  manner." 

Mr  Van  Wyk  turned  on  his  heel.  The  other 
three  whites  on  the  bridge  had  not  stirred  during 
the  scene.  Massy  walked  hastily  from  side  to  side, 
puffed  out  his  cheeks,  suffocated. 

"  Stuck  up  Dutchman  !  " 

And   he   moaned   out   feverishly   a   long   tale    of 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  313 

griefs.  The  efforts  he  had  made  for  all  these  years 
to  please  that  man.  This  was  the  return  you  got 
for  it,  eh?  Pretty.  Write  to  Schnitzler — let  in 
the  green-funnel  boats — get  an  old  Hamburg  Jew 
to  ruin  him.  No,  really  he  could  laugh.  .  .  .  He 
laughed  sobbingly.  .  .  .  Ha !  ha !  ha  !  And  make 
him  carry  the  letter  in  his  own  ship  presumably. 

He  stumbled  across  a  grating  and  swore.  He 
would  not  hesitate  to  fling  the  Dutchman's  corres- 
pondence overboard — the  whole  confounded  bundle. 
He  had  never,  never  made  any  charge  for  that 
accommodation.  But  Captain  Whalley,  his  new 
partner,  would  not  let  him  probably ;  besides,  it 
would  be  only  putting  off  the  evil  day.  For  his 
own  part  he  would  make  a  hole  in  the  water  rather 
than  look  on  tamely  at  the  green  funnels  overrun- 
ning his  trade. 

He  raved  aloud.  The  China  boys  hung  back  with 
the  dishes  at  the  foot  of  the  ladder.  He  yelled  from 
the  bridge  down  at  the  deck,  "  Aren't  we  going  to 
have  any  chow  this  evening  at  all?"  then  turned 
violently  to  Captain  Whalley,  who  waited,  grave 
and  patient,  at  the  head  of  the  table,  smoothing 
his  beard  in  silence  now  and  then  with  a  forbearing 
gesture. 

"  You  don't  seem  to  care  what  happens  to  me. 
Don't  you  see  that  this  affects  your  interests  as 
much  as  mine?     It's  no  joking  matter." 

He  took  the  foot  of  the  table  growling  between 
his  teeth. 

"Unless  you  have  a  few  thousands  put  away 
somewhere.     I  haven't." 

Mr   Van   Wyk   dined   in   his   thoroughly   lit  -  up 


314  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

bungalow,  putting  a  point  of  splendour  in  the  night 
of  his  clearing  above  the  dark  bank  of  the  river. 
Afterwards  he  sat  down  to  his  piano,  and  in  a  pause 
he  became  aware  of  slow  footsteps  passing  on  the 
path  along  the  front.  A  plank  or  two  creaked 
under  a  heavy  tread;  he  swung  half  round  on  the 
music-stool,  listening  with  his  finger-tips  at  rest  on 
the  keyboard.  His  little  terrier  barked  violently, 
backing  in  from  the  verandah.  A  deep  voice  apolo- 
gised gravely  for  "this  intrusion."  He  walked  out 
quickly. 

At  the  head  of  the  steps  the  patriarchal  figure, 
who  was  the  new  captain  of  the  Sofala  apparently 
(he  had  seen  a  round  dozen  of  them,  but  not  one  of 
that  sort),  towered  without  advancing.  The  little 
dog  barked  unceasingly,  till  a  flick  of  Mr  Van 
Wyk's  handkerchief  made  him  spring  aside  into 
silence.  Captain  Whalley,  opening  the  matter,  was 
met  by  a  punctiliously  polite  but  determined 
opposition. 

They  carried  on  their  discussion  standing  where 
they  had  come  face  to  face.  Mr  Van  Wyk  observed 
his  visitor  with  attention.  Then  at  last,  as  if  forced 
out  of  his  reserve — 

"I  am  surprised  that  you  should  intercede  for 
such  a  confounded  fool." 

This  outbreak  was  almost  complimentary,  as  if 
its  meaning  had  been,  "That  such  a  man  as  you 
should  intercede  ! "  Captain  Whalley  let  it  pass  by 
without  flinching.  One  would  have  thought  he  had 
heard  nothing.  He  simply  went  on  to  state  that  he 
was  personally  interested  in  putting  things  straight 
between  them.     Personally  .  .  . 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  315 

But  Mr  Van  Wyk,  really  carried  away  by  his 
disgust  with  Massy,  became  very  incisive — 

"  Indeed — if  I  am  to  be  frank  with  you — his  whole 
character  does  not  seem  to  me  particularly  estimable 
or  trustworthy  ..." 

Captain  Whalley,  always  straight,  seemed  to 
grow  an  inch  taller  and  broader,  as  if  the  girth  of 
his  chest  had  suddenly  expanded  under  his  beard. 

"My  dear  sir,  you  don't  think  I  came  here  to 
discuss  a  man  with  whom  I  am  —  I  am  —  h'm — 
closely  associated." 

A  sort  of  solemn  silence  lasted  for  a  moment. 
He  was  not  used  to  asking  favours,  but  the  im- 
portance he  attached  to  this  affair  had  made  him 
willing  to  try.  .  .  .  Mr  Van  Wyk,  favourably  im- 
pressed, and  suddenly  mollified  by  a  desire  to  laugh, 
interrupted — 

"That's  all  right  if  you  make  it  a  personal 
matter ;  but  you  can  do  no  less  than  sit  down  and 
smoke  a  cigar  with  me." 

A  slight  pause,  then  Captain  Whalley  stepped 
forward  heavily.  As  to  the  regularity  of  the 
service,  for  the  future  he  made  himself  responsible 
for  it;  and  his  name  was  Whalley — perhaps  to  a 
sailor  (he  was  speaking  to  a  sailor,  was  he  not?) 
not  altogether  unfamiliar.  There  was  a  lighthouse 
now,  on  an  island.  Maybe  Mr  Van  Wyk  him- 
self .  .  . 

"Oh  yes.  Oh  indeed."  Mr  Van  Wyk  caught 
on  at  once.  He  indicated  a  chair.  How  very  in- 
teresting. For  his  own  part  he  had  seen  some 
service  in  the  last  Acheen  War,  but  had  never  been 
so   far   East.     Whalley  Island  ?     Of  course.     Now 


316  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

that  was  very  interesting.  What  changes  his  guest 
must  have  seen  since. 

"I  can  look  further  back  even — on  a  whole  half- 
century." 

Captain  Whalley  expanded  a  bit.  The  flavour  of 
a  good  cigar  (it  was  a  weakness)  had  gone  straight 
to  his  heart,  also  the  civility  of  that  young  man. 
There  was  something  in  that  accidental  contact  of 
which  he  had  been  starved  in  his  years  of  struggle. 

The  front  wall  retreating  made  a  square  recess 
furnished  like  a  room.  A  lamp  with  a  milky  glass 
shade,  suspended  below  the  slope  of  the  high  roof 
at  the  end  of  a  slender  brass  chain,  threw  a  bright 
round  of  light  upon  a  little  table  bearing  an  open 
book  and  an  ivory  paper-knife.  And,  in  the  trans- 
lucent shadows  beyond,  other  tables  could  be  seen, 
a  number  of  easy-chairs  of  various  shapes,  with  a 
great  profusion  of  skin  rugs  strewn  on  the  teak- 
wood  planking  all  over  the  verandah.  The  flower- 
ing creepers  scented  the  air.  Their  foliage  clipped 
out  between  the  uprights  made  as  if  several  frames 
of  thick  unstirring  leaves  reflecting  the  lamplight 
in  a  green  glow.  Through  the  opening  at  his  elbow 
Captain  Whalley  could  see  the  gangway  lantern  of 
the  Sofala  burning  dim  by  the  shore,  the  shadowy 
masses  of  the  town  beyond  the  open  lustrous  dark- 
ness of  the  river,  and,  as  if  hung  along  the  straight 
edge  of  the  projecting  eaves,  a  narrow  black  strip  of 
the  night  sky  full  of  stars  —  resplendent.  The 
famous  cigar  in  hand  he  had  a  moment  of  com- 
placency. 

"A  trifle.  Somebody  must  lead  the  way.  I  just 
showed  that  the  thing  could  be  done;  but  you  men 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  317 

brought  up  to  the  use  of  steam  cannot  conceive 
the  vast  importance  of  my  bit  of  venturesomeness 
to  the  Eastern  trade  of  the  time.  Why,  that  new- 
route  reduced  the  average  time  of  a  southern  pass- 
age by  eleven  days  for  more  than  half  the  year. 
Eleven  days !  It's  on  record.  But  the  remarkable 
thing — speaking  to  a  sailor — I  should  say  was  .  .  ." 

He  talked  well,  without  egotism,  professionally. 
The  powerful  voice,  produced  without  effort,  filled 
the  bungalow  even  into  the  empty  rooms  with  a 
deep  and  limpid  resonance,  seemed  to  make  a  still- 
ness outside ;  and  Mr  Van  Wyk  was  surprised  by 
the  serene  quality  of  its  tone,  like  the  perfection  of 
manly  gentleness.  Nursing  one  small  foot,  in  a  silk 
sock  and  a  patent  leather  shoe,  on  his  knee,  he  was 
immensely  entertained.  It  was  as  if  nobody  could 
talk  like  this  now,  and  the  over-shadowed  eyes,  the 
flowing  white  beard,  the  big  frame,  the  serenity,  the 
whole  temper  of  the  man,  were  an  amazing  survival 
from  the  prehistoric  times  of  the  world  coming  up  to 
him  out  of  the  sea. 

Captain  Whalley  had  been  also  the  pioneer  of  the 
early  trade  in  the  Gulf  of  Pe-tchi-li.  He  even  found 
occasion  to  mention  that  he  had  buried  his  "dear 
wife"  there  six -and -twenty  years  ago.  Mr  Van 
Wyk,  impassive,  could  not  help  speculating  in  his 
mind  swiftly  as  to  the  sort  of  woman  that  would 
mate  with  such  a  man.  Did  they  make  an  adven- 
turous and  well-matched  pair  ?  No.  Very  possibly 
she  had  been  small,  frail,  no  doubt  very  feminine — 
or  most  likely  commonplace  with  domestic  instincts, 
utterly  insignificant.  But  Captain  Whalley  was  no 
garrulous  bore,  and  shaking  his  head  as  if  to  dis- 


318  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

sipate  the  momentary  gloom  that  had  settled  on 
his  handsome  old  face,  he  alluded  conversationally 
to  Mr  Van  Wyk's  solitude. 

Mr  Van  Wyk  affirmed  that  sometimes  he  had 
more  company  than  he  wanted.  He  mentioned 
smilingly  some  of  the  peculiarities  of  his  inter- 
course with  "My  Sultan."  He  made  his  visits  in 
force.  Those  people  damaged  his  grass  plot  in  front 
(it  was  not  easy  to  obtain  some  approach  to  a  lawn 
in  the  tropics),  and  the  other  day  had  broken  down 
some  rare  bushes  he  had  planted  over  there.  And 
Captain  Whalley  remembered  immediately  that,  in 
'forty-seven,  the  then  Sultan,  "  this  man's  grand- 
father," had  been  notorious  as  a  great  protector 
of  the  piratical  fleets  of  praus  from  farther  East. 
They  had  a  safe  refuge  in  the  river  at  Batu  Beru. 
He  financed  more  especially  a  Balinini  chief  called 
Haji  Daman.  Captain  Whalley,  nodding  signi- 
ficantly his  bushy  white  eyebrows,  had  very  good 
reason  to  know  something  of  that.  The  world  had 
progressed  since  that  time. 

Mr  Yan  Wyk  demurred  with  unexpected  acrimony. 
Progressed  in  what  ?  he  wanted  to  know. 

Why,  in  knowledge  of  truth,  in  decency,  in  jus- 
tice, in  order — in  honesty  too,  since  men  harmed 
each  other  mostly  from  ignorance.  It  was,  Cap- 
tain Whalley  concluded  quaintly,  more  pleasant  to 
live  in. 

Mr  Van  Wyk  whimsically  would  not  admit  that 
Mr  Massy,  for  instance,  was  more  pleasant  naturally 
than  the  Balinini  pirates. 

The  river  had  not  gained  much  by  the  change. 
They  were  in  their  way  every  bit  as  honest.     Massy 


THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER.  319 

was  less  ferocious  than  Haji  Daman  no  doubt, 
but  .  .  . 

"And  what  about  you,  my  good  sir?"  Captain 
Whalley  laughed  a  deep  soft  laugh.  "  You  are  an 
improvement,  surely." 

He  continued  in  a  vein  of  pleasantry.  A  good 
cigar  was  better  than  a  knock  on  the  head  —  the 
sort  of  welcome  he  would  have  found  on  this  river 
forty  or  fifty  years  ago.  Then  leaning  forward 
slightly,  he  became  earnestly  serious.  It  seems  as 
if,  outside  their  own  sea-gipsy  tribes,  these  rovers 
had  hated  all  mankind  with  an  incomprehensible, 
bloodthirsty  hatred.  Meantime  their  depredations 
had  been  stopped,  and  what  was  the  consequence? 
The  new  generation  was  orderly,  peaceable,  settled 
in  prosperous  villages.  He  could  speak  from  per- 
sonal knowledge.  And  even  the  few  survivors  of 
that  time — old  men  now — had  changed  so  much, 
that  it  would  have  been  unkind  to  remember  against 
them  that  they  had  ever  slit  a  throat  in  their  lives. 
He  had  one  especially  in  his  mind's  eye :  a  digni- 
fied, venerable  headman  of  a  certain  large  coast 
village  about  sixty  miles  sou'west  of  Tampasuk. 
It  did  one's  heart  good  to  see  him — to  hear  that 
man  speak.  He  might  have  been  a  ferocious  savage 
once.  What  men  wanted  was  to  be  checked  by 
superior  intelligence,  by  superior  knowledge,  by 
superior  force  too — yes,  by  force  held  in  trust  from 
God  and  sanctified  by  its  use  in  accordance  with 
His  declared  will.  Captain  Whalley  believed  a  dis- 
position for  good  existed  in  every  man,  even  if  the 
world  were  not  a  very  happy  place  as  a  whole. 
In  the  wisdom  of   men  he  had  not  so  much  con- 


320  THE    END   OF   THE   TETHEB. 

fidence.  The  disposition  had  to  be  helped  up  pretty- 
sharply  sometimes,  he  admitted.  They  might  be 
silly,  wrongheaded,  unhappy ;  but  naturally  evil — 
no.  There  was  at  bottom  a  complete  harmlessness 
at  least  .  .  . 

"  Is  there  ?  "  Mr  Van  Wyk  snapped  acrimoniously. 

Captain  Whalley  laughed  at  the  interjection,  in 
the  good  humour  of  large,  tolerating  certitude.  He 
could  look  back  at  half  a  century,  he  pointed  out. 
The  smoke  oozed  placidly  through  the  white  hairs 
hiding  his  kindly  lips. 

"At  all  events,"  he  resumed  after  a  pause,  "I  am 
glad  that  they've  had  no  time  to  do  you  much  harm 
as  yet." 

This  allusion  to  his  comparative  youthfulness  did 
not  offend  Mr  Van  Wyk,  who  got  up  and  wriggled 
his  shoulders  with  an  enigmatic  half-smile.  They 
walked  out  together  amicably  into  the  starry  night 
towards  the  river-side.  Their  footsteps  resounded 
unequally  on  the  dark  path.  At  the  shore  end  of 
the  gangway  the  lantern,  hung  low  to  the  handrail, 
threw  a  vivid  light  on  the  white  legs  and  the  big 
black  feet  of  Mr  Massy  waiting  about  anxiously. 
From  the  waist  upwards  he  remained  shadowy,  with 
a  row  of  buttons  gleaming  up  to  the  vague  outline 
of  his  chin. 

"  You  may  thank  Captain  Whalley  for  this,"  Mr 
Van  Wyk  said  curtly  to  him  before  turning  away. 

The  lamps  on  the  verandah  flung  three  long  squares 
of  light  between  the  uprights  far  over  the  grass.  A 
bat  flitted  before  his  face  like  a  circling  flake  of 
velvety  blackness.  Along  the  jasmine  hedge  the 
night  air  seemed  heavy  with  the  fall  of  perfumed 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEK.  321 

dew ;  flower-beds  bordered  the  path ;  the  clipped 
bushes  uprose  in  dark  rounded  clumps  here  and 
there  before  the  house ;  the  dense  foliage  of  creepers 
filtered  the  sheen  of  the  lamplight  within  in  a  soft 
glow  all  along  the  front ;  and  everything  near  and 
far  stood  still  in  a  great  immobility,  in  a  great 
sweetness. 

Mr  Van  Wyk  (a  few  years  before  he  had  had 
occasion  to  imagine  himself  treated  more  badly  than 
anybody  alive  had  ever  been  by  a  woman)  felt  for 
Captain  Whalley's  optimistic  views  the  disdain  of 
a  man  who  had  once  been  credulous  himself.  His 
disgust  with  the  world  (the  woman  for  a  time  had 
filled  it  for  him  completely)  had  taken  the  form  of 
activity  in  retirement,  because,  though  capable  of 
great  depth  of  feeling,  he  was  energetic  and  essen- 
tially practical.  But  there  was  in  that  uncommon 
old  sailor,  drifting  on  the  outskirts  of  his  busy 
solitude,  something  that  fascinated  his  scepticism. 
His  very  simplicity  (amusing  enough)  was  like  a 
delicate  refinement  of  an  upright  character.  The 
striking  dignity  of  manner  could  be  nothing  else, 
in  a  man  reduced  to  such  a  humble  position,  but 
the  expression  of  something  essentially  noble  in  the 
character.  With  all  his  trust  in  mankind  he  was 
no  fool ;  the  serenity  of  his  temper  at  the  end  of 
so  many  years,  since  it  could  not  obviously  have 
been  appeased  by  success,  wore  an  air  of  profound 
wisdom.  Mr  Van  Wyk  was  amused  at  it  some- 
times. Even  the  very  physical  traits  of  the  old 
captain  of  the  Sofala,  his  powerful  frame,  his  re- 
poseful mien,  his  intelligent,  handsome  face,  the 
big  limbs,  the  benign  courtesy,  the  touch  of  rugged 


322  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

severity  in  the  shaggy  eyebrows,  made  up  a  seduc- 
tive personality.  Mr  Van  Wyk  disliked  littleness 
of  every  kind,  but  there  was  nothing  small  about 
that  man,  and  in  the  exemplary  regularity  of  many 
trips  an  intimacy  had  grown  up  between  them, 
a  warm  feeling  at  bottom  under  a  kindly  stateli- 
ness  of  forms  agreeable  to  his  fastidiousness. 

They  kept  their  respective  opinions  on  all  worldly 
matters.  His  other  convictions  Captain  Whalley 
never  intruded.  The  difference  of  their  ages  was 
like  another  bond  between  them.  Once,  when 
twitted  with  the  uncharitableness  of  his  youth, 
Mr  Van  Wyk,  running  his  eye  over  the  vast  pro- 
portions of  his  interlocutor,  retorted  in  friendly 
banter — 

"  Oh.  You'll  come  to  my  way  of  thinking  yet. 
You'll  have  plenty  of  time.  Don't  call  yourself 
old  :  you  look  good  for  a  round  hundred." 

But  he  could  not  help  his  stinging  incisiveness, 
and  though  moderating  it  by  an  almost  affectionate 
smile,  he  added — 

"And  by  then  you  will  probably  consent  to  die 
from  sheer  disgust." 

Captain  Whalley,  smiling  too,  shook  his  head. 
"  God  forbid  !  " 

He  thought  that  perhaps  on  the  whole  he  deserved 
something  better  than  to  die  in  such  sentiments. 
The  time  of  course  would  have  to  come,  and  he 
trusted  to  his  Maker  to  provide  a  manner  of  going 
out  of  which  he  need  not  be  ashamed.  For  the 
rest  he  hoped  he  would  live  to  a  hundred. if  need 
be  :  other  men  had  been  known ;  it  would  be  no 
miracle.     He  expected  no  miracles. 


THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER.  323 

The  pronounced,  argumentative  tone  caused  Mr 
Van  Wyk  to  raise  his  head  and  look  at  him  steadily. 
Captain  Whalley  was  gazing  fixedly  with  a  rapt  ex- 
pression, as  though  he  had  seen  his  Creator's  favour- 
able decree  written  in  mysterious  characters  on  the 
wall.  He  kept  perfectly  motionless  for  a  few  seconds, 
then  got  his  vast  bulk  on  to  his  feet  so  impetuously 
that  Mr  Van  Wyk  was  startled. 

He  struck  first  a  heavy  blow  on  his  inflated  chest : 
and,  throwing  out  horizontally  a  big  arm  that  re- 
mained steady,  extended  in  the  air  like  the  limb  of 
a  tree  on  a  windless  day — 

"  Not  a  pain  or  an  ache  there.  Can  you  see  this 
shake  in  the  least  ?  " 

His  voice  was  low,  in  an  awing,  confident  con- 
trast with  the  headlong  emphasis  of  his  movements. 
He  sat  down  abruptly. 

"  This  isn't  to  boast  of  it,  you  know.  I  am  noth- 
ing," he  said  in  his  effortless  strong  voice,  that 
seemed  to  come  out  as  naturally  as  a  river  flows. 
He  picked  up  the  stump  of  the  cigar  he  had  laid 
aside,  and  added  peacefully,  with  a  slight  nod,  "  As 
it  happens,  my  life  is  necessary  ;  it  isn't  my  own, 
it  isn't — God  knows." 

He  did  not  say  much  for  the  rest  of  the  evening, 
but  several  times  Mr  Van  Wyk  detected  a  faint  smile 
of  assurance  flitting  under  the  heavy  moustache. 

Later  on  Captain  Whalley  would  now  and  then 
consent  to  dine  "at  the  house."  He  could  even  be 
induced  to  drink  a  glass  of  wine.  "Don't  think  I 
am  afraid  of  it,  my  good  sir,"  he  explained.  "There 
was  a  very  good  reason  why  I  should  give  it  up." 

On  another   occasion,   leaning   back   at   ease,   he 


324  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

remarked,  "  You  have  treated  me  most  —  most 
humanely,  my  dear  Mr  Van  Wyk,  from  the  very 
first." 

"You'll  admit  there  was  some  merit,"  Mr  Van 
"Wyk  hinted  slily.  "  An  associate  of  that  excellent 
Massy.  .  .  .  Well,  well,  my  dear  captain,  I  won't 
say  a  word  against  him." 

"  It  would  be  no  use  your  saying  anything  against 
him,"  Captain  Whalley  affirmed  a  little  moodily. 
"  As  I've  told  you  before,  my  life  —  my  work,  is 
necessary,  not  for  myself  alone.  I  can't  choose" 
.  .  .  He  paused,  turned  the  glass  before  him  right 
round.  ...  "I  have  an  only  child — a  daughter." 

The  ample  downward  sweep  of  his  arm  over  the 
table  seemed  to  suggest  a  small  girl  at  a  vast 
distance.  "I  hope  to  see  her  once  more  before  I 
die.  Meantime  it's  enough  to  know  that  she  has 
me  sound  and  solid,  thank  God.  You  can't  under- 
stand how  one  feels.  Bone  of  my  bone,  flesh  of 
my  flesh  ;  the  very  image  of  my  poor  wife.  Well, 
she  .  .  ." 

Again  he  paused,  then  pronounced  stoically  the 
words,  "  She  has  a  hard  struggle." 

And  his  head  fell  on  his  breast,  his  eyebrows 
remained  knitted,  as  by  an  effort  of  meditation. 
But  generally  his  mind  seemed  steeped  in  the 
serenity  of  boundless  trust  in  a  higher  power.  Mr 
Van  Wyk  wondered  sometimes  how  much  of  it  was 
due  to  the  splendid  vitality  of  the  man,  to  the 
bodily  vigour  which  seems  to  impart  something  of 
its  force  to  the  soul.  But  he  had  learned  to  like 
him  very  much. 


THE  END  OF  THE  TETHER.  325 


XIII. 

This  was  the  reason  why  Mr  Sterne's  confidential 
communication,  delivered  hurriedly  on  the  shore 
alongside  the  dark  silent  ship,  had  disturbed  his 
equanimity.  It  was  the  most  incomprehensible  and 
unexpected  thing  that  could  happen  ;  and  the  per- 
turbation of  his  spirit  was  so  great  that,  forgetting 
all  about  his  letters,  he  ran  rapidly  up  the  bridge 
ladder. 

The  portable  table  was  being  put  together  for 
dinner  to  the  left  of  the  wheel  by  two  pig-tailed 
"  boys,"  who  as  usual  snarled  at  each  other  over 
the  job,  while  another,  a  doleful,  burly,  very  yellow 
Chinaman,  resembling  Mr  Massy,  waited  apatheti- 
cally with  the  cloth  over  his  arm  and  a  pile  of 
thick  dinner-plates  against  his  chest.  A  common 
cabin  lamp  with  its  globe  missing,  brought  up  from 
below,  had  been  hooked  to  the  wooden  framework  of 
the  awning  ;  the  side-screens  had  been  lowered  all 
round ;  Captain  Whalley  filling  the  depths  of  the 
wicker-chair  seemed  to  sit  benumbed  in  a  canvas 
tent  crudely  lighted,  and  used  for  the  storing  of 
nautical  objects  ;  a  shabby  steering-wheel,  a  battered 
brass  binnacle  on  a  stout  mahogany  stand,  two  dingy 
life-buoys,  an  old  cork  fender  lying  in  a  corner, 
dilapidated  deck -lockers  with  loops  of  thin  rope 
instead  of  door-handles. 

He  shook  off  the  appearance  of  numbness  to  re- 
turn Mr  Van  Wyk's  unusually  brisk  greeting,  but 
relapsed  directly  afterwards.     To  accept  a  pressing 


326  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

invitation  to  dinner  "  up  at  the  house "  cost  him 
another  very  visible  physical  effort.  Mr  Van  Wyk, 
perplexed,  folded  his  arms,  and  leaning  back  against 
the  rail,  with  his  little,  black,  shiny  feet  well  out, 
examined  him  covertly. 

"  I've  noticed  of  late  that  you  are  not  quite  your- 
self, old  friend." 

He  put  an  affectionate  gentleness  into  the  last 
two  words.  The  real  intimacy  of  their  intercourse 
had  never  been  so  vividly  expressed  before. 

"Tut,  tut,  tut!" 

The  wicker-chair  creaked  heavily. 

"Irritable,"  commented  Mr  Van  Wyk  to  himself; 
and  aloud,  "  I'll  expect  to  see  you  in  half  an  hour, 
then,"  he  said  negligently,  moving  off. 

"  In  half  an  hour,"  Captain  Whalley's  rigid 
silvery  head  repeated  behind  him  as  if  out  of  a 
trance. 

Amidships,  below,  two  voices,  close  against  the 
engine-room,  could  be  heard  answering  each  other 
— one  angry  and  slow,  the  other  alert. 

"I  tell  you  the  beast  has  locked  himself  in  to 
get  drunk." 

"  Can't  help  it  now,  Mr  Massy.  After  all,  a  man 
has  a  right  to  shut  himself  up  in  his  cabin  in  his 
own  time." 

"Not  to  get  drunk." 

"  I  heard  him  swear  that  the  worry  with  the 
boilers  was  enough  to  drive  any  man  to  drink," 
Sterne  said  maliciously. 

Massy  hissed  out  something  about  bursting  the 
door  in.  Mr  Van  Wyk,  to  avoid  them,  crossed  in 
the  dark  to    the   other  side   of    the  deserted  deck. 


THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER.  327 

The  planking  of  the  little  wharf  rattled  faintly 
under  his  hasty  feet. 

"  Mr  Van  Wyk  !     Mr  Van  Wyk  !  " 

He  walked  on :  somebody  was  running  on  the 
path.     "  You've  forgotten  to  get  your  mail." 

Sterne,  holding  a  bundle  of  papers  in  his  hand, 
caught  up  with  him. 

"Oh,  thanks." 

But,  as  the  other  continued  at  his  elbow,  Mr 
Van  Wyk  stopped  short.  The  overhanging  eaves, 
descending  low  upon  the  lighted  front  of  the 
bungalow,  threw  their  black  straight- edged  shadow 
into  the  great  body  of  the  night  on  that  side. 
Everything  was  very  still.  A  tinkle  of  cutlery  and 
a  slight  jingle  of  glasses  were  heard.  Mr  Van 
Wyk's  servants  were  laying  the  table  for  two  on 
the  verandah. 

"  I  am  afraid  you  give  me  no  credit  whatever  for 
my  good  intentions  in  the  matter  I've  spoken  to  you 
about,"  said  Sterne. 

"I  simply  don't  understand  you." 

"  Captain  Whalley  is  a  very  audacious  man,  but 
he  will  understand  that  his  game  is  up.  That's  all 
that  anybody  need  ever  know  of  it  from  me.  Be- 
lieve me,  I  am  very  considerate  in  this,  but  duty  is 
duty.  I  don't  want  to  make  a  fuss.  All  I  ask 
you,  as  his  friend,  is  to  tell  him  from  me  that  the 
game's  up.     That  will  be  sufficient." 

Mr  Van  Wyk  felt  a  loathsome  dismay  at  this 
queer  privilege  of  friendship.  He  would  not  de- 
mean himself  by  asking  for  the  slightest  explana- 
tion ;  to  drive  the  other  away  with  contumely  he 
did  not   think  prudent — as  yet,  at  any  rate.       So 


328  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

much  assurance  staggered  him.  Who  could  tell 
what  there  could  be  in  it,  he  thought?  His  regard 
for  Captain  Whalley  had  the  tenacity  of  a  dis- 
interested sentiment,  and  his  practical  instinct 
coming  to  his  aid,  he  concealed  his  scorn. 

"I  gather,  then,  that  this  is  something  grave." 

"Very  grave,"  Sterne  assented  solemnly,  delighted 
at  having  produced  an  effect  at  last.  He  was  ready 
to  add  some  effusive  protestations  of  regret  at  the 
"  unavoidable  necessity,"  but  Mr  Van  Wyk  cut  him 
short — very  civilly,  however. 

Once  on  the  verandah  Mr  Van  Wyk  put  his 
hands  in  his  pockets,  and,  straddling  his  legs, 
stared  down  at  a  black  panther  skin  lying  on  the 
floor  before  a  rocking  -  chair.  "  It  looks  as  if  the 
fellow  had  not  the  pluck  to  play  his  own  precious 
game  openly,"  he  thought. 

This  was  true  enough.  In  the  face  of  Massy's 
last  rebuff  Sterne  dared  not  declare  his  knowledge. 
His  object  was  simply  to  get  charge  of  the  steamer 
and  keep  it  for  some  time.  Massy  would  never  for- 
give him  for  forcing  himself  on ;  but  if  Captain 
Whalley  left  the  ship  of  his  own  accord,  the  com- 
mand would  devolve  upon  him  for  the  rest  of  the 
trip ;  so  he  hit  upon  the  brilliant  idea  of  scaring 
the  old  man  away.  A  vague  menace,  a  mere  hint, 
would  be  enough  in  such  a  brazen  case;  and,  with 
a  strange  admixture  of  compassion,  he  thought  that 
Batu  Beru  was  a  very  good  place  for  throwing  up 
the  sponge.  The  skipper  could  go  ashore  quietly, 
and  stay  with  that  Dutchman  of  his.  Weren't 
these  two  as  thick  as  thieves  together?  And  on 
reflection  he  seemed  to  see  that  there  was  a  way 


THE    END    OF   THE   TETHEE.  329 

to  work  the  whole  thing  through  that  great  friend 
of  the  old  man's.  This  was  another  brilliant  idea. 
He  had  an  inborn  preference  for  circuitous  methods. 
In  this  particular  case  he  desired  to  remain  in  the 
background  as  much  as  possible,  to  avoid  exasper- 
ating Massy  needlessly.  No  fuss  !  Let  it  all  happen 
naturally. 

Mr  Yan  Wyk  all  through  the  dinner  was  con- 
scious of  a  sense  of  isolation  that  invades  some- 
times the  closeness  of  human  intercourse.  Captain 
Whalley  failed  lamentably  and  obviously  in  his 
attempts  to  eat  something.  He  seemed  overcome 
by  a  strange  absent-mindedness.  His  hand  would 
hover  irresolutely,  as  if  left  without  guidance  by 
a  preoccupied  mind.  Mr  Van  Wyk  had  heard  him 
coming  up  from  a  long  way  off  in  the  profound 
stillness  of  the  river -side,  and  had  noticed  the 
irresolute  character  of  the  footfalls.  The  toe  of  his 
boot  had  struck  the  bottom  stair  as  though  he  had 
come  along  mooning  with  his  head  in  the  air  right 
up  to  the  steps  of  the  verandah.  Had  the  captain 
of  the  Sofala  been  another  sort  of  man  he  would 
have  suspected  the  work  of  age  there.  But  one 
glance  at  him  was  enough.  Time — after,  indeed, 
marking  him  for  its  own — had  given  him  up  to  his 
usefulness,  in  which  his  simple  faith  would  see  a 
proof  of  Divine  mercy.  "How  could  I  contrive  to 
warn  him?"  Mr  Yan  Wyk  wondered,  as  if  Captain 
Whalley  had  been  miles  and  miles  away,  out  of  sight 
and  earshot  of  all  evil.  He  was  sickened  by  an 
immense  disgust  of  Sterne.  To  even  mention  his 
threat  to  a  man  like  Whalley  would  be  positively 
indecent.     There  was  something  more  vile  and  in- 


330  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

suiting  in  its  hint  than  in  a  definite  charge  of  crime 
— the  debasing  taint  of  blackmailing.  "  What  could 
any  one  bring  against  him  ?  "  he  asked  himself.  This 
was  a  limpid  personality.  "And  for  what  object?" 
The  Power  that  man  trusted  had  thought  fit  to 
leave  him  nothing  on  earth  that  envy  could  lay 
hold  of,  except  a  bare  crust  of  bread. 

"Won't  you  try  some  of  this?"  he  asked,  pushing 
a  dish  slightly.  Suddenly  it  seemed  to  Mr  Van 
Wyk  that  Sterne  might  possibly  be  coveting  the 
command  of  the  Sofala.  His  cynicism  was  quite 
startled  by  what  looked  like  a  proof  that  no  man 
may  count  himself  safe  from  his  kind  unless  in 
the  very  abyss  of  misery.  An  intrigue  of  that 
sort  was  hardly  worth  troubling  about,  he  judged ; 
but  still,  with  such  a  fool  as  Massy  to  deal  with, 
Whalley  ought  to  and  must  be  warned. 

At  this  moment  Captain  Whalley,  bolt  upright, 
the  deep  cavities  of  the  eyes  overhung  by  a  bushy 
frown,  and  one  large  brown  hand  resting  on  each 
side  of  his  empty  plate,  spoke  across  the  table-cloth 
abruptly — 

"Mr  Van  Wyk,  you've  always  treated  me  with 
the  most  humane  consideration." 

"  My  dear  captain,  you  make  too  much  of  a  simple 
fact  that  I  am  not  a  savage."  Mr  Van  Wyk, 
utterly  revolted  by  the  thought  of  Sterne's  obscure 
attempt,  raised  his  voice  incisively,  as  if  the  mate 
had  been  hiding  somewhere  within  earshot.  "Any 
consideration  I  have  been  able  to  show  was  no  more 
than  the  rightful  due  of  a  character  I've  learned  to 
regard  by  this  time  with  an  esteem  that  nothing 
can  shake." 


THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER.  331 

A  slight  ring  of  glass  made  him  lift  his  eyes  from 
the  slice  of  pine -apple  he  was  cutting  into  small 
pieces  on  his  plate.  In  changing  his  position  Captain 
Whalley  had  contrived  to  upset  an  empty  tumbler. 

Without  looking  that  way,  leaning  sideways  on 
his  elbow,  his  other  hand  shading  his  brow,  he 
groped  shakily  for  it,  then  desisted.  Van  Wyk 
stared  blankly,  as  if  something  momentous  had 
happened  all  at  once.  He  did  not  know  why  he 
should  feel  so  startled ;  but  he  forgot  Sterne  utterly 
for  the  moment. 

"Why,  what's  the  matter?" 

And  Captain  Whalley,  half-averted,  in  a  deadened, 
agitated  voice,  muttered — 

"Esteem!" 

"And  I  may  add  something  more,"  Mr  Yan  Wyk, 
very  steady-eyed,  pronounced  slowly. 

"Hold!  Enough!"  Captain  Whalley  did  not 
change  his  attitude  or  raise  his  voice.  "  Say  no 
more !  I  can  make  you  no  return.  I  am  too  poor 
even  for  that  now.  Your  esteem  is  worth  having. 
You  are  not  a  man  that  would  stoop  to  deceive 
the  poorest  sort  of  devil  on  earth,  or  make  a  ship 
unsea worthy  every  time  he  takes  her  to  sea." 

Mr  Yan  Wyk,  leaning  forward,  his  face  gone  pink 
all  over,  with  the  starched  table-napkin  over  his 
knees,  was  inclined  to  mistrust  his  senses,  his  power 
of  comprehension,  the  sanity  of  his  guest. 

"  Where  ?  Why  ?  In  the  name  of  God  !— what's 
this?     What  ship?     I  don't  understand  who    .    .    ." 

"  Then,  in  the  name  of  God,  it  is  I !  A  ship's 
unseaworthy  when  her  captain  can't  see.  I  am 
going  blind." 


332  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

Mr  Van  Wyk  made  a  slight  movement,  and  sat 
very  still  afterwards  for  a  few  seconds  ;  then,  with 
the  thought  of  Sterne's  "  The  game's  up,"  he  ducked 
under  the  table  to  pick  up  the  napkin  which  had 
slipped  off  his  knees.  This  was  the  game  that  was 
up.  And  at  the  same  time  the  muffled  voice  of  Cap- 
tain Whalley  passed  over  him — 

"  I've  deceived  them  all.     Nobody  knows." 

He  emerged  flushed  to  the  eyes.  Captain  Whalley, 
motionless  under  the  full  blaze  of  the  lamp,  shaded 
his  face  with  his  hand. 

"And  you  had  that  courage?" 

"Call  it  by  what  name  you  like.  But  you  are 
a  humane  man — a — a — gentleman,  Mr  Van  Wyk. 
You  may  have  asked  me  what  I  had  done  with  my 
conscience." 

He  seemed  to  muse,  profoundly  silent,  very  still 
in  his  mournful  pose. 

"I  began  to  tamper  with  it  in  my  pride.  You 
begin  to  see  a  lot  of  things  when  you  are  going 
blind.  I  could  not  be  frank  with  an  old  chum 
even.  I  was  not  frank  with  Massy — no,  not  alto- 
gether. I  knew  he  took  me  for  a  wealthy  sailor 
fool,  and  I  let  him.  I  wanted  to  keep  up  my  im- 
portance— because  there  was  poor  Ivy  away  there 
— my  daughter.  What  did  I  want  to  trade  on  his 
misery  for  ?  I  did  trade  on  it — for  her.  And  now, 
what  mercy  could  I  expect  from  him?  He  would 
trade  on  mine  if  he  knew  it.  He  would  hunt  the 
old  fraud  out,  and  stick  to  the  money  for  a  year. 
Ivy's  money.  And  I  haven't  kept  a  penny  for 
myself.  How  am  I  going  to  live  for  a  year.  A 
year !  In  a  year  there  will  be  no  sun  in  the  sky 
for  her  father." 


THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER.  333 

His  deep  voice  came  out,  awfully  veiled,  as  though 
he  had  been  overwhelmed  by  the  earth  of  a  land- 
slide, and  talking  to  you  of  the  thoughts  that  haunt 
the  dead  in  their  graves.  A  cold  shudder  ran  down 
Mr  Van  Wyk's  back. 

"And  how  long  is  it  since  you  have  .  .  .?"  he 
began. 

"  It  was  a  long  time  before  I  could  bring  my- 
self to  believe  in  this — this — visitation,"  Captain 
Whalley  spoke  with  gloomy  patience  from  under 
his  hand. 

He  had  not  thought  he  had  deserved  it.  He  had 
begun  by  deceiving  himself  from  day  to  day,  from 
week  to  week.  He  had  the  Serang  at  hand  there 
— an  old  servant.  It  came  on  gradually,  and  when 
he  could  no  longer  deceive  himself  .  .  . 

His  voice  died  out  almost. 

"Rather  than  give  her  up  I  set  myself  to  deceive 
you  all." 

"  It's  incredible,"  whispered  Mr  Van  Wyk.  Cap- 
tain Whalley's  appalling  murmur  flowed  on. 

"Not  even  the  sign  of  God's  anger  could  make 
me  forget  her.  How  could  I  forsake  my  child,  feel- 
ing my  vigour  all  the  time — the  blood  warm  within 
me  ?  Warm  as  yours.  It  seems  to  me  that,  like  the 
blinded  Samson,  I  would  find  the  strength  to 
shake  down  a  temple  upon  my  head.  She's  a 
struggling  woman — my  own  child  that  we  used  to 
pray  over  together,  my  poor  wife  and  I.  Do  you 
remember  that  day  I  as  well  as  told  you  that  I 
believed  God  would  let  me  live  to  a  hundred  for  her 
sake  ?  What  sin  is  there  in  loving  your  child  ?  Do 
you  see  it?  I  was  ready  for  her  sake  to  live  for 
ever.     I  half  believed  I  would.     I've  been  praying 


334  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

for  death  since.  Ha  !  Presumptuous  man  —  you 
wanted  to  live  ..." 

A  tremendous,  shuddering  upheaval  of  that  big 
frame,  shaken  by  a  gasping  sob,  set  the  glasses  jing- 
ling all  over  the  table,  seemed  to  make  the  whole 
house  tremble  to  the  roof -tree.  And  Mr  Van  Wyk, 
whose  feeling  of  outraged  love  had  been  translated 
into  a  form  of  struggle  with  nature,  understood 
very  well  that,  for  that  man  whose  whole  life 
had  been  conditioned  by  action,  there  could  exist 
no  other  expression  for  all  the  emotions ;  that,  to 
voluntarily  cease  venturing,  doing,  enduring,  for 
his  child's  sake,  would  have  been  exactly  like  pluck- 
ing his  warm  love  for  her  out  of  his  living  heart. 
Something  too  monstrous,  too  impossible,  even  to 
conceive. 

Captain  Whalley  had  not  changed  his  attitude, 
that  seemed  to  express  something  of  shame,  sorrow, 
and  defiance. 

"I  have  even  deceived  you.  If  it  had  not  been 
for  that  word  'esteem.'  These  are  not  the  words 
for  me.  I  would  have  lied  to  you.  Haven't  I 
lied  to  you  ?  Weren't  you  going  to  trust  your  pro- 
perty on  board  this  very  trip  ?  " 

"I  have  a  floating  yearly  policy,"  Mr  Van  Wyk 
said  almost  unwittingly,  and  was  amazed  at  the 
sudden  cropping  up  of  a  commercial  detail. 

"  The  ship  is  unsea worthy,  I  tell  you.  The  policy 
would  be  invalid  if  it  were  known  .  .  ." 

"  We  shall  share  the  guilt,  then." 

"Nothing  could  make  mine  less,"  said  Captain 
Whalley. 

He  had  not  dared  to  consult  a  doctor;  the  man 


THE    END    OF   THE    TETHER.  335 

would  have  perhaps  asked  who  he  was,  what  he 
was  doing ;  Massy  might  have  heard  something. 
He  had  lived  on  without  any  help,  human  or  divine. 
The  very  prayers  stuck  in  his  throat.  What  was 
there  to  pray  for  ?  and  death  seemed  as  far  as  ever. 
Once  he  got  into  his  cabin  he  dared  not  come  out 
again ;  when  he  sat  down  he  dared  not  get  up ;  he 
dared  not  raise  his  eyes  to  anybody's  face ;  he  felt 
reluctant  to  look  upon  the  sea  or  up  to  the  sky. 
The  world  was  fading  before  his  great  fear  of  giving 
himself  away.  The  old  ship  was  his  last  friend ;  he 
was  not  afraid  of  her;  he  knew  every  inch  of  her 
deck;  but  at  her  too  he  hardly  dared  to  look,  for 
fear  of  finding  he  could  see  less  than  the  day  before. 
A  great  incertitude  enveloped  him.  The  horizon 
was  gone ;  the  sky  mingled  darkly  with  the  sea. 
Who  was  this  figure  standing  over  yonder?  what 
was  this  thing  lying  down  there?  And  a  frightful 
doubt  of  the  reality  of  what  he  could  see  made  even 
the  remnant  of  sight  that  remained  to  him  an  added 
torment,  a  pitfall  always  open  for  his  miserable  pre- 
tence. He  was  afraid  to  stumble  inexcusably  over 
something — to  say  a  fatal  Yes  or  No  to  a  question. 
The  hand  of  God  was  upon  him,  but  it  could  not  tear 
him  away  from  his  child.  And,  as  if  in  a  nightmare  of 
humiliation,  every  featureless  man  seemed  an  enemy. 

He  let  his  hand  fall  heavily  on  the  table.  Mr 
Van  Wyk,  arms  down,  chin  on  breast,  with  a 
gleam  of  white  teeth  pressing  on  the  lower  lip, 
meditated  on  Sterne's  "The  game's  up." 

"The  Serang  of  course  does  not  know." 

"  Nobody,"  said  Captain  Whalley,  with  assurance. 

"  Ah  yes.     Nobody.     Very  well.     Can  you  keep  it 


336  THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

up  to  the  end  of  the  trip?     That  is  the  last  under 
the  agreement  with  Massy." 

Captain  Whalley  got  up  and  stood  erect,  very 
stately,  with  the  great  white  beard  lying  like  a 
silver  breastplate  over  the  awful  secret  of  his  heart. 
Yes ;  that  was  the  only  hope  there  was  for  him  of 
ever  seeing  her  again,  of  securing  the  money,  the 
last  he  could  do  for  her,  before  he  crept  away  some- 
where— useless,  a  burden,  a  reproach  to  himself.  His 
voice  faltered. 

"  Think  of  it !  Never  see  her  any  more  :  the  only 
human  being  besides  myself  now  on  earth  that  can 
remember  my  wife.  She's  just  like  her  mother. 
Lucky  the  poor  woman  is  where  there  are  no  tears 
shed  over  those  they  loved  on  earth  and  that  re- 
main to  pray  not  to  be  led  into  temptation — because, 
I  suppose,  the  blessed  know  the  secret  of  grace  in 
God's  dealings  with  His  created  children." 
He  swayed  a  little,  said  with  austere  dignity — 
"  I  don't.  I  know  only  the  child  He  has  given  me." 
And  he  began  to  walk.  Mr  Van  Wyk,  jumping 
up,  saw  the  full  meaning  of  the  rigid  head,  the 
hesitating  feet,  the  vaguely  extended  hand.  His 
heart  was  beating  fast ;  he  moved  a  chair  aside, 
and  instinctively  advanced  as  if  to  offer  his  arm. 
But  Captain  Whalley  passed  him  by,  making  for 
the  stairs  quite  straight. 

"He  could  not  see  me  at  all  out  of  his  line,"  Van 
Wyk  thought,  with  a  sort  of  awe.    Then  going  to  the 
head  of  the  stairs,  he  asked  a  little  tremulously — 
"  What  is  it  like — like  a  mist — like  .  .  ." 
Captain  Whalley,   half-way  down,   stopped,   and 
turned  round  undismayed  to  answer. 


THE    END   OF   THE   TETHEE.  337 

"  It  is  as  if  the  light  were  ebbing  out  of  the  world. 
Have  you  ever  watched  the  ebbing  sea  on  an  open 
stretch  of  sands  withdrawing  farther  and  farther 
away  from  you  ?  It  is  like  this — only  there  will  be 
no  flood  to  follow.  Never.  It  is  as  if  the  sun  were 
growing  smaller,  the  stars  going  out  one  by  one. 
There  can't  be  many  left  that  I  can  see  by  this. 
But  I  haven't  had  the  courage  to  look  of  late  .  .  ." 
He  must  have  been  able  to  make  out  Mr  Van  Wyk, 
because  he  checked  him  by  an  authoritative  gesture 
and  a  stoical — 

"  I  can  get  about  alone  yet." 

It  was  as  if  he  had  taken  his  line,  and  would 
accept  no  help  from  men,  after  having  been  cast 
out,  like  a  presumptuous  Titan,  from  his  heaven. 
Mr  Yan  Wyk,  arrested,  seemed  to  count  the  foot- 
steps right  out  of  earshot.  He  walked  between 
the  tables,  tapping  smartly  with  his  heels,  took  up 
a  paper-knife,  dropped  it  after  a  vague  glance  along 
the  blade;  then  happening  upon  the  piano,  struck 
a  few  chords  again  and  again,  vigorously,  standing 
up  before  the  keyboard  with  an  attentive  poise  of 
the  head  like  a  piano-tuner ;  closing  it,  he  pivoted 
on  his  heels  brusquely,  avoided  the  little  terrier 
sleeping  trustfully  on  crossed  forepaws,  came  upon 
the  stairs  next,  and,  as  though  he  had  lost  his 
balance  on  the  top  step,  ran  down  headlong  out 
of  the  house.  His  servants,  beginning  to  clear  the 
table,  heard  him  mutter  to  himself  (evil  words  no 
doubt)  down  there,  and  then  after  a  pause  go  away 
with  a  strolling  gait  in  the  direction  of  the  wharf. 

The  bulwarks  of  the  Sofala  lying  alongside  the 
bank   made    a   low,   black  wall    on  the  undulating 

Y 


338  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHEE. 

contour  of  the  shore.  Two  masts  and  a  funnel 
uprose  from  behind  it  with  a  great  rake,  as  if 
about  to  fall :  a  solid,  square  elevation  in  the  middle 
bore  the  ghostly  shapes  of  white  boats,  the  curves 
of  davits,  lines  of  rail  and  stanchions,  all  confused 
and  mingling  darkly  everywhere;  but  low  down, 
amidships,  a  single  lighted  port  stared  out  on  the 
night,  perfectly  round,  like  a  small,  full  moon, 
whose  yellow  beam  caught  a  patch  of  wet  mud, 
the  edge  of  trodden  grass,  two  turns  of  heavy 
cable  wound  round  the  foot  of  a  thick  wooden 
post  in  the  ground. 

Mr  Van  Wyk,  peering  alongside,  heard  a  muzzy 
boastful  voice  apparently  jeering  at  a  person  called 
Prendergast.  It  mouthed  abuse  thickly,  choked; 
then  pronounced  very  distinctly  the  word  "Murphy," 
and  chuckled.  Glass  tinkled  tremulously.  All  these 
sounds  came  from  the  lighted  port.  Mr  Van  Wyk 
hesitated,  stooped ;  it  was  impossible  to  look  through 
unless  he  went  down  into  the  mud. 

"  Sterne,"  he  said,  half  aloud. 

The  drunken  voice  within  said  gladly — 

"  Sterne — of  course.  Look  at  him  blink.  Look 
at  him  !  Sterne,  Whalley,  Massy.  Massy,  Wh alley, 
Sterne.  But  Massy's  the  best.  You  can't  come 
over  him.     He  would  just  love  to  see  you  starve." 

Mr  Van  Wyk  moved  away,  made  out  farther 
forward  a  shadowy  head  stuck  out  from  under 
the  awnings  as  if  on  the  watch,  and  spoke  quietly 
in  Malay,  "Is  the  mate  asleep?" 

"No.     Here,  at  your  service." 

In  a  moment  Sterne  appeared,  walking  as  noise- 
lessly as  a  cat  on  the  wharf. 


THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER.  339 

"It's  so  jolly  dark,  and  I  had  no  idea  you  would 
be  down  to-night." 

"What's  this  horrible  raving?"  asked  Mr  Van 
Wyk,  as  if  to  explain  the  cause  of  a  shudder  that 
ran  over  him  audibly. 

"Jack's  broken  out  on  a  drunk.  That's  our 
second.  It's  his  way.  He  will  be  right  enough 
by  to-morrow  afternoon,  only  Mr  Massy  will  keep 
on  worrying  up  and  down  the  deck.  We  had  better 
get  away." 

He  muttered  suggestively  of  a  talk  "up  at  the 
house."  He  had  long  desired  to  effect  an  entrance 
there,  but  Mr  Van  Wyk  nonchalantly  demurred: 
it  would  not,  he  feared,  be  quite  prudent,  perhaps ; 
and  the  opaque  black  shadow  under  one  of  the  two 
big  trees  left  at  the  landing-place  swallowed  them 
up,  impenetrably  dense,  by  the  side  of  the  wide 
river,  that  seemed  to  spin  into  threads  of  glitter 
the  light  of  a  few  big  stars  dropped  here  and 
there  upon  its  outspread  and  flowing  stillness. 

"The  situation  is  grave  beyond  doubt,"  Mr  Yan 
Wyk  said.  Ghost-like  in  their  white  clothes  they 
could  not  distinguish  each  others'  features,  and 
their  feet  made  no  sound  on  the  soft  earth.  A 
sort  of  purring  was  heard.  Mr  Sterne  felt  grati- 
fied by  such  a  beginning. 

"I  thought,  Mr  Yan  Wyk,  a  gentleman  of  your 
sort  would  see  at  once  how  awkwardly  I  was 
situated." 

"  Yes,  very.  Obviously  his  health  is  bad.  Perhaps 
he's  breaking  up.  I  see,  and  he  himself  is  well  aware 
— I  assume  I  am  speaking  to  a  man  of  sense — he  is 
well  aware  that  his  legs  are  giving  out." 


340  THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

"  His  legs — ah  !  "  Mr  Sterne  was  disconcerted, 
and  then  turned  sulky.  "  You  may  call  it  his 
legs  if  you  like ;  what  I  want  to  know  is  whether 
he  intends  to  clear  out  quietly.  That's  a  good  one, 
too  !     His  legs  !     Pooh  !  " 

"Why,  yes.  Only  look  at  the  way  he  walks," 
Mr  Van  Wyk  took  him  up  in  a  perfectly  cool 
and  undoubting  tone.  "  The  question,  however, 
is  whether  youi*  sense  of  duty  does  not  carry  you 
too  far  from  your  true  interest.  After  all,  I  too 
could  do  something  to  serve  you.  You  know  who 
I  am." 

"Everybody- along  the  Straits  has  heard  of  you, 
sir." 

Mr  Van  Wyk  presumed  that  this  meant  some- 
thing favourable.  Sterne  had  a  soft  laugh  at  this 
pleasantry.  He  should  think  so  !  To  the  opening 
statement,  that  the  partnership  agreement  was  to 
expire  at  the  end  of  this  very  trip,  he  gave  an 
attentive  assent.  He  was  aware.  One  heard  of 
nothing  else  on  board  all  the  blessed  day  long.  As 
to  Massy,  it  was  no  secret  that  he  was  in  a  jolly 
deep  hole  with  these  worn-out  boilers.  He  would 
have  to  borrow  somewhere  a  couple  of  hundred 
first  of  all  to  pay  off  the  captain ;  and  then  he 
would  have  to  raise  money  on  mortgage  upon 
the  ship  for  the  new  boilers — that  is,  if  he  could 
find  a  lender  at  all.  At  best  it  meant  loss  of 
time,  a  break  in  the  trade,  short  earnings  for  the 
year — and  there  was  always  the  danger  of  having 
his  connection  filched  away  from  him  by  the  Ger- 
mans. It  was  whispered  about  that  he  had  already 
tried  two  firms.     Neither  would  have  anything  to 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEE.  341 

do  with  him.  Ship  too  old,  and  the  man  too  well 
known  in  the  place.  .  .  .  Mr  Sterne's  final  rapid 
winking  remained  buried  in  the  deep  darkness 
sibilating  with  his  whispers. 

"  Supposing,  then,  he  got  the  loan,"  Mr  Van  Wyk 
resumed  in  a  deliberate  undertone,  "  on  your  own 
showing  he's  more  than  likely  to  get  a  mort- 
gagee's man  thrust  upon  him  as  captain.  For  my 
part,  I  know  that  I  would  make  that  very  stipula- 
tion myself  if  I  had  to  find  the  money.  And  as 
a  matter  of  fact  I  am  thinking  of  doing  so.  It 
would  be  worth  my  while  in  many  ways.  Do  you 
see  how  this  would  bear  on  the  case  under 
discussion  ?  " 

"Thank  you,  sir.  I  am  sure  you  couldn't  get 
anybody  that  would  care  more  for  your  interests." 

"  Well,  it  suits  my  interest  that  Captain  Whalley 
should  finish  his  time.  I  shall  probably  take  a 
passage  with  you  down  the  Straits.  If  that  can 
be  done,  I'll  be  on  the  spot  when  all  these  changes 
take  place,  and  in  a  position  to  look  after  your 
interests." 

"Mr  Van  Wyk,  I  want  nothing  better.  I  am 
sure  I  am  infinitely  ..." 

"I  take  it,  then,  that  this  may  be  done  without 
any  trouble." 

"Well,  sir,  what  risk  there  is  can't  be  helped; 
but  (speaking  to  you  as  my  employer  now)  the  thing 
is  more  safe  than  it  looks.  If  anybody  had  told  me 
of  it  I  wouldn't  have  believed  it,  but  I  have  been 
looking  on  myself.  That  old  Serang  has  been 
trained  up  to  the  game.  There's  nothing  the  matter 
with   his — his — limbs,   sir.      He's   got   used   to   do 


342  THE    END    OF   THE    TETHER. 

things  on  his  own  in  a  remarkable  way.  And  let 
me  tell  you,  sir,  that  Captain  Whalley,  poor  man, 
is  by  no  means  useless.  Fact.  Let  me  explain  to 
you,  sir.  He  stiffens  up  that  old  monkey  of  a 
Malay,  who  knows  well  enough  what  to  do.  Why, 
he  must  have  kept  captain's  watches  in  all  sorts  of 
country  ships  off  and  on  for  the  last  five-and-twenty 
years.  These  natives,  sir,  as  long  as  they  have  a 
white  man  close  at  the  back,  will  go  on  doing  the 
right  thing  most  surprisingly  well — even  if  left  quite 
to  themselves.  Only  the  white  man  must  be  of  the 
sort  to  put  starch  into  them,  and  the  captain  is  just 
the  one  for  that.  Why,  sir,  he  has  drilled  him  so 
well  that  now  he  needs  hardly  speak  at  all.  I  have 
seen  that  little  wrinkled  ape  made  to  take  the  ship 
out  of  Pangu  Bay  on  a  blowy  morning  and  on  all 
through  the  islands ;  take  her  out  first-rate,  sir, 
dodging  under  the  old  man's  elbow,  and  in  such 
quiet  style  that  you  could  not  have  told  for  the  life 
of  you  which  of  the  two  was  doing  the  work  up 
there.  That's  where  our  poor  friend  would  be  still 
of  use  to  the  ship  even  if — if — he  could  no  longer 
lift  a  foot,  sir.  Providing  the  Serang  does  not  know 
that  there's  anything  wrong." 

"  He  doesn't." 

"  Naturally  not.  Quite  beyond  his  apprehension. 
They  aren't  capable  of  finding  out  anything  about 
us,  sir." 

"  You  seem  to  be  a  shrewd  man,"  said  Mr  Van  Wyk 
in  a  choked  mutter,  as  though  he  were  feeling  sick. 

"You'll  find  me  a  good  enough  servant,  sir." 

Mr  Sterne  hoped  now  for  a  handshake  at  least, 
but  unexpectedly,  with  a  "What's  this?     Better  not 


THE    END   OF   THE   TETHER.  343 

to  be  seen  together,"  Mr  Van  Wyk's  white  shape 
wavered,  and  instantly  seemed  to  melt  away  in  the 
black  air  under  the  roof  of  boughs.  The  mate  was 
startled.  Yes.  There  was  that  faint  thumping 
clatter. 

He  stole  out  silently  from  under  the  shade.  The 
lighted  port-hole  shone  from  afar.  His  head  swam 
with  the  intoxication  of  sudden  success.  What  a 
thing  it  was  to  have  a  gentleman  to  deal  with ! 
He  crept  aboard,  and  there  was  something  weird 
in  the  shadowy  stretch  of  empty  decks,  echoing  with 
shouts  and  blows  proceeding  from  a  darker  part 
amidships.  Mr  Massy  was  raging  before  the  door 
of  the  berth :  the  drunken  voice  within  flowed  on 
undisturbed  in  the  violent  racket  of  kicks. 

"  Shut  up  !  Put  your  light  out  and  turn  in,  you 
confounded  swilling  pig — you  !  D'you  hear  me,  you 
beast?" 

The  kicking  stopped,  and  in  the  pause  the  muzzy 
oracular  voice  announced  from  within — 

"Ah  !  Massy,  now — that's  another  thing.  Massy's 
deep." 

"Who's  that  aft  there?  You,  Sterne?  He'll 
drink  himself  into  a  fit  of  horrors."  The  chief 
engineer  appeared  vague  and  big  at  the  corner  of 
the  engine-room. 

"  He  will  be  good  enough  for  duty  to-morrow.  I 
would  let  him  be,  Mr  Massy." 

Sterne  slipped  away  into  his  berth,  and  at  once 
had  to  sit  down.  His  head  swam  with  exultation. 
He  got  into  his  bunk  as  if  in  a  dream.  A  feeling 
of  profound  peace,  of  pacific  joy,  came  over  him, 
On  deck  all  was  quiet. 


344  THE    END    OF   THE   TETHEK. 

Mr  Massy,  with  his  ear  against  the  door  of 
Jack's  cabin,  listened  critically  to  a  deep  stertorous 
breathing  within.  This  was  a  dead-drunk  sleep. 
The  bout  was  over  :  tranquillised  on  that  score,  he 
too  went  in,  and  with  slow  wriggles  got  out  of 
his  old  tweed  jacket.  It  was  a  garment  with 
many  pockets,  which  he  used  to  put  on  at  odd 
times  of  the  day,  being  subject  to  sudden  chilly  fits, 
and  when  he  felt  warmed  he  would  take  it  off  and 
hang  it  about  anywhere  all  over  the  ship.  It  would 
be  seen  swinging  on  belaying-pins,  thrown  over  the 
heads  of  winches,  suspended  on  people's  very  door- 
handles for  that  matter.  Was  he  not  the  owner? 
But  his  favourite  place  was  a  hook  on  a  wooden 
awning  stanchion  on  the  bridge,  almost  against  the 
binnacle.  He  had  even  in  the  early  days  more  than 
one  tussle  on  that  point  with  Captain  Whalley, 
who  desired  the  bridge  to  be  kept  tidy.  He  had 
been  overawed  then.  Of  late,  though,  he  had  been 
able  to  defy  his  partner  with  impunity.  Captain 
Whalley  never  seemed  to  notice  anything  now.  As 
to  the  Malays,  in  their  awe  of  that  scowling  man 
not  one  of  the  crew  would  dream  of  laying  a  hand 
on  the  thing,  no  matter  where  or  what  it  swung  from. 

With  an  unexpectedness  which  made  Mr  Massy 
jump  and  drop  the  coat  at  his  feet,  there  came 
from  the  next  berth  the  crash  and  thud  of 
a  headlong,  jingling,  clattering  fall.  The  faithful 
Jack  must  have  dropped  to  sleep  suddenly  as  he  sat 
at  his  revels,  and  now  had  gone  over  chair  and  all, 
breaking,  as  it  seemed  by  the  sound,  every  single 
glass  and  bottle  in  the  place.  After  the  terrific  smash 
all  was  still  for  a  time  in  there,  as  though  he  had 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  345 

killed  himself  outright  on  the  spot.  Mr  Massy  held 
his  breath.  At  last  a  sleepy  uneasy  groaning  sigh 
was  exhaled  slowly  on  the  other  side  of  the  bulkhead. 

"I  hope  to  goodness  he's  too  drunk  to  wake  up 
now,"  muttered  Mr  Massy. 

The  sound  of  a  softly  knowing  laugh  nearly  drove 
him  to  despair.  He  swore  violently  under  his  breath. 
The  fool  would  keep  him  awake  all  night  now  for 
certain.  He  cursed  his  luck.  He  wanted  to  forget 
his  maddening  troubles  in  sleep  sometimes.  He 
could  detect  no  movements.  Without  apparently 
making  the  slightest  attempt  to  get  up,  Jack  went 
on  sniggering  to  himself  where  he  lay ;  then  began 
to  speak,  where  he  had  left  off  as  it  were — 

"  Massy  !  I  love  the  dirty  rascal.  He  would  like 
to  see  his  poor  old  Jack  starve — but  just  you  look 
where  he  has  climbed  to."  .  .  .  He  hiccoughed  in 
a  superior,  leisurely  manner.  .  .  .  "Ship-owning 
it  with  the  best.  A  lottery  ticket  you  want.  Ha ! 
ha !  I  will  give  you  lottery  tickets,  my  boy.  Let 
the  old  ship  sink  and  the  old  chum  starve — that's 
right.  He  don't  go  wrong — Massy  don't.  Not  he. 
He's  a  genius — that  man  is.  That's  the  way  to 
win  your  money.     Ship  and  chum  must  go." 

"The  silly  fool  has  taken  it  to  heart,"  muttered 
Massy  to  himself.  And,  listening  with  a  softened 
expression  of  face  for  any  slight  sign  of  returning 
drowsiness,  he  was  discouraged  profoundly  by  a 
burst  of  laughter  full  of  joyful  irony. 

"Would  like  to  see  her  at  the  bottom  of  the 
sea !  Oh,  you  clever,  clever  devil !  Wish  her 
sunk,  eh?  I  should  think  you  would,  my  boy;  the 
damned  old  thing  and  all  your  troubles  with  her. 


346  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

Rake  in  the  insurance  money — turn  your  back  on 
your  old  chum — all's  well — gentleman  again." 

A  grim  stillness  had  come  over  Massy's  face. 
Only  his  big  black  eyes  rolled  uneasily.  The  rav- 
ing fool.  And  yet  it  was  all  true.  Yes.  Lottery 
tickets,  too.  All  true.  What?  Beginning  again? 
He  wished  he  wouldn't.    .    .    . 

But  it  was  even  so.  The  imaginative  drunkard 
on  the  other  side  of  the  bulkhead  shook  off  the 
deathlike  stillness  that  after  his  last  words  had 
fallen  on  the  dark  ship  moored  to  a  silent  shore. 

"  Don't  you  dare  to  say  anything  against  George 
Massy,  Esquire.  When  he's  tired  of  waiting  he 
will  do  away  with  her.  Look  out !  Down  she 
goes — chum  and  all.     He'll  know  how  to    .    .    ." 

The  voice  hesitated,  weary,  dreamy,  lost,  as  if 
dying  away  in  a  vast  open  space. 

"...  Find  a  trick  that  will  work.  He's  up  to 
it — never  fear    .    .    ." 

He  must  have  been  very  drunk,  for  at  last  the 
heavy  sleep  gripped  him  with  the  suddenness  of  a 
magic  spell,  and  the  last  word  lengthened  itself 
into  an  interminable,  noisy,  in-drawn  snore.  And 
then  even  the  snoring  stopped,  and  all  was  still. 

But  it  seemed  as  though  Mr  Massy  had  suddenly 
come  to  doubt  the  efficacy  of  sleep  as  against  a  man's 
troubles  ;  or  perhaps  he  had  found  the  relief  he 
needed  in  the  stillness  of  a  calm  contemplation  that 
may  contain  the  vivid  thoughts  of  wealth,  of  a  stroke 
of  luck,  of  long  idleness,  and  may  bring  before  you 
the  imagined  form  of  every  desire  ;  for,  turning  about 
and  throwing  his  arms  over  the  edge  of  his  bunk, 
he  stood  there  with  his  feet  on  his  favourite  old 


THE    END    OF   THE    TETHER.  347 

coat,  looking  out  through  the  round  port  into  the 
night  over  the  river.  Sometimes  a  breath  of  wind 
would  enter  and  touch  his  face,  a  cool  breath  charged 
with  the  damp,  fresh  feel  from  a  vast  body  of  water. 
A  glimmer  here  and  there  was  all  he  could  see  of  it ; 
and  once  he  might  after  all  suppose  he  had  dozed 
off,  since  there  appeared  before  his  vision,  unex- 
pectedly and  connected  with  no  dream,  a  row  of 
flaming  and  gigantic  figures  —  three  nought  seven 
one  two  —  making  up  a  number  such  as  you  may 
see  on  a  lottery  ticket.  And  then  all  at  once  the 
port  was  no  longer  black :  it  was  pearly  grey,  fram- 
ing a  shore  crowded  with  houses,  thatched  roof  be- 
yond thatched  roof,  walls  of  mats  and  bamboo,  gables 
of  carved  teak  timber.  Rows  of  dwellings  raised  on 
a  forest  of  piles  lined  the  steely  band  of  the  river, 
brimful  and  still,  with  the  tide  at  the  turn.  This 
was  Batu  Beru — and  the  day  had  come. 

Mr  Massey  shook  himself,  put  on  the  tweed  coat, 
and,  shivering  nervously  as  if  from  some  great  shock, 
made  a  note  of  the  number.  A  fortunate,  rare  hint 
that.  Yes  ;  but  to  pursue  fortune  one  wanted  money 
— ready  cash. 

Then  he  went  out  and  prepared  to  descend  into 
the  engine-room.  Several  small  jobs  had  to  be  seen 
to,  and  Jack  was  lying  dead  drunk  on  the  floor  of 
his  cabin,  with  the  door  locked  at  that.  His  gorge 
rose  at  the  thought  of  work.  Ay  !  But  if  you 
wanted  to  do  nothing  you  had  to  get  first  a  good 
bit  of  money.  A  ship  won't  save  you.  He  cursed 
the  Sofala.  True,  all  true.  He  was  tired  of  waiting 
for  some  chance  that  would  rid  him  at  last  of  that 
ship  that  had  turned  out  a  curse  on  his  life. 


348  THE   END   OP   THE   TETHER. 


XIV. 

The  deep,  interminable  hoot  of  the  steam-whistle 
had,  in  its  grave,  vibrating  note,  something  intoler- 
able, which  sent  a  slight  shudder  down  Mr  Van 
Wyk's  back.  It  was  the  early  afternoon ;  the  Sofala 
was  leaving  Batu  Beru  for  Pangu,  the  next  place 
of  call.  She  swung  in  the  stream,  scantily  at- 
tended by  a  few  canoes,  and,  gliding  on  the  broad 
river,  became  lost  to  view  from  the  Yan  Wyk 
bungalow. 

Its  owner  had  not  gone  this  time  to  see  her  off. 
Generally  he  came  down  to  the  wharf,  exchanged  a 
few  words  with  the  bridge  while  she  cast  off,  and 
waved  his  hand  to  Captain  Whalley  at  the  last 
moment.  This  day  he  did  not  even  go  as  far  as  the 
balustrade  of  the  verandah.  "  He  couldn't  see  me  if 
I  did,"  he  said  to  himself.  "I  wonder  whether  he 
can  make  out  the  house  at  all."  And  this  thought 
somehow  made  him  feel  more  alone  than  he  had  ever 
felt  for  all  these  years.  What  was  it  ?  six  or  seven  ? 
Seven.     A  long  time. 

He  sat  on  the  verandah  with  a  closed  book  on 
his  knee,  and,  as  it  were,  looked  out  upon  his 
solitude,  as  if  the  fact  of  Captain  Whalley's  blind- 
ness had  opened  his  eyes  to  his  own.  There  were 
many  sorts  of  heartaches  and  troubles,  and  there 
was  no  place  where  they  could  not  find  a  man  out. 
And  he  felt  ashamed,  as  though  he  had  for  six 
years  behaved  like  a  peevish  boy. 

His  thought  followed  the  Sofala  on  her  way.     On 


THE    END    OF  THE   TETHER.  349 

the  spur  of  the  moment  he  had  acted  impulsively, 
turning  to  the  thing  most  pressing.  And  what  else 
could  he  have  done?  Later  on  he  should  see.  It 
seemed  necessary  that  he  should  come  out  into  the 
world,  for  a  time  at  least.  He  had  money — some- 
thing could  be  arranged ;  he  would  grudge  no  time, 
no  trouble,  no  loss  of  his  solitude.  It  weighed  on  him 
now — and  Captain  Whalley  appeared  to  him  as  he 
had  sat  shading  his  eyes,  as  if,  being  deceived  in 
the  trust  of  his  faith,  he  were  beyond  all  the  good 
and  evil  that  can  be  wrought  by  the  hands  of  men. 

Mr  Van  Wyk's  thoughts  followed  the  Sofala  down 
the  river,  winding  about  through  the  belt  of  the  coast 
forest,  between  the  buttressed  shafts  of  the  big 
trees,  through  the  mangrove  strip,  and  over  the  bar. 
The  ship  crossed  it  easily  in  broad  daylight,  piloted, 
as  it  happened,  by  Mr  Sterne,  who  took  the  watch 
from  four  to  six,  and  then  went  below  to  hug 
himself  with  delight  at  the  prospect  of  being 
virtually  employed  by  a  rich  man — like  Mr  Van 
Wyk.  He  could  not  see  how  any  hitch  could  occur 
now.  He  did  not  seem  able  to  get  over  the  feeling 
of  being  "fixed  up  at  last."  From  six  to  eight,  in 
the  course  of  duty,  the  Serang  looked  alone  after 
the  ship.  She  had  a  clear  road  before  her  now 
till  about  three  in  the  morning,  when  she  would 
close  with  the  Pangu  group.  At  eight  Mr  Sterne 
came  out  cheerily  to  take  charge  again  till  mid- 
night. At  ten  he  was  still  chirruping  and  humming 
to  himself  on  the  bridge,  and  about  that  time  Mr 
Van  Wyk's  thought  abandoned  the  Sofala.  Mr 
Van  Wyk  had  fallen  asleep  at  last. 

Massy,    blocking    the    engine-room    companion, 


350  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

jerked  himself  into  his  tweed  jacket  surlily,  while 
the  second  waited  with  a  scowl. 

"  Oh.  You  came  out  ?  You  sot !  "Well,  what 
have  you  got  to  say  for  yourself  ? " 

He  had  been  in  charge  of  the  engines  till  then. 
A  sombre  fury  darkened  his  mind :  a  hot  anger 
against  the  ship,  against  the  facts  of  life,  against 
the  men  for  their  cheating,  against  himself  too — 
because  of  an  inward  tremor  in  his  heart. 

An  incomprehensible  growl  answered  him. 

"  What  ?  Can't  you  open  your  mouth  now  ? 
You  yelp  out  your  infernal  rot  loud  enough  when 
you  are  drunk.  What  do  you  mean  by  abusing 
people    in    that    way  ?  —  you    old    useless    boozer, 

you!" 

"  Can't  help  it.  Don't  remember  anything  about 
it.     You  shouldn't  listen." 

"  You  dare  to  tell  me  !  What  do  you  mean  by 
going  on  a  drunk  like  this  ? " 

"  Don't  ask  me.  Sick  of  the  dam'  boilers — you 
would  be.     Sick  of  life." 

"  I  wish  you  were  dead,  then.  You've  made  me 
sick  of  you.  Don't  you  remember  the  uproar  you 
made  last  night  ?      You  miserable  old  soaker  !  " 

" No;  I  don't.     Don't  want  to.     Drink  is  drink." 

"  I  wonder  what  prevents  me  from  kicking  you 
out.     What  do  you  want  here  ?  " 

"  Relieve  you.  You've  been  long  enough  down 
there,  George." 

"  Don't  you  George  me — you  tippling  old  rascal, 
you  !  If  I  were  to  die  to-morrow  you  would 
starve.     Remember  that.     Say  Mr  Massy." 

"Mr  Massy,"  repeated  the  other  stolidly. 


THE   END   OP   THE   TETHER.  351 

Dishevelled,  with  dull  blood -shot  eyes,  a  snuffy, 
grimy  shirt,  greasy  trousers,  naked  feet  thrust  into 
ragged  slippers,  he  bolted  in  head  down  directly 
Massy  had  made  way  for  him. 

The  chief  engineer  looked  around.  The  deck 
was  empty  as  far  as  the  taffrail.  All  the  native 
passengers  had  left  in  Batu  Beru  this  time,  and 
no  others  had  joined.  The  dial  of  the  patent  log 
tinkled  periodically  in  the  dark  at  the  end  of  the 
ship.  It  was  a  dead  calm,  and,  under  the  clouded 
sky,  through  the  still  air  that  seemed  to  cling  warm, 
with  a  seaweed  smell,  to  her  slim  hull,  on  a  sea  of 
sombre  grey  and  unwrinkled,  the  ship  moved  on  an 
even  keel,  as  if  floating  detached  in  empty  space. 
But  Mr  Massy  slapped  his  forehead,  tottered  a  little, 
and  caught  hold  of  a  belaying-pin  at  the  foot  of  the 
mast. 

"I  shall  go  mad,"  he  muttered,  walking  across 
the  deck  unsteadily.  A  shovel  was  scraping  loose 
coal  down  below — a  fire-door  clanged.  Sterne  on 
the  bridge  began  whistling  a  new  tune. 

Captain  Whalley,  sitting  on  the  couch,  awake 
and  fully  dressed,  heard  the  door  of  his  cabin  open. 
He  did  not  move  in  the  least,  waiting  to  recognise 
the  voice,  with  an  appalling  strain  of  prudence. 

A  bulkhead  lamp  blazed  on  the  white  paint,  the 
crimson  plush,  the  brown  varnish  of  mahogany  tops. 
The  white  wood  packing-case  under  the  bed-place 
had  remained  unopened  for  three  years  now,  as 
though  Captain  Whalley  had  felt  that,  after  the 
Fair  Maid  was  gone,  there  could  be  no  abiding-place 
on  earth  for  his  affections.  His  hands  rested  on 
his  knees;    his  handsome  head  with  big   eyebrows 


352  THE    END   OP  THE   TETHER. 

presented  a  rigid  profile  to  the  doorway.  The  ex- 
pected voice  spoke  out  at  last. 

"  Once  more,  then.     What  am  I  to  call  you  ?  " 

Ha  !  Massy.  Again.  The  weariness  of  it  crushed 
his  heart — and  the  pain  of  shame  was  almost  more 
than  he  could  bear  without  crying  out. 

"  Well.     Is  it  to  be  <  partner '  still  ?  " 

"You  don't  know  what  you  ask." 

"I  know  what  I  want  .  .  ." 

Massy  stepped  in  and  closed  the  door. 

" .  .  .  And  I  am  going  to  have  a  try  for  it  with 
you  once  more." 

His  whine  was  half  persuasive,  half  menacing. 

"For  it's  no  manner  of  use  to  tell  me  that  you 
are  poor.  You  don't  spend  anything  on  yourself, 
that's  true  enough ;  but  there's  another  name  for 
that.  You  think  you  are  going  to  have  what  you 
want  out  of  me  for  three  years,  and  then  cast  me 
off  without  hearing  what  I  think  of  you.  You 
think  I  would  have  submitted  to  your  airs  if  I 
had  known  you  had  only  a  beggarly  five  hundred 
pounds  in  the  world.  You  ought  to  have  told 
me." 

"Perhaps,"  said  Captain  Whalley,  bowing  his 
head.  "And  yet  it  has  saved  you."  .  .  .  Massy 
laughed  scornfully.  ...  "I  have  told  you  often 
enough  since." 

"And  I  don't  believe  you  now.  When  I  think 
how  I  let  you  lord  it  over  my  ship  !  Do  you 
remember  how  you  used  to  bullyrag  me  about  my 
coat  and  your  bridge?  It  was  in  his  way.  His 
bridge !  '  And  I  won't  be  a  party  to  this — and  I 
couldn't  think  of  doing  that.'     Honest  man !     And 


THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER.  353 

now  it  all  comes  out.  '  I  am  poor,  and  I  can't.  I 
have  only  this  five  hundred  in  the  world.' " 

He  contemplated  the  immobility  of  Captain 
Whalley,  that  seemed  to  present  an  inconquerable 
obstacle  in  his  path.     His  face  took  a  mournful  cast. 

"You  are  a  hard  man." 

"Enough,"  said  Captain  Whalley,  turning  upon 
him.  "You  shall  get  nothing  from  me,  because  I 
have  nothing  of  mine  to  give  away  now." 

"Tell  that  to  the  marines!" 

Mr  Massy,  going  out,  looked  back  once ;  then  the 
door  closed,  and  Captain  Whalley,  alone,  sat  as  still 
as  before.  He  had  nothing  of  his  own — even  his 
own  past  of  honour,  of  truth,  of  just  pride,  was 
gone.  All  his  spotless  life  had  fallen  into  the  abyss. 
He  had  said  his  last  good-bye  to  it.  But  what 
belonged  to  her,  that  he  meant  to  save.  Only  a 
little  money.  He  would  take  it  to  her  in  his  own 
hands — this  last  gift  of  a  man  that  had  lasted  too 
long.  And  an  immense  and  fierce  impulse,  the 
very  passion  of  paternity,  flamed  up  with  all  the 
unquenched  vigour  of  his  worthless  life  in  a  desire 
to  see  her  face. 

Just  across  the  deck  Massy  had  gone  straight  to 
his  cabin,  struck  a  light,  and  hunted  up  the  note  of 
the  dreamed  number  whose  figures  had  flamed  up 
also  with  the  fierceness  of  another  passion.  He 
must  contrive  somehow  not  to  miss  a  drawing. 
That  number  meant  something.  But  what  ex- 
pedient could  he  contrive  to  keep  himself  going? 

"  Wretched  miser  ! "  he  mumbled. 

If  Mr  Sterne  could  at  no  time  have  told  him  any- 
thing new  about  his  partner,  he  could  have  told  Mr 

z 


354  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

Sterne  that  another  use  could  be  made  of  a  man's 
affliction  than  just  to  kick  him  out,  and  thus  defer 
the  term  of  a  difficult  payment  for  a  year.  To  keep 
the  secret  of  the  affliction  and  induce  him  to  stay 
was  a  better  move.  If  without  means,  he  would  be 
anxious  to  remain ;  and  that  settled  the  question  of 
refunding  him  his  share.  He  did  not  know  exactly 
how  much  Captain  Whalley  was  disabled ;  but  if  it 
so  happened  that  he  put  the  ship  ashore  somewhere 
for  good  and  all,  it  was  not  the  owner's  fault — was 
it  ?  He  was  not  obliged  to  know  that  there  was 
anything  wrong.  But  probably  nobody  would  raise 
such  a  point,  and  the  ship  was  fully  insured.  He 
had  had  enough  self-restraint  to  pay  up  the  pre- 
miums. But  this  was  not  all.  He  could  not  believe 
Captain  Whalley  to  be  so  confoundedly  destitute  as 
not  to  have  some  more  money  put  away  somewhere. 
If  he,  Massy,  could  get  hold  of  it,  that  would  pay  for 
the  boilers,  and  everything  went  on  as  before.  And 
if  she  got  lost  in  the  end,  so  much  the  better.  He 
hated  her  :  he  loathed  the  troubles  that  took  his 
mind  off  the  chances  of  fortune.  He  wished  her 
at  the  bottom  of  the  sea,  and  the  insurance  money 
in  his  pocket.  And  as,  baffled,  he  left  Captain 
Whalley's  cabin,  he  enveloped  in  the  same  hatred 
the  ship  with  the  worn-out  boilers  and  the  man 
with  the  dimmed  eyes. 

And  our  conduct  after  all  is  so  much  a  matter  of 
outside  suggestion,  that  had  it  not  been  for  his 
Jack's  drunken  gabble  he  would  have  there  and 
then  had  it  out  with  this  miserable  man,  who  would 
neither  help,  nor  stay,  nor  yet  lose  the  ship.  The  old 
fraud !    He  longed  to  kick  him  out.    But  he  restrained 


THE    END   OF  THE   TETHER.  355 

himself.  Time  enough  for  that  —  when  he  liked. 
There  was  a  fearful  new  thought  put  into  his  head. 
Wasn't  he  up  to  it  after  all  ?  How  that  beast  Jack 
had  raved !  "  Find  a  safe  trick  to  get  rid  of  her." 
Well,  Jack  was  not  so  far  wrong.  A  very  clever  trick 
had  occurred  to  him.     Ay  !     But  what  of  the  risk  ? 

A  feeling  of  pride — the  pride  of  superiority  to 
common  prejudices — crept  into  his  breast,  made  his 
heart  beat  fast,  his  mouth  turn  dry.  Not  every- 
body would  dare ;  but  he  was  Massy,  and  he  was 
up  to  it ! 

Six  bells  were  struck  on  deck.  Eleven  !  He  drank 
a  glass  of  water,  and  sat  down  for  ten  minutes  or  so 
to  calm  himself.  Then  he  got  out  of  his  chest  a 
small  bull's-eye  lantern  of  his  own  and  lit  it. 

Almost  opposite  his  berth,  across  the  narrow  pas- 
sage under  the  bridge,  there  was,  in  the  iron  deck- 
structure  covering  the  stokehold  fiddle  and  the  boiler- 
space,  a  storeroom  with  iron  sides,  iron  roof,  iron- 
plated  floor,  too,  on  account  of  the  heat  below.  All 
sorts  of  rubbish  was  shot  there :  it  had  a  mound  of 
scrap-iron  in  a  corner ;  rows  of  empty  oil-cans ;  sacks 
of  cotton -waste,  with  a  heap  of  charcoal,  a  deck- 
forge,  fragments  of  an  old  hencoop,  winch  -  covers 
all  in  rags,  remnants  of  lamps,  and  a  brown  felt 
hat,  discarded  by  a  man  dead  now  (of  a  fever  on 
the  Brazil  coast),  who  had  been  once  mate  of  the 
Sofala,  had  remained  for  years  jammed  forcibly  be- 
hind a  length  of  burst  copper  pipe,  flung  at  some 
time  or  other  out  of  the  engine-room.  A  complete 
and  impervious  blackness  pervaded  that  Capharnaum 
of  forgotten  things.  A  small  shaft  of  light  from  Mr 
Massy's  bull's-eye  fell  slanting  right  through  it. 


356  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

His  coat  was  unbuttoned ;  lie  shot  the  bolt  of  the 
door  (there  was  no  other  opening),  and,  squatting 
before  the  scrap-heap,  began  to  pack  his  pockets  with 
pieces  of  iron.  He  packed  them  carefully,  as  if  the 
rusty  nuts,  the  broken  bolts,  the  links  of  cargo  chain, 
had  been  so  much  gold  he  had  that  one  chance  to 
carry  away.  He  packed  his  side-pockets  till  they 
bulged,  the  breast-pocket,  the  pockets  inside.  He 
turned  over  the  pieces.  Some  he  rejected.  A  small 
mist  of  powdered  rust  began  to  rise  about  his  busy 
hands.  Mr  Massy  knew  something  of  the  scientific 
basis  of  his  clever  trick.  If  you  want  to  deflect  the 
magnetic  needle  of  a  ship's  compass,  soft  iron  is  the 
best;  likewise  many  small  pieces  in  the  pockets  of 
a  jacket  would  have  more  effect  than  a  few  large 
ones,  because  in  that  way  you  obtain  a  greater 
amount  of  surface  for  weight  in  your  iron,  and  it's 
surface  that  tells. 

He  slipped  out  swiftly  —  two  strides  sufficed — 
and  in  his  cabin  he  perceived  that  his  hands  were 
all  red  —  red  with  rust.  It  disconcerted  him,  as 
though  he  had  found  them  covered  with  blood  :  he 
looked  himself  over  hastily.  Why,  his  trousers  too  ! 
He  had  been  rubbing  his  rusty  palms  on  his  legs. 

He  tore  off  the  waistband  button  in  his  haste, 
brushed  his  coat,  washed  his  hands.  Then  the  air 
of  guilt  left  him,  and  he  sat  down  to  wait. 

He  sat  bolt  upright  and  weighted  with  iron  in  his 
chair.  He  had  a  hard,  lumpy  bulk  against  each  hip, 
felt  the  scrappy  iron  in  his  pockets  touch  his  ribs  at 
every  breath,  the  downward  drag  of  all  these  pounds 
hanging  upon  his  shoulders.  He  looked  very  dull 
too,   sitting   idle   there,   and   his   yellow   face,    with 


THE   END   OP  THE   TETHER.  357 

motionless  black  eyes,  had  something  passive  and 
sad  in  its  quietness. 

When  he  heard  eight  bells  struck  above  his  head, 
he  rose  and  made  ready  to  go  out.  His  movements 
seemed  aimless,  his  lower  lip  had  dropped  a  little,  his 
eyes  roamed  about  the  cabin,  and  the  tremendous 
tension  of  his  will  had  robbed  them  of  every  vestige 
of  intelligence. 

With  the  last  stroke  of  the  bell  the  Serang 
appeared  noiselessly  on  the  bridge  to  relieve  the 
mate.  Sterne  overflowed  with  good  nature,  since 
he  had  nothing  more  to  desire. 

"  Got  your  eyes  well  open  yet,  Serang  ?  It's 
middling  dark;  I'll  wait  till  you  get  your  sight 
properly." 

The  old  Malay  murmured,  looked  up  with  his 
worn  eyes,  sidled  away  into  the  light  of  the  binnacle, 
and,  crossing  his  hands  behind  his  back,  fixed  his 
eyes  on  the  compass-card. 

"You'll  have  to  keep  a  good  look-out  ahead  for 
land,  about  half-past  three.  It's  fairly  clear,  though. 
You  have  looked  in  on  the  captain  as  you  came 
along  —  eh?  He  knows  the  time?  Well,  then,  I 
am  off." 

At  the  foot  of  the  ladder  he  stood  aside  for  the  cap- 
tain. He  watched  him  go  up  with  an  even,  certain 
tread,  and  remained  thoughtful  for  a  moment.  "It's 
funny,"  he  said  to  himself,  "but  you  can  never  tell 
whether  that  man  has  seen  you  or  not.  He  might 
have  heard  me  breathe  this  time." 

He  was  a  wonderful  man  when  all  was  said  and 
done.  They  said  he  had  had  a  name  in  his  day. 
Mr  Sterne  could  well  believe  it ;  and  he  concluded 


358  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHER. 

serenely  that  Captain  Whalley  must  be  able  to  see 
people  more  or  less  —  as  himself  just  now,  for  in- 
stance— but  not  being  certain  of  anybody,  had  to 
keep  up  that  unnoticing  silence  of  manner  for  fear 
of  giving  himself  away.  Mr  Sterne  was  a  shrewd 
guesser. 

This  necessity  of  every  moment  brought  home  to 
Captain  Whalley's  heart  the  humiliation  of  his  false- 
hood. He  had  drifted  into  it  from  paternal  love, 
from  incredulity,  from  boundless  trust  in  divine  jus- 
tice meted  out  to  men's  feelings  on  this  earth.  He 
would  give  his  poor  Ivy  the  benefit  of  another 
month's  work ;  perhaps  the  affliction  was  only  tem- 
porary. Surely  God  would  not  rob  his  child  of  his 
power  to  help,  and  cast  him  naked  into  a  night 
without  end.  He  had  caught  at  every  hope  ;  and 
when  the  evidence  of  his  misfortune  was  stronger 
than  hope,  he  tried  not  to  believe  the  manifest 
thing. 

In  vain.  In  the  steadily  darkening  universe  a 
sinister  clearness  fell  upon  his  ideas.  In  the  il- 
luminating moments  of  suffering  he  saw  life,  men, 
all  things,  the  whole  earth  with  all  her  burden  of 
created  nature,  as  he  had  never  seen  them  before. 

Sometimes  he  was  seized  with  a  sudden  vertigo 
and  an  overwhelming  terror;  and  then  the  image 
of  his  daughter  appeared.  Her,  too,  he  had  never 
seen  so  clearly  before.  Was  it  possible  that  he 
should  ever  be  unable  to  do  anything  whatever 
for  her?  Nothing.  And  not  see  her  any  more? 
Never. 

Why?  The  punishment  was  too  great  for  a 
little  presumption,  for  a  little  pride.     And  at  last 


THE    END   OP   THE    TETHER.  359 

he  came  to  cling  to  his  deception  with  a  fierce 
determination  to  carry  it  out  to  the  end,  to  save 
her  money  intact,  and  behold  her  once  more  with 
his  own  eyes.  Afterwards  —  what?  The  idea  of 
suicide  was  revolting  to  the  vigour  of  his  man- 
hood. He  had  prayed  for  death  till  the  prayers 
had  stuck  in  his  throat.  All  the  days  of  his  life 
he  had  prayed  for  daily  bread,  and  not  to  be  led 
into  temptation,  in  a  childlike  humility  of  spirit. 
Did  words  mean  anything?  Whence  did  the  gift 
of  speech  come?  The  violent  beating  of  his  heart 
reverberated  in  his  head — seemed  to  shake  his  brain 
to  pieces. 

He  sat  down  heavily  in  the  deck-chair  to  keep  the 
pretence  of  his  watch.  The  night  was  dark.  All 
the  nights  were  dark  now. 

"  Serang,"  he  said,  half  aloud. 

"  Ada,  Tuan.     I  am  here." 

"  There  are  clouds  on  the  sky  ?  " 

"There  are,  Tuan." 

"Let  her  be  steered  straight.     North." 

"She  is  going  north,  Tuan." 

The  Serang  stepped  back.  Captain  Whalley  re- 
cognised Massy's  footfalls  on  the  bridge. 

The  engineer  walked  over  to  port  and  returned, 
passing  behind  the  chair  several  times.  Captain 
Whalley  detected  an  unusual  character  as  of  pru- 
dent care  in  this  prowling.  The  near  presence 
of  that  man  brought  with  it  always  a  recrudes- 
cence of  moral  suffering  for  Captain  Whalley.  It 
was  not  remorse.  After  all,  he  had  done  nothing 
but  good  to  the  poor  devil.  There  was  also  a  sense 
of  danger — the  necessity  of  a  greater  care. 


360  THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

Massy  stopped  and  said — 

"  So  you  still  say  you  must  go  ?  " 

"I  must  indeed." 

"And  you  couldn't  at  least  leave  the  money  for 
a  term  of  years?" 

"Impossible." 

"  Can't  trust  it  with  me  without  your  care,  eh  ?  " 

Captain  Whalley  remained  silent.  Massy  sighed 
deeply  over  the  back  of  the  chair. 

"It  would  just  do  to  save  me,"  he  said  in  a 
tremulous  voice. 

"I've  saved  you  once." 

The  chief  engineer  took  off  his  coat  with  careful 
movements,  and  proceeded  to  feel  for  the  brass  hook 
screwed  into  the  wooden  stanchion.  For  this  pur- 
pose he  placed  himself  right  in  front  of  the  bin- 
nacle, thus  hiding  completely  the  compass-card  from 
the  quartermaster  at  the  wheel.  "  Tuan  !  "  the  lascar 
at  last  murmured  softly,  meaning  to  let  the  white 
man  know  that  he  could  not  see  to  steer. 

Mr  Massy  had  accomplished  his  purpose.  The 
coat  was  hanging  from  the  nail,  within  six  inches 
of  the  binnacle.  And  directly  he  had  stepped  aside 
the  quartermaster,  a  middle-aged,  pock-marked, 
Sumatra  Malay,  almost  as  dark  as  a  negro,  per- 
ceived with  amazement  that  in  that  short  time, 
in  this  smooth  water,  with  no  wind  at  all,  the 
ship  had  gone  swinging  far  out  of  her  course. 
He  had  never  known  her  get  away  like  this  before. 
With  a  slight  grunt  of  astonishment  he  turned  the 
wheel  hastily  to  bring  her  head  back  north,  which 
was  the  course.  The  grinding  of  the  steering-chains, 
the  chiding  murmurs  of  the  Serang,  who  had  come 


THE   END    OF   THE    TETHER.  361 

over  to  the  wheel,  made  a  slight  stir,  which  at- 
tracted Captain  Whalley's  anxious  attention.  He 
said,  "Take  better  care."  Then  everything  settled 
to  the  usual  quiet  on  the  bridge.  Mr  Massy  had 
disappeared. 

But  the  iron  in  the  pockets  of  the  coat  had  done 
its  work;  and  the  Sofala,  heading  north  by  the 
compass,  made  untrue  by  this  simple  device,  was 
no  longer  making  a  safe  course  for  Pangu  Bay. 

The  hiss  of  water  parted  by  her  stem,  the  throb 
of  her  engines,  all  the  sounds  of  her  faithful  and 
laborious  life,  went  on  uninterrupted  in  the  great 
calm  of  the  sea  joining  on  all  sides  the  motionless 
layer  of  cloud  over  the  sky.  A  gentle  stillness  as 
vast  as  the  world  seemed  to  wait  upon  her  path, 
enveloping  her  lovingly  in  a  supreme  caress.  Mr 
Massy  thought  there  could  be  no  better  night  for 
an  arranged  shipwreck. 

Run  up  high  and  dry  on  one  of  the  reefs  east  of 
Pangu — wait  for  daylight — hole  in  the  bottom — 
out  boats — Pangu  Bay  same  evening.  That's  about 
it.  As  soon  as  she  touched  he  would  hasten  on 
the  bridge,  get  hold  of  the  coat  (nobody  would 
notice  in  the  dark),  and  shake  it  upside-down 
over  the  side,  or  even  fling  it  into  the  sea.  A 
detail.  Who  could  guess?  Coat  been  seen  hang- 
ing there  from  that  hook  hundreds  of  times.  Never- 
theless, when  he  sat  down  on  the  lower  step  of  the 
bridge -ladder  his  knees  knocked  together  a  little. 
The  waiting  part  was  the  worst  of  it.  At  times 
he  would  begin  to  pant  quickly,  as  though  he  had 
been  running,  and  then  breathe  largely,  swelling 
with  the  intimate  sense  of  a  mastered  fate.     Now 


362  THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

and  then  he  would  hear  the  shuffle  of  the  Serang's 
bare  feet  up  there :  quiet,  low  voices  would  ex- 
change a  few  words,  and  lapse  almost  at  once 
into  silence.  .  .  . 

"Tell  me  directly  you  see  any  land,  Serang." 

"  Yes,  Tuan.     Not  yet." 

"No,  not  yet,"  Captain  Whalley  would  agree. 

The  ship  had  been  the  best  friend  of  his  decline. 
He  had  sent  all  the  money  he  had  made  by  and  in 
the  Sofala  to  his  daughter.  His  thought  lingered 
on  the  name.  How  often  he  and  his  wife  had 
talked  over  the  cot  of  the  child  in  the  big  stern- 
cabin  of  the  Condor;  she  would  grow  up,  she 
would  marry,  she  would  love  them,  they  would 
live  near  her  and  look  at  her  happiness — it  would 
go  on  without  end.  Well,  his  wife  was  dead,  to 
the  child  he  had  given  all  he  had  to  give ;  he 
wished  he  could  come  near  her,  see  her,  see  her 
face  once,  live  in  the  sound  of  her  voice,  that  could 
make  the  darkness  of  the  living  grave  ready  for 
him  supportable.  He  had  been  starved  of  love  too 
long.     He  imagined  her  tenderness. 

The  Serang  had  been  peering  forward,  and  now 
and  then  glancing  at  the  chair.  He  fidgeted  rest- 
lessly, and  suddenly  burst  out  close  to  Captain 
Whalley— 

"  Tuan,  do  you  see  anything  of  the  land  ?  " 

The  alarmed  voice  brought  Captain  Whalley  to 
his  feet  at  once.  He  !  See  !  And  at  the  question, 
the  curse  of  his  blindness  seemed  to  fall  on  him  with 
a  hundredfold  force. 

"  What's  the  time  ?  "  he  cried. 

"Half-past  three,  Tuan." 


THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER.  363 

"We  are  close.  You  must  see.  Look,  I  say. 
Look." 

Mr  Massy,  awakened  by  the  sudden  sound  of 
talking  from  a  short  doze  on  the  lowest  step,  won- 
dered why  he  was  there.  Ah !  A  faintness  came 
over  him.  It  is  one  thing  to  sow  the  seed  of  an 
accident  and  another  to  see  the  monstrous  fruit 
hanging  over  your  head  ready  to  fall  in  the  sound 
of  agitated  voices. 

"  There's  no  danger,"  he  muttered  thickly. 

The  horror  of  incertitude  had  seized  upon  Captain 
Whalley,  the  miserable  mistrust  of  men,  of  things — 
of  the  very  earth.  He  had  steered  that  very  course 
thirty-six  times  by  the  same  compass — if  anything 
was  certain  in  this  world  it  was  its  absolute,  un- 
erring correctness.  Then  what  had  happened  ?  Did 
the  Serang  lie  ?  Why  lie  ?  Why  ?  Was  he  going 
blind  too  ? 

"  Is  there  a  mist  ?  Look  low  on  the  water.  Low 
down,  I  say." 

"Tuan,  there's  no  mist.     See  for  yourself." 

Captain  Whalley  steadied  the  trembling  of  his 
limbs  by  an  effort.  Should  he  stop  the  engines  at 
once  and  give  himself  away.  A  gust  of  irresolution 
swayed  all  sorts  of  bizarre  notions  in  his  mind. 
The  unusual  had  come,  and  he  was  not  fit  to  deal 
with  it.  In  this  passage  of  inexpressible  anguish 
he  saw  her  face — the  face  of  a  young  girl — with  an 
amazing  strength  of  illusion.  No,  he  must  not  give 
himself  away  after  having  gone  so  far  for  her  sake. 
"You  steered  the  course?  You  made  it?  Speak 
the  truth." 

"  Ya,  Tuan.     On  the  course  now.     Look." 


364  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHEK. 

Captain  Whalley  strode  to  the  binnacle,  which  to 
him  made  such  a  dim  spot  of  light  in  an  infinity 
of  shapeless  shadow.  By  bending  his  face  right 
down  to  the  glass  he  had  been  able  before   .    .    . 

Having  to  stoop  so  low,  he  put  out,  instinctively, 
his  arm  to  where  he  knew  there  was  a  stanchion 
to  steady  himself  against.  His  hand  closed  on  some- 
thing that  was  not  wood  but  cloth.  The  slight 
pull  adding  to  the  weight,  the  loop  broke,  and  Mr 
Massy's  coat  falling,  struck  the  deck  heavily  with 
a  dull  thump,  accompanied  by  a  lot  of  clicks. 

"What's  this?" 

Captain  Whalley  fell  on  his  knees,  with  groping 
hands  extended  in  a  frank  gesture  of  blindness. 
They  trembled,  these  hands  feeling  for  the  truth. 
He  saw  it.  Iron  near  the  compass.  Wrong  course. 
Wreck  her !     His  ship.     Oh  no.     Not  that. 

"  Jump  and  stop  her ! "  he  roared  out  in  a  voice 
not  his  own. 

He  ran  himself — hands  forward,  a  blind  man,  and 
while  the  clanging  of  the  gong  echoed  still  all  over 
the  ship,  she  seemed  to  butt  full  tilt  into  the  side  of 
a  mountain. 

It  was  low  water  along  the  north  side  of  the 
strait.  Mr  Massy  had  not  reckoned  on  that.  In- 
stead of  running  aground  for  half  her  length,  the 
Sofala  butted  the  sheer  ridge  of  a  stone  reef  which 
would  have  been  awash  at  high  water.  This  made 
the  shock  absolutely  terrific.  Everybody  in  the  ship 
that  was  standing  was  thrown  down  headlong :  the 
shaken  rigging  made  a  great  rattling  to  the  very 
trucks.  All  the  lights  went  out :  several  chain-guys, 
snapping,  clattered  against  the  funnel :    there  were 


THE   END    OF  THE    TETHER.  365 

crashes,  pings  of  parted  wire  -  rope,  splintering 
sounds,  loud  cracks,  the  masthead  lamp  flew  over 
the  bows,  and  all  the  doors  about  the  deck  began 
to  bang  heavily.  Then,  after  having  hit,  she  re- 
bounded, hit  the  second  time  the  very  same  spot 
like  a  battering-ram.  This  completed  the  havoc : 
the  funnel,  with  all  the  guys  gone,  fell  over  with 
a  hollow  sound  of  thunder,  smashing  the  wheel  to 
bits,  crushing  the  frame  of  the  awnings,  break- 
ing the  lockers,  filling  the  bridge  with  a  mass  of 
splinters,  sticks,  and  broken  wood.  Captain  Whalley 
picked  himself  up  and  stood  knee-deep  in  wreckage, 
torn,  bleeding,  knowing  the  nature  of  the  danger 
he  had  escaped  mostly  by  the  sound,  and  holding 
Mr  Massy' s  coat  in  his  arms. 

By  this  time  Sterne  (he  had  been  flung  out  of  his 
bunk)  had  set  the  engines  astern.  They  worked  for 
a  few  turns,  then  a  voice  bawled  out,  "Get  out  of 
the  damned  engine-room,  Jack !  " — and  they  stopped; 
but  the  ship  had  gone  clear  of  the  reef  and  lay  still, 
with  a  heavy  cloud  of  steam  issuing  from  the  broken 
deck-pipes,  and  vanishing  in  wispy  shapes  into  the 
night.  Notwithstanding  the  suddenness  of  the  dis- 
aster there  was  no  shouting,  as  if  the  very  violence 
of  the  shock  had  half-stunned  the  shadowy  lot  of 
people  swaying  here  and  there  about  her  decks. 
The  voice  of  the  Serang  pronounced  distinctly  above 
the  confused  murmurs — 

"Eight  fathom."     He  had  heaved  the  lead. 
Mr  Sterne  cried  out  next  in  a  strained  pitch — 
"  Where  the  devil  has  she  got  to  ?    Where  are  we  ?" 
Captain  Whalley  replied  in  a  calm  bass — 
"Amongst  the  reefs  to  the  eastward." 


366  THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

"  You  know  it,  sir  ?  Then  she  will  never  get  out 
again." 

"  She  will  be  sunk  in  five  minutes.  Boats,  Sterne. 
Even  one  will  save  you  all  in  this  calm." 

The  Chinaman  stokers  went  in  a  disorderly  rush 
for  the  port  boats.  Nobody  tried  to  check  them. 
The  Malays,  after  a  moment  of  confusion,  became 
quiet,  and  Mr  Sterne  showed  a  good  countenance. 
Captain  Whalley  had  not  moved.  His  thoughts 
were  darker  than  this  night  in  which  he  had  lost 
his  first  ship. 

"He  made  me  lose  a  ship." 

Another  tall  figure  standing  before  him  amongst 
the  litter  of  the  smash  on  the  bridge  whispered 
insanely — 

"  Say  nothing  of  it." 

Massy  stumbled  closer.  Captain  Whalley  heard 
the  chattering  of  his  teeth. 

"I  have  the  coat." 

"Throw  it  down  and  come  along,"  urged  the 
chattering  voice.     "  B-b-b-b-boat ! " 

"You  will  get  fifteen  years  for  this." 

Mr  Massy  had  lost  his  voice.  His  speech  was  a 
mere  dry  rustling  in  his  throat. 

"  Have  mercy  ! " 

"  Had  you  any  when  you  made  me  lose  my  ship  ? 
Mr  Massy,  you  shall  get  fifteen  years  for  this ! " 

"  I  wanted  money  !  Money  !  My  own  money  ! 
I  will  give  you  some  money.  Take  half  of  it.  You 
love  money  yourself." 

"There's  a  justice  .  .  ." 

Massy  made  an  awful  effort,  and  in  a  strange, 
half-choked  utterance — 


THE    END   OP   THE   TETHER.  367 

"You  blind  devil !     It's  you  that  drove  me  to  it." 

Captain  Whalley,  hugging  the  coat  to  his  breast, 
made  no  sound.  The  light  had  ebbed  for  ever  from 
the  world — let  everything  go.  But  this  man  should 
not  escape  scot-free. 

Sterne's  voice  commanded — 

"Lower  away  !" 

The  blocks  rattled. 

"Now  then,"  he  cried,  "over  with  you.  This  way. 
You,  Jack,  here.  Mr  Massy  !  Mr  Massy  !  Captain  ! 
Quick,  sir !     Let's  get " 

"I  shall  go  to  prison  for  trying  to  cheat  the 
insurance,  but  you'll  get  exposed  ;  you,  honest  man, 
who  has  been  cheating  me.  You  are  poor.  Aren't 
you?  You've  nothing  but  the  five  hundred  pounds. 
Well,  you  have  nothing  at  all  now.  The  ship's  lost, 
and  the  insurance  won't  be  paid." 

Captain  Whalley  did  not  move.  True !  Ivy's 
money !  Gone  in  this  wreck.  Again  he  had  a  flash 
of  insight.     He  was  indeed  at  the  end  of  his  tether. 

Urgent  voices  cried  out  together  alongside.  Massy 
did  not  seem  able  to  tear  himself  away  from  the 
bridge.     He  chattered  and  hissed  despairingly — 

"  Give  it  up  to  me  !     Give  it  up  ! " 

"No,"  said  Captain  Whalley;  "I  could  not  give  it 
up.  You  had  better  go.  Don't  wait,  man,  if  you 
want  to  live.  She's  settling  down  by  the  head  fast. 
No;  I  shall  keep  it,  but  I  shall  stay  on  board." 

Massy  did  not  seem  to  understand ;  but  the  love 
of  life,  awakened  suddenly,  drove  him  away  from 
the  bridge. 

Captain  Whalley  laid  the  coat  down,  and  stumbled 
amongst  the  heaps  of  wreckage  to  the  side. 


368  THE   END    OF   THE   TETHER. 

"  Is  Mr  Massy  in  with  you  ?  "  he  called  out  into 
the  night. 

Sterne  from  the  boat  shouted — 

"Yes;  we've  got  him.  Come  along,  sir.  It's 
madness  to  stay  longer." 

Captain  Whalley  felt  along  the  rail  carefully,  and, 
without  a  word,  cast  off  the  painter.  They  were 
expecting  him  still  down  there.  They  were  wait- 
ing, till  a  voice  suddenly  exclaimed — 

"We  are  adrift!     Shove  off!" 

"  Captain  Whalley !  Leap !  .  .  .  pull  up  a  little 
.  .  .  leap !     You  can  swim." 

In  that  old  heart,  in  that  vigorous  body,  there 
was,  that  nothing  should  be  wanting,  a  horror  of 
death  that  apparently  could  not  be  overcome  by  the 
horror  of  blindness.  But  after  all,  for  Ivy  he  had 
carried  his  point,  walking  in  his  darkness  to  the 
very  verge  of  a  crime.  God  had  not  listened  to 
his  prayers.  The  light  had  finished  ebbing  out  of 
the  world ;  not  a  glimmer.  It  was  a  dark  waste  ; 
but  it  was  unseemly  that  a  Whalley  who  had  gone 
so  far  to  carry  a  point  should  continue  to  live.  He 
must  pay  the  price. 

"  Leap  as  far  as  you  can,  sir ;  we  will  pick  you  up." 

They  did  not  hear  him  answer.  But  their  shout- 
ing seemed  to  remind  him  of  something.  He  groped 
his  way  back,  and  sought  for  Mr  Massy's  coat.  He 
could  swim  indeed ;  people  sucked  down  by  the  whirl- 
pool of  a  sinking  ship  do  come  up  sometimes  to  the 
surface,  and  it  was  unseemly  that  a  Whalley,  who 
had  made  up  his  mind  to  die,  should  be  beguiled  by 
chance  into  a  struggle.  He  would  put  all  these 
pieces  of  iron  into  his  own  pockets. 


THE    END   OF   THE   TETHEB.  369 

They,  looking  from  the  boat,  saw  the  Sofala,  a 
black  mass  upon  a  black  sea,  lying  still  at  an  appal- 
ling cant.  No  sound  came  from  her.  Then,  with  a 
great  bizarre  shuffling  noise,  as  if  the  boilers  had 
broken  through  the  bulkheads,  and  with  a  faint 
muffled  detonation,  where  the  ship  had  been  there 
appeared  for  a  moment  something  standing  upright 
and  narrow,  like  a  rock  out  of  the  sea.  Then  that 
too  disappeared. 

When  the  Sofala  failed  to  come  back  to  Batu  Beru 
at  the  proper  time,  Mr  Van  Wyk  understood  at  once 
that  he  would  never  see  her  any  more.  But  he  did 
not  know  what  had  happened  till  some  months 
afterwards,  when,  in  a  native  craft  lent  him  by  his 
Sultan,  he  had  made  his  way  to  the  Sofala's  port 
of  registry,  where  already  her  existence  and  the 
official  inquiry  into  her  loss  was  beginning  to  be 
forgotten. 

It  had  not  been  a  very  remarkable  or  interesting 
case,  except  for  the  fact  that  the  captain  had  gone 
down  with  his  sinking  ship.  It  was  the  only  life 
lost ;  and  Mr  Van  Wyk  would  not  have  been  able 
to  learn  any  details  had  it  not  been  for  Sterne, 
whom  he  met  one  day  on  the  quay  near  the  bridge 
over  the  creek,  almost  on  the  very  spot  where 
Captain  Whalley,  to  preserve  his  daughter's  five 
hundred  pounds  intact,  had  turned  to  get  a  sampan 
which  would  take  him  on  board  the  Sofala. 

From  afar  Mr  Van  Wyk  saw  Sterne  blink  straight 
at  him  and  raise  his  hand  to  his  hat.  They  drew 
into  the  shade  of  a  building  (it  was  a  bank),  and  the 
mate  related  how  the  boat  with  the  crew  got  into 

2a 


370  THE    END   OF   THE   TETHER. 

Pangu  Bay  about  six  hours  after  the  accident,  and 
how  they  had  lived  for  a  fortnight  in  a  state  of 
destitution  before  they  found  an  opportunity  to  get 
away  from  that  beastly  place.  The  inquiry  had 
exonerated  everybody  from  all  blame.  The  loss  of 
the  ship  was  put  down  to  an  unusual  set  of  the 
current.  Indeed,  it  could  not  have  been  anything 
else :  there  was  no  other  way  to  account  for  the 
ship  being  set  seven  miles  to  the  eastward  of  her 
position  during  the  middle  watch. 

"A  piece  of  bad  luck  for  me,  sir." 

Sterne  passed  his  tongue  on  his  lips  and  glanced 
aside.  "  I  lost  the  advantage  of  being  employed  by 
you,  sir.  I  can  never  be  sorry  enough.  But  here 
it  is  :  one  man's  poison,  another  man's  meat.  This 
could  not  have  been  handier  for  Mr  Massy  if  he  had 
arranged  that  shipwreck  himself.  The  most  timely 
total  loss  I've  ever  heard  of." 

"What  became  of  that  Massy?"  asked  Mr  Van 
Wyk. 

"  He,  sir  ?  Ha !  ha !  He  would  keep  on  telling 
me  that  he  meant  to  buy  another  ship ;  but  as  soon 
as  he  had  the  money  in  his  pocket  he  cleared  out  for 
Manilla  by  mail-boat  early  in  the  morning.  I  gave 
him  chase  right  aboard,  and  he  told  me  then  he  was 
going  to  make  his  fortune  dead  sure  in  Manilla.  I 
could  go  to  the  devil  for  all  he  cared.  And  yet  he 
as  good  as  promised  to  give  me  the  command  if  I 
didn't  talk  too  much." 

"You  never  said  anything  .  .  ."  Mr  Van  Wyk 
began. 

"  Not  I,  sir.  Why  should  I  ?  I  mean  to  get  on, 
but  the  dead  aren't  in  my  way,"  said  Sterne.     His 


THE   END   OF   THE   TETHER.  371 

eyelids  were  beating  rapidly,  then  drooped  for  an 
instant.  "  Besides,  sir,  it  would  have  been  an  awk- 
ward business.  You  made  me  hold  my  tongue  just 
a  bit  too  long." 

"  Do  you  know  how  it  was  that  Captain  Whalley 
remained  on  board  ?  Did  he  really  refuse  to  leave  ? 
Come  now  !     Or  was  it  perhaps  an  accidental  .  .  .  ?  " 

"  Nothing  !  "  Sterne  interrupted  with  energy.  "  I 
tell  you  I  yelled  for  him  to  leap  overboard.  He 
simply  must  have  cast  off  the  painter  of  the  boat 
himself.  We  all  yelled  to  him — that  is,  Jack  and  I. 
He  wouldn't  even  answer  us.  The  ship  was  as  silent 
as  a  grave  to  the  last.  Then  the  boilers  fetched 
away,  and  down  she  went.  Accident !  Not  it ! 
The  game  was  up,  sir,  I  tell  you." 

This  was  all  that  Sterne  had  to  say. 

Mr  Van  Wyk  had  been  of  course  made  the 
guest  of  the  club  for  a  fortnight,  and  it  was  there 
that  he  met  the  lawyer  in  whose  office  had  been 
signed  the  agreement  between  Massy  and  Captain 
Whalley. 

"Extraordinary  old  man,"  he  said.  "He  came 
into  my  office  from  nowhere  in  particular  as  you 
may  say,  with  his  five  hundred  pounds  to  place,  and 
that  engineer  fellow  following  him  anxiously.  And 
now  he  is  gone  out  a  little  inexplicably,  just  as  he 
came.  I  could  never  understand  him  quite.  There 
was  no  mystery  at  all  about  that  Massy,  eh?  I 
wonder  whether  Whalley  refused  to  leave  the  ship. 
It  would  have  been  foolish.  He  was  blameless,  as 
the  court  found." 

Mr  Van  Wyk  had  known  him  well,  he  said,  and 
he  could  not  believe  in  suicide.     Such  an  act  would 


372  THE   END   OF  THE    TETHER. 

not  have  been  in  character  with  what  he  knew  of  the 
man. 

"It  is  my  opinion,  too,"  the  lawyer  agreed.  The 
general  theory  was  that  the  captain  had  remained 
too  long  on  board  trying  to  save  something  of  im- 
portance. Perhaps  the  chart  which  would  clear  him, 
or  else  something  of  value  in  his  cabin.  The  painter 
of  the  boat  had  come  adrift  of  itself  it  was  supposed. 
However,  strange  to  say,  some  little  time  before  that 
voyage  poor  Whalley  had  called  in  his  office  and  had 
left  with  him  a  sealed  envelope  addressed  to  his 
daughter,  to  be  forwarded  to  her  in  case  of  his 
death.  Still  it  was  nothing  very  unusual,  especi- 
ally in  a  man  of  his  age.  Mr  Van  Wyk  shook  his 
head.  Captain  Whalley  looked  good  for  a  hundred 
years. 

"Perfectly  true,"  assented  the  lawyer.  "The  old 
fellow  looked  as  though  he  had  come  into  the  world 
full-grown  and  with  that  long  beard.  I  could  never, 
somehow,  imagine  him  either  younger  or  older — 
don't  you  know.  There  was  a  sense  of  physical 
power  about  that  man  too.  And  perhaps  that  was 
the  secret  of  that  something  peculiar  in  his  person 
which  struck  everybody  who  came  in  contact  with 
him.  He  looked  indestructible  by  any  ordinary 
means  that  put  an  end  to  the  rest  of  us.  His 
deliberate,  stately  courtesy  of  manner  was  full  of 
significance.  It  was  as  though  he  were  certain  of 
having  plenty  of  time  for  everything.  Yes,  there 
was  something  indestructible  about  him ;  and  the 
way  he  talked  sometimes  you  might  have  thought 
he  believed  it  himself.  When  he  called  on  me  last 
with  that  letter  he  wanted  me  to  take  charge  of,  he 


THE   END    OF   THE   TETHEE.  373 

was  not  depressed  at  all.  Perhaps  a  shade  more 
deliberate  in  his  talk  and  manner.  Not  depressed 
in  the  least.  Had  he  a  presentiment,  I  wonder  ? 
Perhaps  !  Still  it  seems  a  miserable  end  for  such  a 
striking  figure." 

"  Oh  yes  !  It  was  a  miserable  end,"  Mr  Van  Wyk 
said,  with  so  much  fervour  that  the  lawyer  looked 
up  at  him  curiously ;  and  afterwards,  after  parting 
with  him,  he  remarked  to  an  acquaintance — 

"  Queer  person  that  Dutch  tobacco-planter  from 
Batu  Beru.     Know  anything  of  him  ?  " 

"  Heaps  of  money,"  answered  the  bank  manager. 
"  I  hear  he's  going  home  by  the  next  mail  to  form  a 
company  to  take  over  his  estates.  Another  tobacco 
district  thrown  open.  He's  wise,  I  think.  These 
good  times  won't  last  for  ever." 

In  the  southern  hemisphere  Captain  Whalley's 
daughter  had  no  presentiment  of  evil  when  she 
opened  the  envelope  addressed  to  her  in  the 
lawyer's  handwriting.  She  had  received  it  in  the 
afternoon ;  all  the  boarders  had  gone  out,  her  boys 
were  at  school,  her  husband  sat  upstairs  in  his  big 
arm-chair  with  a  book,  thin-faced,  wrapped  up  in 
rugs  to  the  waist.  The  house  was  still,  and  the 
greyness  of  a  cloudy  day  lay  against  the  panes  of 
three  lofty  windows. 

In  a  shabby  dining-room,  where  a  faint  cold  smell 
of  dishes  lingered  all  the  year  round,  sitting  at  the 
end  of  a  long  table  surrounded  by  many  chairs 
pushed  in  with  their  backs  close  against  the  edge 
of  the  perpetually  laid  table-cloth,  she  read  the 
opening  sentences  :  "  Most  profound  regret — pain- 
ful duty — your   father   is   no  more — in  accordance 


374  THE   END   OF  THE   TETHEK. 

with  his  instructions — fatal  casualty — consolation 
— no  blame  attached  to  his  memory.  .  .  ." 

Her  face  was  thin,  her  temples  a  little  sunk  under 
the  smooth  bands  of  black  hair,  her  lips  remained 
resolutely  compressed,  while  her  dark  eyes  grew 
larger,  till  at  last,  with  a  low  cry,  she  stood  up, 
and  instantly  stooped  to  pick  up  another  envelope 
which  had  slipped  off  her  knees  on  to  the  floor. 

She  tore  it  open,  snatched  out  the  enclosure.  .  .  . 

"  My  dearest  child,"  it  said,  "  I  am  writing  this 
while  I  am  able  yet  to  write  legibly.  I  am  trying 
hard  to  save  for  you  all  the  money  that  is  left ;  I 
have  only  kept  it  to  serve  you  better.  It  is  yours. 
It  shall  not  be  lost ;  it  shall  not  be  touched.  There's 
five  hundred  pounds.  Of  what  I  have  earned  I  have 
kept  nothing  back  till  now.  For  the  future,  if  I 
live,  I  must  keep  back  some — a  little — to  bring  me 
to  you.  I  must  come  to  you.  I  must  see  you  once 
more. 

"It  is  hard  to  believe  that  you  will  ever  look  on 
these  lines.  God  seems  to  have  forgotten  me.  I 
want  to  see  you — and  yet  death  would  be  a  greater 
favour.  If  you  ever  read  these  words,  I  charge  you 
to  begin  by  thanking  a  God  merciful  at  last,  for 
I  shall  be  dead  then,  and  it  will  be  well.  My  dear, 
I  am  at  the  end  of  my  tether." 

The  next  paragraph  began  with  the  words  :  "  My 
sight  is  going  ..." 

She  read  no  more  that  day.  The  hand  holding  up 
the  paper  to  her  eyes  fell  slowly,  and  her  slender 
figure  in  a  plain  black  dress  walked  rigidly  to  the 
window.  Her  eyes  were  dry :  no  cry  of  sorrow  or 
whisper   of   thanks   went    up    to   heaven   from   her 


THE    END    OF   THE   TETHER.  375 

lips.  Life  had  been  too  hard,  for  all  the  efforts 
of  his  love.  It  had  silenced  her  emotions.  But 
for  the  first  time  in  all  these  years  its  sting  had 
departed,  the  carking  care  of  poverty,  the  meanness 
of  a  hard  struggle  for  bread.  Even  the  image  of 
her  husband  and  of  her  children  seemed  to  glide 
away  from  her  into  the  grey  twilight ;  it  was  her 
father's  face  alone  that  she  saw,  as  though  he  had 
come  to  see  her,  always  quiet  and  big,  as  she  had 
seen  him  last,  but  with  something  more  august 
and  tender  in  his  aspect. 

She  slipped  his  folded  letter  between  the  two 
buttons  of  her  plain  black  bodice,  and  leaning  her 
forehead  against  a  window-pane  remained  there 
till  dusk,  perfectly  motionless,  giving  him  all  the 
time  she  could  spare.  Gone !  Was  it  possible  ? 
My  God,  was  it  possible !  The  blow  had  come 
softened  by  the  spaces  of  the  earth,  by  the  years 
of  absence.  There  had  been  whole  days  when  she 
had  not  thought  of  him  at  all — had  no  time.  But 
she  had  loved  him,  she  felt  she  had  loved  him, 
after  all. 


THE   END. 


PRINTED   BY   WILLIAM    BLACKWOOD   AND  SONS. 


Catalogue 
of 

Messrs   Blackwood   &   Sons' 
Publications 


PERIODS   OF  EUROPEAN   LITERATURE:    A  Complete  and 

Continuous  History  of  the  Subject.    Edited  by  Professor  SAINTS- 
BURY.     In  12  crown  8vo  vols.,  each  5s.  net. 

II.  THE  FLOURISHING  OP  ROMANCE  AND  THE  RISE  OF 
ALLEaORY.  (12th  and  13th  Centuries.)  By  GEORGE  SAINTS- 
BURY,  M.A.,  Hon.  LL.D.,  Aberdeen,  Professor  of  Rhetoric  and 
English  Literature  in  Edinburgh  University. 

III.  THE  FOURTEENTH  CENTURY.      By  F.  J.  Snkll. 

IV.  THE  TRANSITION  PERIOD.    By  G.  Gregory  Smith. 
V.  THE  EARLIER  RENAISSANCE.    By  The  Editor. 

VI.  THE  LATER  RENAISSANCE.     By  David  Hannay. 
VIII.  THE  AUGUSTAN  AGES.    By  Oliver  Elton. 
IX.  THE  MID-EIGHTEENTH  CENTURY.    By  J.  H.  Millar. 
XI.  THE  ROMANTIC  TRIUMPH.     By  T.  S.  Omond. 

The  other  Volumes  are  ;— 


I.  The  Dark  Ages  .    .  Prof.  W.  P.  Ker. 

VII.  The  First  Half  of  the  Seventeenth 

Century  .  Prof.  H.  J.  C.  Grierson. 


X.  The  Romantic  Revolt 

Prof.  C.  E.  Vaughan. 
XII.  The  Later  Nineteenth 

Century The  Editor. 


PHILOSOPHICAL    CLASSICS 

Edited  by  WILLIAM  KNIGHT, 
in  the  University  of  St  Andrews. 

Descartes Prof.  Mahaffy. 

Butler       ....  Rev.  W.  L.  Collins. 
Berkeley,  .    .     Prof.  Campbell  Praser. 

Fichte, Prof.  Adamson. 

Kant, Prof.  Wallace. 

Hamilton, Prof.  Vojtch. 

Hegel,  ....   The  Master  of  Balliol. 
Leibnix,     .    .    .    John  Theodore  Mer«. 


FOR     ENGLISH     READERS. 

LL.D.,  Professor  of  Moral  Philosophy 
Re-issue  in  Shilling  Volumes. 

Vico,  Prof.  Flint. 

Hobbes,      .    .    .   Prof.  Croom  Robertson 

Hume, Prof.  Knight. 

Spinoza, Principal  Caird. 

Bacon:  Part  I., Prof.  Nichol. 

Bacon  :  Part  II.,     ....  Prof.  Nichol. 
Locke,  ....     Prof.  Campbell  Fraser. 


FOREIGN  CLASSICS  FOR  ENGLISH  READERS.    Edited  by 

Mrs  OLIPHANT.    Cheap  Re-issue.    In  limp  cloth,  fcap.  8vo,  price  Is. 
each. 


Dante,  by  the  Editor.  —  Voltaire, 
by  General  Sir  E.  B.  Hamley,  K.C.B. 
—  Pascal,  by  Principal  Tulloch.  —  Pe- 
trarch, by  Henry  Reeve,  C.B.— Goethe, 
by  A.  Hayward,  Q.C.— Moliere,  by  the 
Editor  and  F.  Tarver,  M.A.— Montaigne, 
by  Rev.  W.  L.  Collins.— Rabelais,  by  Sir 
Walter  Besanfc.  —  Calderon,  by  E.  J. 
Hasell.— Saint  Simon,  by  C.  W.  Collins. 


Cervantes,  by  the  Editor.  —  Corneille 
and  Racine,  by  Henry  M.  Trollope.— 
Madame  de  Sevigne,  by  Miss  Thackeray. 

—  La  Fontaine,  and  other  French 
Fabulists,  by  Rev.  W.  Lucas  Collins, 
M.A.  —  Schiller,  by  James  Sime,   M.A. 

—  Tasso,  by  E.  J.  Hasell.  —  Rousseau, 
by  Henry  Grey  Graham.  —  Alfred  ds 
Musset,  by  C.  F.  Oliphant. 


ANCIENT  CLASSICS  FOR  ENGLISH  READERS.    Edited  by 

the  Rev.  W.  LUCAS  COLLINS,  M.A.    Cheap  Re-issue.    In  limp  cloth, 
fcap.  8vo,  price  Is.  each. 

Contents  of  the  Series.— Homer  :  Iliad, 
by  the  Editor.— Homer  :  Odyssey,  by  the 
Editor. — Herodotus,  by  G.  C.  Swayne.— 
C/HSar,  by  Anthony  Trollope.— Virgil,  by 
the  Editor.  —  Horace,  by  Sir  Theodore 
Martin.— .ZEschylus,  by  Bishop  Copleston. 
— Xenophon,  by  Sir  Alex.  Grant.— Cicero, 
by  the  Editor.— Sophocles,  by  C.  W.  Col- 
lins.—-Pliny,  by  Rev.  A.  Church  and  W.  J. 
Brodribb. — Euripides,  by  W.  B.  Donne.— 
Juvenal,  by  E.  Walford.  —  Aristophanes, 
by  the  Editor.— Hesiod  and  Theognis,  by 


J.  Da  vies.— Plautus  and  Terence,  by  the 
Editor.  —  Tacitus,  by  W.  B.  Donne.— 
Lucian,  by  the  Editor.— Plato,  by  C.  W. 
Collins.  —  Greek  Anthology,  by  Lord 
Neaves.— Livy,  by  the  Editor.— Ovid,  by 
Rev.  A.  Church.  —  Catullus,  Tibullus, 
and  Propertius,  by  J.  Davies.— Demos- 
thenes, by  W.  J.  Brodribb.— Aristotle, 
by  Sir  Alex.  Grant.— Thucydides,  by  the 
Editor. — Lucretius,  by  W.  H.  Mallock.— 
Pindar,  by  Rey.  F.  D.  Morice. 


CATALOGUE 

OF 

MESSES   BLACKWOOD   &   SONS' 
P  U BL1GA  TION S. 


ALISON. 

History  of  Europe.    By  Sir  Archibald  Alison,  Bart.,  D.C.L. 

1.  From  the  Commencement  of  the  French  Revolution  to 

the  Battle  of  Waterloo. 

Library  Edition,  14  vols.,  with  Portraits.    Demy  8vo,  £10,  10s. 
Another  Edition,  in  20  vols,  crown  8vo,  £6. 
People's  Edition.  13  vols,  crown  8vo,  £2,  lis. 

2.  Continuation  to  the  Accession  of  Louis  Napoleon, 

Library  Edition,  8  vols.  8vo,  £6,  7s.  6d. 
People's  Edition,  8  vols,  crown  8vo.  34s. 

Epitome  of  Alison's  History  of  Europe.     Thirtieth  Thou- 
sand, 7s.  6d. 
Atlas  to  Alison's  History  of  Europe.    By  A.  Keith  Johnston. 

Library  Edition,  demy  4to,  £3,  3s. 
People's  Edition,  31s.  (3d. 

Life  of  John  Duke  of  Marlborough.    With  some  Account  of 

his  Contemporaries,  and  of  the  War  of  the  Succession.  Third  Edition.  2  vols. 
8vo.    Portraits  and  Maps,  30s. 

Essays :    Historical,  Political,   and    Miscellaneous.      3   vols. 

demy  8vo,  45s. 

ACROSS  FRANCE  IN  A  CARAVAN :  Being  some  Account 

of  a  Journey  from  Bordeaux  to  Genoa  in  the  "Escargot,"  taken  in  the  Winter 
1889-90.  By  the  Author  of  '  A  Day  of  my  Life  at  Eton.'  With  fifty  Illustrations 
by  John  Wallace,  after  Sketches  by  the  Author,  and  a  Map.  Cheap  Edition, 
demy  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

ACTA  SANCTORUM  HIBERNLE  ;  Ex  Codice  Salmanticensi. 

Nunc  primum  integre  edita  opera  Caroli  de  Smedt  et  Josephi  de  Backer,  e 
8oc.  Jesu,  Hagiographorum  Bollandianorum ;  Auctore  et  Sumptus  Largiente 
Joanne  Patricio  Marchione  Bothae.  In  One  handsome  4to  Volume,  bound  in 
half  roxburghe,  £2,  2s.;  in  paper  cover,  31s.  6d. 

ADAMSON.     The  Development  of  Modern  Philosophy.    With 

other  Lectures  and  Essays.  By  Robert  Adamson,  LL.D.,  late  Professor  of 
Logic  in  the  University  of  Glasgow.  Edited  by  Professor  W.  JR.  Sorley,  Uni- 
versity of  Cambridge.    In  2  vols,  demy  Svo.  [In  the  press. 

AFLALO.     A  Sketch  of  the  Natural  History  (Vertebrates)  of 

the  British  Islands.  By  P.  G.  Aflalo,  P.R.G.S.,  F.Z.S.,  Author  of  'A  Sketch 
of  the  Natural  History  of  Australia,  &c.  With  numerous  Illustrations  by  Lodge 
and  Bennett.    Crown  8vo,  6s.  net. 

AIKM AN .     Manures  and  the  Principles  of  Manuring.    By  C.  M. 

Airman,  D.Sc,  F.R.S.E.,  &c,  formerly  Professor  of  Chemistiy,  Glasgow 
Veterinary  Oollesre,  and  Examiner  in  Chemistry,  University  of  Glasgow,  &c. 
Second  Impression.    Crown  xvo,  6*.   6d. 

Farmyard  Manure  :  Its  Nature,  Composition,  and  Treatment. 

Crown  8vo,  Is.  6d. 


List  of  Books  Published  by 


ALMOND.     Christ  the  Protestant;    and  other  Sermons.     By 

Hely  Hutchinson  Almond,  M.A.  Oxon.,  Hon.  LL.D.  Glasgow;  Head-master  of 
Loretto  School.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

ANCIENT  CLASSICS  FOR  ENGLISH  READERS.     Edited 

by  Rev.  W.  Lucas  Collins,  M.A.     Price  Is.  each.    For  List  of  Vol*,  see  p.  2. 
ANNALIST.    Musings  without  Method :  A  Record  of  1900  and 

1901.     By  Annalist.     In  1  vol.,  large  crown  8vo. 

AUTOBIOGRAPHY  OF  A  CHILD.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

AYTOUN. 

Lays  of  the  Scottish  Cavaliers,  and  other  Poems.    By  W. 

Edmondstoune  Avtoun,  D.C.L.,  Professor  of  Rhetoric  and  Belles-Lettres  in  the 
University  of  Edinburgh.    New  Edition.    Pcap.  8vo,  8b.  6d. 
Cheap  Edition.    Is.    Cloth,  Is.  8d. 

An  Illustrated  Edition  of  the  Lays  of  the  Scottish  Cavaliers. 

Prom  designs  by  Sir  Noel  Paton.    Cheaper  Edition.    Small  4to,  10s.  6d. 

Poems   and    Ballads    of    Goethe.      Translated  by  Professor 

Aytoun  and  Sir  Theodore  Maktin,  K.C.B.    Third  Edition.    Pcap.,  6b. 

BAKER.     A  Palace  of   Dreams,  and   other  Verse.      By  Ada 

Bartrick  Baker.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

BARBOUR.    Thoughts  from  the  Writings  of  R.  W.  Barbour. 

Pott  8vo,  limp  leather,  2s.  6d.  net. 

BELLESHEIM.     History  of  the  Catholic  Church  of  Scotland. 

From  the  introduction  of  Christianity  to  the  Present  Day.  By  Alphons  Bel- 
lesheim,  D.D.,  Canon  of  Aix-la-Chapelle.  Translated,  with  Notes  and  Additions, 
by  D.  Oswald  Hunter  Blair,  O.S.B.,  Monk  of  Port  Augustus.  Cheap  Edition. 
Complete  in  4  vols,  demy  8vo,  with  Maps.    Price  21s.  net. 

BLACKIE.    John  Stuart  Blackie  :  A  Biography.     By  Anna  M. 

Stoddart.    Popular  Edition.    With  Portrait.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

BLACKWOOD. 

Annals  of  a  Publishing  House.    William  Blackwood  and  his 

Sons ;  Their  Magazine  and  Friends.  By  Mrs  Oliphant.  With  Four  Portraits. 
Third  Edition.    Demy  8vo.    Vols.  I.  and  II.  £2,  2s. 

Annals  of  a  Publishing  House.     Vol.  III.     John  Blackwood. 

By  his  Daughter  Mrs  Gerald  Porter.  With  2  Portraits  and  View  of  Strath- 
tyrum.    Demy  8vo,  21s.    Cheap  Edition.    Demy  8vo,  7s.  Gd. 

Blackwood's   Magazine,   from    Commencement    in    1817    to 

March  1901.    Nos.  1  to  1025,  forming  168  Volumes. 

Tales  from  Blackwood.   First  Series.   Price  One  Shilling  each, 

in  Paper  Cover.    Sold  separately  at  all  Railway  Bookstalls. 

They  may  also  be  had  bound  in  12  vols.,  cloth,  18s.    Half  calf,  richly  gilt,  80s. 
Or  the  12  vols,  in  6,  roxburghe,  21s.    Half  red  morocco,  28s. 

Tales  from  Blackwood.     Second  Series.     Complete  in  Twenty- 

four  Shilling  Parts.  Handsomely  bound  in  12  vols.,  cloth,  80s.  In  leather  back, 
roxburghe  style,  87s.  6d.    Half  calf,  gilt,  52s.  6d.    Half  morocco,  55s. 

Tales  from  Blackwood.     Third  Series.    Complete  in  Twelve 

Shilling  Parts.  Handsomely  bound  in  6  vols.,  cloth,  15s.;  and  in  12  vols,  cloth, 
18s.    The  6  vols,  in  roxburghe  21s.    Half  calf,  25s.    Half  morocco,  28s. 

Travel,  Adventure,  and  Sport.    From  4  Blackwood's  Magazine. 

Uniform  with  •  Tales  from  Blackwood.1  In  Twelve  Parts,  each  price  Is.  Hand- 
somely bound  in  6  vols.,  cloth,  15s.    And  in  half  calf,  25s. 

New  Educational  Series.    See  separate  Educational  Catalogue. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons. 


BLACKWOOD. 

New  Uniform  Series  of  Novels  (Copyright). 

Crown  8vo,  cloth.     Price  8s.  6d.  each.     Now  ready  :— 


Wenderholme.     By  P.  G.  Hamerton. 
The  Story  or  Margredel.    By  D.  Storrar 

Meldrum. 
Miss  Marjoribanks.     By  Mrs  Oliphant. 
The  Perpetual  Ourate,  and  The  Rector 

By  the  Same. 
Salem  Ohapel,  and  The  Doctor's  Family. 

By  the  Same. 
A  Sensitive  Plant.     By  B.  D.  Gerard. 
Lady  Lee's  Widowhood.    By  General  Sir 

B.  B.  Hamley. 
Katie  Stewart,  and  other  Stories.    By  Mrs 

Oliphant. 
Valentine  and  his  Brother.    By  the  Same. 
Sons  and  Daughters.    By  the  Same. 


Marmorne.    By  P.  G.  Hamerton. 

Reata.    By  B.  D.  Gerard. 

BEGGAR  my  Neighbour.    By  the  Same. 

The  Waters  of  Hercules.    By  the  Same 

Pair  to  See.     By  L.  W.  M.  Lockhart. 

Mine  is  Thine.     By  the  Same. 

Doubles  and  Quits.    By  the  Same. 

Altiora  Peto.    By  Laurence  Oliphant. 

Piccadilly.  By  the  Same.  With  Illustra- 
tions. 

Lady  Baby.    By  D.  Gerard. 

The  Blacksmith  of  Voe.  By  Paul  Cushing. 

My  Trivial  Life  and  Misfortune.  By  A 
Plain  Woman. 

Poor  Nellie.    By  the  Same. 


Standard  Novels.      Uniform    in    size    and    binding. 

complete  in  one  Volume. 

FLORIN  SERIES,  Illustrated  Boards.    Bound  in  Cloth,  2s.  fld. 


Each 


Tom  Cringle's  Log.     By  Michael  Scott. 
The  Cruise  of  the  Midge.    By  the  Same. 
Cyril  Thornton.    By  Captain  Hamilton. 
Annals  of  the  Parish.     By  John  Gait. 
The  Provost,  &c.     By  the  Same. 
Sir  Andrew  Wylie.    By  the  Same. 
The  Entail.    By  the  Same. 
Miss  Molly.    By  Beatrice  May  Butt. 
Reginald  Dalton.     By  J.  G.  Lockhart. 


Pen  Owen.     By  Dean  Hook. 

Adam  Blair.    By  J.  G.  Lockhart. 

Lady  Lee's  Widowhood.   By  General  Sir  E. 

B.  Hamley. 
Salem  Chapel.     By  Mrs  Oliphant. 
The  Perpetual  Curate.    By  the  Same. 
Miss  Marjoribanks.    By  the  Same. 
John  :  A  Love  Story.    By  the  Same. 


SHILLING  SERIES,  Illustrated  Cover.    Bound  in  Cloth,  Is.  6d. 


The  Rector,  and  The  Doctor's  Family. 

By  Mrs  Oliphant. 
The   Life  of  Mansie  Wauch.     By  D.  M. 

Moir. 
Peninsular   Scenes   and  Sketches.     By 

F.  Hardman. 


Sir  Frizzle  Pumpkin,  Nights  at  Mess, 

&c. 
The  Subaltern. 

Life  in  the  Far  West.     By  G.  F.  Ruxton. 
Valerius  :    A    Roman    Story.      By  J.   G. 

Lockhart. 


BLISSETT.    The  Most  Famous  Loba.     By  Nellie  K.  Blissett, 

Author  of  'The  Wisdom  of  the  Simple,'  'The  Concert  Director,'  &c.  With  a 
Frontispiece.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

BON   GAULTIER'S   BOOK   OF   BALLADS.     Fifteenth  Edi- 
tion.   With  Illustrations  by  Doyle,  Leech,  and  Crowquill.    Fcap.  8vo,  5s. 

BOWHILL.    Questions  and  Answers  in  the  Theory  and  Practice 

of  Military  Topography.  By  Major  J.  H.  Bowhill.  Crown  8vo,  48.  6d.  net. 
Portfolio  containing  34  working  plans  and  diagrams,  3s.  6d.  net. 

BOYD.     Our  Stolen  Summer.      The  Record  of  a  Roundabout 

Tour.  By  Mary  Stuart  Boyd.  With  170  Illustrations  by  A.  S.  Boyd.  Large 
demv  8vo,  18s. 

BROWN.    The  Forester :  A  Practical  Treatise  on  the  Planting 

and  Tending  of  Forest-trees  and  the  General  Management  of  Woodlands.  By 
James  Brown,  LL.D.  Sixth  Edition,  Enlarged.  Edited  by  John  Nisbet,  D.G3c, 
Author  of  *  British  Forest  Trees,'  &c.  In  2  vols,  royal  8vo,  with  350  Illustra- 
tions, 42s.  net. 

BUCHAN.     The  First  Things.     Studies  in  the  Embryology  of 

Religion  and  Natural  Theology.  By  Rev.  John  Buchan,  John  Knox  Church, 
Glasgow.     Crown  8vo,  5s. 

BUCHAN.    The  Watcher  by  the  Threshold,  and  other  Tales.    By 

John  Buchan.    Second  Impression.     Crown  8vo,  Gs. 


List  of  Books  Published  by 


BURBIDGE. 

Domestic  Floriculture,  Window  Gardening,  and  Floral  Decora- 
tions. Being  Practical  Directions  for  the  Propagation,  Culture,  and  Arrangement 
of  Plants  and  Flowers  as  Domestic  Ornaments.  By  F.  W.  Burbidge.  Second 
Edition.    Crown  8vo  with  numerous  Illustrations,  7s.  6d. 

Cultivated   Plants :    Their   Propagation    and    Improvement. 

Including  Natural  and  Artificial  Hybridisation,  Raising  from  Seed  Cuttings, 
and  Layers,  Grafting  and  Budding,  as  applied  to  the  Families  and  Genera  in 
Cultivation.    Crown  8vo,  with  numerous  Illustrations,  19a.  6d 

BURKE.     The  Flowering  of  the  Almond  Tree,  and  other  Poems. 

By  Christian  Burke.    Cheaper  Edition.    Pott  4to,  Is  net. 

BURROWS.    The  History  of  the  Foreign  Policy  of  Great  Britain. 

By  Montagu  Burrows,  Chichele  Professor  of  Modern  History  in  the  University 
of  Oxford ;  Captain  R.N. ;  F.S.A.,  &c.  ;  "Officior  de  l'lnstruction  Pablique," 
France.     New  Edition,  revised.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

BURTON. 

The  History  of  Scotland :   From  Agricola's  Invasion  to  the 

Extinction  of  the  last  Jacobite  Insurrection.  By  John  Hill  Burton,  D.C.L., 
Historiographer- Royal  for  Scotland.  Cheaper  Edition.  In  8  vols.  Crown  8vo, 
3s.  6d.  each. 

The  Book-Hunter.     A  New  Edition,  with  specially  designed 

Title-page  and  Cover  by  Joseph  Brown.  Printed  on  antique  laid  paper.  Post 
8vo,  3s.  6d. 

The  Scot  Abroad.     Uniform  with 'The  Book-Hunter.'    Post 

8vo,  3s.  6d. 

BUTE. 

The    Roman    Breviary :    Reformed  by   Order  of    the  Holy 

(Ecumenical  Council  of  Trent ;  Published  by  Order  of  Pope  St  Pius  V.  ;  and 
Revised  by  Clement  VIII.  and  Urban  VIII.  ;  together  with  the  Offices  since 
granted.  Translated  out  of  Latin  into  English  by  John,  Marquess  of  Bute, 
K.T.  New  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.  In  4  vols,  crown  8vo,  and  in  1  vol. 
crown  4to.  [In  the  press. 

The  Altus  of  St  Columba.   With  a  Prose  Paraphrase  and  Notes 

By  John,  Marquess  of  Bute,  K.T.     In  paper  cover,  2s.  6d. 

Sermones,     Fratris     Adse,     Ordinis     Prsemonstratensis,     &c. 

Twenty-eight  Discourses  of  Adam  Scotus  of  Whithorn,  hitherto  unpublished ; 
to  which  is  added  a  Collection  of  Notes  by  the  same,  illustrative  of  the  rule  of 
St  Augustine.  Edited,  at  the  desire  of  the  late  Marquess  of  Bute,  K.T.,  LL.D., 
&c,  by  Walter  de  Gray  Birch,  LL.D.,  F.S.A.,  of  the  British  Museum,  &c. 
Royal  8vo,  25s.  net. 

BUTE,    MACPHAIL,    and    LONSDALE.     The  Arms  of  the 

Royal  and  Parliamentary  Burghs  ol  Scotland.  By  John,  Marquess  of  Bute, 
K.T.,  J.  R.  N.  Macphail,  and  H.  W.  Lonsdale.  With  131  Engravings  on 
wood,  and  11  other  Illustrations.    Crown  4to.  £2,  2s.  net. 

BUTE,  STEVENSON,  and  LONSDALE.     The  Arms  of  the 

Baronial  and  Police  Burghs  of  Scotland.  By  John,  Marquess  of  Bute,  K.T. 
J.  H.  Stevenson,  and  H.  W.  Lonsdale.  With  numerous  Illustrations.  In  1 
vol.  crown  4to.  [In  the  press. 

BUTLER. 

The  Ancient  Church  and  Parish  of  Abernethy,  Perthshire. 

An  Historical  Study.  By  Rev.  D.  Butler,  M.A.,  Minister  of  the  Parish.  With 
13  Collotype  Plates  and  a  Map.    Crown  4to,  25s.  net. 

John  Wesley  and  George  Whitefield  in  Scotland ;   or,  The 

Influence  of  the  Oxford  Methodists  on  Scottish  Religion.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons. 


BUTLEE. 

Henry  Scougal  and  the  Oxford  Methodists  ;  or,  The  Influence 

of  a  Religious  Teacher  of  the  Scottish  Church.    Fcap.  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

BUTT. 

Theatricals  :  An  Interlude.    By  Beatrice  May  Butt.    Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

Miss  Molly.    Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

Eugenie.     Crown  8vo,  6s.  6d. 

Elizabeth,  and  other  Sketches.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Delicia.    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

CADELL.     Sir  John  Cope  and  the  Rebellion  of  1745.     By  the 

late  General  Sir  Robert  Cadell,  K.C.B.,  Royal  (Madras)  Artillery.  With  2 
Maps.    Crown  4to,  12s.  6d.  net. 

CAFFYN.    Seventy-One  not  Out,  the  Reminiscences  of  William 

Caffyn,  Member  of  the  All  England  and  United  Elevens,  of  the  Surrey  County 
Eleven,  of  the  Anglo-American  Team  of  1859,  and  of  the  Anglo-Australian  Teams 
of  1861  and  1863.  Edited  by  "Mid -On."  With  numerous  Illustrations. 
Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

CAIRD.     Sermons.     By  John    Caird,  D.D.,  Principal  of  the 

University  of  Glasgow.    Seventeenth  Thousand.    Fcap.  8vo,  5s. 

CALDWELL.  Schopenhauer's  System  in  its  Philosophical  Sig- 
nificance (the  8haw  Fellowship  Lectures,  1893).  By  William  Caldwell,  M.A., 
D.Sc,  Professor  of  Moral  and  Social  Philosophy,  Northwestern  University, 
U.S.A. ;  formerly  Assistant  to  the  Professor  of  Logic  and  Metaphysics,  Edin., 
and  Examiner  in  Philosophy  in  the  University  ot  St  Andrews.  Demy  8vo, 
10s.  6d.  net. 

CALL  WELL. 

The  Effect  of  Maritime  Command  on  Land  Campaigns  since 

Waterloo.     By  Lt.-Col.  C.  E.  Callwell,  R.G.A.    With  Plans.    Post  8vo,  6s.  net. 

Tactics  of  To-day.  Fourth  Impression.   Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d.  net. 
CAMPBELL.     Balmerino  and  its  Abbey.     A  Parish   History, 

With  Notices  of  the  Adjacent  District.  By  James  Campbell,  D.D.,  F.S.A.  Scot., 
Minister  of  Balmerino  ;  Author  of  '  A  History  of  the  Celtic  Church  in  Scotland.' 
A  New  Edition.  With  an  Appendix  of  Illustrative  Documents,  a  Map  of  the 
Parish,  and  upwards  of  40  Illustrations.    Demy  8vo,  30s.  net. 

CAPES. 

From  Door  to  Door.    By  Bernard  Capes.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Our  Lady  of  Darkness.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Adventures  of  the  Comte  de  la  Muette  during  the  Reign 

of  Terror.    Crown  8vo.  6s. 

CAREY.     Monsieur  Martin  :  A  Romance  of  the  Great  Northern 

War.    By  Wymond  Carey.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

CHARTERIS.  Canonicity  ;  or,  Early  Testimonies  to  the  Exist- 
ence and  Use  of  the  Books  of  the  New  Testament.  Based  on  Kirchhoffer's 
'  Quell ensammlung.'  Edited  by  A.  H.  Charteris,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Biblical 
Criticism  in  the  University  of  Edinburgh.     8vo,  18s. 

CHESNEY.    The  Dilemma.    By  General  Sir  George  Chesney, 

K.C.B.    A  New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s. 

CHURCH  AND  FAITH.    Being  Essays  on  the  Teaching  of  the 

Church  of  England.  By  Dr  Wace,  Dean  Farrar,  Dr  Wright,  Rev.  R.  E. 
Bartlett,  Principal  Drurv,  Canon  Meyrick,  Professor  Moule,  Chancellor 
Smith,  Montague  Barlow,  Sir  Richard  Temple,  Bart.,  E.  H.  Blakeney,  and 
J.  T.  Tomlinson.  With  Introduction  by  the  Lord  Bishop  of  Hereford.  Second 
Edition.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d.  net. 


List  of  Books  Published  by 


CHURCH  SERVICE  SOCIETY. 

A  Book  of  Common  Order :  being  Forma  of  Worship  issued 

by  the  Church  Service  Society.  Seventh  Edition,  carefully  revised.  In  1  vol. 
crown  8vo,  cloth,  3s.  6d. ;  French  morocco,  5s.  Also  in  2  vols,  crown  8vo, 
cloth,  4s. ;  French  morocco,  6s.  6d. 

Daily  Offices  for  Morning  and  Evening  Prayer  throughout 

the  Week.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Order  of  Divine  Service  for  Children.     Issued  by  the  Church 

Service  Society.    With  Scottish  Hymnal.    Cloth,  3d. 

CLIFFORD.     Bush- Whacking,  and  other  Sketches.    By  Hugh 

Clifford,  C.M.G.,  Author  of  'In  Court  and  Kampong,'  'Studies  in  Brown 
Humanity,'  &c.     Second  Impression.     Crown  8vo,  6s 

CLODD.    Thomas  Henry  Huxley.    "Modern  English  Writers." 

By  Edward  Clodd.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

CLOUSTON. 

The  Lunatic  at  Large.     By  J.  Storer   Clottston.     Fourth 

Impression.    Crown  8vo.  6s.     People's  Edition,  royal  8vo,  6d. 

The  Adventures  of  M.  D'Haricot.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
COLLINS. 

A  Scholar  of  his  College.    By  W.  E.  W.  Collins.    Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

The  Don  and  the  Undergraduate.     A  Tale  of  St  Hilary's 

College,  Oxford.    Second  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Episodes  of  Rural  Life.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
COLQUHOUN.    The  Moor  and  the  Loch.    Containing  Minute 

Instructions  in  all  Highland  Sports,  with  Wanderings  over  Crag  and  Corrie, 
Flood  and  Fell.  By  John  Colquhoun.  Cheap  Edition.  With  Illustrations. 
Demy  8vo,  10s.  6d. 

CONDER. 

The  Bible  and  the   East.     By  Lieut. -Col.   C.   R.   Conder, 

R.E.,  LL.D.,  D.C.L.,  M.R.A.8.,  Author  of  'Tent  Work  in  Palestine, '  &c.  With 
Illustrations  and  a  Map.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

The  Hittites  and  their  Language.     With  Illustrations  and 

Map.    Post  8vo,  7s.  fid. 

The  Hebrew  Tragedy.    Crown  8vo,  3s. 

The  First  Bible.    In  1  vol.  crown  8vo.  \in  the  press. 

CONRAD. 

Lord  Jim.     A  Tale.     By  Joseph  Conrad,  Author  of  'The 

Nigger  of  the  Narcissus,'  'An  Outcast  of  the  Islands,'  'Talcs  of  Unrest,'  &e. 
Second  Impression.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Youth,  and  other  Tales.     In  1  vol.  crown  8vo.  [in  the  press. 

CONSTABLE.    Marrables'   Magnificent  Idea.    By  F.   C.   Con- 
stable, Author  of  '  The  Curse  of  Intellect,'  &c.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

COOPER.     Liturgy  of  1637,  commonly  called  Laud's  Liturgy. 

Edited  by  the  Rev.  Professor  Cooper,  D.D.,  Glasgow.     In  1  vol.  crown  8vo. 

[J*  the  press. 

CORNFORD.     R.  L.  Stevenson.     "Modern  English  Writers." 

By  L.  Cope  Cornford.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

COUNTY  HISTORIES   OF   SCOTLAND.     In  demy  8vo  vol- 

umes  of  about  350  pp.  each.    With  Maps.    Price  7s.  6d.  net. 

Prehistoric  Scotland  and  its  Place  in  European  Civilisation. 

Being  a  General  Introduction  to  the  "County  Histories  of  Scotland."  By 
Robert  Munro,  M.A.,  M.D.,  Author  of  'Prehistoric  Problems,'  'The  Lake- 
Dwellings  of  Europe,'  &c.    With  numerous  Illustrations. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons, 


COUNTY  HISTORIES  OF  SCOTLAND. 

Fife  and  Kinross.     By  jEneas  J.  G.  Mackay,  LL.D.,  Sheriff 

of  these  Counties. 

Dumfries  and  Galloway.    By  Sir  Herbert  Maxwell,  Bart., 

M.P.    Second  Edition. 

Moray  and    Nairn.     By  Charles  Rampini,  LL.D.,  Sheriff 

of  Dumfries  and  Galloway. 

Inverness.     By  J.  Cameron  Lees,  D.D. 

Roxburgh,  Selkirk,  and  Peebles.    By  Sir  George  Douglas, 

Bart. 

Aberdeen  and  Banff.    By  William  Watt,  Editor  of  Aberdeen 

'  Daily  Free  Press.' 

Perth  and  Clackmannan.    By  John  Chisholm,  M.A.,  Advocate. 

[In  the  press. 

Edinburgh  and  Linlithgow.      By  William  Kirk  Dickson, 

Advocate.  [In  the  press. 

CRAIK.    A  Century  of  Scottish  History.    From  the  Days  before 

the  '45  to  those  within  living  Memory.     By  Sir  Henry  Cbaik,  K.C.B.,  M.A. 
(Oxon.),  Hon.  LL.D.  (Glasgow).     2  vols,  demy  8vo,  30s.  net. 

CRAWFORD.    Saracinesca.    By  F.  Marion  Crawford,  Author 

of  'Mr  Isaacs,'  &c,  &c.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  fid.    People's  Edition,  6d. 

CRAWFORD. 

The  Doctrine  of  Holy  Scripture  respecting  the  Atonement. 

By  the  late  Thomas  J.  Crawford,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Divinity  in  the  University 
of  Edinburgh.     Fifth  Edition.    8vo,  12s. 

The  Fatherhood  of  God,  Considered  in  its  General  and  Special 

Aspects,    Third  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.    8vo,  9s. 

The  Preaching  of  the  Cross,  and  other  Sermons.     8vo,  7s.  6d. 
The  Mysteries  of  Christianity.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 
CUSHING.   The  Blacksmith  of  Voe.    By  Paul  Gushing,  Author 

of  '  The  Bull  1'  th'  Thorn,'  •  Cut  with  his  own  Diamond.'    Cheap  Edition.    Crown 
8vo,  8s.  6d. 

DA  VIES.     Norfolk   Broads  and  Rivers;   or,  The  Waterways, 

Lagoons,  and  Decoys  of  East  Anglia.     By  G.  Christopher  Davies.    Illustrated 
with  Seven  full-page  Plates     New  and  Cheaper  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

DESCARTES.  The  Method,  Meditations,  and  Principles  of  Philo- 
sophy of  Descartes.  Translated  from  the  Original  French  and  Latin.  With  a 
New  Introductory  Essay,  Historical  and  Critical,  on  the  Cartesian  Philosophy. 
By  Professor  Veitch,  LL.D.,  Glasgow  University.    Eleventh  Edition.    6s.  6d. 

DICKSON.    Life  of  Major-General  Sir  Robert  Murdoch  Smith, 

K.C.M.G.,  Royal  Engineers.    By  his  Son-in-law,  William  Kirk  Dickson.    With 
Portraits  and  other  Illustrations.    Demy  8vo,  15s.  net. 

DOUGLAS. 

The  Ethics  of  John  Stuart  Mill.     By  Charles   Douglas, 

M.A.,  D.Sc,  M.P.,  late  Lecturer  in  Moral  Philosophy,  and  Assistant  to  the  Pro- 
fessor of  Moral  Philosophy  in  the  University  of  Edinburgh.    Post  8vo,  6s.  net. 

John  Stuart  Mill :  A  Study  of  his  Philosophy.    Crown  8vo, 


4s.  6d.  net. 


10 


List  of  Books  Published  by 


ELIOT. 

George  Eliot's  Life,  Related  in  Her  Letters  and  Journals. 

Arranged  and  Bdited  by  her  husband,  J.  W.  Cross.  With  Portrait  and  other 
Illustrations.    Third  Edition.    S  vols,  post  8vo,  42s. 

George  Eliot's  Life.     With  Portrait  and  other  Illustrations. 

New  Edition,  in  one  volume.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

Works  of  George  Eliot  (Library  Edition).     10  volumes,  small 

demy  8vo.  With  Photogravure  Frontispieces,  from  Drawings  by  William 
Hatnerell,  R.I.,  Edgar  Bundy,  R.I.,  Byam  Shaw,  R.I.,  A.  A.  Van  Anrooy,  Maurice 
Greiffenhagen,  Claude  A.  Shepperson,  R.I.,  E.  J.  Sullivan,  and  Max  Cowper. 
Gilt  top,  10s.  6d.  net  each  volume. 


Felix  Holt,  the  Radical, 
middlemarch. 
Daniel  Deronda. 
The  Spanish  Gypsy;  Jubal. 
Theophrastus  Such. 


Adam  Bede. 

The  Mill  on  the  Floss. 
Romola. 

Scenes  of  Clerical  Life. 
Silas  Marner  ;  Brother  Jacob  ; 
The  Lifted  Veil. 

Life  and  Works  of  George  Eliot  (Warwick  Edition).  14  vol- 
umes, cloth,  limp,  gilt  top,  2s.  net  per  volume  ;  leather,  limp,  gilt  top,  2s.  6d.  net 
per  volume ;  leather,  gilt  top,  with  book-marker,  3s.  net  per  volume. 


Adam  Bede.    826  pp. 
The  Mill  on  the  Floss.     828  pp. 
Felix  Holt,  the  Radical.     718  pp. 
Romola.     900  pp. 

Scenes  of  Clerical  Life.     624  pp. 
Silas   Marner  ;    Brother   Jacob  ; 
Lifted  Veil.    560  pp. 


The 


Middlemarch.     2  vols.     664  and  630  pp. 
Daniel    Deronda.      2    vols.      616    and 

636  pp. 
The  Spanish  Gypsy;  Jtjbal. 
Essays;  Theophrastus  Such. 
Life.     2  vols.,  626  and  580  pp. 


Works  of   George  Eliot  (Standard   Edition).      21    volumes, 

crown  8vo.     In  buckram  cloth,  gilt  top,  2s.  6d.  per  vol. ;   or  In  roxburghe 

binding,  3s.  6d.  per  vol. 

Adam  Bede.  2  vols.— The  Mill  on  the  Floss.  2  vols.— Felix  Holt,  the 
Radical.  2  vols. — Romola.  2  vols.— Scenes  of  Clerical  Life.  2  vols.— 
Middlemarch.  3  vols.— Daniel  Deronda.  3  vols.— Silas  Marner.  1  vol. 
— Jubal.  1  vol.— The  Spanish  Gypsy.  1  vol.— Essays.  1  vol.— Theophras- 
tus Such.    1  vol. 

Life  and   Works   of  George    Eliot    (Cabinet    Edition).      24 

volumes,  crown  8vo,  price  £6.    Also  to  be  had  handsomely  bound  in  half  and  full 
calf.    The  Volumes  are  sold  separately,  bound  in  cloth,  price  5s.  each. 

Novels  by  George  Eliot.    Popular  Copyright  Edition.    In  new 

uniform  binding,  price  3s.  6d.  each. 

Silas  Marner;  The  Lifted  Veil; 

Brother  Jacob. 
Middlemarch. 
Daniel  Deronda. 


Adam  Bede. 

The  Mill  on  the  Floss. 

Scenes  of  Clerical  Life. 

Romola. 

Felix  Holt,  the  Radical, 


New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
Impressions  of  Theophrastus  Such.     New  Edition.     Crown 

8vo,  5s. 

The  Spanish  Gypsy.    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

The    Legend    of   Jubal,  and    other    Poems,   Old    and    New. 

New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Silas  Marner.     New  Edition,  with  Illustrations  by  Reginald 

Birch.    Crown  8vo,  6s.     People's  Edition,  royal  8vo,  paper  cover,  price  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  II 


ELIOT. 

Scenes  of  Clerical  Life.    Pocket  Edition,  3  vols,  pott  8vo, 

Is.  net  each ;  bound  in  leather,  Is.  6d.  net  each.  Illustrated  Edition,  with  20 
Illustrations  by  H.  R.  Millar,  crown  8vo,  2s. ;  paper  covers,  Is.  People's  Edi- 
tion, royal  8vo,  in  paper  cover,  price  6d. 

Adam  Bede.    Pocket  Edition.     In  3  vols,  pott  8vo,  3s.  net ; 

bound  in  leather,  4s.  6d.  net.  People's  Edition,  royal  8vo,  in  paper  cover, 
price  6d.  New  Edition,  crown  Svo,  paper  cover,  Is.;  crown  8vo,  with  Illus- 
trations, cloth,  2s. 

The  Mill  on  the  Floss.      Pocket  Edition,  2  vols,  pott  8vo> 

cloth,  3s.  net ;  limp  leather,  4s.  6d.  net.  People's  Edition,  royal  8vo,  in  paper 
cover,  price  6d.     New  Edition,  paper  covers,  Is. ;  cloth,  2s. 

Wise,  Witty,  and  Tender  Sayings,  in  Prose  and  Verse.    Selected 

from  the  Works  of  George  Eliot.    New  Edition.    Pcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

ELTON.  The  Augustan  Ages.  "  Periods  of  European  Litera- 
ture." By  Oliver  Elton,  B.A.,  Lecturer  in  English  Literature,  Owen's  College, 
Manchester.    Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

FAHIE.     A  History  of  Wireless  Telegraphy.     Including  some 

Bare-wire  Proposals  for  Subaqueous  Telegraphs.  By  J.  J.  Fahie,  Member  of  the 
Institution  of  Electrical  Engineers,  London,  and  of  the  Societe  Internationale 
des  Electricians,  Paris;  Author  of  'A  History  of  Electric  Telegraphy  to  the 
Year  1837,'  &c.     With  Illustrations.     Third  Edition,  Revised.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

FAITHS  OF  THE  WORLD,  The.    A  Concise  History  of  the 

Great  Religious  Systems  of  the  World.    By  various  Authors.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

FERGUSSON.     Scots  Poems.    By  Robert  Fergusson      With 

Photogravure  Portrait.  Pott  8vo,  gilt  top,  bound  in  cloth,  Is.  net;  leather, 
Is.  6d.  net. 

FERRIER. 

Philosophical  Works    of    the   late   James   F.   Ferrier,   B.A. 

Oxon.,  Professor  of  Moral  Philosophy  and  Political  Economy,  St  Andrews. 
New  Edition.  Edited  by  Sir  Alexander  Grant,  Bart.,  D.C.L.,  and  Professor 
Lushington.     3  vols,  crown  8vo,  34s.  6d. 

Institutes  of  Metaphysic.    Third  Edition.     10s.  6d. 

Lectures  on  the  Early  Greek  Philosophy.   4th  Edition.    10s.  6d. 

Philosophical    Remains,    including    the   Lectures    on    Early 

Greek  Philosophy,    New  Edition.    2  vols.   24s 

FLINT. 

Historical  Philosophy  in  France   and  French  Belgium   and 

Switzerland.  By  Robert  Flint,  Corresponding  Member  of  the  Institute  of 
France,  Hon.  Member  of  the  Royal  Society  ot  Palermo,  Professor  in  the  Univer- 
sity of  Edinburgh,  Ac.     8vo,  21s. 

Agnosticism.     In  1  vol.,  clemy  8vo.  [in  the  press. 

Theism.     Being  the  Baird  Lecture  for  1876.    Tenth  Edition, 

Revised.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d 

Anti-Theistic  Theories.    Being  the  Baird  Lecture  for  1877. 

Fifth  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  10s.  6d. 

Sermons  and  Addresses.     Demy  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

FORD. 

'Postle  Farm.    By  George  Ford.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
The  Larramys.    Second  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 


12  List  of  Books  Published  by 


FORD.    A  History  of  Cambridge  University  Cricket  Club.    By 

W.  J.  Ford,  Author  of  'A  History  of  Middlesex  County  Cricket,'  &c.  With 
Illustrations.     Demy  8vo,  15s.  net. 

FOREIGN  CLASSICS  FOR   ENGLISH   READERS.     Edited 

by  Mrs  Oliphant.    Price  Is.  each.    For  List  of  Volumes,  see  page  2. 

FORREST.     Sepoy  Generals:   Wellington  to  Roberts.     By  G. 

W.  Forrest,  C.I.E.,  Ex-Director  of  Records,  Government  of  India.  With  Por- 
traits.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

FRANKLIN.      My    Brilliant    Career.      By   Miles    Franklin. 

Fourth  Impression.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

FRASER.     Philosophy  of  Theism.     Being  the  Gifford  Lectures 

delivered  before  the  University  of  Edinburgh  in  1894-96.  By  Alexander 
Campbell  Fraser,  D.C.L.  Oxford;  Emeritus  Professor  of  Logic  and  Meta- 
physics in  the  University  of  Edinburgh.  Second  Edition,  Revised.  Post  8vo, 
6s.  6d.  net. 

FRENCH  COOKERY  FOR  ENGLISH  HOMES.     Third  Im- 

pression.    Crown  8vo,  limp  cloth,  2s.  6d.     Also  in  limp  leather,  3s. 

GALT.     Novels  by  John  Galt.    With  General  Introduction  and 

Prefatory  Notes  by  S.  R.  Crockett.  The  Text  Revised  and  Edited  by  D. 
Storrar  Meldrum,  Author  of  '  The  Story  of  Margredel. '  With  Photogravure 
Illustrations  from  Drawings  by  John  Wallace.  Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  net  each  vol. 
Annals  of  the  Parish,  and  The  Ayrshire  Legatees.  2  vols. — Sir  Andrew 
Wylie.  2  vols.— The  Entail  ;  or,  The  Lairds  of  Grippy.  2  vols.— The  Pro- 
vost, and  The  Last  of  the  Lairds.    2  vols. 

See  also  Standard  Novels,  p.  5. 

GENERAL  ASSEMBLY  OF  THE  CHURCH  OF  SCOTLAND. 

Scottish  Hymnal,  With  Appendix  Incorporated.     Published 

for  use  in  Churches  by  Authority  of  the  General  Assembly.  1.  Large  type, 
cloth,  red  edges,  2s.  6d.;  French  morocco,  4s.  2.  Bourgeois  type,  limp  cloth,  Is.  5 
French  morocco,  2s.  3.  Nonpareil  type,  cloth,  red  edges,  6d.;  French  morocco, 
Is.  4d.  4.  Paper  covers,  3d.  5.  Sunday-School  Edition,  paper  covers,  Id., 
cloth,  2d.  No.  1,  bound  with  the  Psalms  and  Paraphrases,  French  morocco,  8s. 
No.  2,  bound  with  the  Psalms  and  Parapareses,  cloth,  2s.;  French  morocco,  3s. 

Prayers   for   Social  and   Family  Worship.      Prepared  by   a 

Special  Committee  of  the  General  Assembly  of  the  Church  of  Scotland.  Entirely 
New  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.    Fcap.  8vo,  red  edges,  2s. 

Prayers  for  Family  Worship.     A  Selection  of  Four  Weeks' 

Prayers.  New  Edition.  Authorised  by  the  General  Assembly  of  the  Church  of 
Scotland.    Fcap.  8vo,  red  edges,  Is.  6d. 

One  Hundred  Prayers.     Prepared  by  the  Committee  on  Aids 

to  Devotion.     16mo,  cloth  limp,  6d. 

Morning  and  Evening  Prayers  for  Affixing  to  Bibles.    Prepared 

by  the  Committee  on  Aids  to  Devotion.    Id.  for  6,  or  Is.  per  100. 

Prayers  for  Soldiers  and  Sailors.    Prepared  by  the  Committee 

on  Aids  to  Devotion.    Thirtieth  Thousand.    16mo,  cloth  limp.    2d.  net. 

GERARD. 

Reata :   What's  in  a  Name.      By  E.    D.    Gerard.     Cheap 

Edition.    Crown  8vo,  8s.  6d. 

Beggar  my  Neighbour.    Cheap  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
The  Waters  of  Hercules.    Cheap  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
A  Sensitive  Plant.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons,  13 


GERARD. 

The  Extermination  of  Love  :  A  Fragmentary  Study  in  Erotics. 

By  E.  Gerard  (Madame  de  Laszowska).     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

A  Foreigner.    An  Anglo-German  Study.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
The  Land  beyond  the  Forest.     Facts,  Figures,  and  Fancies 

from  Transylvania.    With  Maps  and  Illustrations     2  vols,  post  8vo,  25s. 

Bis  :  Some  Tales  Retold.  Crown  8vo,  6s. 
A  Secret  Mission.  2  vols,  crown  8vo,  17s. 
An  Electric  Shock,  and  other  Stories.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

GERARD. 

One  Year.     By  Dorothea    Gerard  (Madame  Longard  de 

Longgarde).     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Impediment.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

A  Forgotten  Sin.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

A  Spotless  Reputation.    Third  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Wrong  Man.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Lady  Baby.     Cheap  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Recha.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Rich  Miss  Riddell.     Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

GERARD.    Stonyhurst  Latin  Grammar.    By  Rev.  John  Gerard. 

Second  Edition.    Fcap.  8vo,  3s. 

GOODALL.    Association  Football.    By  John  Goodall.    Edited 

by  9.  Archibald  de  Bear.    With  Diagrams.    Fcap.  8vo,  Is. 

GORDON  CUMMING. 

At  Home  in  Fiji.      By  C.   F.   Gordon   Cummino.      Cheap 

Edition,  post  8vo.    With  Illustrations.    6s. 

A  Lady's  Cruise  in  a  French  Man-of-War.      Cheap  Edition. 

8vo.    With  Illustrations  and  Map,    6s. 

Wanderings  in  China.  Cheap  Edition.  8vo,  with  Illustra- 
tions, 6s. 

Granite  Crags :  The  Yo-semite*  Region  of  California.  Illus- 
trated with  8  Engravings.    Cheap  Edition.    8vo,  6s. 

Fire-Fountains.  The  Kingdom  of  Hawaii :  Its  Volcanoes, 
and  the  History  of  its  Missions.    With  Map  and  Illustrations.    2  vols.  8vo,  25s. 

GRAHAM. 

Manual  of  the  Elections  (Scot.)  (Corrupt  and  Illegal  Practices) 

Act,  1890.  With  Analysis,  Relative  Act  of  Sederunt,  Appendix  containing  the 
Corrupt  Practices  Acts  of  1883  and  1885,  and  Copious  Index.  By  J.  Edward 
Graham,  Advocate.    8vo,  4s.  6d. 

A  Manual  of  the  Acts  relating  to  Education  in  Scotland. 

(Founded  on  that  of  the  late  Mr  Craig  Sellar.)    Demy  8vo,  18s. 

GRAND. 

A  Domestic  Experiment.      By  Sarah  Grand,    Author  of 

'  The  Heavenly  Twins,'  '  Ideala :  A  Study  from  Life.'    Crown  8vo,  6b. 

Singularly  Deluded.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 


14  List  of  Books  Published  by 

GRAY.    Old  Creeds  and  New  Beliefs.    By  W.  H.  Gray,  D.D., 

Edinburgh.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

GREEN.    The  End  of  an  Epoch.     Being  the  Personal  Narrative 

of  Adam  Godwin,  the  Survivor.    By  A.  Lincoln  Green.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

GRIER. 

In  Furthest  Ind.    The  Narrative  of  Mr  Edward  Carlyon  of 

Ellswether,  in  the  County  of  Northampton,  and  late  of  the  Honourable  East  India 
Company's  Service,  Gentleman.  Wrote  by  his  own  hand  in  the  year  of  grace  1697. 
Edited,  with  a  few  Explanatory  Notes,  by  Sydney  C.  Grier.  Post  8vo,  6s. 
Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

His  Excellency's  English  Governess.    Third  Edition.    Crown 

8vo,  6s.    Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

An  Uncrowned  King  :  A  Romance  of  High  Politics.    Second 

Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s.    Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

Peace  with  Honour.   Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s.    Cheap 

Edition,  2s. 

A  Crowned  Queen:  The  Romance  of  a  Minister  of  State. 

Second  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  6s.    Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

Like  Another  Helen.    Second  Edition     Crown  8vo,  6s.   Cheap 

Edition,  2s. 

The  Kings  of  the  East :    A  Romance  of  the  near  Future. 

Second  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  6s.     Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

The  Warden  of  the  Marches.     Second  Impression.     Crown 

Svo,  6s.    Cheap  Edition,  2s. 

The  Prince  of  the  Captivity.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
HALDANE.      How  we   Escaped   from  Pretoria.      By  Captain 

Aylmer  Haldane,  D.S.O.,  2nd  Battalion  Gordon  Highlanders.  New  Edition, 
revised  and  enlarged.  With  numerous  Illustrations,  Plans,  and  Map.  -  Crown 
8vo,  5s. 

HALLIBURTON.    Horace  in  Homespun.    By  Hugh  Haliburton. 

A  New  Edition,  containing  additional  Poems.  With  26  Illustrations  by  A.  S. 
Boyd.    Post  Svo,  6s.  net. 

HAMERTON. 

Wenderholme:   A  Story  of  Lancashire  and  Yorkshire  Life. 

By  P.  G.  Hamerton,  Author  of  'A  Painter's  Camp.'  New  Edition.  Crown 
8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Marmorne.     New  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
HAMILTON. 

Lectures    on    Metaphysics.      By    Sir    William    Hamilton, 

Bart.,  Professor  of  Logic  and  Metaphysics  in  the  University  of  Edinburgh. 
Edited  by  the  Rev.  H.  L.  Mansel,  B.D.,  LL.D.,  Dean  of  St  Paul's;  and  John 
Vkitch,  M.A.,  LL.D.,  Professor  of  Logic  and  Rhetoric,  Glasgow.  Seventh 
Edition.    2  vols.  8vo,  24s. 

Lectures  on  Logic.     Edited  by  the  Same.     Third  Edition, 

Revised.    2  vols.,  24s. 

Discussions  on  Philosophy  and  Literature,  Education  and 

University  Reform.    Third  Edition.    8vo,  21s. 

HAMLEY. 

The    Operations  of    War    Explained    and    Illustrated.      By 

General  Sir  Edward  Bruce  Hamlev,  K.C.B.,  K.C.M.G.  Second  Edition  of 
Fifth  Edition.  With  Maps  and  Plans.  4to,  80s.  Also  in  2  parts:  Part  I., 
10s.  6d.;  Part  II.,  21s. 

National  Defence;   Articles  and  Speeches.    Cheap  Edition. 

Post  Svo,  2s.  6d. 

Shakespeare's  Funeral,  and  other  Papers.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  15 

HAMLEY. 

Thomas  Carlyle :  An  Essay.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo, 

2s.  6d. 

On  Outposts.    Second  Edition.    8vo,  2s. 

Wellington's  Career ;    A  Military  and    Political  Summary. 

Crown  8vo,  2s. 

Lady  Lee's  Widowhood.    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s. 
Our  Poor  Relations.    A  Philozoic  Essay.    With  Illustrations, 

chiefly  by  Ernest  Grlset.    Crown  8vo,  cloth  gilt,  3s.  6d. 

HANNAY.     The   Later   Renaissance.     *  Periods  of  European 

Literature.'    By  David  Hannay.    Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

HARRADEN. 

Ships  that  Pass  in  the  Night.     By  Beatrice    Harraden. 

Illustrated  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

The  Fowler.     Illustrated  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

In  Varying   Moods :    Short    Stories.       Illustrated    Edition. 

Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Hilda  Strafford,  and  The  Remittance  Man.    Two  Californian 

Stories.    Illustrated  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Untold  Tales  of  the  Past.  With  40  Illustrations  by  H.  R.  Millar. 

Square  crown  8vo,  gilt  top,  6s. 

HARRIS. 

From   Batum   to  Baghdad,   vid  Tiflis,   Tabriz,   and   Persian 

Kurdistan.  By  Walter  B.  Harris,  F.R.Q.S.,  Author  of  "The  Land  of  an 
African  Sultan ;  Travels  in  Morocco,'  &c.  With  numerous  Illustrations  and  2 
Maps.     Demy  8vo,  12s. 

Tafilet.    The  Narrative  of  a  Journey  of  Exploration  to  the 

Atlas  Mountains  and  the  Oases  of  the  North-West  Sahara.  With  Illustrations 
by  Maurice  Romberg  from  Sketches  and  Photographs  by  the  Author,  and  Two 
Maps.     Demy  8vo,  12s. 

A  Journey  through  the  Yemen,  and  some  Qeneral  Remarks 

upon  that  Country.  With  3  Maps  and  numerous  Illustrations  by  Porestier  and 
Wallace  from  Sketches  and  Photographs  taken  by  the  Author.     Demy  8vo,  16s. 

HAY.     The  Works  of  the  Right  Rev.  Dr  George  Hay,  Bishop  of 

Edinburgh.  Edited  under  the  Supervision  of  the  Right  Rev.  Bishop  Strain. 
With  Memoir  and  Portrait  of  the  Author.  5  vols,  crown  8vo,  bound  in  extra 
cloth,  £1,  Is.    The  following  Volumes  may  be  had  separately— vit. : 

The  Devout  Christian  Instructed  in  the  Law  of  Christ  from  the  Written 

Word.    2  vols.,  8s.— The  Pious  Christian  Instructed  in  the  Nature  and  Practice 

of  the  Principal  Exercises  of  Piety.    \  vol..  Ss. 

HAY-NEWTON.    Readings  on  the  Evolution  of  Religion.    By 

Mrs  F.  Hay-Newton.    Crown  Svo,  5s. 

HEMANS. 

The  Poetical  Works  of  Mrs  Hemans.     Copyright  Edition. 

Royal  8vo,  with  Engravings,  cloth,  gilt  edges,  7s.  6d. 

Select  Poems  of  Mrs  Hemans.    Fcap.,  cloth,  gilt  edges,  3s. 
HENDERSON.      The    Young    Estate    Manager's    Guide.      By 

Richard  Henderson,  Member  (by  Examination)  of  the  Royal  Agricultural 
Society  of  England,  the  Highland  and  Agricultural  Society  of  Scotland,  and 
the  Surveyors'  Institution.  With  an  Introduction  by  R.  Patrick  Wright, 
P.R.S.E.,  Professor  of  Agriculture,  Glasgow  and  West  of  Scotland  Technical 
College.    With  Plans  and  Diagrams.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

HENDERSON.    The  Minstrelsy  of  the  Scottish  Border.    By  Sir 

Walter  Scott.  A  New  Edition.  Edited  by  T.  F.  Henderson,  Author  of 'The 
Casquet  Letters,'  &c,  and  Co-Editor  of  'The  Centenary  Burns.'  With  a  New 
Portrait  of  Sir  Walter  Scott.    In  4  vols.,  demy  Svo.  [In  the  press. 


1 6  List  of  Books  Published  by 


HENSMAN. 

A  History  of  Rhodesia.     Compiled  from  Official  Sources.    By 

Howard  Hensman.     With  a  Map.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Cecil  Rhodes :   A  Study  of  a  Career.      With  Illustrations. 

Demy  8vo,  12s.  6d.  net. 

HEWISON.    The  Isle  of  Bute  in  the  Olden  Time.    With  Illus- 

trations,  Maps,  and  Plans.  By  James  Kino  Hewison,  M.A.,  F.S.A.  (Scot.), 
Minister  of  Rothesay.  Vol.  I.,  Celtic  Saints  and  Heroes.  Crown  4to,  15s.  net. 
Vol.  II.,  The  Royal  Stewards  and  the  Brandanes.    Crown  4to,  15s.  net. 

HOME  PRAYERS.    By  Ministers  of  the  Church  of  Scotland 

and  Members  of  the  Church  Service  Society.    Second  Edition.    Fcap.  8vo,  3s. 

HUEFFER.    The  Cinque  Ports.    A  Historical  and  Descriptive 

Record.  By  F.  Madox  Hueffer.  With  Fourteen  Photogravure  Plates  and 
Nineteen  Page  and  Text  Illustrations  from  Drawings  by  William  Hyde.  Hand- 
somely bound  in  art  canvas,  gilt  top,  with  special  design  in  gold  on  side  board  by 
Mr  Hyde.    Royal  4to,  £3,  3s.  net. 

HUNT.  A  Handy  Vocabulary :  English-Afrikander,  Afrikander- 
English.  For  the  Use  of  English-speaking  People  in  South  Africa.  By  G.  M.  G. 
Hunt.    Small  8vo,  Is. 

HUTCHINSON.    Hints  on  the  Game  of  Golf.    By  Horace  G. 

Hutchinson.    Eleventh  Edition,  Enlarged.    Fcap.  8vo,  cloth,  Is. 

HUTTON. 

Frederic  Uvedale.     By  Edward  Hutton.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
Italy  and  the  Italians.     With  Illustrations.    In  1  vol.  large 

crown  8vo.  [In  the  press. 

HYSLOP.     The  Elements  of  Ethics.     By  James  H.  Hyslop, 

Ph.D.,  Instructor  in  Ethics,  Columbia  College,  New  York,  Author  of  'The 
Elements  of  Logic.'    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d.  net. 

IDDESLEIGH.  Life,  Letters,  and  Diaries  of  Sir  Stafford  North- 
cote,  First  Earl  of  Iddesleigh.  By  Andrew  Lang.  With  Three  Portraits  and  a 
View  of  Pynes.    Third  Edition.    2  vols,  post  8vo,  31s.  6d. 

Popular  Edition.    With  Portrait  and  View  of  Pynes.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

INNES.    The  Law  of  Creeds  in  Scotland.    A  Treatise  on  the 

Relations  of  Churches  in  Scotland,  Established  and  not  Established,  to  the  Civil 
Law.    By  A.  Taylor  Innes,  Advocate.    Demy  8vo,  10s.  net. 

INTELLIGENCE  OFFICER.    On  the  Heels  of  De  Wet.    By 

The  Intelligence  Officer.    In  1  vol.  crown  Svo.  [In  the  press 

IRONS.     The  Psychology  of  Ethics.     By  David  Irons,  M.A., 

Ph.D.,  Professor  of  Philosophy  in  Bryn  Mawr  College,  Penn.  In  1  vol.  crown 
8vo.  [In  the  press. 

JAMES.    Modern   Strategy.       By   Major   Walter   H.    James, 

P.S.C,  late  R.E.    With  Plans.    In  1  vol.  royal  8vo.  [In  the  press. 

JOHNSTON. 

The  Chemistry  of  Common  Life.      By  Professor  J.   F.  W. 

Johnston.  New  Edition,  Revised.  By  Arthur  Herbert  Church,  M.A.  Oxon.{ 
Author  of  '  Food :  its  Sources,  Constituents,  and  Uses,'  &c.  With  Maps  and  102 
Engravings.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  fid. 

Elements    of    Agricultural    Chemistry.      An    entirely  New 

Edition  from  the  Edition  by  Sir  Charles  A.  Cameron,  M.D.,  F.R.C.S.I.,  &c. 
Revised  and  brought  down  to  date  by  C.  M.  Aikman,  M.A.,  B.Sc,  F.R.S.E., 
Professor  of  Chemistry,  Glasgow  Veterinary  College.  17th  Edition.  Crown  8vo, 
6s.  fid. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  17 


JOHNSTON. 

Catechism  of  Agricultural  Chemistry.  An  entirely  New  Edi- 
tion from  the  Edition  by  Sir  Charles  A.  Cameron.  Revised  and  Enlarged 
by  C.  M.  Aikman,  M.A.,  &c.  95th  Thousand.  With  numerous  Illustrations. 
Crown  8vo,  Is. 

JOHNSTON.     Agricultural  Holdings  (Scotland)  Acts,  1883  to 

1900  ;  and  the  Ground  Game  Act,  1880.  With  Notes,  and  Summary  of  Procedure, 
&c.  By  Christopher  N  Johnston,  M.A.,  Advocate.  Fifth  Edition.  Demy 
8vo,  6s.  net. 

JOKAI.     Timar's  Two  Worlds.    By  Maurtjs  Jokai.     Authorised 

Translation  by  Mrs  Hegan  Kennard.    Cheap  Edition,    Crown  8vo  6s. 
KENNEDY.     Hurrah  for  the  Life  of  a  Sailor  !  Fifty  Years  in  the 

Royal  Navy.     By  Admiral  Sir  William  Kennedy,  K.C.B.,  Author  of  'Sport, 
Travel,  and  Adventure  in  Newfoundland  and  the  West  Indies.'   With  Illustrations 
from  Sketches  by  the  Author.     Fifth  Impression.    Demy  8vo,  12s.  6d. 
Cheaper  Edition,  small  demy  Svo,  6s. 

KERR.    Memories :    Grave  and  Gay.     Forty  Years  of  School 

Inspection.  By  John  Kerr,  LL.D.  With  Portrait  and  other  Illustrations. 
Second  Edition.    Crown  Svo,  6s. 

KINGLAKE. 

History  of  the  Invasion  of  the  Crimea.     By  A.  W.  Kinglake. 

With  an  Index  to  the  Complete  Work.  Complete  in  9  vols.,  crown  8vo.  Cheap 
reissue  at  3s.  6d.  each. 

Abridged  Edition  for  Military  Students.     Revised  by 

Lieut.-Col.  Sir  George  Sydenham  Clarke,  K.C.M.G.,  R.E.  Demy  8vo,  15s.  net. 

Atlas  to  accompany  above.     Folio,  9s.  net. 

History  of  the  Invasion  of  the  Crimea.     Demy  8vo.     Vol.  VI. 

Winter  Troubles.  With  a  Map,  16s.  Vols.  VII.  and  VIII.  From  the  Morrow  of 
Inkerman  to  the  Death  of  Lord  Raglac.  With  an  Index  to  the  Whole  Work. 
With  Maps  and  Flans.    28s 

Eothen.    A  New  Edition,  uniform  with  the  Cabinet  Edition 

of  the  '  History  of  the  Invasion  of  the  Crimea. '    6s. 

Cheaper  Edition.    With  Portrait  and  Biographical  Sketch  of  the  Author. 
Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d.    Popular  Edition,  in  paper  cover,  Is.  net. 

KNEIPP.      My   Water -Cure.      As   Tested   through  more  than 

Thirty  Years,  and  Described  for  the  Healing  of  Diseases  and  the  Preservation  of 
Health.  By  Sebastian  Kneipp,  Parish  Priest  of  Worishofen  (Bavaria).  With  a 
Portrait  and  other  Illustrations.  Authorised  English  Translation  from  the 
Thirtieth  German  Edition,  by  A.  de  F.  Cheap  Edition.  With  an  Appendix,  con- 
taining the  Latest  Developments  of  Pfarrer  Kneipp'a  System,  and  a  Preface  by 
E.  Gerard.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

LANG. 

A  History  of  Scotland  from  the    Roman   Occupation.     By 

Andrew  Lang.    Vol.  I.    With  a  Photogravure  Frontispiece  and  Four  Maps. 
Second  Edition.      Demy  8vo,  15s.  net. 
Vol.  II.     With  Photogravure  Frontispiece.  [In  the  press. 

Tennyson.    "Modern  English  Writers."  2nd  Ed.    Cr.  8vo,  2s.  6d. 
Life,  Letters,  and  Diaries  of  Sir  Stafford  Northcote,   First 

Earl  of  Iddesleigh.  With  Three  Portraits  and  a  View  of  Pynes.  Third  Edition. 
2  vols,  post  8vo,  31s.  6d. 

Popular  Edition.    With  Portrait  and  View  of  Pynes.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

The  Highlands  of  Scotland  in  1750.     From  Manuscript  104 

in  the  King's  Library,  British  Museum.  With  an  Introduction  by  Andrew  Lang. 
Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

B 


1 8  List  of  Books  Published  by 


LANG. 

The  Expansion  of  the  Christian  Life.      The  Duff  Lecture 

for  1897.    By  the  Rev.  J.  Marshall  Lang,  D.D.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

The  Church  and  its  Social  Mission.    Being  the  Baird  Lecture 

for  1901.    Crown  8vo,  6s.  net. 

LAWSON. 

The  Country  I  Come  From.    By  Henry  Lawson,  Author  of 

1  While  the  Billy  Boils,'  &c.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Joe  Wilson  and  his  Mates.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 
LEES.    A  Handbook  of  the  Sheriff  and  Justice  of  Peace  Small 

Debt  Courts.  With  Notes,  References,  and  Forms.  By  J.  M.  Lees,  Advocate, 
Sheriff  of  Stirling,  Dumbarton,  and  Clackmannan.    8vo,  7s.  6d. 

LEIGHTON.     The  Life  History  of  British  Serpents,  and  their 

Local  Distribution  in  the  British  Isles.  By  Gerald  R.  Leighton,  M.D.  (Thesis 
on  "The  Reptilia  of  the  Monnow  Valley,"  Edin.  Univ.,  1901).  Fellow  of  the 
Society  of  Science,  Letters,  and  Art,  London.  With  50  Illustrations.  Crown 
8vo,  5s.  net. 

LEISHMAN.   The  Westminster  Directory.  Edited,  with  an  Intro- 
duction and  Notes,  by  the  Verv  Rev.  T.  Leishman,  D.  D.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  net. 

LINDSAY. 

Recent  Advances  in  Theistic  Philosophy  of  Religion.     By  Rev. 

James  Lindsay,  M.A.,  B.D.,  B.Sc,  F.R.S.E.,  F.G.S.,  Minister  of  the  Parish  of 
St  Andrew's,  Kilmarnock.    Demy  8vo,  12s.  6d.  net. 

The  Progressiveness  of  Modern  Christian  Thought.    Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

Essays,  Literary  and  Philosophical.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

The  Significance  of  the  Old  Testament  for  Modern  Theology. 

Crown  8vo,  Is.  net. 

The  Teaching  Function  of  the  Modern  Pulpit.     Crown  8vo, 

Is.  net 

"LINESMAN." 

Words  by  an  Eyewitness  :  The  Struggle  in  Natal.  By  "  Lines- 
man." Tenth  Impression.  Crown  Svo,  6s.  People's  Edition,  royal  Svo,  paper 
covers,  6d. 

§B  The  Mechanism  of  War.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

LOBBAN.    An  Anthology  of  English  Verse  from  Chaucer  to  the 

Present  Day.    By  J.  H.  Lobban,  M.A.    Crown  8vo,  gilt  top,  5s. 

LOCKHART. 

Doubles  and  Quits.    By  Laurence  W.  M.  Lockhart.     Crown 

8vo,  3s.  6d.    A  New  Edition,  Crown  8vo,  2s. 

Fair  to  See.     New  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
Mine  is  Thine.    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
LOCKHART. 

The  Church  of   Scotland  in  the  Thirteenth  Century.     The 

Life  and  Times  of  David  de  Bernham  of  St  Andrews  (Bishop),  a.d.  1239  to  1253. 
With  List  of  Churches  dedicated  by  him,  and  Dates.  By  William  Lockhart, 
A.M.,  D.D.,  F.S.A.  Scot.,  Minister  of  Colinton  Parish.     2d  Edition.    8vo,  6s. 

Dies  Tristes  Sermons  for  Seasons  of  Sorrow.  Crown  8vo,  6s. 
LORIMER. 

The  Institutes  of  Law  :  A  Treatise  of  the  Principles  of  Juris- 
prudence as  determined  by  Nature.  By  the  late  James  Lorimer,  Professor  of 
Public  Law  and  of  the  Law  of  Nature  and  Nations  in  the  University  of  Edin- 
burgh.   New  Edition,  Revised  and  much  Enlarged.    8vo,  18s. 

The  Institutes  of  the  Law  of  Nations.     A  Treatise  of  the 

Jural  Relation  of  Separate  Political  Communities.  In  2  vols.  8vo.  Volume  I., 
price  16s.    Volume  II.,  price  20s. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons,  19 


LYNDEN-BELL.  A  Primer  of  Tactics,  Fortification,  Topo- 
graphy, and  Military  Law.  By  Capt.  C.  P.  Lynden-Bell.  With  Diagrams. 
Crown  8vo,  3s.  net. 

MABIE. 

Essays  on  Nature  and  Culture.    By  Hamilton  Wright  Mabie. 

With  Portrait.    Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Books  and  Culture.     Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
The  Life  of  the  Spirit.    Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
MCCHESNEY. 

Miriam  Cromwell,  Royalist :  A  Romance  of  the  Great  Rebel- 
lion.   By  Dora  Greenwell  McChesney.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Kathleen  Clare  :  Her  Book,  1637-41.     With  Frontispiece,  and 

five  full-page  Illustrations  by  James  A.  Shearman.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

M'COMBIE.  Cattle  and  Cattle-Breeders.  By  William  M'Combie, 

Tillyfour.  New  Edition,  Enlarged,  with  Memoir  of  the  Author  by  James 
Macdonald,  F.R.S.E.,  Secretary  Highland  and  Agricultural  Society  of  Scotland. 
Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

M'CRIE. 

Works  of  the  Rev.  Thomas  M'Crie,  D.D.    Uniform  Edition. 

4  vols,  crown  8vo,  24s. 

Life  of  John  Knox.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Life  of  Andrew  Melville.     Crown  8vo,  3s  6d. 

History  of  the  Progress  and  Suppression  of  the  Reformation 

in  Italy  in  the  Sixteenth  Century.    Crown  8vo,  4s. 

History  of  the  Progress  and  Suppression  of  the  Reformation 

in  Spain  in  the  Sixteenth  Century.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

MACDONALD.  A  Manual  of  the  Criminal  Law  (Scotland)  Pro- 
cedure Act,  1887.  By  Norman  Doran  Macdonald.  Revised  by  the  Lord 
Justice-Clerk.    8vo,  10s.  6d. 

MACDOUGALL  and  DODDS.    A  Manual  of  the  Local  Govern- 

ment  (Scotland)  Act,  1894.  With  Introduction,  Explanatory  Notes,  and  Copious 
Index.  By  J.  Patten  MacDougall,  Legal  Secretary  to  the  Lord  Advocate,  and 
J.  M.  Dodds.    Tenth  Thousand,  Revised.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d.  net. 

MACINTOSH.       Rabbi     Jesus  :      Sage     and     Saviour.       By 

William  Macintosh,  M.A.,  Ph.D.,  Author  of  'Through  Doubt's  Dark  Vale, 
&c.    Post  8vo,  3s.  6d.  net. 

MACINTYRE.    Hindu-Koh :  Wanderings  and  Wild  Sports  on 

and  beyond  the  Himalayas.  By  Major-General  Donald  Macintyre,  V.C.,  late 
Prince  of  Wales'  Own  Goorkhas,  F.R.G.S.  Dedicated  to  H.R.H.  the  Prince  of 
Wales.  New  and  Cheaper  Edition,  Revised  with  numerous  Illustrations.  Post 
8vo,  3s.  6d. 

MACKENZIE.     Studies  in   Roman  Law.     With   Comparative 

Views  of  the  Laws  of  Prance,  England,  and  Scotland.  By  Lord  Mackenzie, 
one  of  the  Judges  of  the  Court  of  Session  in  Scotland.  Seventh  Edition,  Edited 
by  John  Kirkpatrick,  M.A.,  LL.B.,  Advocate,  Professor  of  History  in  the 
University  of  Edinburgh.    8vo,  21s. 

MAGNUS  and  HEADLAM. 

Prayers  from  the  Poets.     A  Calendar  of  Devotion.     Edited 

by  Laurie  Magnus,  M.A.,  Author  of  'A  Primer  of  Wordsworth,'  &c;  and  Cecil 
Headlam,  B. A.,  Author  of  '  Prayers  of  the  Saints,'  '  The  Story  of  Nuremberg,'  &c. 
Second  Edition.     Fcap.  8vo,  5s. 

Flowers  of  the  Cave.     Fcap.  8vo,  5s. 
MAIN.    Three  Hundred  English  Sonnets.    Chosen  and  Edited 

by  David  M.  Main.    New  Edition.    Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 


20  List  of  Books  Published  by 


MAIR. 

A  Digest  of  Laws  and  Decisions,  Ecclesiastical  and  Civil, 

relating  to  the  Constitution,  Practice,  and  Affairs  of  the  Church  of  Scotland 
With  Notes  and  Forms  of  Procedure.  By  the  Rev.  William  Mair,  D.D.,  Minis- 
ter of  the  Parish  of  Barlston.     New  Edition,  Revised.    Crown  8vo,  9s.  net. 

Speaking ;  or,  From  Voice  Production  to  the  Platform  and 

Pulpit.     Third  Edition,  Revised.    Crown  8vo,  3s. 

MALCOLM.     The  Calendar  of  Empire.    A  Tribute  to  Lives, 

Deeds,  and  Words  that  have  gained  Glory  for  Great  and  Greater  Britain.    By 
Ian  Malcolm,  M.P.    Small  square  Svo,  vellum  covers,  5s.  net. 
Large  Paper  Edition.    15s.  net. 

MARSHMAN.    History  of  India.    From  the  Earliest  Period  to 

the  present  time.  By  John  Clark  Marshman,  C.S.I.  Third  and  Cheaper 
Edition.    Post  8vo,  with  Map,  6s. 

MARTIN. 

The  iEneid  of  Virgil.    Books  I.- VI.    Translated  by  Sir  Theo- 
dore Martin,  E.C.B.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 
Goethe's  Faust.      Part  I.      Translated  into  English  Verse. 

Second  Edition,  crown  Svo,  6s.    Ninth  Edition,  fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Goethe's  Faust.     Part  II.     Translated  into  English  Verse. 

Second  Edition,  Revised.    Fcap.  8vo,  6s. 

The  Works  of  Horace.    Translated  into  English  Verse,  with 

Life  and  Notes.    2  vols.    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  21s. 

Poems  and  Ballads  of  Heinrich  Heine.    Done  into  English 

Verse.    Third  Edition.    Small  crown  8vo,  5s. 

The  Song  of  the  Bell,  and  other  Translations  from  Schiller, 

Goethe,  Uhland,  and  Others.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

Madonna  Pia  :  A  Tragedy ;  and  Three  Other  Dramas.    Crown 

8vo,  7s.  6d. 

Catullus.     With  Life  and  Notes.     Second  Edition,  Revised 

and  Corrected.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

The  '  Vita  Nuova '  of  Dante.    Translated,  with  an  Introduction 

and  Notes.    Fourth  Edition.    Small  crown  8vo,  58. 

Aladdin:   A  Dramatic  Poem.     By  Adam  Oehlenschlaeger. 

Fcap.  8vo,  5s. 

Correggio :  A  Tragedy.    By  Oehlenschlaeger.    With  Notes. 

Fcap.  8vo,  3s. 

Helena  Faucit  (Lady  Martin).     By  Sir  Theodore  Martin, 

K.C.B.,  K.C.V.O.  With  Five  Photogravure  Plates.  Second  Edition.  Demy  8vo, 
10s.  6d.  net. 

MARTIN.     On  some  of  Shakespeare's  Female  Characters.    By 

Helena  Faucit,  Lady  Martin.  Dedicated  by  permission  to  Her  Most  Gracious 
Majesty  the  Queen.  With  a  Portrait  by  Lehmann.  Sixth  Edition,  with  a  new 
Preface.    Demy  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

MARWICK.     Observations  on  the  Law  and  Practice  in  regard 

to  Municipal  Elections  and  the  Conduct  of  the  Business  of  Town  Councils  and 
Commissioners  of  Police  in  Scotland.  By  Sir  James  D.  Marwick,  LL.D., 
Town-Clerk  of  Glasgow.    Royal  8vo,  80s 

MATHESON. 

Can  the  Old  Faith  Live  with  the  New  ?  or,  The  Problem  of 

Evolution  and  Revelation.  By  the  Rev.  Gkorgb  Mathbson,  D.D.  Third  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

The  Psalmist  and  the  Scientist ;  or,  Modern  Value  of  the  Reli- 
gious Sentiment.    Third  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Spiritual  Development  of  St  Paul.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  8vo,  5s. 

The  Distinctive  Messages  of  the  Old  Religions.  Second  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Sacred  Songs.   New  and  Cheaper  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  21 


MAXWELL. 

The  Honourable  Sir  Charles  Murray,  K.C.B.     A  Memoir. 

By  the  Right  Hon.  Sir  Herbert  Maxwell,  Bart.,  M.P.,  P.8.A.,  &c,  Author  of 
•Passages  in  the  Life  of  Sir  Lncian  Blphin.'  With  Five  Portraits.  Demy  8vo,  18s. 

Life  and  Times  of  the  Rt.  Hon.  William  Henry  Smith,  M.P. 

With  Portraits  and  numerous  Illustrations  by  Herbert  Railton,  G.  L.  Seymour, 
and  Others.    2  vols,  demy  8vo,  25s. 
Popular  Edition.  With  a  Portrait  and  other  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  8d. 

Dumfries  and  Galloway.     Being  one  of  the  Volumes  of  the 

County  Histories  of  Scotland.  With  Pour  Maps.  Second  Edition.  Demy  8vo, 
7s.  6d.  net. 

Scottish  Land-Names :  Their  Origin  and  Meaning.      Being 

the  Rhind  Lectures  in  Archaeology  for  1893.    Post  8vo,  6s. 

A  Duke  of  Britain.     A  Romance  of  the  Fourth  Century. 

Fourth  Edition.    Crown  8vo  6s. 

The  Chevalier  of  the  Splendid  Crest.     Third  Edition.    Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

MELDRUM. 

The  Conquest  of  Charlotte.     By  David  S.  Meldrttm.    Second 

Impression.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Holland  and   the  Hollanders.     With  numerous  Illustrations 

and  a  Map.    Second  Edition.    Square  8vo,  6s. 

The  Story  of  Margredel  :  Being  a  Fireside  History  of  a  Fife- 
shire  Family.    Cheap  Edition    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
Grey  Mantle  and  Gold  Fringe.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
MELLONE. 

Studies  in   Philosophical   Criticism  and  Construction.      By 

Sydney  Herbert  Mellone,  M.A.  Lond.,  D.Sc.  Edin.    Post  8vo.  10s.  6d.  net. 

Leaders  of  Religious  Thought  in  the  Nineteenth  Century. 

Crown  8vo,  6s.  net. 

An  Introductory  Text-Book  of  Logic.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

MERZ.    A  History  of  European  Thought  in  the  Nineteenth  Cen- 
tury.   By  John  Theodore  Merx.    Vol.  I.,  post  8vo,  10s.  6d.  net. 

[Vol.  II.  in  the  press. 

MEYNELL.    John  Ruskin.    "  Modern  English  Writers."    By  Mrs 

Meynell.    Third  Impression.     Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

MICHIE.     The  Englishman  in  China  during  the  Victorian  Era. 

As  Illustrated  in  the  Life  of  Sir  Rutherford  Alcock,  K.C.B.,  D.C.L.,  many  years 
Consul  and  Minister  in  China  and  Japan.  By  Alexander  Michie,  Author  of 
'The  Siberian  Overland  Route,'  'Missionaries  in  China,'  &c.  With  numerous 
Illustrations,  Portraits,  and  Maps.     2  vols,  demy  8vo,  38s.  net. 

MILL.    The  Colonel  Sahib.    A  Novel.   By  Garrett  Mill.   Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

MILLAR.    The  Mid-Eighteenth  Century.    "  Periods  of  European 

Literature."    By  J.  H.  Millar.     Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

MITCHELL. 

The  Scottish  Reformation.     Its  Epochs,  Episodes,  Leaders, 

and  Distinctive  Characteristics.  Being  the  Baird  Lecture  for  1899.  By  the 
late  Alexander  F.  Mitchell,  D.D.,  LL.D.,  Emeritus  Professor  of  Church 
History  in  St  Andrews  University.  Edited  by  D.  Hay  Fleming,  LL.D.  With 
a  Biographical  Sketch  of  the  Author,  by  James  Christie,  D.D.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

MODERN    ENGLISH    WRITERS.      In    handy    crown    8vo 

volumes,  tastefully  bound,  price  2s.  6d.  each. 

Matthew  Arnold.     By  Professor  Saintsbury.     Second  Im- 
pression 


22  List  of  Books  Published  by 

MODERN  ENGLISH  WRITERS. 

R.  L.  Stevenson.    By  L.  Cope  Cornford.    Second  Impression. 
John  Ruskin.    By  Mrs  Meynell.    Third  Impression. 
Tennyson.      By  Andrew  Lang.    Second  Edition. 
Huxley.    By  Edward  Clodd. 
Thackeray.    By  Charles  Whibley.  [In  the  press. 

In  Preparation. 
George  Eliot.  By  A.  T.  Quiller-Couch.  I    Froude.     By  John  Oliver  Hobbes. 
Browning.     By  Prof.  0.  H.  Herford.     |    Dickens.    By  W.  E.  Henley. 

MOIR. 

Life  of  Mansie  Wauch,  Tailor  in  Dalkeith.     By  D.  M.  Moir. 

With  Crttikshank's  Illustrations.    Cheaper  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 
Another  Edition,  without  Illustrations,  fcap.  8vo,  Is.  6d. 

Domestic  Verses.   Centenary  Edition.  With  a  Portrait.  Crown 

8vo,  2s.  6d.  net. 

MOMERIE. 

Immortality,  and  other  Sermons.    By  Rev.  Alfred  Williams 

Momerie,  M.A.,  D.Sc,  LL.D.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Defects  of  Modern  Christianity,  and  other  Sermons.    Fifth 

Edition.  Crown  8vo,  5s. 

The  Basis  of  Religion.    Being  an  Examination  of  Natural 

Religion.    Third  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

The  Origin  of  Evil,  and  other  Sermons.     Eighth  Edition, 

Enlarged.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Personality.   The  Beginning  and  End  of  Metaphysics,  and  a  Ne- 
cessary Assumption  in  all  Positive  Philosophy.   Fifth  Ed.,  Revised.  Cr.  8vo,  Ss. 
Agnosticism.     Fourth  Edition,  Revised.     Crown  8vo,  5s. 
Preaching  and  Hearing  ;  and  other  Sermons.   Fourth  Edition, 

Enlarged.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Belief  in  God.     Fourth  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s. 

Inspiration  ;  and  other  Sermons.    Second  Edition,  Enlarged. 

Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Church  and  Creed.     Third  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  6d. 

The  Future  of  Religion,  and  other  Essays.    Second  Edition. 

Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

The  English  Church  and  the  Romish  Schism.    Second  Edition. 

Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

MONCREIFF. 

The  Provost-Marshal.     A  Romance  of  the  Middle  Shires.     By 

the  Hon.  Frederick  Moncriiff.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  X  Jewel.   A  Romance  of  the  Days  of  James  VI.  Cr.  8vo,  6s. 
MONTAGUE.     Military  Topography.     Illustrated  by  Practical 

Examples  of  a  Practical  Subject.  By  Major-General  W.  E.  Montague,  C.B., 
P.S.C.,  late  Garrison  Instructor  Intelligence  Department,  Author  of  '  Campaign- 
ing in  South  Africa.'    With  Forty-one  Diagrams.    Crown  8vo,  5b. 

MORISON. 

Rifts  in  the  Reek.    By  Jeanie  Morison.    With  a  Photogravure 

Frontispiece.    Crown  8vo,  5s.    Bound  in  buckram  for  presentation,  6s. 

Doorside  Ditties.     With  a  Frontispiece.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
^Eolus.     A  Romance  in  Lyrics.     Crown  8vo,  3s. 
There  as  Here.     Crown  8vo,  3s. 

*¥r*  A  limited  impression  on  hand-made  paper,  bound  in  vellum,  7a.  M. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  23 

MORISON. 

Selections  from  Poems.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  6d. 

Sordello.      An  Outline  Analysis   of    Mr  Browning's    Poem. 

Crown  8vo.  3s. 

Of  "  Finne  at  the  Fair,"  "  Christmas  Eve  and  Easter  Day," 

and  other  of  Mr  Browning's  Poems.    Grown  8vo,  3s. 

The  Purpose  of  the  Ages.    Crown  8vo,  9s. 
Gordon  :  An  Our-day  Idyll.    Crown  8vo,  3s. 
Saint  Isadora,  and  other  Poems.    Crown  8vo,  Is.  6d. 
Snatches  of  Song.    Paper,  Is.  6d. ;  cloth,  3s. 
Pontius  Pilate.     Paper,  Is.  6d. ;  cloth,  3s. 
Mill  o'  Forres.    Crown  8vo,  Is. 
Ane  Booke  of  Ballades.    Fcap.  4to,  Is. 
MOWBRAY.    Seventy  Years  at  Westminster.   With  other  Letters 

and  Notes  of  the  late  Right  Hon.  Sir  John  Mowbray,  Bart,  M.P.  Edited  by 
his  Daughter.    With  Portraits  and  other  Illustrations.    Large  crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

MUNRO. 

Doom  Castle  :  A  Romance.    By  Neil  Munro.    Second  Impres- 
sion.   Crown  8vo,  6s. 
John  Splendid.    The  Tale  of  a  Poor  Gentleman  and  the  Little 

Wars  of  Lorn.    Sixth  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The    Lost    Pibroch,    and    other    Shotting    Stories.    Fourth 

Impression.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d.     People's  Edition,  royal  8vo,  paper  cover,  6d. 

MUNRO. 

Rambles  and  Studies  in  Bosnia- Herzegovina  and  Dalmatia. 

With  an  Account  of  the  proceedings  of  the  Congress  of  Archaeologists  and 
Anthropologists  held  at  Sarajevo  in  1894.  By  Robert  Munro,  M.A.,  M.D., 
LL.D.,  P.R.S.E.,  Author  of  the  '  Lake  Dwellings  of  Europe,'  &c.  Second  Edition, 
Revised  and  Enlarged.     With  numerous  illustrations.    Demy  8vo,  12s.  6d.  net. 

Prehistoric  Problems.    With  numerous  Illustrations.    Demy 

8vo,  10s.  net. 

Prehistoric  Scotland  and  its  Place  in  European  Civilisation. 

Being  a  General  Introduction  to  the  "  County  Histories  of  Scotland."  With 
numerous  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d.  net. 

MUNRO.     On  Valuation  of  Property.    By  William  Mtjnro, 

M.A.,  Her  Majesty's  Assessor  of  Railways  and  Canals  for  Scotland.  Second 
Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.    8vo,  3s.  6d. 

MURDOCH.    Manual  of  the  Law  of  Insolvency  and  Bankruptcy. 

Comprehending  a  Summary  of  the  Law  of  Insolvency,  Notour  Bankruptcy, 
Composition  -  Contracts,  Trust  •  Deeds,  Oessios,  and  Sequestrations ;  and  the 
Winding-up  of  Joint-Stock  Companies  in  Scotland  :  with  Annotations  on  the 
various  Insolvency  and  Bankruptcy  Statutes ;  and  with  Forms  of  Procedure 
applicable  to  these  Subjects.  By  James  Murdoch,  Member  of  the  Faculty  of 
Procurators  in  Glasgow.     Fifth  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.     8vo,  12s.  net. 

MUSINGS  WITHOUT  METHOD.    A  Record  of  1900  and  1901. 

Reprinted  from  '  Blackwood's  Magazine.'    In  1  vol.  post  8vo.  [In  the  press. 

MY  TRIVIAL  LIFE  AND  MISFORTUNE:   A  Gossip  with 

no  Plot  in  Particular.   By  A  Plain  Woman.    Cheap  Edition.   Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
By  the  Samk  Author. 
POOR  NELLIE.     Cheap  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

NEAVES.    Songs  and  Verses,  Social  and  Scientific.    By  An  Old 

Contributor  to  'Maga.'  By  the  Hon.  Lord  Niavks.  Fifth  Edition.  Fcap. 
8vo,  4s. 


24  List  of  Books  Published  by 

NICHOLSON. 

A  Manual  of  Zoology,  for  the  Use  of  Students.     With  a 

General  Introduction  on  the  Principles  of  Zoology.  By  Henry  Alleyne 
Nicholson,  M.D.,  D.Sc,  P.L.S.,  F.G.S.,  Regius  Professor  of  Natural  History  in 
the  University  of  Aberdeen.  Seventh  Edition,  Rewritten  and  Enlarged.  Post 
8vo,  pp.  956,  with  555  Engravings  on  Wood,  18s. 

Text-Book  of  Zoology,  for  Junior  Students.    Fifth  Edition. 

Rewritten  and  Enlarged.    Crown  8vo,  with  358  Engravings  on  Wood,  10s.  6d 

A  Manual  of  Palaeontology,  for  the  Use  of  Students.    With  a 

General  Introduction  on  the  Principles  of  Palaeontology.  By  Professor  H. 
Alleyne  Nicholson  and  Richard  Lydekker,  B.A.  Third  Edition,  entirely 
Rewritten  and  greatly  Enlarged.    2  vols.  8vo,  £3,  3s. 

NICHOLSON. 

Thoth.    A  Romance.    By  Joseph  Shield  Nicholson,  M.A., 

D.Sc,  Professor  of  Commercial  and  Political  Economy  and  Mercantile  Law  in 
the  University  of  Edinburgh.    Third  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  6d. 

A  Dreamer  of  Dreams.    A  Modern  Romance.    Second  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  6s. 

NICOL.    Recent  Archaeology  and  the  Bible.    Being  the  Croall 

Lectures  for  1898.  By  the  Rev.  Thomas  Nicol,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Divinity 
and  Biblical  Criticism  in  the  University  of  Aberdeen ;  Author  of  '  Recent  Ex- 
plorations in  Bible  Lands.'    Demy  8vo,  9s.  net. 

OLIPHANT. 

Masollam  :  A  Problem  of  the  Period.  A  Novel.  By  Laurence 

Oliphant.    3  vols,  post  8vo,  25s.  6d. 

Scientific  Religion ;    or,   Higher    Possibilities    of    Life   and 

Practice  through  the  Operation  of  Natural  Forces.    Second  Edition.    8vo,  16s. 

Altiora  Peto.    Cheap  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  boards,  2s.  6d.; 

cloth,  3s.  6d.    Illustrated  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  cloth,  6s. 

Piccadilly.    With  Illustrations  .by  Richard  Doyle.    New  Edi- 
tion, 3s.  6d.    Cheap  Edition,  boards,  2s.  6d. 

Traits  and  Travesties  ;  Social  and  Political.    Post  8vo,  10s.  6d. 
Episodes  in  a  Life  of  Adventure;  or,  Moss  from  a  Rolling 

Stone.    Cheaper  Edition.    Post  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Haifa  :  Life  in  Modern  Palestine.   Second  Edition.  8vo,  7s.  6d. 
The  Land  of    Gilead.      With   Excursions   in  the  Lebanon. 

With  Illustrations  and  Maps.    Demy  8vo,  21s. 

Memoir  of  the  Life  of  Laurence  Oliphant,   and    of    Alice 

Oliphant,  his  Wife.  By  Mrs  M.  O.  W.  Oliphant.  Seventh  Edition.  2  vols, 
post  8vo,  with  Portraits.     21s. 

Popular  Edition.    With  a  New  Preface.    Post  8vo,  with  Portraits.    7s.  6d. 

OLIPHANT. 

The  Autobiography  and  Letters  of  Mrs  M.  O.  W.  Oliphant. 

Arranged  and  Edited  by  Mrs  Harry  Coghill.  With  Two  Portraits.  Cheap 
Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Annals  of  a  Publishing  House.    William  Blackwood  and  his 

Sons ;  Their  Magazine  and  Friends.  By  Mrs  Oliphant.  With  Four  Portraits. 
Third  Edition.     Demy  8vo.    Vols.  I.  and  II.  £2,  2s. 

A  Widow's  Tale,  and  other  Stories.    With  an  Introductory 

Note  by  J.  M.  Barric.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Who    was  Lost   and   is   Found.     Second   Edition.     Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

Miss  Marjoribanks.    New  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  25 

OLIPHANT. 

The  Perpetual  Curate,  and  The  Rector.   New  Edition.   Crown 

8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Salem  Chapel,  and    The    Doctor's    Family.      New  Edition. 

Grown  8vo,  3s.  6d 

Chronicles  of  Carlingford.     3  vols,  crown  8vo,   in  uniform 

binding,  gilt  top,  3s.  6d.  each. 

Katie  Stewart,  and  other  Stories.     New  Edition.    Crown  8vo, 

Cloth,  3s.  6d. 

Katie  Stewart.    Illustrated  boards,  2s.  6d. 

Valentine  and  his  Brother.     New  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Sons  and  Daughters.     Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Stories  of  the  Seen  and  the  Unseen.    Old  Lady  Mary— The 

Open  Door— The  Portrait-  The  Library  Window.     Fcap.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

OMOND.     The    Romantic    Triumph.      "Periods   of   European 

Literature."    By  T.  S.  Omond.    Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

O'NEILL.    Songs  of  the  Glens  of  Antrim.     By  Moira  O'Neill. 

Seventh  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

PATON. 

Spindrift.    By  Sir  J.  Noel  Paton.    Fcap.,  cloth,  5s. 

Poems  by  a  Painter.     Fcap.,  cloth,  5s. 
PAUL.    History  of  the  Royal  Company  of  Archers,  the  Queen's 

Body-Guard  for  Scotland.  By  James  Balfour  Paul,  Advocate  of  the  Scottish 
Bar.    Crown  4to,  with  Portraits  and  other  Illustrations.    £2,  2s. 

PEILE.     Lawn  Tennis  as  a  Game  of  Skill.     By  Lieut.-Col.  S.  C. 

P.  Peilb,  B.S.C.   Revised  Edition,  with  new  Scoring  Rules.   Fcap.  8vo,  cloth,  Is. 

PERIODS  OF  EUROPEAN  LITERATURE.    Edited  by  Pro- 
fessor Saintsbury.    For  List  of  Volumes,  see  -page  2. 

PETTIGREW.    The  Handy  Book  of  Bees,  and  their  Profitable 

Management.  By  A  Pettigrew.  Fifth  Edition,  Enlarged,  with  Engravings. 
Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

PFLEIDERER.      Philosophy    and    Development    of    Religion. 

Being  the  Edinburgh  GiSord  Lectures  for  1894.  By  Otto  Pfleiderer,  D.D., 
Professor  of  Theology  at  Berlin  University.    In  2  vols,  post  8vo,  15s.  net. 

PHILOSOPHICAL   CLASSICS   FOR   ENGLISH  READERS. 

Edited  by  William  Knight,  LL.D.,  Professor  of  Moral  Philosophy,  University 

of  St  Andrews.    Cheap  Re-issue  in  Shilling  Volumes. 

[For  List  of  Volumes,  see  page  2. 

POLLOK.    The  Course  of  Time  :  A  Poem.    By  Robert  Pollok, 

A.M.     New  Edition.     With  Portrait.     Fcap.  8vo,  gilt  top,  2s.  6d. 

PRESTWICH.      Essays:    Descriptive    and    Biographical.      By 

Grace,  Lady  Prestwich,  Author  of  'The  Harbour  Bar'  and  'Enga.'  With  a 
Memoir  by  her  sister,  Louisa  E.  Milne.    With  Illustrations.    Demy  8vo,  10s.  6d. 

PRESTWICH.    Life  and  Letters  of  Sir  Joseph  Prestwich,  M.A., 

D.C.L.,  F.R.S.  Formerly  Professor  of  Geology  in  the  University  of  Oxford. 
Written  and  Edited  by  his  Wife.  With  Portraits  and  other  Illustrations. 
Demy  8vo,  21s. 

PRINGLE.     The  Live  Stock  of  the  Farm.      By  Robert   O. 

Pringlk.  Third  Edition.  Revised  and  Edited  by  James  Macdonald.  Crown 
8vo,  7s.  6d. 


26  List  of  Books  Published  by 


PRINGLE-PATTISON. 

Scottish  Philosophy.     A  Comparison  of   the  Scottish    and 

German  Answers  to  Hnme.  Balfour  Philosophical  Lectures,  University  of 
Edinburgh.  By  A.  Seth  Pringle-Pattison,  LL.D.,  Professor  ol  Logic  and 
Metaphysics  in  Edinburgh  University.     Third  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Hegelianism  and  Personality.    Balfour  Philosophical  Lectures. 

Second  Series.    Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  5s. 

Man's  Place  in  the  Cosmos,  and  other  Essays.    Second  Edition, 

Enlarged.     In  1  vol.  post  8vo.  [In  the  press. 

Two  Lectures  on  Theism.     Delivered  on  the  occasion  of  the 

Sesquicentennial  Celebration  of  Princeton  University.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

PUBLIC  GENERAL  STATUTES  AFFECTING  SCOTLAND 

from  1707  to  1847,  with  Chronological  Table  and  Index.    8  vols,  large  8vo,  £3,  3s. 

PUBLIC  GENERAL  STATUTES  AFFECTING  SCOTLAND, 

COLLECTION  OP.    Published  Annually,  with  General  Index. 

PULLIN.      Talks   with    Old    English    Cricketers.     By  A.  W. 

Pullin  ("  Old  Ebor  ").    With  numerous  Portraits.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

RANJITSINHJI.    The  Jubilee  Book  of  Cricket.    By  Prince 

RANJITSINHJI. 

Edition  de  Luxe.  Limited  to  350  Copies,  printed  on  hand-made  paper,  and 
handsomely  bound  in  buckram.  Crown  4to,  with  22  Photogravures  and  85 
full-page  Plates.    Each  copy  signed  by  Prince  Ranjitsinhji.    Price  £5,  5s.  net. 

Pine  Paper  Edition.  Medium  8vo,  with  Photogravure  Frontispiece  and  106 
full-page  Plates  on  art  paper.    25s.  net. 

Popular  Edition.  With  107  full-page  Illustrations.  Sixth  Edition.  Large 
crown  8vo,  6s. 

Sixpenny  Edition.    With  a  selection  of  the  Illustrations. 

RANKIN. 

A  Handbook  of  the  Church  of  Scotland.     By  James  Rankin, 

D.D.,  Minister  of  Muthill.  An  entirely  New  and  much  Enlarged  Edition.  Crown 
8vo.  with  2  Maps,  7s.  6d. 

The  Worthy  Communicant.    A  Guide  to  the  Devout  Obser- 
vance of  the  Lord's  Supper.    Limp  cloth,  Is.  3d. 

The  Young  Churchman.     Lessons  on  the  Creed,  the  Com- 
mandments, the  Means  of  Grace,  and  the  Church.    Limp  cloth,  Is.  3d. 

First  Communion  Lessons.     25th  Edition.     Paper  Cover,  2d. 
RANKINE.    A  Hero  of  the  Dark  Continent.     Memoir  of  Rev. 

Wm.  Affleck  Scott,  M.  A.,  M.B.,  CM.,  Church  of  Scotland  Missionary  at  Blantyre, 
British  Central  Africa.  By  W.  Henry  Bankine,  B.D.,  Minister  at  Titwood. 
With  a  Portrait  and  other  Illustrations.    Cheap  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s. 

ROBERTSON. 

The  Poetry  and  the  Religion  of  the  Psalms.    The  Croall 

Lectures,  1893-94.  By  James  Robertson,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Oriental  Languages 
in  the  University  of  Glasgow.    Demy  8vo,  12s. 

The  Early  Religion  of  Israel.    As  set  forth  by  Biblical  Writers 

and  Modern  Critical  Historians.  Being  the  Baird  Lecture  for  1888-89.  Fourth 
Edition.    Crown  8vo,  10s.  6d. 

ROBERTSON.    A  History  of  German  Literature.    By  John  G. 

Robertson,  Lecturer  in  the  University  of  Strassburg.    Demy  8vo,  10s.  6d.  net. 

ROBINSON.      Wild  Traits  in  Tame  Animals.      Being  some 

Familiar  Studies  in  Evolution.  By  Louis  Robinson,  M.D.  With  Illustrations 
by  Stephen  T.  Dadd.    Cheaper  Edition.    Demy  8vo,  6s. 

RONALDSHAY.    Sport  and  Politics  under  an  Eastern  Sky.    By 

the  Earl  of  Ronaldshay,  F.R.G.S.  With  numerous  Illustrations  and  Maps. 
Royal  8vo,  21s.  net 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  27 


ROSSLYN.    Twice  Captured.    A  Record  of  Adventure  during 

the  Boer  War.  By  the  Right  Hon.  the  Earl  of  Rosslyn.  With  60  Illustrations. 
Third  Edition.    Post  8vo,  10s.  6d. 

RUTLAND. 

Notes  of  an  Irish  Tour  in  1846.    By  the  Duke  of  Rutland, 

G.C.B.  (Lord  John  Manners).    New  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

Correspondence   between   the  Right  Honble.   William   Pitt 

and  Charles  Duke  of  Rutland,  Lord-Lieutenant  of  Ireland,  1781-1787.  With 
Introductory  Note  by  John  Duke  or  Rutland.    8vo,  7s.  6d. 

RUTLAND. 

The  Collected  Writings  of  Janetta,  Duchess  of  Rutland.    With 

Portrait  and  Illustrations.    2  vols,  post  8vo,  15s.  net. 

Impressions  of  Bad-Homburg.    Comprising  a  Short  Account 

of  the  Women's  Associations  of  Germany  under  the  Red  Cross.  By  the  Duchess 
of  Rutland  (Lady  John  Manners).    Crown  8vo,  Is.  6d. 

Some  Personal  Recollections  of  the  Later  Years  of  the  Earl 

of  Beaconsfield,  E.G.    Sixth  Edition.    6d. 

Employment  of  Women  in  the  Public  Service.    6d. 

Some  of  the  Advantages  of  Easily  Accessible  Reading  and 

Recreation  Rooms  and  Free  Libraries.  With  Remarks  on  Starting  and  Main- 
taining them.     Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  Is. 

A  Sequel  to  Rich  Men's  Dwellings,  and  other  Occasional 

Papers.     Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

Encouraging  Experiences  of  Reading  and  Recreation  Rooms, 

Aims  of  Guilds,  Nottingham  Social  Guide,  Existing  Institutions,  &c,  &c. 
Crown  8vo,  Is. 

SAINTSBURY. 

A  History  of  Criticism  and  Literary  Taste  in  Europe.    From 

the  Earliest  Texts  to  the  Present  Day.  By  George  Saintsbury,  M.A.  (Oxon.), 
Hon.  LL.D.  (Aberd.),  Professor  of  Rhetoric  and  English  Literature  in  the  Univer- 
sity of  Edinburgh.  In  3  vols,  demy  8vo.  Vol.  I.— Classical  and  Mediaeval  Criti- 
cism.    16s.  net. 

Vol.  II.— From  the  Renaissance  to  the  Decline  of  Eighteenth  Century  Ortho- 
doxy. [In  the  press. 

Matthew  Arnold.    "Modern  English  Writers."    Second  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  2s.  6d. 

The  Flourishing  of  Romance  and  the  Rise  of  Allegory  (12th 

and  13th  Centuries).     "Periods  of  European  Literature."    Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

The  Earlier  Renaissance.     "  Periods  of  European  Literature." 

Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

SARGENT.    A  Woman  and  a  Creed.    By  H.  Garton  Sargent. 

Crown  8vo,  6s. 

SCOTT.    Tom  Cringle's  Log.    By  Michael  Scott.    New  Edition. 

With  19  Pull-page  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

SCUDAMORE.    Belgium  and  the  Belgians.    By  Cyril  Scttda- 

more.     With  Illustrations.    Square  crown  8vo,  6s. 

SELKIRK.    Poems.    By  J.  B.  Selkirk,  Author  of  *  Ethics  and 

Esthetics  of  Modern  Poetry,'  'Bible  Truths  with  Shakespearian  Parallels,'  &c. 
New  and  Enlarged  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  printed  on  antique  paper,  6s. 


28  List  of  Books  Published  by 


SETH.    A  Study  of  Ethical  Principles.    By  James  Seth,  M.A., 

Professor  of  Moral  Philosophy  in  the  University  of  Edinburgh.  Sixth  Edition, 
Revised.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

SIMPSON.     The  Wild  Rabbit  in  a  New  Aspect;   or,  Rabbit- 

Warrens  that  Pay.  A  book  for  Landowners,  Sportsmen,  Land  Agents,  Farmers, 
Gamekeepers,  and  Allotment  Holders.  A  Record  of  Recent  Experiments  con- 
ducted on  the  Estate  of  the  Right  Hon.  the  Earl  of  Wharncliffe  at  Wortley  Hall. 
By  J.  Simpson.    Second  Edition,  Enlarged.    Small  crown  8vo,  5s. 

SIMPSON.    Side-Lights  on  Siberia.     Some  account  of  the  Great 

Siberian  Iron  Road :  The  Prisons  and  Exile  System.  By  J.  Y.  Simpson,  M.A., 
B.Sc.    With  numerous  Illustrations  and  a  Map.    Demy  8vo,  16s. 

SINCLAIR. 

Mr  and  Mrs  Nevill  Tyson.    By  May  Sinclair.    Crown  8vo, 

3s.  6d. 

Audrey  Craven.     Second  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 
SINJOHN.     A  Man  of  Devon,  and  other  Sketches.     By  John 

Sinjohn,  Author  of  •  Villa  Rubein,'  '  Jocelyn,'  '  From  the  Four  Winds,'  &c. 
Crown  8vo,  6s. 

SKELTON. 

The  Table-Talk  of  Shirley.     By  Sir  John  Skelton,  K.C.B., 

LL.D.,  Author  of  '  The  Essays  of  Shirley."  With  a  Frontispiece.  Sixth  Edition, 
Revised  and  Enlarged     Post  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

The  Table-Talk  of  Shirley.    Second  Series.     With  Illustra- 
tions.   Two  Volumes.    Second  Edition.    Post  8vo,  10s.  net. 
Maitland  of  Lethington ;  and  the  Scotland  of  Mary  Stuart. 

A  History.    Limited  Edition,  with  Portraits.    Demy  8vo,  2  vols.,  28s.  net. 

The  Handbook  of  Public  Health.     A  New  Edition,  Revised  by 

James  Patten  Macdougall,  Advocate,  Secretary  of  the  Local  Government 
Board  for  Scotland,  Joint- Author  of '  The  Parish  Council  Guide  for  Scotland, 
and  Abijah  Murray,  Chief  Clerk  of  the  Local  Government  Board  for  Scotland. 
In  Two  Parts.  Crown  8vo.  Part  I.— The  Public  Health  (Scotland)  Act,  1897, 
with  Notes.  3s.  6d.  net. 
Part  II.— Circulars  of  the  Local  Government  Board,  &c.  [In  preparation. 

The  Local  Government  (Scotland)  Act  in  Relation  to  Public 

Health.  A  Handy  Guide  for  County  and  District  Councillors,  Medical  Officers, 
Sanitary  Inspectors,  and  Members  of  Parochial  Boards.  Second  Edition.  With 
a  new  Preface  on  appointment  of  Sanitary  Officers.    Crown  8vo,  2s. 

SMITH. 

The  Transition  Period.     "Periods  of  European  Literature." 

By  G.  Gregory  Smith.     Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

Specimens  of  Middle  Scots.    In  1  vol.  post  8vo.  [in  the  press. 

SMITH.     Retrievers,  and  how  to  Break  them.     By  Lieutenant- 

Colcnel  Sir  Henry  Smith,  K.C.B.  With  an  Introduction  by  Mr  S.  E.  Shirley, 
President  of  the  Kennel  Club.  Dedicated  by  special  permission  to  H.R.H.  the 
Duke  of  Cornwall  and  York.  New  Edition,  enlarged.  With  additional  Illus- 
trations.    Crown  8vo.  2s. 

SNELL.     The   Fourteenth    Century.     "Periods   of    European 

Literature."    By  F.  J.  Snell.    Crown  8vo,  5s.  net. 

SOLBfe     Hints  on  Hockey.    By  F.  De  Lisle  Solbe.    English 

M         International  Team  :  1897,  1898,  1899,  1900.    With  Diagrams.     Fcap.  8vo,  Is. 

'*€ON  OF  THE  MARSHES,  A." 

From  Spring  to  Fall :  or,  When  Life  Stirs.     By  "A  Son  of 

the  Marshes."    Cheap  Uniform  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Within  an  Hour  of  London  Town :  Among  Wild  Birds  and 

their  Haunts.    Edited  by  J.  A.  Owen.    Cheap  Uniform  Edition.    Cr.  8vo,  3s.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  29 


"SON  OF  THE  MARSHES,  A." 

With  the  Woodlanders  and  by  the  Tide.     Cheap  Uniform 

Edition.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

On  Surrey  Hills.    Cheap  Uniform  Edition.   Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
Annals  of  a  Fishing  Village.     Cheap  Uniform  Edition.    Crown 

8vo,  3s.  6d. 

SORLEY.  The  Ethics  of  Naturalism.  Being  the  Shaw  Fellow- 
ship Lectures,  1884.  By  W.  R.  Sorley,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cam- 
bridge, Professor  of  Moral  Philosophy,  University  of  Cambridge.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

SPROTT. 

The  Worship  and  Offices  of  the  Church  of  Scotland.     By 

George  W.  Sprott,  D.D.,  Minister  of  North  Berwick.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Book  of  Common  Order  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  com- 
monly known  as  John  Knox's  Liturgy.  With  Historical  Introduction  and  Illus- 
trative Notes.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  6d.  net. 

Scottish  Liturgies  of  the  Reign  of  James  VI.     Edited,  with 

an  Introduction  and  Notes.    Crown  8vo,  4s.  net. 

STEEVENS. 

Things  Seen  :  Impressions  of  Men,  Cities,  and  Books.    By  the 

late  G.  W.  Steevens.  Edited  by  G.  S.  Street.  With  a  Memoir  by  W.  E. 
Henley,  and  a  Photogravure  reproduction  of  Collier's  Portrait.  Memorial  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  6s. 

From  Capetown  to  Lady  smith,  and  Egypt  in  1898.    Memorial 

Edition.    Crown  Svo,  6s. 

In  India.     With  Map.    Memorial  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 
With    Kitchener  to    Khartum.      With   8   Maps  and    Plans. 

Memorial  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

The  Land  of  the  Dollar.     Memorial  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Glimpses    of    Three   Nations.      Memorial   Edition.      Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

Monologues  of  the  Dead.    Memorial  Edition.  Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
With  the  Conquering  Turk.    With  4  Maps.    Cheap  Edition. 

Crown  8vo,  6s, 

From  Capetown  to  Ladysmith  :  An  Unfinished  Record  of  the 

South  African  War.  Edited  by  Vernon  Blackburn.  With  Maps.  Crown  Svo, 
3s.  6d. 

STEPHENS. 

The  Book  of  the  Farm  ;  detailing  the  Labours  of  the  Farmer, 

Farm-Steward,  Ploughman,  Shepherd,  Hedger,  Farm-Labourer,  Field-Worker, 
and  Cattle-man.  Illustrated  with  numerous  Portraits  of  Animals  and  Engravings 
of  Implements,  and  Plans  of  Farm  Buildings.  Fourth  Edition.  Revised,  and 
in  great  part  Re-written,  by  James  Macdonald,  F.R.S.E.,  Secretary  Highland 
and  Agricultural  Society  of  Scotland.  Complete  in  Six  Divisional  Volumes, 
bound  in  cloth,  each  10s.  6d.,  or  handsomely  bound,  in  3  volumes,  with  leather 
back  and  gilt  top,  £3,  3s. 

Catechism  of  Practical  Agriculture.    22d  Thousand.     Revised 

by  James  Macdonald,  F.R.S.E.    With  numerous  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo,  Is. 

The  Book  of  Farm  Implements  and  Machines.     By  J.  Slight 

and  R.  Scott  Burn,  Engineers.    Edited  by  Henry  Stephens.    Large  8vo,  £2,  2s. 

STEVENSON.     British    Fungi.     (Hymenomycetes.)     By    Rev. 

John  Stevenson,  Author  of  •  Mycologia  Scotica,'  Hon.  Sec.  Cryptogamic  Society 
of  Scotland.    Vols.  I.  and  II.,  post  8vo,  with  Illustrations,  prir»e  12s.  6d.  net  each. 

STEWART.      Haud  Immemor.      Reminiscences   of    Legal    and 

Social  Life  in  Edinburgh  and  London,  1850-1900.  By  Charles  Stewart.  With 
10  Photogravure  Plates.    Royal  8vo,  7s.  6d 


30  List  of  Books  Published  by 

STEWART  and  CUFF.    Practical  Nursing.    By  Isla  Stewart, 

Matron  of  St  Bartholomew's  Hospital,  London ;  and  Herbert  B.  Cuff,  M.D., 
P.R.C.S.,  Medical  Superintendent  North- Eastern  Fever  Hospital,  Tottenham, 
London.  With  Diagrams.  In  2  vols,  crown  8vo.  Vol.  I.  Second  Edition. 
3s.  6d.  net.  [Vol.  II.  in  the  press. 

STODDART.    John  Stuart  Blackie :   A  Biography.    By  Anna 

M.  Stoddart.    Popular  Edition,  with  Portrait.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

STORMONTH. 

Dictionary  of  the  English  Language,  Pronouncing,  Etymo- 
logical, and  Explanatory.  By  the  Rev.  James  Stormonth.  Revised  by  the 
Rev.  P.  H.  Phelp.  Library  Edition.  New  and  Cheaper  Edition,  with  Supple- 
ment.   Imperial  8vo,  handsomely  bound  in  half  morocco,  18s.  net. 

Etymological   and   Pronouncing   Dictionary   of   the   English 

Language.  Including  a  very  Copious  Selection  of  Scientific  Terms.  For  use  in 
Schools  and  Colleges,  and  as  a  Book  of  General  Reference.  The  Pronunciation 
carefully  revised  by  the  Rev.  P.  H.  Phelp,  M.A.  Cantab.  Thirteenth  Edition, 
with  Supplement.    Crown  8vo,  pp.  800.     7s.  6d. 

Handy  Dictionary.     New  Edition,  thoroughly  Revised.     By 

William  Bayne.    ltimo,  Is. 

STORY.    The  Apostolic  Ministry  in  the  Scottish  Church  (The 

Baird  Lecture  for  1897).  By  Robert  Herbert  Story,  D.D.  (Edin.),  F.S.A. 
Scot.,  Principal  of  the  University  of  Glasgow,  Principal  Clerk  of  the  General 
Assembly,  and  Chaplain  to  the  Queen.     Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

STORY. 

Poems.    By  W.  W.  Story,  Author  of  '  Roba  di  Roma,'  &c.    2 

vols.  7s.  6d. 

Fiammetta.    A  Summer  Idyl.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 
Conversations  in  a  Studio.    2  vols,  crown  8vo,  12s.  6d. 
Excursions  in  Art  and  Letters.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 
A  Poet's  Portfolio  :  Later  Readings.     18mo,  3s.  6d. 

STRACHEY.     Talk  at  a  Country   House.    Fact  and  Fiction. 

By  Sir  Edward  Strachey,  Bart.  With  a  portrait  of  the  Author.  Crown  8vo, 
4s.  6d.  net. 

TAYLOR.     The    Story    of    my    Life.     By    the    late    Colonel 

Meadows  Taylor,  Author  oi  'The  Confessions  of  a  Thug,'  &c,  &c.  Edited  by 
his  Daughter.    New  and  Cheaper  Edition,  being  the  Fourth.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

THOMSON. 

Handy  Book  of  the  Flower-Garden :  Being  Practical  Direc- 
tions for  the  Propagation,  Culture,  and  Arrangement  of  Plants  in  Flower- 
Gardens  all  the  year  round.  With  Engraved  Plans.  By  David  Thomson, 
Gardener  to  his  Grace  the  Duke  of  Buccleuch,  K.T.,  at  Drumlanrig.  Fourth 
and  Cheaper  Edition.     Crown  8vo,  5s. 

The  Handy   Book   of  Fruit-Culture  under  Glass :   Being   a 

series  of  Elaborate  Practical  Treatises  on  the  Cultivation  and  Forcing  of  Pines, 
Vines,  Peaches,  Figs,  Melons,  Strawberries,  and  Cucumbers.  With  Engravings 
of  Hothouses,  &c.     Second  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged.    Crown  8vo,  7s.  6d. 

THOMSON.    A  Practical  Treatise  on  the  Cultivation  of  the 

Grape  Vine.     By  William  Thomson,  Tweed  Vineyards.    Tenth  Edition.     8vo,  5s. 

THOMSON.    Cookery  for  the  Sick  and  Convalescent.    With 

Directions  for  the  Preparation  of  Poultices,  Fomentations,  &c.  By  Barbara 
Thomson.    Fcap.  8vo,  Is.  6d. 


William  Blackwood  &  Sons.  31 

TIELE.  Elements  of  the  Science  of  Religion.  Part  I. — Morpho- 
logical. Part  II. — Ontological.  Being  the  Gifford  Lectures  delivered  before  the 
University  of  Edinburgh  in  1896-98.  By  0.  P.  Tlele,  Theol.  D.,  Litt.D.  (Bonon.), 
Hon.  M.R.A.8.,  &c,  Professor  of  the  Science  of  Religion,  in  the  University  of 
Leiden.    In  2  vols,  post  8vo,  7s.  6d.  net.  each. 

TRANSACTIONS  OF  THE  HIGHLAND  AND  AGRICUL- 
TURAL SOCIETY  OF  SCOTLAND.    Published  annually,  price  5s. 

TRAVERS. 

The  Way  of  Escape.  A  Novel.  By  Graham  Travers  (Mar- 
garet Todd,  M.D.)    Second  Impression.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Mona  Maclean,  Medical  Student.  A  Novel.  Fourteenth  Edi- 
tion.   Crown  8vo,  6s.    Cheaper  Edition,  2s.  6d. 

Windyhaugh.    Fourth  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 
Fellow  Travellers.    Fourth  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

TROTTER.      A  Leader  of  Light  Horse.     Life  of  Hodson  of 

Hodson's  Horse.  By  Captain  L.  J.  Trotter,  Author  of  '  Life  of  John  Nicholson, 
Soldier  and  Statesman.'    With  a  Portrait  and  2  Maps.     Demy  8vo,  16s. 

TULLOCH. 

Rational  Theology  and  Christian  Philosophy  in  England  in 

the  Seventeenth  Century.  By  John  Txtlloch,  D.D.,  Principal  of  St  Mary's  Col- 
lege in  the  University  of  St  Andrews,  and  one  of  her  Majesty's  Chaplains  in 
Ordinary  in  Scotland.    Second  Edition.    2  vols.  8vo,  16s. 

Modern  Theories  in  Philosophv  and  Religion.    8vo,  15s. 
Luther,  and  other  Leaders  of  the  Reformation.    Third  Edi- 
tion, Enlarged.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

Memoir  of  Principal  Tulloch,  D.D,  LL.D.    By  Mrs  Oliphant, 

Author  of  '  Life  of  Edward  Irving.'  Third  and  Cheaper  Edition.  8vo,  with 
Portrait,  7s.  6d. 

TWEEDIE.     The  Arabian   Horse:    His  Country  and   People. 

By  Major  -General  W.  Tweedie,  C.S.I.,  Bengal  Staff  Corps;  for  many  years 
H.B.M.'s  Consul- General,  Baghdad,  and  Political  Resident  for  the  Government 
of  India  in  Turkish  Arabia.  In  one  vol.  royal  4to,  with  Seven  Coloured  Plates 
and  other  Hlustrations,  and  a  Map  of  the  Country.    Price  £3,  3s.  nst. 

VEITCH.    The  History  and  Poetry  of  the  Scottish  Border :  their 

Main  Features  and  Relations.  By  John  Veitch,  LL.D.,  Professor  of  Logic 
and  Rhetoric,  University  of  Glasgow.  New  and  Enlarged  Edition.  2  voIb. 
demy  8vo,  16s. 

VETCH.      Life,    Letters,    and    Diaries    of    Lieut. -General    Sir 

Gerald  Graham,  V.C.,  G.C.B.,  R.E.  By  Colonel  R.  H.  Vetch,  C.B.,  late  Royal 
Engineers.    With  Portraits,  Plans,  and  his  Principal  Despatches.    Demy  8vo,  21s. 

WAGE.    Christianity  and  Agnosticism.    Reviews  of  some  Recent 

Attacks  on  the  Christian  Faith.  By  Henry  Wace,  D.D.,  late  Principal  of  King's 
College,  London :  Preacher  of  Lincoln's  Inn ;  Chaplain  to  the  King.  Second 
Edition.    Post  8vo,  6s.  net. 

WADDELL. 

An   Old   Kirk   Chronicle  :    Being  a  History  of   Auldhame, 

Tyninghame,  and  Whitekirk,  in  East  Lothian.  From  Session  Records,  1615  to 
1850.  By  Rev.  P.  Hately  Waddell,  B.D.,  Minister  of  the  United  Parish. 
Small  Paper  Edition  200  Copies.  Price  £1.  Large  Paper  Edition,  50  Copies. 
Price,  £1,  10s. 

Christianity  as  an  Ideal.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 


32     Books  Published  by   William  Blackwood  &  Sons. 

WARREN'S  (SAMUEL)  WORKS :- 

Diary  of  a  Late  Physician.  Cloth,  2a.  6d. ;  boards,  2s. 
Ten  Thousand  A- Year.  Cloth,  3s.  6d. ;  boards,  2s.  6d. 
Now  and  Then.     The  Lily  and  the  Bee.      Intellectual  and 

Moral  Development  of  the  Present  Age.    4s.  6d. 

Essays  :  Critical,  Imaginative,  and  Juridical.     5s. 
WATSON.    Sir  Sergeant.    A  Story  of  Adventure  that  ensued 

upon  "The  '45."    By  W.  L.  Watson.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

WENLEY.     Aspects  of  Pessimism.     By  R.  M.  Wenley,  M.A., 

D.Sc,  D.Phil.,  Professor  of  Philosophy  in  the  University  of  Michigan, -U.S.A. 
Crown  8vo,  6s. 

WHIBLEY.      Thackeray.      "Modern    English    Writers."      By 

Charles  Whibley.    In  1  vol.  crown  8vo.  [In  the  press. 

WHITE.    Mountains  of  Necessity.    By  Hester  White.    Crown 

8vo,  6s. 

WHITE.     The  Ordnance  Survey  of  the  United  Kingdom.     By 

Colonel  T.  P.  White,  R.E.,  of  the  Ordnance  Survey.  A  Popular  Account, 
rirown  8vo.  5b. 

WILLIAMSON.    Ideals  of  Ministry.    By  A.  Wallace  William- 
son, D.D.,  St  Cuthbert's,  Edinburgh.    Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 

WILSON. 

Works  of   Professor  Wilson.      Edited  by  his    Son -in -Law, 

Professor  Perriek.    12  vols,  crown  8vo,  £2,  8s. 

Christopher  in  his  Sporting-Jacket.     2  vols.,  8s. 

Isle  of  Palms,  City  of  the  Plague,  and  other  Poems.     4s. 

Lights  and  Shadows  of  Scottish  Life,  and  other  Tales.   4s. 

Essays,  Critical  and  Imaginative.     4  vols.,  16s. 

The  Noctes  Ambrosianae.     4  vols.,  16s. 

Homer  and  his  Translators,  and  the  Greek  Drama.    Crown 

8vo,  4s. 

WORSLEY. 

Homer's   Odyssey.      Translated  into  English   Verse  in  the 

Spenserian  Stanza.  By  Philip  Stanhope  Worsley,  M.A.  New  and  Cheaper 
Edition.    Post  8vo,  7s.  6d.  net. 

Homer's  Iliad.     Translated  by  P.  S.  Worsley  and  Prof.  Con- 

ington.    3  vols,  crown  8vo,  21s. 

WOTHERSPOON. 

Kyrie  Eleison  ("  Lord,  have  Mercy  ").    A  Manual  of  Private 

Prayers.  With  Notes  and  Additional  Matter.  By  H.  J.  Wotherspoon,  M.A., 
of  St  Oswald's,  Edinburgh.     Cloth,  red  edges,  Is.  net ;  limp  leather,  Is.  6d.  net. 

Before  and  After.    Being  Part  I.  of  'Kyrie  Eleison'    Cloth, 
limp,  6d.  net. 

YATE.     Khurasan  and  Sistan.    By  Lieut.-Col.  C.  E.  Yate,  C.S.I., 

C.M.G.,  F.R.G  S.,  Indian  Staff  Corps,  Agent  to  the  Governor-General  and  Chief 
Commissioner  for  Baluchistan,  late  Agent  to  the  Governor-General  of  India,  and 
Her  Britannic  Majesty's  Consul-General  for  Khurasan  and  Sistan.  With  Map 
and  25  Illustrations,  and  Portraits.    Demy  8vo,  21s. 

ZACK. 

On  Trial.     By  Zack.     Second  Edition.    Crown  8vo,  6s. 

Life  is  Life,  and  other  Tales  and  Episodes.    Second  Edition. 

Crown  8vo,  6s. 
10/02